Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n contrary_a effect_n great_a 225 4 2.1340 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A33378 The Catholick doctrine of the Eucharist in all ages in answer to what H. Arnaud, Doctor of the Sorbon alledges, touching the belief of the Greek, Moscovite, Armenian, Jacobite, Nestorian, Coptic, Maronite, and other eastern churches : whereunto is added an account of the Book of the body and blood of our Lord published under the name of Bertram : in six books. Claude, Jean, 1619-1687. 1684 (1684) Wing C4592; ESTC R25307 903,702 730

There are 120 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

bread_n which_o remain_v after_o consecration_n the_o difficulty_n which_o the_o socinian_o object_n against_o the_o trinity_n and_o other_o doctrine_n mention_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n false_a consequence_n which_o these_o heretic_n draw_v from_o these_o doctrine_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o almost_o all_o christian_n be_v ignorant_a of_o these_o consequence_n they_o do_v not_o spring_v up_o natural_o for_o it_o be_v passion_n and_o blindness_n that_o produce_v they_o for_o i_o call_v blindness_n those_o false_a light_n which_o cause_n these_o heretic_n to_o behold_v that_o which_o be_v not_o but_o that_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n call_v the_o difficulty_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v real_a consequence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v he_o say_v as_o long_o as_o he_o will_v these_o be_v philosophical_a consequence_n i_o affirm_v they_o be_v not_o so_o philosophical_a as_o to_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v very_o natural_a appear_v to_o be_v so_o even_o to_o the_o light_n of_o common_a sense_n it_o be_v most_o natural_a for_o a_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n cease_v to_o be_v to_o think_v on_o the_o accident_n which_o remain_v it_o be_v very_o natural_a for_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v substantial_o therein_o to_o imagine_v that_o where_o the_o body_n or_o flesh_n be_v there_o must_v the_o blood_n be_v also_o which_o be_v call_v in_o one_o word_n the_o concomitancy_n it_o be_v most_o natural_a for_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n that_o nourish_v to_o consider_v what_o shall_v cause_v this_o nourishment_n it_o be_v very_o natural_a for_o a_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v a_o real_a humane_a body_n to_o inquire_v how_o this_o body_n can_v be_v strip_v of_o the_o propriety_n of_o its_o nature_n it_o be_v natural_a when_o we_o see_v worm_n which_o engender_v in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o inquire_v whence_o they_o take_v their_o matter_n it_o be_v likewise_o certain_a that_o philosophy_n be_v not_o proper_o any_o more_o concern_v in_o these_o consequence_n than_o bare_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o not_o to_o illustrate_v they_o and_o yet_o when_o they_o shall_v not_o appear_v in_o themselves_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o we_o suppose_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o this_o church_n to_o be_v in_o such_o a_o prodigious_a stupidity_n that_o for_o so_o many_o age_n since_o they_o have_v discover_v nothing_o of_o themselves_o touch_v these_o thing_n which_o will_v be_v in_o my_o mind_n one_o of_o the_o bold_a supposition_n imaginable_a yet_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v they_o have_v see_v they_o in_o the_o doctrine_n and_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o latin_n who_o have_v fill_v their_o religion_n with_o they_o since_o beringarius_n his_o time_n neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o it_o be_v man_n disputation_n which_o occasion_v all_o these_o question_n on_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o discover_v these_o consequence_n we_o speak_v of_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v fain_o persuade_v we_o to_o it_o but_o we_o know_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n itself_o of_o transubstantiation_n which_o have_v produce_v they_o for_o they_o take_v their_o birth_n from_o what_o our_o eye_n see_v and_o hand_n touch_v and_o experience_n which_o can_v but_o be_v acknowledge_v in_o effect_n they_o be_v to_o be_v find_v more_o among_o the_o schoolman_n than_o controvertist_n more_o among_o author_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o protestant_n there_o be_v so_o great_a absurdity_n in_o say_v the_o greek_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n suppose_v they_o believe_v it_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n seem_v to_o be_v ashamed_a to_o maintain_v it_o to_o the_o end_n 62._o ibid._n pag._n 62._o he_o turn_v himself_o on_o another_o side_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o docility_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o greek_n which_o will_v not_o permit_v they_o to_o behold_v these_o difficulty_n but_o this_o be_v very_o absurd_o answer_v again_o for_o be_v it_o thus_o the_o greek_n themselves_o will_v at_o least_o tell_v we_o something_o of_o it_o i_o mean_v they_o will_v tell_v we_o themselves_o in_o some_o sort_n that_o they_o know_v well_o all_o these_o consequence_n and_o be_v not_o so_o stupid_a but_o that_o they_o see_v such_o and_o such_o question_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n but_o that_o they_o behold_v they_o as_o a_o abyss_n which_o can_v be_v fathom_v or_o to_o use_v mr._n arnaud_n eloquent_a expression_n that_o they_o stifle_v and_o ibid._n ibid._n drown_v all_o humane_a thought_n in_o the_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o infallible_a authority_n of_o his_o church_n they_o will_v give_v some_o reason_n for_o their_o silence_n and_o endeavour_v to_o hinder_v its_o be_v interpret_v in_o a_o ill_a sense_n they_o will_v instruct_v their_o people_n in_o the_o same_o modesty_n and_o docility_n and_o observe_v that_o their_o conduct_n in_o this_o particular_a be_v more_o discreet_a than_o that_o of_o the_o latin_n and_o this_o be_v what_o the_o greek_n will_v do_v do_v they_o believe_v transubstantiation_n after_o this_o gentle_a and_o quiet_a manner_n mr._n arnaud_n attribute_n to_o they_o yet_o do_v they_o not_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v these_o consequence_n or_o difficulty_n they_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o their_o own_o silence_n in_o this_o respect_n but_o mr._n arnaud_n speak_v for_o they_o without_o any_o call_n or_o order_n from_o they_o he_o tell_v we_o his_o conception_n and_o those_o of_o ernulphus_n a_o english_a bishop_n of_o the_o twelve_o century_n but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o greek_n the_o greek_n be_v in_o such_o a_o absolute_a silence_n on_o this_o subject_a that_o this_o silence_n can_v come_v from_o any_o other_o cause_n than_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o not_o have_v the_o consequence_n of_o transubstantiation_n do_v no_o way_n oblige_v they_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o same_o consequence_n and_o thus_o far_o i_o think_v my_o argument_n may_v pass_v for_o good_a in_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o people_n that_o understand_v reason_n yet_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v 59_o ibid._n pag._n 59_o mere_a folly_n and_o extravagancy_n and_o to_o show_v it_o to_o be_v so_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o reason_n itself_o show_v we_o we_o must_v not_o disow_v certain_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n under_o pretence_n they_o appear_v contrary_a among_o themselves_o on_o weak_a conjecture_n but_o the_o certainty_n of_o these_o truth_n shall_v make_v we_o conclude_v touch_v the_o falsity_n of_o these_o reason_n and_o pretend_a contrariety_n it_o be_v add_v he_o as_o certain_a a_o truth_n as_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o kind_n can_v be_v that_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a church_n do_v believe_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o may_v be_v call_v in_o question_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n if_o we_o may_v doubt_v of_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o church_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o doctrine_n this_o be_v another_o truth_n that_o the_o greek_n take_v little_a notice_n of_o the_o philosophicl_n consequence_n whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o these_o two_o truth_n be_v equal_o certain_a they_o can_v be_v contrary_a and_o that_o they_o show_v we_o the_o falsity_n of_o mr._n claude_n consequence_n it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o never_o man_n have_v less_o trouble_n to_o answer_v a_o adversary_n than_o mr._n arnaud_n i_o prove_v to_o he_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n because_o they_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o its_o consequence_n nor_o difficulty_n he_o deny_v my_o consequence_n because_o the_o greek_n do_v believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o that_o two_o truth_n can_v be_v contradictory_n it_o cost_v little_a to_o make_v such_o kind_n of_o answer_n and_o it_o cost_v no_o more_o to_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n as_o he_o affirm_v it_o be_v that_o the_o greek_n believe_v the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n he_o will_v have_v no_o need_n to_o trouble_v himself_o to_o answer_v my_o argument_n for_o the_o question_n be_v decide_v there_o will_v be_v nothing_o remain_v upon_o this_o account_n betwixt_o we_o i_o believe_v i_o establish_v the_o negative_a which_o i_o defend_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o solid_o than_o he_o have_v prove_v his_o affirmative_a but_o if_o i_o pretend_v to_o elude_v his_o argument_n by_o say_v i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n because_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n i_o shall_v be_v a_o impertinent_a disputer_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o i_o shall_v
be_v so_o true_o and_o not_o false_o so_o th●s_v profession_n of_o faith_n than_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o vain_o and_o imaginarily_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o real_o and_o true_o although_o god_n only_o know_v how_o they_o be_v change_v or_o what_o kind_n of_o change_n happen_v to_o they_o now_o this_o suppose_n on_o one_o hand_n that_o they_o be_v still_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o on_o the_o other_o that_o we_o must_v not_o proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o a_o change_n of_o substance_n mr._n arnaud_n then_o advertise_v the_o world_n to_o no_o purpose_n that_o these_o kind_n of_o write_n be_v design_v to_o represent_v the_o general_n public_a and_o universal_a sentiment_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o particular_a sentiment_n of_o author_n that_o they_o contain_v a_o 246._o p._n 246._o exact_a precise_a and_o plain_a way_n of_o speak_v without_o figure_n or_o metaphor_n their_o end_n be_v only_o to_o give_v a_o exact_a and_o true_a account_n of_o point_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o turn_v these_o remark_n against_o himself_o for_o see_v these_o kind_n of_o write_n speak_v precise_o and_o exact_o he_o ought_v to_o show_v we_o distinct_o and_o exact_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n contain_v in_o they_o and_o see_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o and_o yet_o this_o profession_n of_o faith_n represent_v the_o general_n public_a and_o universal_a sentiment_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n it_o follow_v that_o this_o public_a general_n and_o universal_a sentiment_n be_v not_o transubstantiation_n to_o little_a purpose_n likewise_o do_v he_o add_v that_o the_o church_n will_v not_o have_v the_o 247._o p._n 247._o convert_v sarracen_n believe_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o true_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o his_o figure_n endue_v with_o their_o virtue_n this_o be_v not_o the_o point_n the_o question_n be_v to_o know_v whether_o they_o be_v teach_v the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n which_o be_v what_o he_o ought_v to_o show_v but_o this_o he_o will_v be_v never_o able_a to_o do_v for_o for_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v real_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v what_o be_v precise_o contain_v in_o this_o profession_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o as_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v the_o teach_v the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n moreover_o i_o never_o tell_v he_o the_o modern_a greek_n assert_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v a_o figure_n and_o as_o to_o the_o change_n of_o virtue_n we_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o it_o be_v true_a by_o this_o profession_n of_o faith_n but_o we_o prove_v it_o by_o other_o testimony_n which_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o expressive_a that_o mr._n arnaud_n can_v give_v no_o solid_a answer_n to_o they_o there_o only_o remain_v now_o of_o all_o those_o pretend_a proof_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n some_o passage_n out_o of_o cabasilas_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n simeon_n bishop_n also_o of_o thessalonica_n jeremias_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o some_o other_o greek_a author_n they_o all_o say_v near_o upon_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o be_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n this_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n that_o they_o be_v change_v into_o this_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o mr._n arnaud_n must_v disabuse_v himself_o once_o for_o all_o touch_v the_o thought_n he_o have_v that_o from_o these_o kind_n of_o expression_n may_v be_v conclude_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n for_o so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o grant_v this_o conclusion_n to_o be_v good_a that_o we_o pretend_v we_o have_v reason_n to_o draw_v a_o contrary_a consequence_n in_o effect_n one_a there_o be_v nothing_o more_o usual_a in_o author_n than_o to_o say_v that_o the_o poor_a be_v jesus_n christ_n even_o christ_n himself_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o very_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o be_v change_v into_o jesus_n christ_n change_v into_o his_o body_n transform_v into_o he_o change_v into_o his_o flesh_n and_o such_o like_a way_n of_o speak_v example_n of_o which_o be_v infinite_a it_o be_v then_o a_o great_a abuse_n to_o pretend_v these_o term_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o sense_n of_o identity_n and_o substantial_a conversion_n as_o they_o term_v it_o for_o as_o i_o say_v elsewhere_o these_o expression_n be_v liable_a to_o be_v expound_v in_o divers_a particular_a sense_n and_o see_v they_o may_v be_v take_v in_o a_o general_n and_o indistinct_a one_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n for_o the_o take_v they_o in_o the_o sense_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n give_v they_o ii_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o those_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v of_o itself_o form_n so_o precise_a and_o distinct_a a_o sense_n that_o when_o author_n will_v assert_v it_o they_o explain_v it_o in_o clear_a and_o distinct_a term_n which_o answer_v the_o distinct_a determinate_a conception_n they_o have_v of_o it_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o greek_a author_n have_v on_o this_o subject_a the_o same_o belief_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o will_v explain_v themselves_o so_o clear_o that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o run_v to_o the_o baron_n of_o spartaris_n nor_o paysius_fw-la ligaridius_n nor_o yet_o to_o the_o six_o syrian_a priest_n to_o make_v we_o understand_v it_o for_o whilst_o he_o produce_v no_o other_o kind_n of_o passage_n but_o such_o as_o these_o we_o shall_v have_v still_o reason_n to_o conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n because_o if_o they_o do_v believe_v it_o they_o will_v without_o doubt_n speak_v otherwise_o of_o it_o iii_o but_o suppose_v these_o reason_n invalid_n we_o have_v show_v when_o we_o treat_v of_o the_o real_a belief_n of_o the_o greek_n in_o what_o sense_n they_o understand_v these_o expression_n in_o effect_n if_o we_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_n with_o that_o of_o the_o latin_n and_o thro_o comprehend_v what_o they_o hold_v in_o common_a and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v we_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v mr._n arnaud_n sophism_n for_o whatsoever_o he_o allege_v from_o greek_a author_n respect_v this_o equivocal_a part_n of_o their_o hypothesis_n which_o he_o believe_v to_o be_v like_o that_o of_o the_o latin_n although_o at_o bottom_n it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o he_o have_v studious_o avoid_v the_o relate_v any_o thing_n concern_v this_o other_o part_n by_o which_o the_o two_o hypothesis_n distinguish_v themselves_o and_o vary_v from_o one_o another_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n agree_v in_o these_o general_a expression_n the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o become_v the_o very_a body_n the_o proper_a body_n the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o two_o body_n but_o one_o body_n so_o far_o you_o see_v they_o hold_v the_o same_o language_n but_o go_v far_o ask_v they_o whether_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n cease_v to_o be_v the_o latin_n answer_n there_o remain_v nothing_o of_o its_o substance_n nor_o matter_n nor_o inward_a form_n but_o only_o the_o accident_n the_o greek_n on_o the_o contrary_n say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v join_v to_o the_o divinity_n that_o from_o this_o union_n result_v one_o compose_v of_o two_o nature_n that_o there_o be_v make_v a_o composition_n of_o bread_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n ask_v the_o latin_n how_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o answer_v by_o the_o conversion_n of_o its_o whole_a substance_n into_o the_o substance_n which_o this_o body_n have_v before_o the_o conversion_n the_o greek_n on_o the_o contrary_n say_v the_o bread_n become_v a_o augmentation_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o be_v make_v by_o this_o mean_v his_o body_n ask_v they_o what_o change_v the_o bread_n receive_v the_o latin_n say_v it_o be_v a_o real_a transubstantiation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o change_n of_o one_o substance_n into_o another_o the_o greek_n on_o the_o contrary_a answer_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sanctification_n which_o the_o bread_n receive_v and_o that_o it_o be_v change_v into_o the_o supernatural_a virtue_n of_o christ_n body_n ask_v the_o latin_n how_o the_o bread_n become_v the_o real_a body_n the_o very_a body_n the_o proper_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n they_o answer_v it_o be_v because_o in_o effect_v the_o same_o numerical_a substance_n without_o any_o difference_n the_o greek_n on_o the_o contrary_n say_v that_o it_o be_v because_o a_o augmentation_n make_v not_o another_o body_n
themselves_o to_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o object_n which_o be_v present_a before_o our_o eye_n as_o so_o many_o mark_n of_o reverence_n give_v to_o it_o this_o can_v be_v true_o say_v for_o the_o trisagion_n be_v address_v to_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o not_o to_o the_o sacrament_n what_o also_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o three_o genuflexion_n may_v be_v make_v in_o honour_n of_o the_o three_o person_n those_o that_o know_v the_o temper_n of_o the_o greek_n need_v not_o be_v tell_v what_o great_a lover_n of_o mystery_n they_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n as_o combesis_n do_v somewhere_o observe_v graeci_n say_v he_o sunt_fw-la valde_fw-la mystici_fw-la it_o be_v then_o very_a likely_a that_o the_o number_n of_o three_o in_o their_o kneel_n have_v a_o mystical_a reason_n and_o refer_v itself_o to_o three_o person_n but_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n it_o be_v not_o 726._o p._n 726._o necessary_a to_o sing_v always_o the_o trisagion_n and_o when_o it_o be_v not_o sing_v yet_o the_o three_o genuflexion_n be_v make_v i_o grant_v it_o the_o three_o genuflexion_n then_o be_v not_o make_v to_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n this_o conclusion_n be_v not_o good_a can_v they_o not_o think_v of_o the_o trinity_n nor_o worship_n it_o but_o they_o must_v sing_v the_o trisagion_n mr._n claude_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n must_v prove_v that_o these_o term_n of_o the_o body_n of_o 725._o p._n 725._o jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n before_o he_o can_v just_o blame_v this_o translation_n as_o false_a do_v ever_o any_o man_n behold_v a_o more_o unreasonable_a pretention_n the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n shall_v bring_v in_o his_o prejudication_n into_o his_o translation_n and_o add_v unto_o they_o what_o he_o please_v and_o have_v thus_o accommodate_v they_o to_o his_o sense_n he_o may_v give_v they_o i_o for_o good_a and_o substantial_a proof_n and_o i_o must_v not_o have_v the_o liberty_n to_o charge_v his_o translation_n with_o falsity_n till_o i_o have_v show_v his_o prejudication_n to_o be_v false_a be_v there_o the_o least_o dram_n of_o equity_n in_o this_o after_o this_o rate_n mr._n arnaud_n may_v translate_v thus_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o proper_a substance_n for_o this_o translation_n be_v agreeable_a to_o his_o prejudication_n he_o may_v allege_v they_o to_o i_o in_o this_o form_n as_o a_o good_a and_o excellent_a proof_n and_o if_o i_o tell_v he_o his_o translation_n be_v false_a and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o thus_o in_o the_o original_a he_o may_v maintain_v against_o i_o that_o i_o have_v not_o the_o liberty_n to_o charge_v his_o translation_n as_o false_a till_o such_o time_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o term_n of_o body_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o body_n in_o proper_a substance_n and_o the_o law_n of_o controversy_n be_v as_o well_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o one_o party_n as_o the_o other_o i_o will_v render_v the_o same_o word_n this_o bread_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o produce_v my_o translation_n as_o a_o express_a proof_n of_o my_o sentiment_n i_o will_v likewise_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o must_v not_o accuse_v my_o translation_n as_o false_a till_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o by_o the_o term_n of_o body_n when_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n we_o must_v not_o understand_v the_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o add_v he_o as_o this_o be_v a_o unjustifyable_a pretention_n to_o wit_n the_o pretention_n that_o the_o term_n of_o body_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o true_a body_n and_o be_v particular_o confute_v by_o all_o the_o greek_n of_o our_o time_n in_o suppose_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n signify_v the_o real_a body_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v have_v reason_n to_o suppose_v that_o those_o of_o bend_v the_o knee_n signify_v a_o real_a adoration_n what_o weak_a argue_n be_v here_o suppose_v these_o three_o genuflexion_n refer_v themselves_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o receive_v into_o our_o mouth_n suppose_v that_o by_o the_o term_n of_o body_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o body_n in_o proper_a substance_n then_o mr._n arnaud_n translation_n will_v be_v tolerable_a there_o be_v so_o great_a irregularity_n in_o all_o this_o that_o the_o plain_a repetition_n of_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o confute_v it_o and_o thus_o have_v we_o consider_v whatsoever_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v propose_v of_o any_o weight_n in_o his_o seven_o book_n and_o in_o his_o second_o three_o and_o four_o touch_v the_o greek_n to_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o transubstantiation_n be_v one_o of_o their_o doctrine_n we_o have_v meet_v with_o several_a delusion_n and_o many_o paralogism_n which_o be_v the_o two_o character_n of_o a_o person_n that_o be_v deceive_v himself_o and_o will_v have_v other_o to_o be_v deceive_v with_o he_o he_o have_v not_o be_v spare_v of_o his_o fruitless_a history_n false_a supposition_n starch_a preface_n amplification_n exclamation_n and_o in_o a_o word_n of_o any_o of_o the_o artifices_fw-la of_o rhetoric_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o strange_a be_v he_o have_v never_o less_o shun_v the_o slip_n into_o these_o default_n then_o when_o he_o have_v himself_o most_o unjust_o accuse_v i_o of_o they_o i_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o his_o invective_n and_o sharpness_n with_o which_o he_o have_v stuff_v his_o discourse_n to_o render_v they_o more_o take_v and_o agreeable_a nor_o of_o that_o common_a custom_n of_o he_o of_o take_v in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n the_o most_o solid_a matter_n to_o make_v they_o seem_v ridiculous_a all_o which_o have_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o i_o have_v do_v the_o three_o thing_n i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o prove_v the_o first_o to_o show_v that_o although_o it_o be_v true_a the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n it_o will_v not_o thence_o follow_v that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v perpetual_o in_o the_o church_n the_o other_o that_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o in_o effect_n hold_v transubstantiation_n nor_o adore_v the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o three_o that_o all_o mr._n arnaud_n effort_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a proposition_n be_v ineffectual_a and_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o proof_n conclude_v direct_o against_o himself_o the_o first_o of_o these_o have_v be_v establish_v by_o solid_a reflection_n on_o evident_a matter_n of_o fact_n the_o second_o by_o good_a proof_n and_o the_o three_o by_o pertinent_a answer_n and_o most_o natural_a consequence_n it_o only_o remain_v now_o to_o be_v conclude_v from_o this_o whole_a dispute_n that_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o substantial_a presence_n be_v in_o effect_n a_o innovation_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o not_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n see_v they_o be_v not_o find_v establish_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n this_o conclusion_n be_v as_o every_o man_n may_v see_v direct_o opposite_a to_o that_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n but_o if_o compare_v together_o it_o will_v be_v soon_o find_v that_o i_o be_v draw_v from_o my_o principle_n with_o far_o great_a evidence_n and_o necessity_n than_o the_o other_o follow_v from_o he_o for_o suppose_v the_o greek_n do_v believe_v the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n it_o can_v hence_o follow_v that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v perpetual_o hold_v by_o that_o church_n as_o we_o make_v appear_v in_o our_o second_o book_n but_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a sign_n that_o it_o be_v neither_o believe_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v of_o by_o the_o two_o church_n before_o their_o separation_n if_o the_o greek_n do_v now_o at_o this_o day_n believe_v this_o doctrine_n have_v not_o do_v so_o heretofore_o we_o can_v marvel_v thereat_o consider_v their_o condition_n as_o it_o have_v be_v represent_v by_o we_o since_o the_o eleven_o century_n and_o the_o unwearied_a pain_n the_o latin_n have_v take_v for_o the_o propogation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o east_n to_o which_o end_n they_o have_v use_v and_o do_v still_o use_v all_o kind_n of_o mean_n but_o suppose_v they_o believe_v it_o heretofore_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o conceive_v they_o have_v cease_v believe_v it_o because_o it_o be_v natural_o more_o difficult_a for_o man_n to_o give_v over_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v once_o believe_v than_o to_o begin_v to_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o because_o likewise_o the_o least_o effect_v this_o aforementioned_a commerce_n of_o the_o latin_n with_o the_o greek_n can_v produce_v will_v be_v to_o cherish_v and_o preserve_v a_o doctrine_n of_o this_o importance_n among_o the_o greek_n themselves_o and_o to_o hinder_v its_o be_v lose_v the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n a_o answer_n to_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n intit'led_a the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n defend_v part_n
and_o disperse_v it_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o several_a without_o resistance_n and_o thus_o this_o doctrine_n have_v make_v in_o the_o space_n of_o these_o hundred_o year_n insensible_a progress_v establish_v itself_o by_o little_a and_o little_a under_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n till_o have_v be_v at_o length_n direct_o and_o formal_o contradict_v in_o the_o 11_o as_o a_o innovation_n this_o doctrine_n find_v itself_o the_o strong_a and_o triumph_v over_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n what_o difficulty_n can_v be_v raise_v against_o this_o hypothesis_n which_o may_v not_o be_v easy_o solve_v if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o paschasus_n do_v not_o propose_v any_o thing_n but_o what_o all_o the_o faithful_a already_o distinct_o know_v and_o believe_v paschasus_n himself_o will_v answer_v for_o i_o that_o he_o have_v move_v several_a person_n to_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o mystery_n which_o suppose_v that_o before_o his_o time_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o know_v and_o that_o he_o discover_v thing_n of_o which_o the_o people_n be_v ignorant_a odon_n will_v answer_v for_o i_o that_o the_o most_o learned_a have_v but_o little_a knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n if_o they_o have_v not_o read_v paschasus_n his_o book_n if_o it_o be_v say_v his_o doctrine_n meet_v with_o no_o contradiction_n paschasus_n himself_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o some_o blame_v he_o for_o attribute_v more_o to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o truth_n itself_o have_v promise_v we_o and_o it_o be_v hereon_o he_o dispute_v against_o his_o adversary_n shall_v a_o man_n deny_v that_o the_o two_o doctrine_n that_o of_o paschasus_n and_o that_o of_o his_o adversary_n be_v both_o teach_v in_o the_o 10_o century_n he_o will_v i_o think_v be_v convince_v of_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o proof_n i_o have_v give_v and_o in_o effect_n there_o be_v no_o great_a likelihood_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o john_n scot_n and_o bertram_n who_o write_v by_o the_o command_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o bald_a of_o france_n and_o that_o of_o raban_n three_o person_n of_o great_a note_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v thus_o extinct_a in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n without_o any_o council_n condemn_v it_o without_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n concern_v herself_o with_o it_o without_o the_o interposition_n of_o temporal_a prince_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v i_o say_v remain_v no_o trace_n of_o it_o in_o the_o 10_o century_n he_o that_o shall_v think_v it_o strange_a that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n have_v take_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o be_v in_o effect_n a_o innovation_n need_v only_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o ignorance_n wherein_o the_o people_n live_v for_o when_o a_o man_n do_v not_o know_v what_o the_o church_n believe_v it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n for_o he_o to_o be_v deceive_v and_o to_o take_v that_o which_o she_o do_v not_o believe_v for_o what_o she_o do_v that_o man_n that_o question_n this_o ignorance_n need_v only_o for_o his_o conviction_n to_o read_v the_o proof_n i_o have_v give_v of_o it_o shall_v any_o man_n allege_v it_o to_o be_v strange_a such_o man_n as_o a_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o a_o abbot_n of_o clugny_n shall_v be_v deceive_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o this_o objection_n by_o the_o example_n of_o several_a that_o be_v man_n of_o better_a part_n than_o those_o now_o in_o question_n who_o now_o take_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n what_o be_v not_o so_o the_o disciple_n of_o paschasus_n find_v in_o his_o book_n such_o specious_a argument_n as_o deceive_v they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n ordinary_a enough_o to_o be_v surprise_v by_o false_a colour_n shall_v it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v impossible_a but_o that_o the_o disciple_n of_o paschasus_n know_v bertram_n doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o several_a place_n have_v open_o condemn_v it_o and_o dispute_v against_o those_o that_o hold_v it_o first_o i_o answer_v i_o do_v not_o know_v whether_o we_o may_v absolute_o say_v there_o be_v no_o dispute_n about_o it_o for_o there_o may_v be_v dispute_n and_o we_o not_o know_v of_o they_o but_o suppose_v there_o be_v not_o i_o answer_v that_o see_v it_o be_v no_o miracle_n that_o disputation_n shall_v cease_v sometime_o in_o a_o enlighten_v age_n among_o learned_a and_o zealous_a man_n without_o any_o conversion_n on_o either_o side_n it_o be_v much_o less_o one_o in_o a_o dark_a and_o troublesome_a age_n wherein_o person_n think_v of_o nothing_o less_o than_o dispute_v the_o disciple_n of_o paschasus_n think_v they_o be_v oblige_v to_o be_v content_v in_o recommend_v the_o read_n of_o paschasus_n his_o book_n to_o all_o person_n and_o in_o confirm_v their_o opinion_n by_o miracle_n if_o it_o be_v likewise_o say_v that_o those_o that_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o bertram_n ought_v to_o dispute_v against_o those_o that_o follow_v that_o of_o paschasus_n i_o must_v say_v so_o too_o but_o that_o man_n do_v not_o do_v always_o what_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v because_o they_o have_v not_o always_o that_o zeal_n knowledge_n or_o industry_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v how_o shall_v they_o dispute_v one_o against_o another_o who_o leave_v for_o the_o most_o part_n their_o flock_n without_o pasture_n without_o instruction_n without_o preach_v howsoever_o this_o be_v as_o i_o say_v a_o thing_n certain_a that_o there_o be_v person_n in_o this_o century_n who_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paschasus_n and_o other_o that_o of_o bertram_z whether_o they_o dispute_v or_o no_o it_o concern_v i_o not_o to_o know_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o that_o this_o age_n hold_v both_o these_o doctrine_n which_o i_o think_v can_v be_v deny_v when_o two_o opposite_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v and_o both_o as_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o age_n of_o ignorance_n to_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n and_o according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o our_o dispute_n it_o be_v equal_o impossible_a either_o of_o they_o shall_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n because_o they_o want_v that_o understanding_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o to_o make_v aright_o judgement_n and_o moreover_o if_o the_o one_o be_v assert_v by_o person_n of_o authority_n and_o great_a reputation_n it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a but_o this_o will_v carry_v it_o away_o from_o the_o other_o whence_o it_o follow_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o 10_o century_n have_v be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o easy_a and_o even_o unavoidable_a to_o which_o if_o we_o add_v another_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v that_o we_o do_v not_o find_v there_o be_v dispute_n in_o this_o century_n on_o this_o subject_n whence_o we_o will_v conclude_v that_o these_o progress_v we_o speak_v of_o have_v be_v make_v in_o a_o insensible_a manner_n at_o least_o in_o our_o respect_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o noise_n or_o contest_v the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o never_o come_v to_o we_o which_o suffice_v to_o decide_v the_o question_n between_o we_o two_o and_o this_o be_v what_o i_o have_v to_o say_v touch_v the_o state_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n in_o respect_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n i_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o those_o violent_a accusation_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n bring_v against_o our_o moral_n under_o pretence_n we_o do_v not_o reckon_v piety_n to_o consist_v in_o affect_a penance_n and_o outward_a mortification_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v more_o show_n than_o substance_n we_o praise_v and_o recommend_v as_o earnest_o as_o we_o can_v the_o practice_n of_o fast_v but_o believe_v it_o better_a to_o abstain_v from_o vice_n than_o meat_n the_o use_n of_o which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o with_o sobriety_n we_o believe_v every_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v content_a with_o the_o condition_n wherein_o god_n have_v place_v he_o to_o make_v good_a use_n of_o his_o estate_n and_o endure_v poverty_n without_o envy_n murmur_n and_o repine_n to_o live_v holy_o in_o caelibacy_n and_o chaste_o in_o marriage_n to_o carry_v ourselves_o just_o to_o our_o inferior_n and_o obedient_o to_o superior_n but_o we_o do_v not_o approve_v of_o man_n withdraw_a themselves_o out_o of_o that_o rank_n and_o order_n wherein_o providence_n have_v place_v they_o nor_o make_v of_o particular_a rule_n and_o bind_v man_n to_o the_o observance_n of_o they_o by_o vow_n nor_o that_o the_o rich_a shall_v ransom_v their_o sin_n by_o great_a offering_n to_o ecclesiastical_a person_n who_o have_v no_o need_n of_o they_o ●or_a of_o voluntary_a poverty_n much_o less_o that_o man_n shall_v imagine_v to_o satisfy_v the_o almighty_a for_o their_o sin_n and_o merit_v any_o thing_n of_o he_o by_o these_o kind_n of_o observance_n it_o be_v not_o from_o seneca_n we_o have_v learn_v this_o divinity_n
be_v one_o it_o be_v also_o join_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o it_o be_v but_o one_o only_a body_n in_o truth_n we_o find_v this_o same_o opinion_n in_o another_o book_n of_o divine_a office_n which_o 2._o rupert_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr divin_n off._n cap._n 2._o some_o attribute_n to_o rupert_n and_o other_o to_o walramus_fw-la this_o body_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o altar_n and_o that_o which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o virgin_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v nor_o indeed_o be_v two_o body_n because_o one_o and_o the_o same_o word_n be_v on_o high_a in_o the_o flesh_n and_o here_o below_o in_o the_o bread_n it_o be_v likewise_o very_o likely_a that_o in_o the_o 11_o century_n during_o the_o great_a heat_n of_o the_o dispute_n of_o lanfranc_n against_o berenger_n there_o be_v several_a adversary_n of_o berenger_n who_o follow_v this_o opinion_n which_o may_v be_v manifest_o collect_v from_o a_o argument_n which_o lanfranc_n attribute_n to_o the_o berengarian_o in_o these_o term_n if_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o true_a flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n dom._n lanfran_n de_fw-fr corp._n &_o sang._n dom._n either_o the_o bread_n must_v be_v carry_v to_o heaven_n to_o be_v change_v there_o into_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n must_v descend_v on_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o bread_n may_v be_v change_v into_o it_o now_o neither_o of_o these_o be_v do_v this_o argument_n necessary_o suppose_v that_o the_o berengarian_o do_v set_v themselves_o against_o person_n who_o think_v the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o way_n of_o union_n and_o conjunction_n or_o as_o speak_v damascen_n by_o way_n of_o addition_n as_o the_o food_n be_v change_v into_o our_o body_n on_o this_o hypothesis_n they_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o either_o the_o body_n which_o be_v above_o must_v come_v down_o here_o below_o or_o that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v here_o below_o must_v be_v carry_v above_o for_o it_o do_v not_o seem_v immediate_o that_o the_o conjunction_n can_v be_v well_o make_v otherwise_o but_o they_o can_v not_o have_v the_o least_o reason_n or_o likelihood_n of_o reason_n to_o form_v this_o objection_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o manner_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n understand_v it_o for_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o same_o numerical_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o distance_n or_o proximity_n of_o this_o bread_n and_o of_o this_o body_n make_v not_o this_o conversion_n either_o more_o easy_a or_o more_o difficult_a though_o the_o bread_n here_o below_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n though_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v above_o in_o heaven_n descend_v here_o below_o on_o earth_n this_o contribute_v nothing_o to_o the_o make_n of_o the_o one_o to_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o other_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o one_o substance_n into_o another_o speak_v quite_o another_o thing_n than_o a_o kind_n of_o local_a motion_n as_o be_v that_o of_o ascend_v or_o descend_v it_o be_v then_o evident_a that_o the_o opinion_n which_o the_o berengarian_o oppose_v be_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o way_n of_o union_n we_o may_v moreover_o justify_v the_o same_o thing_n by_o a_o passage_n of_o ascelinus_fw-la one_o of_o berenger_n adversary_n for_o observe_v here_o in_o what_o manner_n he_o explain_v his_o sentiment_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o berenger_n himself_o neque_fw-la vero_fw-la mirari_fw-la vel_fw-la diffidere_fw-la lanfr_n in_o notis_fw-la d'_fw-fr acheri_fw-la in_o vitam_fw-la lanfr_n debemus_fw-la deum_fw-la facere_fw-la posse_fw-la ut_fw-la hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la consecratur_fw-la virtute_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la &_o ministerio_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la uniatur_fw-la corpori_fw-la illi_fw-la quod_fw-la ex_fw-la maria_fw-la virgin_n redemptor_n noster_fw-la assumpsit_fw-la quip_n utrumque_fw-la substantia_fw-la corporea_fw-la utrumque_fw-la visibile_fw-la si_fw-la reminiscimur_fw-la nos_fw-la ipsos_fw-la ex_fw-la corporea_fw-la &_o incorporea_fw-la ex_fw-la mortali_fw-la &_o immortali_fw-la substantia_fw-la esse_fw-la compactos_fw-la si_fw-la denique_fw-la firmiter_fw-la credimus_fw-la divinam_fw-la humanamque_fw-la naturam_fw-la convenisse_fw-la personam_fw-la it_o be_v neither_o a_o matter_n of_o admiration_n nor_o of_o doubt_n for_o god_n to_o make_v that_o which_o be_v consecrate_v on_o the_o altar_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o this_o body_n which_o our_o redeemer_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v a_o corporeal_a substance_n both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o visible_a if_o we_o consider_v that_o we_o ourselves_o be_v compose_v of_o a_o corporeal_a substance_n and_o of_o another_o that_o be_v incorporeal_a of_o a_o mortal_a substance_n and_o of_o another_o that_o be_v incorporeal_a of_o a_o mortal_a substance_n and_o of_o another_o that_o be_v incorporeal_a and_o if_o in_o fine_a we_o firm_o believe_v that_o the_o two_o nature_n the_o divine_a and_o humane_a be_v join_v together_o in_o unity_n of_o person_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o relate_v these_o passage_n to_o show_v the_o reader_n how_o great_o mr._n arnaud_n deceive_v they_o when_o he_o will_v persuade_v they_o that_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o bread_n with_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o same_o divinity_n which_o fill_v they_o be_v a_o chimaera_n of_o the_o minister_n invention_n it_o appear_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o be_v a_o sentiment_n which_o have_v be_v in_o effect_n hold_v by_o divers_a author_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n not_o to_o mention_v here_o that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o damascen_n and_o the_o greek_n which_o have_v follow_v he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o conclusion_n which_o can_v be_v draw_v hence_o but_o from_o hence_o also_o follow_v several_a other_o most_o important_a matter_n for_o first_o by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o the_o sentiment_n of_o paschasus_n be_v not_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n as_o some_o will_v persuade_v we_o see_v those_o very_a author_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n allege_v in_o his_o favour_n and_o who_o seem_v to_o come_v the_o near_a to_o paschasus_n his_o expression_n be_v at_o bottom_n and_o in_o effect_n infinite_o distant_a from_o his_o doctrine_n second_o hence_o it_o appear_v there_o be_v nothing_o regular_a in_o the_o latin_a church_n touch_v transubstantiation_n neither_o in_o the_o 11_o nor_o 12_o century_n see_v considerable_a author_n then_o public_o explain_v their_o belief_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n in_o a_o manner_n which_o suffer_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o subsist_v in_o their_o first_o substance_n in_o the_o three_o place_n from_o hence_o be_v apparent_a how_o little_a certainty_n and_o confidence_n a_o rational_a man_n can_v put_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n who_o suppose_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n certain_a that_o in_o the_o time_n when_o berenger_n be_v first_o condemn_v that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o year_n 1053._o the_o whole_a latin_a church_n be_v unite_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n see_v the_o contrary_n may_v be_v justify_v as_o well_o by_o the_o argument_n which_o lanfranc_n relate_v of_o the_o berengarian_o as_o by_o the_o passage_n of_o ascelinus_fw-la in_o fine_a it_o may_v be_v see_v here_o how_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a mr._n arnaud'_v negative_a argument_n be_v who_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o greek_n believe_v in_o the_o 11_o century_n transubstantiation_n because_o they_o do_v not_o take_v berengarius_fw-la his_o part_n nor_o dispute_v on_o this_o article_n against_o the_o latin_n for_o if_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o then_o determine_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n if_o one_o may_v therein_o make_v a_o free_a profession_n to_o believe_v the_o union_n of_o the_o bread_n with_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o divinity_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o example_n of_o ascelinus_fw-la berenger_n great_a adversary_n what_o reason_n can_v the_o greek_n have_v to_o dispute_v and_o make_v opposition_n it_o signify_v nothing_o for_o mr._n arnaud_n to_o raise_v objection_n against_o the_o sentiment_n of_o these_o author_n who_o i_o last_o mention_v and_o to_o say_v that_o if_o the_o habitation_n 828._o book_n 8._o ch_z 7._o p._n 828._o of_o the_o divinity_n in_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n remain_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o bread_n remain_v on_o earth_n and_o conserve_n its_o nature_n and_o the_o application_n of_o this_o bread_n to_o serve_v for_o a_o instrument_n to_o communicate_v the_o grace_n merit_v by_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n render_v the_o bread_n the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o
receive_v by_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a design_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n in_o the_o second_o place_n i_o discover_v the_o falsity_n of_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o true_a greek_a church_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n do_v believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v the_o contrary_a of_o this_o will_v appear_v so_o plain_o and_o mr._n arnaud_n proof_n so_o solid_o answer_v that_o a_o man_n will_v wonder_v to_o see_v with_o what_o confidence_n he_o treat_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o which_o he_o betray_v so_o great_a ignorance_n and_o oversight_n here_o also_o his_o pretend_a proof_n touch_v the_o greek_n from_o the_o seven_o to_o the_o 11_o and_o touch_v the_o latin_n in_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n be_v full_o confute_v together_o with_o the_o consequence_n which_o he_o have_v blind_o draw_v from_o thence_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n this_o be_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o 3d._n four_o and_o 5_o book_n the_o three_o prove_v by_o many_o and_o clear_a argument_n that_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n nor_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o adoration_n of_o latria_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v and_o moreover_o show_v particular_o what_o their_o doctrine_n be_v wherein_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o latin_n and_o with_o we_o and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o four_o i_o answer_v all_o mr._n arnaud_n proof_n discover_v their_o weakness_n and_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o what_o he_o offer_v do_v necessary_o conclude_v against_o he_o and_o because_o of_o the_o affinity_n of_o the_o matter_n i_o examine_v at_o the_o same_o time_n his_o seven_o book_n wherein_o he_o treat_v of_o greek_a author_n of_o the_o seven_o 8_o 9th_o and_o 10_o century_n in_o my_o five_o book_n i_o pass_v over_o to_o the_o other_o christian_n which_o be_v call_v schismatic_n moscovite_n armenian_n nestorian_n jacobite_n coptic_o ethiopian_n and_o show_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o real_a presence_n with_o the_o latin_n from_o thence_o i_o come_v to_o the_o latin_n in_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n and_o examine_v mr._n arnaud_n 8_o book_n after_o which_o i_o consider_v his_o 10_o book_n which_o concern_v the_o consequence_n draw_v from_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v prove_v and_o i_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v but_o paralogism_n and_o sophism_n in_o the_o three_o place_n i_o lay_v open_a the_o falsity_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n second_o supposition_n touch_v the_o distinct_a belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o refute_v his_o six_o book_n afterward_o in_o refute_v the_o nine_o book_n i_o show_v the_o absurdity_n of_o his_o conjecture_n about_o the_o impossibility_n of_o a_o change_n and_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o may_v easy_o happen_v last_o the_o innovation_n of_o paschasius_fw-la be_v as_o evident_o prove_v as_o a_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n can_v be_v this_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o my_o six_o book_n now_o from_o all_o these_o discourse_n it_o will_v evident_o appear_v what_o i_o have_v already_o observe_v that_o this_o new_a way_n have_v not_o be_v lay_v open_a but_o for_o to_o give_v we_o new_a advantage_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o intention_n of_o these_o gentleman_n for_o they_o have_v declare_v themselves_o plain_o enough_o against_o we_o to_o leave_v no_o place_n for_o we_o to_o suspect_v they_o of_o any_o collusion_n and_o the_o last_o book_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v provide_v against_o all_o such_o suspicion_n something_o more_o perhaps_o than_o be_v reasonable_a but_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o success_n their_o method_n have_v have_v which_o have_v be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o their_o intention_n as_o for_o example_n it_o have_v give_v i_o occasion_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v when_o they_o condemn_v berengarius_fw-la neither_o in_o the_o precede_a nor_o follow_v age_n that_o whatsoever_o effort_n the_o latin_n have_v make_v since_o the_o 11_o age_n to_o this_o present_a to_o procure_v the_o reception_n of_o these_o doctrine_n in_o greece_n yet_o the_o true_a greek_a church_n have_v not_o embrace_v they_o neither_o do_v the_o armenian_n and_o other_o schismatic_n believe_v they_o any_o more_o than_o the_o greek_n now_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o first_o and_o most_o natural_a consequence_n which_o can_v be_v draw_v from_o thence_o be_v that_o these_o doctrine_n be_v new_a for_o if_o they_o be_v establish_v at_o first_o together_o with_o the_o christian_a religion_n they_o will_v have_v appear_v in_o those_o church_n and_o be_v retain_v among_o they_o after_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o latin_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o appear_v be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n of_o their_o novelty_n this_o consequence_n be_v not_o like_a that_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n his_o and_o i_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a in_o the_o matter_n but_o they_o be_v likewise_o very_o different_a in_o form_n for_o i_o be_v just_a and_o direct_a whereas_o his_o be_v neither_o just_a nor_o true_a for_o suppose_v the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n shall_v at_o this_o day_n believe_v transubstantiation_n nay_o suppose_v they_o shall_v have_v believe_v it_o some_o age_n since_o what_o advantage_n can_v mr._n arnaud_n make_v of_o this_o see_v he_o have_v be_v show_v several_a way_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v introduce_v into_o their_o church_n but_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o they_o hold_v it_o not_o neither_o in_o the_o 11_o nor_o in_o the_o follow_a age_n as_o i_o have_v invincible_o prove_v than_o it_o can_v be_v imagine_v how_o it_o shall_v disappear_v nor_o how_o the_o latin_n who_o have_v for_o several_a age_n since_o overspread_v these_o country_n with_o their_o emissary_n will_v have_v suffer_v such_o a_o doctrine_n to_o be_v lose_v among_o they_o which_o it_o be_v so_o much_o their_o interest_n to_o preserve_v moreover_o this_o same_o method_n have_v furnish_v i_o with_o a_o occasion_n to_o overthrow_v the_o pretend_a impossibility_n of_o a_o change_n and_o to_o make_v appear_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o facility_n thereof_o now_o suppose_v we_o can_v not_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n this_o will_v be_v but_o little_a advantage_n to_o their_o cause_n for_o still_o our_o proof_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n will_v remain_v unanswered_a without_o the_o examination_n of_o which_o the_o question_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n in_o controversy_n can_v be_v decide_v whereas_o these_o have_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o their_o pretend_a impossibility_n be_v mere_a chimera_n and_o that_o this_o change_n may_v easy_o happen_v this_o be_v a_o great_a inducement_n to_o believe_v our_o account_n of_o it_o be_v real_o true_a it_o be_v then_o certain_a that_o these_o gentleman_n can_v not_o make_v a_o worse_a choice_n for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o of_o such_o a_o way_n in_o which_o nothing_o of_o advantage_n to_o their_o church_n can_v be_v expect_v but_o she_o be_v thereby_o expose_v to_o great_a fear_n and_o danger_n and_o that_o the_o cause_n which_o they_o have_v oppose_v be_v more_o behold_v to_o they_o than_o that_o which_o they_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o defend_v have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o they_o perhaps_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v much_o trouble_v ourselves_o either_o with_o discover_v the_o real_a belief_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n or_o that_o of_o the_o armenian_n or_o with_o the_o display_v the_o mystery_n of_o their_o seminary_n and_o mission_n neither_o shall_v we_o have_v concern_v ourselves_o in_o show_v how_o the_o change_n can_v be_v wrought_v and_o how_o it_o be_v make_v and_o have_v now_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o several_a part_n of_o this_o work_n and_o of_o the_o present_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o it_o it_o be_v likewise_o fit_a to_o say_v something_o of_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o i_o have_v handle_v it_o one_o of_o my_o great_a care_n have_v be_v religious_o to_o keep_v to_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n for_o i_o be_o very_o sensible_a that_o prejudice_n partiality_n love_v of_o vain_a glory_n and_o even_o sometime_o a_o secret_a desire_n of_o revenge_v a_o man_n self_n on_o his_o adversary_n be_v passion_n which_o do_v common_o obtrude_v themselves_o on_o we_o in_o dispute_n and_o which_o never_o fail_v to_o corrupt_v the_o mind_n i_o have_v therefore_o endeavour_v to_o the_o utmost_a not_o only_o
of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n together_o with_o all_o its_o long_a train_n of_o argument_n and_o supposition_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v make_v in_o its_o favour_n for_o first_o there_o be_v little_a sincerity_n in_o the_o objection_n he_o state_v in_o the_o beginning_n in_o which_o he_o do_v not_o explain_v our_o real_a pretention_n second_o he_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n among_o the_o number_n which_o he_o make_v of_o the_o person_n of_o our_o communion_n several_a who_o trouble_v not_o themselves_o with_o the_o dispute_n touch_v the_o question_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o be_v to_o say_v touch_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o in_o relation_n to_o these_o who_o be_v the_o great_a number_n we_o may_v already_o affirm_v that_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v of_o no_o use_n three_o he_o have_v very_o ill_o prove_v that_o the_o most_o know_a minister_n do_v doubt_v whether_o the_o father_n be_v for_o we_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o not_o be_v able_a to_o find_v his_o proselyte_n neither_o among_o the_o 〈…〉_o k_o of_o the_o illiterate_a people_n nor_o among_o that_o of_o the_o learned_a it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v he_o will_v find_v they_o not_o where_o four_o he_o have_v be_v show_v that_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v there_o be_v minister_n who_o doubt_v whether_o the_o father_n be_v for_o we_o yet_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o they_o will_v leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n on_o which_o alone_o their_o faith_n depend_v to_o yield_v themselves_o up_o to_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n five_o he_o have_v be_v show_v that_o when_o one_o or_o two_o shall_v be_v of_o this_o opinion_n yet_o can_v they_o not_o carry_v it_o away_o from_o all_o the_o rest_n who_o have_v be_v or_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a mind_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o least_o judicious_a among_o we_o regulate_v their_o opinion_n on_o this_o point_n by_o that_o of_o the_o most_o know_v they_o will_v it_o be_v probable_a range_v themselves_o on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o great_a number_n rather_o than_o on_o that_o wherein_o there_o be_v but_o one_o or_o two_o so_o that_o here_o be_v almost_o all_o of_o they_o escape_v the_o treatise_n conquest_n six_o it_o have_v be_v likewise_o show_v he_o that_o the_o prolixity_n and_o difficulty_n to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o common_a way_n which_o be_v that_o of_o discussion_n yield_v no_o advantage_n to_o the_o treatise_n to_o make_v it_o receive_v under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o abridge_v method_n seven_o he_o have_v be_v moreover_o show_v the_o insuperable_a perplexity_n wherein_o this_o method_n engage_v people_n so_o that_o those_o who_o be_v most_o in_o love_n with_o short_a way_n and_o new_a fashion_n can_v but_o be_v disgu_v at_o this_o eight_o it_o have_v be_v demonstrate_v that_o person_n who_o be_v never_o inform_v of_o the_o real_a doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o will_v willing_o be_v ascertain_v of_o it_o aught_o in_o all_o reason_n to_o prefer_v a_o method_n of_o discussion_n whatsoever_o tediousness_n and_o difficulty_n there_o may_v be_v in_o it_o before_o that_o of_o the_o perpetuity_n we_o have_v likewise_o manifest_v that_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o method_n have_v not_o that_o just_a and_o due_a extent_n necessary_a to_o the_o form_n of_o a_o judicious_a man_n mind_n and_o which_o we_o have_v ten_o and_o last_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v to_o he_o that_o discreet_a person_n who_o know_v our_o proof_n of_o fact_n and_o have_v examine_v they_o may_v just_o reject_v this_o treatise_n as_o useless_a what_o he_o then_o say_v concern_v these_o two_o contrary_a evidence_n that_o hold_v the_o mind_n in_o suspense_n between_o our_o proof_n of_o fact_n on_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n on_o the_o other_o be_v a_o mere_a fancy_n for_o this_o unresolvedness_n be_v impossible_a in_o a_o man_n of_o judgement_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o ground_n it_o but_o only_o on_o a_o supposition_n which_o he_o have_v no_o right_a to_o make_v that_o 54._o lib._n 1._o c._o ●●_o p._n 54._o the_o proof_n of_o the_o treatise_n intimate_v the_o impossibility_n of_o a_o change_n to_o that_o degree_n of_o evidence_n as_o will_v convince_v the_o mind_n as_o much_o as_o the_o contrary_a evidence_n which_o i_o deny_v he_o and_o that_o with_o good_a reason_n when_o i_o compare_v his_o proof_n with_o we_o his_o proof_n be_v ground_v on_o a_o supposition_n in_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v ascertain_v they_o be_v of_o the_o kind_n of_o moral_a impossibility_n which_o never_o carry_v in_o they_o a_o certitude_n beyond_o exception_n and_o moreover_o the_o subject_a or_o matter_n they_o handle_v make_v they_o still_o a_o thousand_o time_n more_o uncertain_a and_o doubtful_a for_o what_o be_v more_o uncertain_a than_o that_o which_o depend_v on_o people_n inclination_n who_o live_v seven_o or_o eight_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o on_o the_o conjunction_n of_o a_o thousand_o thing_n of_o which_o we_o scarce_o know_v one_o we_o need_v but_o consider_v these_o proof_n in_o this_o respect_n to_o declare_v they_o uncertain_a but_o to_o demonstrate_v the_o falsity_n of_o they_o we_o must_v compare_v they_o with_o we_o against_o which_o there_o can_v no_o general_a objection_n be_v make_v see_v they_o be_v numerous_a and_o thorough_o handle_v the_o question_n and_o which_o take_v several_o have_v all_o possible_a strength_n and_o evidence_n to_o find_v out_o distinct_o and_o clear_o the_o knot_n of_o this_o whole_a controversy_n and_o judge_v of_o it_o with_o less_o trouble_v and_o more_o solidity_n it_o need_v only_o be_v consider_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o i_o do_v make_v almost_o the_o same_o supposition_n and_o draw_v the_o same_o consequence_n but_o each_o of_o we_o in_o his_o own_o favour_n he_o suppose_v my_o proof_n of_o fact_n be_v uncertain_a and_o i_o do_v not_o only_o suppose_v they_o of_o his_o treatise_n be_v so_o but_o that_o they_o be_v moreover_o false_a he_o suppose_v that_o they_o of_o the_o treatise_n be_v evident_a i_o suppose_v that_o i_o be_v so_o he_o conclude_v i_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o they_o of_o the_o treatise_n embrace_v i_o conclude_v that_o they_o of_o the_o treatise_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o i_o entertain_v for_o to_o judge_v aright_o so_o far_o it_o need_v only_o be_v consider_v which_o of_o we_o two_o have_v most_o reason_n to_o make_v these_o supposition_n and_o settle_v they_o on_o sure_a ground_n for_o he_o that_o do_v so_o have_v the_o consequence_n for_o he_o mr._n arnaud_n ground_n his_o on_z the_o enthusiasm_n of_o my_o rhetoric_n on_o some_o pretend_a testimony_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o his_o own_o judgement_n on_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n and_o that_o of_o the_o perpetuity_n i_o build_v i_o on_o the_o right_a a_o respondent_fw-la have_v to_o suppose_v his_o opinion_n in_o a_o dispute_n whence_o i_o conclude_v i_o may_v suppose_v my_o proof_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v good_a and_o firm_a i_o ground_n they_o on_o a_o general_a comparison_n i_o make_v of_o his_o proof_n with_o we_o and_o manifest_a that_o we_o be_v accord_a to_o a_o natural_a and_o direct_a method_n and_o his_o according_a to_o a_o indirect_a and_o force_a one_o that_o we_o be_v sufficient_a to_o enable_v a_o man_n to_o make_v a_o sound_n and_o solid_a judgement_n and_o that_o his_o be_v not_o so_o that_o we_o be_v obvious_a to_o sense_n whereas_o his_o be_v but_o mere_a conjecture_n and_o it_o be_v upon_o this_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v but_o we_o must_v proceed_v far_a for_o mr._n arnaud_n go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o suppose_v his_o proof_n and_o i_o appear_v equal_o evident_a and_o it_o be_v upon_o this_o that_o he_o ground_n the_o whole_a argument_n of_o his_o six_o chapter_n he_o will_v have_v that_o these_o two_o contrary_a evidence_n form_v a_o suspension_n of_o mind_n a_o rational_a man_n be_v thereby_o oblige_v to_o determine_v himself_o by_o the_o advantage_n which_o appear_v moreover_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o here_o we_o begin_v to_o take_v two_o different_a way_n for_o i_o will_v not_o grant_v he_o the_o evidence_n of_o his_o treatise_n as_o he_o grant_v i_o that_o of_o my_o proof_n and_o in_o effect_n no_o man_n may_v make_v groundless_a supposition_n which_o be_v impossible_a can_v therefore_o be_v reasonable_a now_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o a_o man_n who_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o evidence_n of_o our_o proof_n can_v find_v any_o evidence_n in_o he_o be_v such_o as_o they_o be_v because_o they_o have_v a_o defect_n in_o their_o kind_n which_o make_v they_o vanish_v before_o we_o it_o be_v moreover_o on_o this_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v try_v yet_o let_v we_o suppose_v by_o way_n of_o divertisement_n these_o two_o contrary_a evidence_n which_o hold_v
or_o three_o great_a person_n in_o authority_n to_o who_o all_o business_n be_v refer_v we_o have_v see_v that_o the_o face_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v change_v not_o long_o ago_o and_o which_o have_v be_v surprise_v to_o several_a person_n mr._n arnaud_n himself_o have_v be_v interest_v in_o some_o of_o these_o change_n and_o i_o suppose_v he_o will_v be_v sorry_a if_o the_o infallibility_n of_o perseverance_n in_o the_o same_o state_n shall_v have_v be_v as_o firm_a and_o unmoveable_a as_o the_o account_n which_o the_o gazetier_n give_v we_o of_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n alexander_n but_o after_o all_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v oppose_v the_o infallibility_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n ordinary_o pretend_v to_o and_o this_o be_v what_o i_o will_v have_v tell_v mr._n arnaud_n have_v he_o do_v i_o the_o honour_n he_o mention_n which_o be_v to_o have_v confer_v with_o i_o about_o my_o objection_n and_o perhaps_o my_o answer_n will_v have_v satisfy_v he_o i_o will_v have_v add_v two_o observation_n which_o will_v have_v make_v he_o better_o comprehend_v that_o his_o pretend_a popular_a infallibility_n do_v not_o well_o accord_v with_o that_o which_o he_o term_v of_o grace_n or_o privilege_n the_o first_o of_o these_o observation_n be_v that_o popular_a mystery_n be_v only_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o sufficient_o preserve_v by_o natural_a mean_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o inviolable_a inclination_n of_o the_o people_n there_o be_v no_o great_a need_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o grace_n which_o will_v be_v at_o far_a only_o necessary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o popular_a that_o be_v to_o the_o question_n of_o the_o school_n which_o the_o church_n may_v well_o be_v without_o and_o which_o be_v but_o as_o speak_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n theological_a consequence_n the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o reason_n wherefore_o he_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n choose_v rather_o the_o popular_a infallibility_n for_o his_o principle_n than_o that_o of_o grace_n suppose_v that_o this_o latter_a be_v absolute_o less_o evident_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v prove_v than_o the_o first_o this_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o heretic_n can_v be_v make_v use_n 7._o lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o of_o as_o a_o principle_n against_o they_o unless_o we_o establish_v it_o by_o separate_a proof_n for_o the_o calvinist_n without_o doubt_n will_v not_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v sufficient_o refute_v upon_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n if_o we_o only_o content_v ourselves_o with_o bring_v these_o argument_n against_o they_o all_o doctrine_n which_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o infallible_a church_n be_v false_a but_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o calvinist_n on_o the_o sacrament_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v infallible_a therefore_o it_o be_v false_a not_o but_o this_o reason_v be_v good_a but_o the_o minor_a proposition_n which_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v infallible_a be_v a_o controvert_v point_n it_o be_v thence_o plain_a that_o before_o it_o can_v be_v make_v use_n of_o it_o must_v be_v prove_v that_o be_v to_o say_v there_o ought_v to_o be_v make_v a_o entire_a treatise_n touch_v the_o church_n infallibility_n before_o this_o point_n can_v be_v use_v for_o this_o infallibility_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n clear_a in_o it self_o see_v it_o whole_o depend_v on_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reaveal_v in_o scripture_n the_o church_n not_o be_v natural_o infallible_a it_o be_v then_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n or_o by_o a_o long_a train_n of_o argument_n that_o it_o must_v be_v prove_v she_o be_v supernatural_o so_o now_o to_o make_v this_o argument_n good_a we_o must_v suppose_v that_o this_o infallibility_n of_o grace_n can_v be_v prove_v but_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o difficulty_n whatsoever_o course_n be_v take_v whether_o by_o scripture_n or_o reason_n for_o if_o it_o can_v be_v clear_o and_o brief_o prove_v from_o scripture_n mr._n arnaud_n excuse_n will_v be_v vain_a for_o he_o will_v be_v demand_v wherefore_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v not_o do_v it_o see_v we_o require_v not_o argument_n where_o the_o scripture_n plain_o express_v itself_o his_o reason_n then_o to_o be_v conclusive_a must_v suppose_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n to_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o grace_n without_o engage_v himself_o in_o prolixity_n and_o difficulty_n whence_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o proper_a principle_n for_o the_o unlearned_a who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o go_v through_o with_o a_o long_a and_o difficult_a discussion_n it_o be_v of_o no_o use_n to_o they_o according_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o that_o he_o himself_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o short_a and_o easy_a way_n be_v needful_a to_o such_o whereby_o they_o may_v discern_v the_o true_a church_n way_n say_v he_o which_o 17._o lib._n 1._o c._n 3._o p._n 17._o free_a man_n from_o those_o painful_a dicussion_n which_o ignorance_n dulness_n of_o apprehension_n and_o the_o exigence_n of_o life_n do_v make_v so_o many_o person_n uncapable_a of_o so_o that_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v without_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o difficulty_n will_v be_v only_o serviceable_a to_o the_o learned_a and_o of_o which_o in_o effect_n they_o have_v no_o great_a need_n see_v they_o can_v of_o themselves_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o particular_a doctrine_n without_o the_o help_n of_o authority_n and_o to_o this_o be_v reduce_v through_o mr._n arnaud_n mean_n this_o infallibility_n of_o grace_n and_o privilege_n which_o have_v make_v such_o a_o noise_n in_o the_o romish_a communion_n the_o remain_a part_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n treat_v as_o i_o already_o say_v on_o several_a other_o alteration_n which_o we_o pretend_v have_v insensible_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n but_o see_v these_o be_v point_n which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o belong_v to_o the_o eucharist_n and_o can_v be_v well_o examine_v without_o write_v a_o great_a volume_n on_o each_o of_o they_o mr._n arnaud_n therefore_o may_v take_v the_o liberty_n of_o say_v what_o he_o please_v concern_v they_o for_o i_o think_v myself_o no_o way_n bind_v to_o answer_v he_o when_o he_o shall_v assault_v the_o book_n of_o mr._n saumaise_n blondel_n or_o daillé_fw-fr after_o the_o manner_n he_o ought_v he_o will_v not_o perhaps_o want_v a_o answer_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o join_v three_o or_o four_o passage_n together_o on_o any_o controversy_n and_o thereupon_o make_v declamation_n for_o this_o be_v the_o common_a course_n of_o the_o world_n people_n usual_o begin_v where_o they_o will_v and_o end_v when_o they_o please_v but_o be_v one_o of_o these_o book_n i_o mention_v examine_v to_o the_o bottom_n and_o every_o particular_a undertake_v i_o be_o sure_a this_o will_v not_o be_v such_o a_o easy_a task_n the_o supposition_n of_o insensible_a alteration_n be_v a_o principle_n the_o holy_a scripture_n establish_v which_o right_a reason_n allow_v and_o experience_n confirm_v st._n paul_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n which_o begin_v to_o appear_v in_o his_o time_n and_o which_o will_v in_o the_o end_n produce_v this_o great_a effect_n he_o call_v a_o revolt_n or_o apostasy_n which_o have_v all_o the_o character_n of_o a_o insensible_a change_n see_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o be_v lay_v in_o his_o time_n and_o at_o length_n these_o mysterious_a project_n shall_v come_v to_o their_o perfection_n our_o reason_n likewise_o tell_v we_o that_o important_a alteration_n which_o happen_v in_o society_n be_v never_o introduce_v all_o of_o they_o at_o one_o time_n but_o be_v bring_v in_o gradual_o and_o that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o join_v successful_o together_o several_a particular_a innovation_n each_o one_o of_o which_o apart_o seem_v inconsiderable_a and_o to_o make_v thereby_o a_o great_a alteration_n than_o if_o this_o shall_v be_v undertake_v all_o at_o once_o this_o be_v a_o maxim_n among_o all_o politician_n and_o person_n who_o be_v capable_a of_o prosecute_a any_o enterprise_n but_o this_o many_o time_n happen_v of_o itself_o without_o any_o design_n experience_n itself_o confirm_v this_o by_o sundry_a example_n for_o it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n several_a art_n and_o science_n arrive_v at_o perfection_n language_n and_o custom_n of_o country_n be_v alter_v it_o be_v after_o this_o manneer_n the_o power_n of_o prince_n and_o other_o state_n be_v increase_v or_o diminish_v and_o not_o to_o seek_v for_o instance_n of_o this_o kind_n any_o far_a than_o in_o the_o church_n and_o christian_a religion_n by_o this_o mean_n have_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o romish_a prelacy_n
thereupon_o to_o call_v he_o hominem_fw-la subdolum_fw-la &_o christianis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la latino_n spectabant_fw-la infestum_fw-la &_o iniquum_fw-la 21._o ration_n temp._n part_n 1_o c._n 8._o c._n 21._o adeo_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la saracenis_fw-la in_o eorum_fw-la conspiraret_fw-la exitium_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o person_n so_o deceitful_a and_o cruel_a to_o the_o latin_a church_n that_o he_o conspire_v its_o ruin_n together_o with_o the_o saracen_n yet_o shall_v favour_v the_o latin_n in_o his_o empire_n and_o endeavour_v to_o procure_v the_o reunion_n of_o its_o church_n with_o the_o roman_a but_o allatius_n untie_v the_o knot_n by_o show_v we_o in_o the_o act_n of_o alexander_n the_o three_o that_o the_o supra_fw-la allat_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la design_n of_o this_o emperor_n be_v so_o to_o bring_v it_o about_o that_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v at_o variance_n with_o the_o emperor_n frederick_n shall_v take_v away_o from_o he_o the_o latin_a empire_n and_o render_v it_o to_o the_o greek_n to_o who_o manüel_n affirm_v it_o do_v just_o belong_v and_o for_o this_o effect_n he_o send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n send_v back_o together_o with_o his_o ambassador_n the_o bishop_n of_o ostia_n to_o negociate_v this_o affair_n at_o constantinople_n howsoever_o it_o be_v it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o all_o these_o different_a interest_n yield_v the_o latin_n fit_a opportunity_n to_o plant_v their_o doctrine_n among_o the_o greek_n emanuel_n intrigue_n be_v so_o far_o carry_v on_o that_o he_o assemble_v a_o ibid._n allat_n de_fw-fr perp._n cons_n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o idem_fw-la ibid._n council_n at_o constantinople_n where_o the_o reunion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v propose_v some_o say_v the_o latin_n require_v no_o more_o of_o the_o greek_n but_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n the_o grant_n of_o appeal_n and_o the_o commemoration_n of_o he_o in_o the_o public_a prayer_n of_o their_o church_n other_o say_v the_o latin_n will_v have_v entire_o subject_v the_o greek_n to_o their_o will_n and_o custom_n that_o which_o be_v certain_a be_v they_o can_v not_o agree_v and_o that_o the_o emperor_n himself_o lend_v his_o help_a hand_n to_o separate_v they_o yet_o not_o dare_v to_o anathematise_v ibid._n ancyr_n a_o apud_fw-la allat_n ibid._n the_o latin_n because_o say_v a_o greek_a author_n cite_v by_o allatius_n they_o be_v a_o great_a and_o famous_a people_n after_o the_o latin_n have_v establish_v their_o empire_n at_o constantinople_n the_o greek_n withdraw_v into_o asia_n where_o they_o choose_v a_o emperor_n and_o patriarch_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o latin_n fall_v to_o decay_n there_o be_v a_o after_o trial_n make_v upon_o the_o greek_n touch_v a_o reunion_n mr._n arnaud_n observe_v that_o the_o pope_n write_v about_o it_o to_o german_a the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o it_o be_v very_o 2._o l._n 3._o c._n 2._o likely_a he_o forget_v not_o to_o solicit_v the_o emperor_n who_o be_v then_o john_n ducas_n he_o send_v two_o dominican_n and_o two_o franciscan_n who_o cause_v a_o assembly_n to_o be_v call_v for_o this_o effect_n but_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o each_o of_o they_o have_v his_o particular_a interest_n and_o design_n in_o this_o affair_n the_o pope_n intend_v to_o subject_v the_o greek_a church_n to_o himself_o and_o the_o emperor_n endeavour_v to_o hinder_v the_o pope_n from_o favour_v the_o latin_n who_o hold_v constantinople_n and_o to_o regain_v this_o city_n as_o the_o greek_n do_v some_o time_n after_o matthew_n paris_n give_v a_o account_n of_o these_o letter_n of_o the_o patriarch_n to_o the_o 3._o mat._n par._n in_o henrico_n 3._o pope_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o patriarch_n concern_v this_o negotiation_n theodorus_n lascaris_n succeed_v john_n ducas_n in_o the_o year_n 1255._o 47._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1256._o numb_a 47._o pope_n alexander_n the_o four_o fail_v not_o to_o solicit_v he_o to_o a_o reunion_n he_o send_v he_o a_o express_a legate_n for_o that_o purpose_n but_o this_o emperor_n soon_o die_v whereupon_o this_o affair_n be_v no_o far_o prosecute_v allatius_n observe_v there_o be_v then_o a_o greek_a patriarch_n name_v blemmida_n 14._o allat_n de_fw-fr cons_n perp._n l._n 2._o c._n 14._o who_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n and_o very_o zealous_a for_o this_o union_n with_o the_o latin_n michael_z paleologus_fw-la obtain_v the_o empire_n and_o have_v a_o while_n after_o make_v himself_o master_n of_o constantinople_n endeavour_v above_o all_o other_o at_o 255._o l._n 5._o c._n 1._o p._n 255._o a_o reunion_n with_o the_o latin_n mr._n arnaud_n acknowledge_v that_o have_v unite_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o force_v by_o all_o manner_n of_o severity_n the_o bishop_n and_o religious_a greek_n to_o do_v the_o same_o this_o prince_n contract_v a_o particular_a friendship_n with_o gregory_n the_o ten_o before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o popedom_n according_a to_o allatius_n which_o give_v he_o the_o great_a facility_n to_o negociate_v with_o the_o 15._o allat_n de_fw-fr perp._n cons_n l._n 2._o c._n 15._o church_n of_o rome_n he_o send_v several_a time_n his_o ambassador_n and_o the_o pope_n his_o legate_n in_o order_n to_o a_o reconciliation_n he_o hold_v several_a council_n on_o this_o occasion_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o inflict_v the_o great_a torment_n on_o those_o that_o have_v the_o courage_n to_o resist_v he_o and_o promote_v other_o who_o embrace_v this_o union_n these_o be_v allatius_n his_o own_o word_n he_o false_o accuse_v john_n veccus_n treasurer_n to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v imprison_v because_o veccus_n have_v say_v in_o his_o hear_n that_o although_o the_o latin_n be_v not_o respect_v as_o heretic_n yet_o be_v 12._o pachymer_n hist_o lib._n 5._o c._n 12._o they_o such_o nevertheless_o which_o so_o great_o provoke_v this_o emperor_n as_o cause_v he_o to_o think_v of_o nothing_o but_o revenge_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o veccus_n have_v shelter_v himself_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o st._n sophia_n and_o the_o emperor_n dare_v not_o to_o violate_v this_o asylum_n he_o write_v to_o he_o very_o kind_a letter_n entreat_v he_o to_o come_v to_o he_o which_o veccus_n have_v no_o soon_o endeavour_v but_o be_v apprehend_v and_o carry_v to_o the_o tower_n where_o he_o be_v solicit_v to_o join_v with_o the_o 13._o idem_fw-la c._n 13._o latin_n this_o prince_n make_v and_o unmake_v patriarch_n at_o his_o will_n he_o usurp_v say_v the_o historian_n raynaldus_n the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n place_v and_o displa_v pach._n raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 261._o num._n 32._o vide._n pach._n patriarch_n at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o first_o of_o all_o constrain_a arsenius_n to_o resign_v up_o his_o place_n to_o nicephorus_n and_o after_o the_o take_n of_o constantinople_n he_o recall_v the_o same_o arsenius_n who_o have_v excommunicate_v he_o for_o what_o he_o have_v do_v against_o john_n lascaris_n the_o son_n of_o theodorus_n to_o who_o the_o empire_n do_v of_o right_o belong_v and_o who_o eye_n he_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v put_v out_o and_o see_v he_o can_v not_o prevail_v on_o this_o patriarch_n he_o raise_v up_o false_a witness_n against_o he_o and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v depose_v in_o a_o synod_n and_o german_a choose_v in_o his_o place_n german_a not_o be_v suitable_a to_o his_o humour_n he_o so_o far_o prevail_v with_o he_o as_o to_o obtain_v a_o voluntary_a resignation_n to_o joseph_n but_o joseph_n not_o consent_v to_o the_o reunion_n with_o the_o latin_n nor_o the_o send_n of_o deputite_n to_o the_o pope_n with_o who_o the_o emperor_n have_v charge_v they_o to_o conclude_v this_o affair_n he_o cause_v he_o therefore_o to_o retire_v into_o a_o covent_n upon_o condition_n that_o if_o this_o matter_n break_v off_o he_o shall_v enter_v again_o into_o his_o charge_n of_o patriarch_n now_o the_o deputy_n be_v return_v with_o the_o news_n of_o the_o reunion_n accomplish_v the_o emperor_n choose_v this_o same_o above_o name_v john_n veccus_n who_o at_o length_n suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v win_v either_o by_o the_o read_n of_o some_o book_n put_v into_o his_o hand_n or_o by_o the_o misery_n he_o have_v suffer_v during_o a_o long_a imprisonment_n and_o hope_v of_o a_o contrary_a usage_n yet_o veccus_n do_v not_o please_v he_o long_o it_o will_v be_v a_o difficult_a matter_n to_o relate_v here_o all_o the_o violence_n and_o cruelty_n of_o michael_n against_o those_o that_o withstand_v the_o reunion_n of_o the_o two_o church_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o relate_v here_o two_o or_o three_o of_o they_o by_o which_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n he_o imprison_v holobulus_n rhetor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n who_o office_n according_a to_o codinius_n be_v to_o interpret_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v cruel_o scourge_v and_o at_o length_n a_o 1._o pachymer_n l._n 5._o
in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o render_v it_o unjust_a and_o odious_a in_o the_o second_o place_n we_o need_v not_o doubt_v but_o this_o same_o passion_n of_o the_o emperor_n oblige_v several_a other_o to_o manage_v these_o controversy_n and_o let_v go_v divers_a article_n as_o be_v but_o of_o small_a importance_n all_o the_o schismatical_a greek_n 12._o de_fw-fr perp._n cons_n l._n 3._o c._n 12._o say_v allatius_n be_v not_o like_v mind_v towards_o the_o latin_n some_o of_o they_o be_v more_o moderate_a than_o other_o make_v the_o difference_n consist_v only_o in_o one_o or_o two_o point_n other_o more_o rigorous_a for_o whatsoever_o the_o latin_n do_v which_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o greek_n they_o condemn_v and_o reject_v as_o a_o abomination_n he_o confirm_v afterward_o what_o he_o say_v by_o a_o passage_n take_v out_o of_o demetrius_n comatenus_fw-la which_o tell_v we_o that_o several_a moderate_a greek_n agree_v with_o the_o latin_n in_o divers_a particular_n acknowledge_v the_o proud_a and_o fierce_a humour_n of_o their_o nation_n which_o have_v almost_o become_v barbarous_a by_o their_o frequent_a commerce_n with_o the_o barbarian_n and_o that_o these_o aforementioned_a have_v only_o stick_v at_o the_o single_a article_n touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n mr._n arnaud_n himself_o say_v it_o be_v 200._o l._n 2._o c._n 10._o p._n 200._o observe_v the_o greek_n be_v of_o different_a disposition_n in_o those_o time_n he_o mean_v in_o the_o twelve_o century_n for_o some_o of_o they_o maintain_v the_o latin_n ought_v to_o be_v treat_v as_o heretic_n and_o other_o blame_v these_o transport_v of_o passion_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a even_o the_o most_o rigorous_a among_o they_o only_o stick_v to_o those_o point_n which_o be_v open_o debate_v by_o the_o two_o church_n among_o which_o the_o principal_a be_v touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o azyme_n the_o constancy_n they_o show_v in_o reference_n to_o these_o article_n sufficient_o expose_v they_o to_o the_o hatred_n and_o ill_a usage_n of_o their_o emperor_n so_o that_o we_o need_v not_o descend_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o other_o particular_n which_o break_v not_o out_o into_o dispute_n on_o either_o side_n neither_o need_v we_o any_o more_o doubt_n but_o that_o several_a condescend_v to_o the_o will_n of_o their_o emperor_n upon_o this_o consideration_n that_o although_o they_o be_v reunite_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o shall_v they_o suffer_v no_o alteration_n either_o in_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o religion_n or_o ceremony_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hurt_n in_o cheat_v these_o latin_n by_o this_o fancy_n of_o a_o union_n which_o signify_v nothing_o at_o the_o bottom_n but_o which_o yet_o will_v yield_v they_o great_a advantage_n in_o their_o affair_n and_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a reason_n which_o michael_n paleologus_fw-la offer_v to_o his_o clergy_n according_a to_o pachymerus_n his_o relation_n he_o show_v they_o say_v he_o that_o the_o only_a cause_n move_v he_o to_o procure_v this_o peace_n with_o the_o latin_a 1._o pachym_n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 1._o church_n be_v to_o hinder_v those_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a war_n which_o threaten_v they_o and_o to_o spare_v his_o subject_n blood_n that_o as_o to_o the_o rest_n they_o may_v assure_v themselves_o that_o after_o the_o reunion_n their_o church_n shall_v remain_v as_o it_o be_v without_o any_o innovation_n that_o he_o himself_o will_v take_v care_n of_o it_o that_o the_o whole_a reconciliation_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o these_o three_o article_n viz._n the_o primacy_n appeal_v and_o commemoration_n all_o which_o signify_v nothing_o if_o right_o consider_v for_o when_o say_v he_o will_v the_o pope_n come_v to_o constantinople_n to_o take_v possession_n of_o this_o primacy_n who_o will_v make_v appeal_n to_o end_v they_o in_o so_o far_o a_o country_n who_o will_v cross_v the_o sea_n for_o this_o and_o as_o to_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o our_o patriarchal_a temple_n and_o your_o other_o great_a temple_n when_o the_o patriarch_n shall_v officiate_v there_o be_v prudent_a as_o you_o be_v can_v this_o appear_v such_o a_o strange_a thing_n to_o you_o do_v you_o not_o know_v the_o father_n have_v often_o make_v use_n of_o dispensation_n and_o frequent_o submit_v themselves_o for_o the_o public_a good_n pachymerus_n add_v that_o there_o be_v some_o in_o effect_n who_o let_v go_v these_o two_o article_n touch_v the_o primacy_n and_o appeal_n upon_o this_o consideration_n that_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v only_o the_o name_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o never_o enjoy_v the_o thing_n itself_o but_o in_o fine_a we_o need_v not_o question_n but_o this_o carriage_n of_o the_o emperor_n much_o encourage_v and_o embolden_v the_o latin_n to_o endeavour_v effectual_o to_o insinuate_v their_o opinion_n into_o the_o mind_n of_o both_o clergy_n and_o laity_n under_o pretence_n of_o instruct_v and_o make_v they_o capable_a of_o this_o union_n we_o know_v what_o a_o religious_a zeal_n can_v do_v and_o especial_o when_o it_o be_v countenance_v by_o power_n and_o second_v by_o hope_n of_o success_n have_v the_o greek_a church_n remain_v but_o some_o year_n in_o this_o condition_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o these_o have_v be_v but_o slight_a and_o transient_a attempt_n which_o have_v not_o have_v time_n to_o produce_v any_o great_a effect_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o since_o the_o eleven_o century_n which_o be_v to_o say_v since_o the_o time_n berengarius_fw-la be_v last_o condemn_v till_o now_o she_o have_v be_v continual_o as_o it_o be_v under_o the_o roman_a yoke_n and_o they_o have_v have_v all_o desirable_a opportunity_n to_o introduce_v their_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o it_o be_v a_o kind_a of_o miracle_n if_o they_o have_v not_o obtain_v their_o ends._n for_o when_o man_n have_v have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o ignorant_a and_o gross_a people_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o the_o greek_n be_v and_o have_v be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n when_o person_n have_v have_v a_o familiar_a and_o ordinary_a commerce_n with_o they_o and_o have_v beside_o all_o proper_a mean_n to_o prevail_v on_o they_o as_o power_n authority_n mildness_n the_o way_n of_o instruction_n fear_v hope_v and_o moreover_o uphold_v by_o the_o emperor_n patriarch_n and_o bishop_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v difficult_a to_o do_v what_o one_o will_n that_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_a very_o difficult_a not_o to_o do_v it_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o even_o when_o mr._n arnaud_n shall_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n have_v be_v establish_v among_o the_o greek_n since_o the_o eleven_o century_n his_o proof_n will_v be_v useless_a and_o of_o no_o consequence_n as_o to_o our_o debate_n for_o it_o may_v always_o be_v answer_v that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v communicate_v to_o they_o by_o the_o latin_n and_o the_o way_n of_o this_o communication_n be_v not_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v mr._n arnaud_n have_v be_v very_o sensible_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o i_o say_v and_o therefore_o be_v willing_a to_o relate_v himself_o the_o great_a part_n of_o these_o historical_a passage_n i_o mention_v but_o he_o have_v otherwise_o represent_v they_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v draw_v fruitless_a and_o impertinent_a conclusion_n from_o they_o and_o by_o this_o mean_n hinder_v we_o from_o make_v a_o just_a and_o right_a use_n of_o they_o this_o deceit_n of_o he_o be_v like_a to_o that_o he_o have_v use_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n we_o shall_v in_o the_o ensue_a part_n of_o this_o discourse_n overthrow_v his_o pretend_a consequence_n it_o may_v suffice_v at_o present_a to_o observe_v the_o circuit_n he_o have_v take_v on_o purpose_n to_o divert_v his_o reader_n from_o discover_v the_o real_a truth_n for_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o rational_a man_n but_o will_v judge_v that_o see_v these_o doctrine_n appear_v not_o in_o the_o greek_a church_n before_o these_o disorder_n if_o they_o shall_v appear_v afterward_o they_o must_v be_v introduce_v by_o they_o this_o be_v a_o natural_a and_o plain_a conclusion_n chap._n iu._n that_o the_o monk_n and_o other_o emissary_n with_o which_o the_o eastern_a country_n have_v be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n replenish_v do_v invalidate_n the_o proof_n take_v from_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o people_n mr._n arnaud_n four_o deceit_n lay_v open_a mr._n arnaud_n four_o artifice_n consist_v in_o conceal_v from_o we_o the_o care_n take_v for_o several_a age_n to_o fill_v greece_n asia_n egypt_n ethiopia_n the_o india_n and_o in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o country_n wherein_o there_o be_v any_o people_n profess_v christianity_n with_o religious_a and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n send_v
gain_v but_o one_o of_o they_o and_o you_o gain_v they_o all_o but_o if_o one_o of_o they_o hold_v out_o and_o will_v not_o yield_v what_o you_o have_v do_v already_o signify_v nothing_o discourse_v of_o the_o mission_n of_o aleppo_n he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o syrian_n at_o aleppo_n before_o his_o ordination_n conceive_v a_o great_a hatred_n against_o the_o syrian_a heresy_n and_o turn_v catholic_n and_o within_o a_o while_n go_v to_o rome_n from_o whence_o return_v he_o be_v consecrate_a by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o maronites_n and_o settle_v in_o the_o syrian_a church_n at_o aleppo_n from_o whence_o be_v constrain_v to_o withdraw_v he_o be_v bring_v there_o again_o at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o curate_n and_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o mr._n piquet_n he_o generous_o serve_v add_v he_o almighty_a god_n among_o his_o own_o people_n who_o he_o exhort_v to_o keep_v steadfast_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o thus_o have_v the_o endeavour_n of_o our_o emissary_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o divine_a grace_n which_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o will_v prove_v of_o great_a consequence_n to_o the_o syrian_n see_v that_o in_o gain_v a_o person_n of_o his_o merit_n they_o have_v do_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v convert_v a_o whole_a nation_n the_o sieur_n stochove_v speak_v of_o the_o jesuit_n at_o galata_n these_o father_n endeavour_n say_v he_o have_v not_o be_v ineffectual_a among_o the_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n 98._o stochovius_n '_o s_z voyages_n p._n 98._o for_o they_o convert_v several_a greek_a bishop_n and_o dispose_v other_o in_o case_n of_o any_o revolution_n to_o abhere_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o acquaint_v myself_o say_v busbequius_fw-la the_o emperor_n ambassador_n with_o metrophanus_n the_o metropolitain_n and_o superior_a of_o the_o monastery_n of_o chalcy_n he_o 26._o busbeq_n voyages_n lib_n 4._o p._n 5._o 26._o be_v a_o honest_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o one_o that_o passionate_o desire_v the_o reunion_n of_o the_o two_o church_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o nation_n who_o detest_v they_o of_o our_o communion_n as_o profane_v and_o impure_a person_n gouveau_fw-fr the_o monk_n relate_v how_o he_o and_o other_o augustin_n portuguese_v 3._o gouveau_n relation_n lib._n 5._o 3._o proceed_v in_o order_n to_o the_o reunion_n of_o the_o armenian_n in_o persia_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n tell_v we_o that_o they_o particular_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o win_a david_n their_o patriarch_n make_v use_n of_o he_o afterward_o as_o a_o instrument_n to_o prevail_v on_o the_o bishop_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n now_o tell_v i_o i_o pray_v after_o this_o with_o what_o sincerity_n the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n can_v be_v allege_v in_o this_o matter_n they_o be_v win_v by_o money_n several_a pretence_n be_v make_v use_n of_o by_o the_o emissary_n to_o introduce_v themselves_o into_o their_o house_n they_o prevail_v on_o their_o bishop_n not_o make_v they_o public_o change_v their_o religion_n but_o leave_v they_o in_o the_o same_o communion_n wherein_o they_o find_v they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v likewise_o endeavour_v the_o establishment_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n now_o what_o can_v be_v say_v of_o these_o people_n but_o that_o if_o they_o believe_v transubstantiation_n it_o not_o appear_v they_o believe_v it_o before_o all_o these_o intrigue_n they_o have_v receive_v this_o doctrine_n from_o the_o emissary_n by_o these_o indirect_a way_n which_o they_o practise_v but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o one_o of_o the_o most_o usual_a and_o effectual_a course_n they_o take_v to_o establish_v insensible_o and_o without_o any_o noise_n the_o roman_a religion_n in_o greece_n and_o among_o all_o other_o nation_n be_v the_o instruction_n of_o their_o youth_n which_o employment_n they_o common_o take_v upon_o they_o wheresoever_o they_o come_v for_o under_o pretence_n of_o instruct_v they_o in_o human_a learning_n they_o instil_v into_o their_o mind_n the_o principle_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n so_o that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o greek_a prelate_n be_v of_o this_o number_n that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o scholar_n have_v receive_v from_o they_o in_o their_o tender_a age_n a_o favourable_a opinion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o be_v inform_v by_o the_o author_n of_o m._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr haye'_v voyages_n who_o be_v 125._o voyage_n of_o m._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr haye_n c._n 5._o pag._n 125._o ambassador_n to_o the_o late_a king_n of_o france_n that_o the_o jesuit_n at_o galata_n be_v very_o successful_a in_o their_o undertake_n in_o this_o kind_n for_o beside_o their_o preach_a and_o confession_n they_o instruct_v all_o the_o youth_n as_o also_o the_o schismatic_n who_o they_o have_v convince_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o of_o their_o error_n so_o that_o several_a principal_a greek_a bishop_n and_o archbishop_n who_o have_v be_v their_o scholar_n do_v favour_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v capable_a of_o do_v it_o great_a service_n the_o sieur_n stochovius_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n the_o greek_n say_v he_o do_v 98._o stochov_n voyages_n pag._n 98._o not_o at_o all_o scruple_n the_o send_v their_o child_n to_o school_n he_o mean_v to_o that_o of_o the_o jesuit_n wherein_o they_o be_v instruct_v as_o well_o in_o the_o catholic_n religion_n as_o in_o human_a learning_n and_o discourse_v of_o the_o isle_n of_o chios_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v a_o strong-built_a convent_n there_o beside_o a_o fair_a church_n that_o they_o be_v twenty_o in_o number_n who_o be_v all_o of_o they_o naturalize_v and_o take_v upon_o they_o according_a to_o their_o custom_n the_o instruction_n of_o youth_n and_o bring_v divers_a over_o to_o the_o true_a religion_n the_o carmelites_n add_v he_o have_v a_o church_n and_o convent_n there_o who_o likewise_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o instruct_n of_o youth_n and_o convert_v divers_a from_o the_o common_a heresy_n of_o the_o greek_n the_o sieur_n du_fw-fr loir_fw-fr tell_v we_o likewise_o that_o the_o jesuit_n of_o galatia_n keep_v 61._o loir_n voyage_n pag._n 67._o thevenot_n part_n 1_o c._n 61._o school_n for_o the_o child_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o armenian_n and_o the_o sieur_n thevenot_n inform_v we_o that_o in_o the_o isle_n of_o chios_n there_o be_v a_o convent_n of_o capucin_n who_o teach_v human_a learning_n and_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o several_a child_n who_o repair_v thither_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o another_o place_n that_o in_o the_o isle_n of_o andria_n the_o capucin_n do_v great_o ease_v the_o bishop_n by_o their_o preach_n and_o confession_n and_o by_o 13._o chap._n 13._o their_o school_n to_o which_o go_v all_o the_o greek_a child_n and_o that_o some_o be_v send_v from_o athens_n for_o that_o purpose_n la_fw-fr boulaye_n le_fw-fr goux_fw-fr tell_v we_o that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v a_o convenient_a house_n at_o 5._o boulay_n voyage_n part_n 1._o c._n 9_o relat._n of_o st._n erinys_n c._n 5._o smyrna_n wherein_o they_o instruct_v the_o greek_a child_n and_o the_o same_o do_v they_o at_o st._n erinys_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o relation_n of_o richard_n the_o jesuit_n who_o introduce_v another_o jesuit_n speak_v as_o follow_v i_o set_v open_a my_o school_n every_o day_n to_o all_o that_o will_v come_v and_o learn_v any_o thing_n be_v ever_o ready_a and_o most_o willing_a to_o instruct_v youth_n as_o well_o out_o of_o obedience_n to_o my_o superior_a who_o earnest_o recommend_v to_o i_o this_o course_n as_o for_o that_o likewise_o it_o have_v be_v reveal_v to_o i_o from_o heaven_n that_o this_o be_v the_o sure_a way_n to_o reform_v by_o degree_n the_o greek_a church_n and_o perhaps_o one_o of_o the_o most_o likely_a mean_n to_o maintain_v we_o in_o these_o foreign_a country_n it_o already_o appear_v by_o these_o testimony_n that_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a thing_n recommend_v to_o the_o emissary_n when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v send_v abroad_o be_v the_o education_n of_o child_n as_o a_o infallible_a mean_n to_o set_v up_o the_o romish_a religion_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o people_n and_o that_o the_o emissary_n on_o their_o side_n do_v well_o acquit_v themselves_o in_o this_o particular_a but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n call_v a_o description_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n deliver_v himself_o more_o plain_o for_o discourse_v how_o the_o jesuit_n employ_v themselves_o in_o the_o city_n of_o aleppo_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o their_o chief_a business_n be_v to_o instruct_v youth_n which_o have_v always_o be_v esteem_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o high_o conduce_v to_o the_o reformation_n of_o these_o nation_n observe_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o he_o say_v that_o the_o emissary_n do_v not_o only_o careful_o apply_v themselves_o to_o this_o and_o that_o by_o order_n from_o their_o superior_n but_o that_o
other_o as_o i_o show_v in_o the_o precede_a book_n now_o mr_n arnaud_n can_v in_o reason_n bring_v these_o sort_n of_o people_n into_o the_o reckon_n and_o i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v take_v ill_o if_o i_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o rest_n for_o in_o effect_n the_o abuse_n will_v be_v too_o gross_a to_o pretend_v to_o determine_v this_o question_n touch_v the_o greek_a church_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o convert_v or_o person_n bring_v up_o from_o their_o infancy_n among_o the_o jesuit_n and_o other_o religious_a order_n and_o latin_a doctor_n who_o instruct_v they_o in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o the_o number_n of_o these_o be_v not_o small_a and_o allatius_n himself_o assure_v we_o of_o it_o the_o greek_n say_v he_o that_o reverence_n the_o pope_n and_o receive_v his_o decree_n as_o oracle_n be_v more_o in_o number_n than_o we_o 11._o allat_n de_fw-mi perp_v con_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 11._o imagine_v and_o be_v they_o not_o with_o hold_v by_o the_o fear_n of_o a_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n and_o that_o of_o the_o calumny_n and_o accusation_n of_o some_o wicked_a people_n we_o shall_v see_v every_o day_n they_o who_o possess_v the_o great_a dignity_n among_o the_o greek_n come_v and_o prostrate_v themselves_o at_o the_o pope_n footstool_n this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o mission_n and_o seminary_n in_o the_o three_o place_n the_o question_n be_v not_o here_o whether_o the_o greek_n have_v the_o same_o opinion_n with_o we_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v mr._n arnaud_v continual_a device_n to_o dispute_v on_o this_o principle_n to_o wit_n that_o i_o affirm_v the_o greek_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o we_o as_o for_o example_n he_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n 12._o lib._n 2._o c._n 12._o of_o pain_n to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a we_o will_v make_v use_n of_o euthymius_n his_o word_n to_o instruct_v a_o man_n in_o our_o doctrine_n and_o that_o euthymius_n have_v not_o take_v the_o term_n est_fw-fr in_o our_o saviour_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o significat_fw-la 13._o lib._n 2._o c._n 13._o he_o likewise_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n to_o prove_v that_o nicholas_n méthoniensis_n 15._o lib._n 2._o c._n 15._o be_v not_o a_o berengarian_a and_o one_o that_o believe_v the_o bread_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o our_o saviour_n body_n that_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o saracen_n be_v cause_v to_o make_v when_o they_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n be_v not_o in_o such_o term_n as_o to_o make_v they_o understand_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o real_o our_o saviour_n body_n but_o only_o the_o figure_n or_o representation_n thereof_o endue_v with_o its_o virtue_n and_o that_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o do_v not_o reproach_v 1._o lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o the_o greek_n with_o their_o believe_v that_o they_o eat_v only_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n all_o this_o be_v but_o a_o mere_a artifice_n to_o impose_v on_o the_o world_n and_o blind_a those_o that_o have_v not_o continual_o the_o point_n in_o question_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v easy_o carry_v off_o from_o one_o subject_a to_o another_o i_o say_v then_o it_o concern_v we_o not_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o same_o in_o every_o particular_a with_o that_o of_o we_o and_o whether_o they_o explain_v themselves_o on_o that_o subject_a in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o we_o do_v this_o we_o never_o yet_o affirm_v to_o mr._n arnaud_n but_o the_o contrary_a viz_o that_o several_a treatise_n answer_v to_o the_o first_o treatise_n of_o the_o greek_n have_v since_o the_o seven_o century_n reject_v the_o term_n of_o figure_n image_n and_o type_n which_o the_o ancient_n make_v use_v of_o and_o we_o use_v after_o their_o example_n the_o present_a question_n be_v whether_o the_o greek_n do_v believe_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v this_o be_v the_o only_a point_n of_o the_o dispute_n to_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n ought_v to_o have_v stick_v and_o not_o to_o wander_v into_o wide_a discourse_n and_o fruitless_a consequence_n in_o effect_v the_o design_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v to_o make_v we_o confess_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n of_o perpetuity_n first_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n rome_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n have_v be_v perpetual_a in_o all_o age_n and_o that_o author_n have_v for_o this_o purpose_n make_v use_v of_o the_o conformity_n of_o the_o greek_n with_o she_o in_o this_o point_n and_o this_o conformity_n have_v be_v deny_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o question_n do_v not_o concern_v our_o sentiment_n but_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o greek_n hold_v and_o teach_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o four_o place_n our_o dispute_n hitherto_o have_v not_o be_v concern_v the_o real_a presence_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n suppose_v but_o only_o on_o the_o subject_a of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o adoration_n thereon_o appendant_a so_o that_o he_o have_v deal_v very_o disingenious_o in_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o our_o debate_n reach_v to_o the_o real_a presence_n our_o question_n say_v he_o be_v concern_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o these_o 128._o lib._n 2._o c._n 3._o p._n 128._o sect_n and_o people_n touch_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n it_o be_v yet_o more_o absurd_o he_o complain_v that_o contrary_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n i_o have_v turn_v the_o question_n upon_o transubstantiation_n notwithstanding_o say_v he_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v only_o in_o his_o first_o ibid._n ibid._n treatise_n discourse_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o content_v himself_o with_o maintain_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v receive_v by_o all_o these_o schismatical_a church_n yet_o mr._n claude_n have_v continual_o turn_v the_o question_n upon_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v not_o the_o point_n precise_o in_o question_n but_o in_o fine_a it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o a_o most_o unwarrantable_a 191._o lib._n 2._o c._n 10._o p._n 191._o liberty_n to_o write_v that_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o boldness_n of_o a_o man_n can_v proceed_v to_o that_o point_n where_o my_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o maintain_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n be_v doctrine_n unknown_a to_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o i_o dare_v to_o affirm_v that_o he_o can_v be_v great_a than_o it_o be_v for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o here_o the_o question_n only_o concern_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o adoration_n and_o not_o the_o real_a presence_n concern_v which_o i_o have_v not_o yet_o say_v any_o thing_n 1._o let_v mr._n arnaud_n read_v the_o last_o section_n of_o my_o first_o answer_n and_o he_o will_v find_v precise_o these_o word_n i_o affirm_v that_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v two_o thing_n unknown_a to_o all_o the_o world_n the_o roman_a church_n except_v for_o neither_o the_o greek_n nor_o the_o armenian_n russian_n jacobite_n ethiopian_n nor_o in_o general_a any_o christian_n but_o they_o who_o have_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n do_v believe_v any_o thing_n touch_v these_o two_o article_n 2._o let_v the_o passage_n of_o my_o second_o answer_n be_v peruse_v where_o i_o handle_v again_o the_o same_o question_n and_o it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o they_o only_o concern_v transubstantiation_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n therein_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n 3._o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v the_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o he_o will_v find_v it_o contain_v these_o word_n for_o its_o title_n that_o all_o the_o sect_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v at_o accord_n with_o she_o in_o the_o point_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o especial_o the_o greek_n he_o will_v find_v likewise_o that_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o chapter_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n there_o be_v no_o body_n then_o but_o mr._n arnaud_n who_o have_v think_v of_o bring_v it_o into_o our_o debate_n and_o this_o without_o any_o other_o reason_n but_o that_o he_o will_v have_v it_o so_o maugre_o we_o imagine_v he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o save_v himself_o by_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o term_n of_o real_a presence_n for_o as_o to_o what_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n speak_v only_o in_o his_o first_o treatise_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o content_v himself_o with_o assert_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v receive_v by_o all_o the_o schismatical_a church_n i_o be_o sorry_a i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o i_o know_v not_o any_o
it_o to_o pass_v the_o greek_n have_v not_o all_o this_o while_n follow_v their_o example_n use_v that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o keep_v up_o this_o perfect_a conformity_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v all_o along_o suppose_v how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o when_o this_o greek_a word_n have_v be_v know_v to_o they_o and_o even_o the_o latin_n themselves_o have_v teach_v it_o they_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v of_o it_o and_o i_o pray_v what_o ill_a conveniency_n can_v they_o apprehend_v thereby_o if_o they_o in_o effect_n believe_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n it_o can_v appear_v strange_a to_o we_o that_o there_o be_v heretofore_o person_n of_o sound_a judgement_n who_o scruple_v to_o admit_v the_o term_n of_o hypostasis_fw-la because_o that_o in_o effect_n ignorant_a people_n will_v take_v thence_o occasion_n to_o imagine_v there_o be_v several_a divinity_n but_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o like_o this_o allege_v in_o respect_n of_o transubstantiation_n for_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o give_v this_o a_o excessive_a sense_n beyond_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v suppose_v we_o admit_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n there_o be_v rather_o on_o the_o contrary_a a_o kind_n of_o necessity_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o because_o it_o express_v better_a than_o any_o other_o this_o kind_n of_o conversion_n and_o the_o term_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v general_a expression_n be_v consequent_o defective_a and_o suffer_v a_o man_n to_o deny_v the_o change_n in_o question_n and_o fall_v into_o heresy_n which_o be_v as_o much_o the_o greek_n interest_n as_o the_o latin_n to_o prevent_v if_o it_o be_v so_o they_o have_v the_o same_o sentiment_n in_o this_o subject_a with_o they_o as_o mr._n arnaud_n assure_v we_o they_o have_v he_o mighty_o bestir_v himself_o with_o his_o argument_n or_o rather_o declamation_n on_o that_o the_o greek_n have_v never_o quarrel_v about_o this_o doctrine_n and_o find_v it_o strange_a suppose_n they_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a belief_n to_o the_o latin_n but_o let_v he_o then_o tell_v we_o wherefore_o they_o so_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transubstantiation_n and_o will_v never_o express_v themselves_o on_o this_o mystery_n in_o the_o same_o form_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o i_o find_v this_o far_o more_o strange_a suppose_v they_o hold_v in_o the_o main_a the_o same_o doctrine_n with_o she_o it_o can_v be_v allege_v that_o their_o ignorance_n have_v hind'r_v they_o from_o find_v so_o proper_a a_o term_n for_o it_o have_v be_v make_v to_o their_o hand_n or_o that_o they_o fear_v thereby_o to_o offend_v their_o emperor_n see_v they_o be_v deep_o engage_v to_o favour_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o fear_v thereby_o to_o incur_v a_o great_a hatred_n from_o the_o latin_n see_v they_o can_v not_o do_v they_o a_o great_a pleasure_n how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v they_o never_o use_v it_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a when_o the_o latin_n in_o these_o force_a and_o interest_v union_n i_o mention_v in_o the_o precede_a book_n have_v propose_v to_o they_o the_o article_n of_o the_o eucharist_n under_o the_o term_n of_o transubstantiatur_fw-la the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v they_o keep_v to_o their_o general_a expression_n say_v only_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o bread_n be_v change_v as_o i_o shall_v hereafter_o make_v appear_v be_v not_o this_o a_o evident_a testimony_n they_o will_v not_o adopt_v a_o doctrine_n unknown_a to_o their_o church_n and_o which_o they_o regard_v as_o a_o novelty_n this_o first_o proof_n shall_v be_v uphold_v by_o a_o second_o of_o no_o less_o strength_n than_o the_o former_a be_v take_v from_o that_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o explicate_a of_o their_o belief_n on_o the_o eucharist_n not_o only_o do_v not_o use_v the_o term_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o whatsoever_o term_n they_o make_v use_v of_o they_o signify_v not_o any_o thing_n which_o express_o bear_v the_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n bread_n of_o and_o wine_n into_o that_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o pope_n gregory_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o century_n be_v mind_v to_o show_v what_o his_o belief_n be_v on_o this_o subject_a he_o do_v not_o indeed_o use_v the_o term_n of_o transubstantiation_n because_o it_o be_v not_o then_o find_v out_o but_o explain_v himself_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o be_v sufficient_o clear_a and_o intelligible_a the_o bread_n and_o wine_n say_v he_o on_o the_o altar_n be_v change_v substantial_o 170._o mr._n arnaud_n lib._n 2._o ch_n 8._o p._n 170._o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o mystical_a and_o sacred_a orison_n and_o word_n of_o our_o redeemer_n into_o the_o true_a proper_a and_o lively_a flesh_n and_o real_a proper_a and_o lively_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o after_o the_o consecration_n it_o be_v the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o the_o real_a blood_n which_o run_v down_o his_o side_n not_o only_o in_o a_o sign_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o sacrament_n but_o by_o propriety_n of_o nature_n and_o reality_n of_o substance_n when_o innocent_a the_o three_o will_v have_v this_o same_o belief_n know_v in_o the_o council_n of_o latran_n he_o clear_o explain_v himself_o and_o make_v use_v even_o of_o the_o very_a term_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n say_v he_o the_o 1._o council_n lat._n sub_fw-la innoc._n 3._o cap._n 1._o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v real_o contain_v under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n by_o the_o divine_a power_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n be_v it_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o express_o declare_v their_o belief_n and_o what_o they_o will_v have_v other_o believe_v likewise_o there_o be_v make_v say_v they_o by_o the_o consecration_n a_o conversion_n of_o the_o 4._o sess_n 13._o cap._n 4._o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o blood_n which_o conversion_n be_v right_o and_o proper_o call_v transubstantiation_n and_o thus_o speak_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o thus_o in_o effect_n they_o ought_v to_o express_v themselves_o for_o the_o form_v the_o idea_n of_o this_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o the_o greek_n for_o beside_o what_o i_o say_v that_o they_o use_v not_o the_o term_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o reject_v it_o it_o will_v not_o be_v find_v they_o use_v any_o expression_n which_o come_v near_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o mention_v any_o thing_n relate_v to_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n or_o presence_n of_o substance_n under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n or_o change_v of_o one_o substance_n into_o another_o which_o be_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v say_v to_o show_v they_o believe_v transubstantiation_n we_o see_v not_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o kind_n appear_v in_o the_o cannon_n of_o their_o council_n confession_n of_o faith_n or_o liturgy_n book_n of_o devotion_n or_o any_o of_o their_o write_n whether_o publish_v by_o their_o modern_a or_o ancient_a divine_n and_o certain_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a these_o people_n shall_v believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n not_o so_o much_o as_o declare_v in_o express_a term_n this_o their_o belief_n for_o beside_o that_o these_o term_n be_v but_o few_o and_o easy_a to_o be_v find_v out_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o easy_a to_o a_o man_n who_o believe_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n than_o to_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v substantial_o convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v real_o change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o the_o former_a substance_n remain_v no_o more_o beside_o this_o i_o say_v they_o have_v in_o the_o greek_a language_n word_n which_o answer_v exact_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o latin_n on_o this_o subject_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n they_o will_v be_v inexcusable_a express_v themselves_o as_o they_o do_v different_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v their_o belief_n the_o same_o with_o she_o yet_o be_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v no_o way_n like_o those_o of_o the_o latin_n and_o there_o needs_o only_o the_o compare_v of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o to_o discern_v the_o difference_n compare_v for_o example_n the_o confession_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o with_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o concern_v
elsewhere_o express_v herself_o touch_v the_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n and_o have_v no_o council_n define_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n catechism_n and_o other_o public_a book_n and_o teach_v by_o the_o roman_a doctor_n it_o be_v evident_a we_o shall_v be_v unreasonable_a in_o give_v these_o general_a expression_n any_o other_o than_o a_o general_a sense_n and_o this_o generality_n itself_o will_v be_v a_o invincible_a argument_n that_o she_o never_o descend_v so_o far_o as_o the_o distinct_a determination_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o consequent_o this_o will_v not_o be_v a_o article_n of_o her_o belief_n now_o it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n we_o ought_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n all_o its_o expression_n be_v general_a there_o appear_v nothing_o elsewhere_o which_o determin_n this_o generality_n or_o which_o engage_v we_o to_o attribute_v to_o her_o the_o particular_a and_o distinct_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o whatsoever_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v allege_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o this_o be_v of_o no_o weight_n it_o then_o necessary_o follow_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o attribute_v to_o she_o no_o other_o than_o a_o general_a sense_n and_o in_o no_o wise_a that_o of_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v evident_o particular_a and_o determinate_a and_o even_o this_o consideration_n that_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v oblige_v to_o use_v argument_n to_o explain_v the_o common_a expression_n of_o this_o church_n into_o a_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o infallible_a mark_n that_o she_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o now_o see_v this_o proof_n be_v decisive_a and_o that_o it_o not_o only_o establish_v my_o sentiment_n but_o likewise_o overthrow_v mr._n arnaud_n whole_a dispute_n it_o will_v not_o be_v therefore_o amiss_o to_o illustrate_v it_o and_o consider_v well_o its_o foundation_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v manifest_v whether_o the_o conclusion_n i_o draw_v from_o hence_o be_v just_a and_o true_a first_o than_o we_o must_v know_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v the_o precise_a and_o distinct_a determination_n of_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n by_o a_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o bread_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o body_n so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o believe_v it_o without_o form_v a_o distinct_a idea_n after_o this_o manner_n see_v it_o be_v even_o this_o precise_a and_o determine_a idea_n itself_o it_o be_v then_o absurd_a and_o contradictory_n to_o look_v for_o it_o in_o a_o general_n and_o confuse_a idea_n which_o determine_v nothing_o for_o this_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o a_o determination_n in_o a_o thing_n undetermined_a and_o a_o distinct_a sense_n in_o a_o generality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v light_a in_o darkness_n and_o from_o hence_o appear_v what_o must_v be_v the_o expression_n of_o a_o church_n which_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o teach_v it_o for_o it_o be_v necessary_a she_o teach_v it_o in_o plain_a term_n which_o answer_v the_o distinct_a idea_n she_o have_v of_o it_o and_o which_o may_v immediate_o form_v the_o like_a in_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o that_o hear_v she_o now_o this_o can_v be_v do_v but_o by_o express_v and_o formal_a term_n or_o by_o term_n so_o equivalent_a that_o they_o can_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o contrary_a sense_n what_o i_o say_v be_v verify_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o expression_n be_v plain_a and_o clear_a and_o which_o immediate_o show_v her_o meaning_n moreover_o we_o shall_v consider_v that_o the_o notion_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o which_o be_v call_v speculative_a but_o practical_a notion_n which_o engage_v they_o that_o have_v it_o to_o several_a duty_n and_o performance_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o sovereign_a adoration_n of_o this_o same_o substance_n which_o before_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n but_o now_o the_o same_o proper_a numerical_a substance_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o speak_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n whence_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o a_o church_n which_o thus_o believe_v it_o teach_v it_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o the_o act_n of_o adoration_n follow_v free_o and_o natural_o of_o itself_o .._o it_o be_v likewise_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o matter_n here_o in_o hand_n concern_v the_o greek_a church_n from_o the_o eleven_o century_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o since_o the_o contest_v with_o berengarius_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n have_v express_o determine_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n which_o drive_v the_o greek_n into_o a_o great_a necessity_n of_o speak_v clear_o on_o this_o point_n either_o to_o show_v their_o conformity_n of_o belief_n with_o the_o latin_n or_o to_o avoid_v the_o fall_n into_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n which_o the_o latin_n endeavour_v to_o avoid_v by_o this_o formal_a declaration_n and_o this_o observation_n be_v the_o more_o considerable_a against_o mr._n arnaud_n in_o that_o he_o grant_v the_o greek_n not_o to_o have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o circumstance_n touch_v berengarius_fw-la to_o know_v then_o certain_o whether_o the_o greek_a church_n believe_v transubstantiation_n or_o not_o we_o need_v but_o see_v after_o what_o manner_n she_o explain_v herself_o concern_v the_o eucharist_n for_o if_o her_o expression_n bear_v not_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n either_o express_o or_o equivalent_o in_o such_o a_o sort_n that_o they_o may_v easy_o and_o immediate_o form_v the_o notion_n thereof_o if_o they_o be_v i_o say_v general_a and_o determine_v nothing_o of_o themselves_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a proof_n she_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o that_o church_n which_o believe_v it_o and_o will_v have_v its_o child_n do_v the_o like_a can_v but_o explain_v itself_o clear_o and_o full_o on_o that_o subject_n if_o we_o examine_v mr._n arnaud_n dispute_n on_o this_o principle_n which_o i_o esteem_v as_o the_o light_n of_o common_a sense_n we_o shall_v immediate_o deprive_v he_o of_o all_o his_o negative_a argument_n take_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o that_o of_o the_o latin_n for_o although_o these_o kind_n of_o argument_n be_v very_o good_a in_o other_o occasion_n yet_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o to_o end_v a_o question_n such_o a_o one_o as_o this_o be_v which_o be_v whether_o the_o eastern_a church_n believe_v and_o teach_v transubstantiation_n mr._n arnaud_n shall_v have_v take_v a_o course_n more_o decisive_a than_o that_o of_o consider_v what_o the_o greek_n have_v do_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o latin_n or_o what_o the_o latin_n have_v do_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_n it_o be_v better_o for_o we_o direct_o to_o consider_v after_o what_o manner_n they_o themselves_o do_v positive_o explain_v their_o belief_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n if_o we_o find_v transubstantiation_n plain_o declare_v in_o it_o these_o argument_n of_o silence_n be_v no_o long_o necessary_a and_o if_o we_o do_v find_v it_o clear_o express_v there_o will_v follow_v a_o conclusion_n so_o great_o to_o my_o advantage_n that_o all_o mr._n arnaud'_v negative_a argument_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o subsist_v before_o it_o for_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o solidity_n in_o reason_v after_o this_o sort_n a_o church_n do_v not_o clear_o teach_v transubstantiation_n therefore_o she_o hold_v it_o not_o than_o to_o argue_v thus_o a_o church_n do_v not_o oppose_v transubstantiation_n hold_v by_o the_o latin_n therefore_o she_o believe_v it_o beside_o that_o the_o first_o argument_n conclude_v direct_o and_o immediate_o what_o the_o other_o do_v not_o there_o be_v a_o great_a coherence_n between_o believe_a transubstantiation_n and_o clear_o teach_v it_o than_o there_o be_v repugnance_n between_o not_o believe_v it_o and_o yet_o not_o oppose_v it_o in_o person_n who_o do_v believe_v it_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n can_v hinder_v the_o greek_n from_o distinct_o teach_v transubstantiation_n suppose_v they_o believe_v it_o but_o there_o may_v be_v several_a reason_n which_o may_v oblige_v they_o from_o make_v this_o point_n a_o matter_n of_o dispute_n with_o the_o latin_n although_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o neither_o must_v the_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o emperor_n michael_n paleologus_fw-la send_v as_o from_o the_o greek_n to_o pope_n john_n the_o xxi_o to_o finish_v the_o work_n of_o the_o reunion_n of_o the_o two_o church_n be_v make_v use_n of_o against_o we_o for_o beside_o that_o this_o be_v a_o act_n extort_a by_o force_n which_o be_v not_o of_o any_o account_n among_o the_o greek_n we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o the_o latin_a expression_n which_o bear_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v real_o transubstantiate_v do_v exact_o answer_v the_o greek_a expression_n of_o the_o same_o act_n which_o according_a to_o all_o likelihood_n
be_v famous_a among_o the_o greek_n and_o live_v in_o the_o eleven_o century_n expound_v these_o word_n of_o saint_n peter_n let_v your_o conversation_n be_v honest_a among_o the_o gentile_n that_o whereas_o they_o speak_v ill_o of_o you_o as_o of_o evil_a doer_n they_o may_v glorify_v god_n saint_n peter_n say_v he_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o false_a accusation_n of_o the_o heathen_n and_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o particular_n thereof_o read_v what_o ireneus_fw-la bishop_n of_o lion_n have_v write_v touch_v the_o martyr_n sanctus_n and_o blandina_fw-la and_o you_o will_v be_v perfect_o inform_v this_o in_o few_o word_n be_v a_o account_n thereof_o the_o greek_n have_v take_v some_o slave_n belong_v to_o the_o christian_a catecumenist_n use_v great_a violence_n towards_o they_o to_o make_v they_o confess_v the_o christian_n mystery_n and_o the_o slave_n not_o know_v what_o to_o say_v to_o please_v those_o that_o so_o rude_o handle_v they_o remember_v they_o hear_v their_o master_n relate_v that_o the_o holy_a communion_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n imagine_v that_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n flesh_n and_o blood_n whereupon_o they_o take_v this_o as_o if_o the_o christian_n be_v wont_v real_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v human_a flesh_n and_o blood_n make_v report_v hereof_o to_o all_o the_o other_o greek_n and_o by_o torment_n force_v the_o martyr_n sanctus_n and_o blandina_fw-la to_o confess_v it_o but_o blandina_fw-la afterward_o very_o pertinent_o demand_v of_o they_o how_o they_o can_v imagine_v people_n who_o out_o of_o devotion_n do_v abstain_v from_o eat_v flesh_n who_o use_n be_v permit_v they_o shall_v do_v any_o such_o thing_n this_o passage_n may_v be_v consider_v in_o two_o respect_n either_o as_o be_v of_o st._n ireneus_fw-la or_o oecumenius_n i_o know_v very_o well_o there_o be_v several_a learned_a man_n that_o believe_v oecumenius_n be_v mistake_v in_o relate_v this_o story_n as_o if_o it_o come_v from_o saint_n ireneus_fw-la and_o in_o effect_n we_o do_v not_o thus_o find_v it_o in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o vienna_n and_o lyon_n produce_v by_o eusebius_n but_o in_o the_o second_o respect_n under_o which_o i_o now_o offer_v it_o we_o may_v certain_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sentiment_n of_o oecumenius_n himself_o for_o how_o can_v we_o suppose_v he_o will_v call_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o slave_n and_o heathenish_a inquisitor_n a_o mistake_n that_o the_o holy_a communion_n do_v in_o effect_n consist_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o the_o christian_n do_v real_o do_v this_o wherefore_o will_v he_o reckon_v this_o error_n among_o the_o slander_n of_o the_o heathen_n wherefore_o shall_v he_o introduce_v blandina_fw-la refute_v this_o imagination_n have_v he_o himself_o believe_v the_o communion_n to_o be_v in_o effect_n and_o reality_n the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o its_o proper_a substance_n and_o have_v this_o be_v the_o real_a sentiment_n of_o his_o church_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v he_o do_v not_o endeavour_v to_o mollify_v and_o explain_v these_o term_n and_o show_v that_o blandina_fw-la be_v mistake_v in_o deny_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v in_o effect_n and_o reality_n flesh_n and_o blood_n or_o that_o what_o she_o do_v in_o this_o case_n be_v only_o to_o conceal_v from_o the_o heathen_n the_o church_n belief_n in_o this_o particular_a or_o in_o fine_a that_o she_o only_o deny_v it_o in_o one_o sense_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v visible_o and_o sensible_o flesh_n and_o blood_n how_o happen_v it_o he_o fear_v not_o lest_o the_o greek_n among_o who_o he_o live_v when_o he_o give_v this_o account_n will_v not_o be_v scandalize_v at_o it_o or_o the_o weak_a take_v hence_o occasion_n to_o call_v in_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o trouble_v himself_o in_o search_v after_o mollify_a term_n or_o explanation_n and_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o he_o have_v lay_v this_o down_o do_v clear_o show_v we_o that_o he_o do_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n believe_v the_o holy_a communion_n to_o be_v real_o and_o in_o effect_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n nor_o imagine_v he_o affirm_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o church_n or_o which_o may_v be_v take_v in_o a_o ill_a sense_n chap._n ix_o the_o seventeen_o proof_n take_v from_o the_o dispute_v agitate_a among_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o twelve_o century_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n some_o of_o they_o affirm_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v incorruptible_a and_o other_o corruptible_a the_o eighteen_o from_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o zonarus_n a_o greek_a monk_n that_o live_v in_o the_o twelve_o century_n i_o mention_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n a_o dispute_n which_o arise_v among_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o twelve_o century_n touch_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n from_o whence_o i_o take_v occasion_n to_o prove_v the_o greek_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o latin_n mr._n arnaud_n content_v not_o himself_o with_o pretend_v my_o proof_n be_v not_o good_a but_o will_v needs_o draw_v a_o contrary_a conclusion_n from_o the_o same_o principle_n i_o make_v use_v of_o it_o than_o lie_v upon_o i_o to_o examine_v in_o this_o chapter_n two_o passage_n the_o one_o of_o nicetas_n choniatus_n and_o the_o other_a of_o zonarus_n who_o both_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o controversy_n and_o to_o know_v whether_o this_o difference_n do_v suppose_v transubstantiation_n or_o not_o i_o will_v begin_v with_o nicetas_n who_o lay_v down_o the_o question_n in_o these_o term_n the_o question_n say_v he_o be_v whether_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o we_o 3._o nicet_fw-la chon_n annal._n lib._n 3._o receive_v be_v incorruptible_a such_o as_o it_o have_v be_v since_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n or_o corruptible_a as_o it_o be_v before_o his_o passion_n before_o we_o go_v any_o further_a we_o shall_v consider_v whether_o it_o be_v likely_a such_o a_o question_n shall_v be_v state_v in_o a_o church_n that_o believe_v transubstantiation_n this_o be_v a_o point_n easy_o decide_v if_o we_o consider_v that_o those_o that_o hold_v this_o doctrine_n do_v not_o reckon_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v either_o in_o a_o corruptible_a state_n such_o as_o it_o be_v before_o his_o passion_n or_o a_o incorruptible_a one_o wherein_o it_o have_v be_v since_o his_o resurrection_n they_o have_v invent_v a_o three_o which_o hold_v the_o middle_a between_o the_o two_o other_o and_o which_o equal_o agree_v with_o the_o two_o time_n before_o and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n which_o be_v that_o they_o call_v the_o sacramental_a state_n in_o which_o they_o will_v needs_o have_v this_o body_n to_o lie_v hide_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n be_v invisible_a and_o insensible_a in_o itself_o without_o extension_n action_n or_o motion_n have_v all_o its_o part_n in_o one_o point_n and_o exist_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o spirit_n in_o this_o state_n according_a to_o they_o he_o have_v neither_o the_o incorruption_n he_o obtain_v by_o his_o resurrection_n nor_o the_o corruption_n he_o put_v on_o in_o come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o be_v corruptible_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o species_n which_o enclose_v he_o and_o incorruptible_a by_o reason_n of_o that_o spirituality_n which_o transubstantiation_n give_v he_o how_o can_v mr._n arnaud_n imagine_v that_o in_o this_o principle_n of_o the_o sacramental_a state_n there_o may_v be_v form_v the_o question_n whether_o he_o be_v incorruptible_a such_o as_o he_o have_v be_v since_o his_o resurrection_n or_o corruptible_a as_o before_o his_o passion_n how_o can_v he_o conceive_v that_o person_n who_o have_v his_o three_o state_n in_o view_n and_o be_v agree_v among_o themselves_o can_v fall_v into_o a_o debate_n touch_v the_o two_o other_o for_o it_o can_v be_v suppose_v the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o greek_n have_v be_v so_o great_a as_o not_o to_o let_v they_o see_v the_o inconsistency_n there_o be_v between_o their_o question_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o latin_n no_o people_n can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o a_o humane_a body_n such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o our_o saviour_n be_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o eucharistical_a bread_n be_v neither_o the_o same_o that_o be_v on_o the_o cross_n nor_o that_o which_o thomas_n touch_v when_o it_o be_v rise_v and_o we_o must_v necessary_o suppose_v that_o he_o have_v neither_o the_o corruptibility_n under_o which_o he_o be_v before_o his_o death_n nor_o the_o incorruptibility_n he_o receive_v when_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o another_o incorruptibility_n which_o come_v to_o he_o from_o his_o existence_n
advertisement_n lest_o he_o shall_v accuse_v i_o of_o dulness_n i_o shall_v venture_v again_o humble_o to_o offer_v the_o doubt_n wherewith_o common_a sense_n furnish_v i_o after_o consultation_n with_o it_o against_o his_o pretend_a solution_n one_a it_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o contain_v all_o the_o character_n of_o a_o mind_n perplex_v and_o torment_v with_o study_n how_o to_o extricate_v itself_o out_o of_o a_o difficulty_n through_o which_o it_o can_v find_v no_o natural_a passage_n what_o relation_n have_v the_o idea_n of_o concupiscence_n the_o philosophy_n of_o the_o thomist_n cartesian_n coperniciens_fw-la with_o the_o discourse_n of_o these_o good_a greek_a bishop_n who_o live_v in_o the_o eight_o century_n and_o who_o without_o doubt_n have_v none_o of_o this_o philosophy_n in_o their_o head_n who_o can_v imagine_v that_o their_o expression_n which_o be_v plain_a and_o simple_a shall_v be_v ground_v on_o the_o model_n of_o these_o twofold_a language_n that_o be_v to_o say_v on_o a_o observation_n which_o scarce_o ever_o any_o person_n before_o thought_n of_o so_o remote_a be_v these_o twofold_a language_n from_o the_o sight_n and_o common_a use_n of_o the_o world_n in_o truth_n i_o can_v never_o imagine_v the_o idea_n of_o concupiscence_n the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o thomist_n nor_o the_o impression_n or_o automates_n of_o the_o carthesians_n and_o copernicus_n his_o system_n shall_v ever_o be_v bring_v into_o our_o dispute_n to_o decide_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n or_o not_o ii_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o council_n who_o word_n be_v to_o regulate_v the_o people_n faith_n and_o who_o it_o behoove_v moreover_o to_o speak_v discreet_o have_v adversary_n at_o their_o back_n shall_v lay_v aside_o the_o style_n of_o religion_n if_o we_o believe_v mr._n arnaud_n to_o take_v up_o that_o of_o sense_n which_o religion_n condemn_v that_o they_o shall_v call_v the_o eucharist_n without_o any_o necessity_n a_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o bread_n consider_v it_o even_o after_o consecration_n without_o add_v to_o it_o either_o any_o exposition_n or_o mollification_n and_o expose_v themselves_o so_o imprudent_o to_o the_o reproach_n of_o their_o enemy_n from_o who_o they_o can_v expect_v no_o favour_n nor_o support_n and_o who_o wait_v for_o a_o occasion_n to_o render_v they_o odious_a to_o the_o people_n iii_o but_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v their_o adversary_n who_o that_o they_o may_v censure_v they_o touch_v the_o term_n of_o image_n dare_v assert_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n that_o none_o of_o the_o father_n give_v the_o term_n of_o image_n to_o the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n be_v so_o mild_a and_o favourable_a as_o to_o pardon_v they_o of_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v their_o faith_n in_o effect_n that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o be_v no_o long_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v they_o do_v this_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o thomist_n dead_a body_n the_o cartesian_o automates_n or_o corpernicus_n his_o system_fw-la iv_o if_o we_o examine_v these_o instance_n of_o a_o twofold_a language_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n propose_v we_o shall_v find_v they_o be_v all_o defective_a either_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o or_o in_o the_o application_n he_o make_v of_o they_o it_o be_v not_o true_a religion_n absolute_o teach_v that_o what_o we_o call_v good_n be_v real_a evil_n and_o that_o our_o evil_n be_v real_a good_n nor_o that_o it_o turn_v felicity_n into_o misery_n riches_n into_o poverty_n poverty_n into_o riches_n wisdom_n into_o folly_n prudence_n into_o imprudence_n and_o knowledge_n into_o ignorance_n religion_n teach_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o effect_n and_o in_o themselves_o what_o we_o term_v they_o because_o they_o be_v either_o blessing_n and_o god_n temporal_a favour_n or_o chastisement_n and_o affliction_n which_o come_v from_o his_o hand_n and_o so_o far_o its_o language_n agree_v very_o well_o with_o the_o usual_a speech_n of_o men._n but_o it_o also_o show_v we_o that_o these_o thing_n change_v their_o name_n and_o nature_n by_o the_o good_a or_o bad_a use_v which_o be_v make_v of_o they_o that_o riches_n become_v real_a poverty_n happiness_n misery_n wisdom_n folly_n prudence_n imprudence_n and_o science_n ignorance_n to_o the_o vicious_a who_o corrupt_v these_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o change_v their_o natural_a destination_n that_o affliction_n likewise_o become_v benefit_n poverty_n riches_n misery_n felicity_n to_o a_o virtuous_a person_n and_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n if_o concupiscence_n will_v oppose_v itself_o against_o this_o language_n and_o speak_v otherwise_o religion_n will_v not_o let_v she_o so_o that_o the_o double_a language_n that_o there_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v ground_v not_o on_o the_o idea_n of_o concupiscence_n but_o on_o truth_n itself_o when_o we_o call_v riches_n good_n and_o affliction_n evil_n we_o consider_v what_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o when_o we_o call_v they_o otherwise_o we_o consider_v they_o in_o relation_n to_o what_o they_o be_v by_o accident_n these_o two_o language_n agree_v very_o well_o and_o they_o be_v both_o proper_a and_o true_a the_o idea_n of_o concupiscence_n have_v no_o part_n therein_o beside_o religion_n moreover_o consider_v temporal_a good_n and_o evil_n either_o absolute_o in_o themselves_o or_o by_o comparison_n with_o spiritual_a good_n and_o evil_n in_o the_o first_o respect_n it_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o be_v good_n and_o evil_n as_o they_o be_v in_o effect_n in_o the_o second_o she_o can_v hardly_o give_v they_o that_o name_n because_o they_o be_v not_o considerable_a in_o comparison_n of_o eternal_a good_n or_o evil_n if_o concupiscence_n oppose_v itself_o against_o this_o language_n and_o speak_v otherwise_o religion_n restrain_v she_o it_o be_v then_o certain_a that_o the_o double_a language_n be_v ground_v on_o various_a respect_n and_o be_v ever_o true_a but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n for_o suppose_v transubstantiation_n we_o can_v in_o any_o respect_n call_v the_o consecrate_a eucharist_n a_o substance_n of_o bread_n nor_o say_v that_o we_o offer_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o religion_n will_v condemn_v these_o expression_n as_o false_a in_o every_o sense_n and_o contrary_a to_o that_o faith_n which_o enjoin_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v no_o long_o remain_v to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v mean_v the_o bare_a figure_n and_o resemblance_n thereof_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n do_v this_o can_v be_v for_o the_o substance_n and_o the_o simple_a appearance_n be_v two_o term_n direct_o opposite_a in_o the_o language_n of_o man_n and_o to_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v real_a and_o not_o bare_o bread_n in_o appearance_n moreover_o the_o father_n of_o constantinople_n compare_v this_o substance_n of_o bread_n with_o the_o humane_a substance_n which_o christ_n assume_v as_o our_o lord_n say_v they_o take_v on_o he_o the_o matter_n only_o or_o humane_a substance_n without_o the_o personal_a subsistence_n so_o he_o command_v we_o to_o offer_v a_o image_n a_o choose_a matter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n which_o show_v they_o take_v the_o term_n of_o substance_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n and_o not_o for_o a_o simple_a appearance_n in_o fine_a they_o say_v that_o as_o the_o humane_a substance_n which_o christ_n assume_v have_v not_o the_o personal_a subsistence_n so_o this_o substance_n have_v not_o the_o form_n or_o humane_a figure_n which_o clear_o show_v that_o as_o by_o the_o humane_a substance_n they_o mean_v a_o subject_a capable_a of_o have_v personal_a subsistence_n so_o they_o likewise_o understand_v by_o the_o substance_n use_v in_o the_o eucharist_n a_o real_a subject_n which_o may_v have_v a_o form_n or_o humane_a figure_n and_o consequent_o a_o real_a substance_n capable_a of_o represent_v a_o external_a form_n and_o figure_n to_o say_v likewise_o as_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v that_o this_o be_v the_o language_n of_o sense_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o faith_n be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v nothing_o for_o if_o faith_n rectify_v the_o language_n of_o sense_n it_o will_v not_o suffer_v its_o expression_n to_o be_v regulate_v by_o the_o falsity_n of_o their_o testimony_n and_o much_o less_o in_o a_o decree_n of_o council_n who_o expression_n according_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n maxim_n or_o the_o church_n he_o be_v of_o must_v serve_v for_o a_o law_n to_o posterity_n not_o only_o for_o well_o speak_v but_o likewise_o for_o well_o believe_v we_o ought_v then_o keep_v to_o the_o language_n of_o faith_n not_o that_o of_o sense_n against_o which_o we_o must_v on_o the_o contrary_a
at_o least_o must_v bias_n a_o man_n judgement_n towards_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v afterward_o offer_v if_o i_o for_o my_o share_n desire_v a_o man_n to_o suppose_v a_o church_n which_o never_o hear_v any_o mention_n of_o the_o substantial_a presence_n nor_o conversion_n of_o substance_n that_o never_o believe_v these_o doctrine_n and_o be_v ignorant_a of_o all_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o school_n on_o that_o point_n my_o request_n will_v be_v more_o reasonable_a than_o that_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n for_o till_o we_o be_v show_v transubstantiation_n have_v be_v receive_v in_o a_o church_n we_o may_v suppose_v this_o church_n in_o a_o state_n of_o nature_n in_o this_o respect_n now_o we_o know_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n to_o believe_v it_o i_o know_v mr._n arnaud_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o tell_v i_o we_o must_v not_o thus_o fill_v man_n mind_n with_o prejudices_fw-la but_o leave_v they_o at_o liberty_n to_o judge_v of_o thing_n allege_v on_o both_o side_n this_o supposition_n then_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v we_o make_v be_v captious_a far_o from_o be_v sincere_a and_o tend_v to_o surprise_v man_n mind_n by_o make_v they_o take_v a_o part_n beforehand_o without_o any_o ground_n or_o reason_n that_o be_v thus_o prejudice_v they_o may_v see_v what_o be_v not_o and_o not_o see_v what_o be_v for_o it_o be_v certain_a according_a to_o these_o two_o different_a supposition_n the_o one_o that_o a_o church_n believe_v transubstantiation_n but_o never_o dispute_v about_o it_o the_o other_a that_n a_o church_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n nor_o ever_o hear_v it_o a_o man_n shall_v different_o judge_v of_o the_o same_o expression_n upon_o one_o of_o these_o prejudices_fw-la a_o man_n will_v say_v here_o be_v one_o of_o these_o defective_a expression_n mention_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n which_o leave_v something_o to_o be_v supply_v by_o the_o hearer_n and_o on_o the_o other_o a_o man_n will_v say_v here_o be_v a_o expression_n which_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a faith_n of_o the_o mystery_n in_o effect_n hence_o proceed_v the_o different_a judgement_n which_o the_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n make_v on_o several_a passage_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o one_o believe_v they_o see_v transubstantiation_n in_o they_o because_o they_o read_v the_o passage_n with_o this_o prejudice_n that_o the_o ancient_a church_n hold_v it_o and_o the_o place_n consider_v in_o this_o respect_n confirm_v they_o in_o the_o thought_n which_o they_o have_v already_o entertain_v the_o other_o do_v not_o find_v it_o in_o they_o because_o they_o consider_v the_o same_o passage_n with_o this_o contrary_a prejudice_n that_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v not_o believe_v it_o and_o these_o passage_n consider_v in_o this_o regard_n make_v no_o impression_n upon_o they_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n there_o be_v passage_n which_o appear_v very_o considerable_a for_o the_o protestant_n against_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n and_o which_o yet_o appear_v but_o weak_a and_o inconsiderable_a to_o the_o roman_a catholic_n to_o deal_v fair_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o importance_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o man_n ought_v to_o compare_v these_o two_o prejudices_fw-la one_o with_o the_o other_o and_o examine_v solid_o which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v most_o just_a and_o reasonable_a for_o this_o effect_n we_o must_v consider_v the_o church_n either_o as_o a_o society_n of_o man_n or_o as_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o first_o respect_n it_o will_v be_v the_o great_a absurdity_n imaginable_a to_o attribute_v to_o it_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n if_o she_o hold_v it_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o second_o respect_n i_o will_v say_v inasmuch_o as_o she_o be_v a_o christian_a society_n that_o have_v such_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o particular_a sentiment_n touch_v religion_n which_o nature_n do_v not_o give_v now_o in_o this_o quality_n a_o man_n can_v reasonable_o prejudicate_v that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o follow_v century_n believe_v the_o substantial_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n but_o by_o one_o of_o these_o two_o motive_n either_o because_o he_o see_v these_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o first_o and_o fundamental_a rule_n of_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o see_v they_o already_o establish_v in_o the_o precede_a century_n if_o then_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v establish_v his_o supposition_n he_o must_v begin_v by_o inquiry_n into_o the_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o first_o six_o century_n and_o show_v therein_o the_o doctrine_n in_o question_n which_o do_v he_o shall_v descend_v to_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o age_n and_o make_v his_o discussion_n on_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n but_o he_o do_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o of_o these_o thing_n he_o begin_v his_o discussion_n from_o the_o seven_o century_n and_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n judge_v beforehand_o from_o thence_o that_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n hold_v the_o doctrine_n now_o in_o dispute_n this_o be_v a_o plain_a deviation_n and_o illusion_n for_o till_o such_o time_n as_o the_o contrary_n appear_v to_o we_o we_o must_v always_o predetermine_v on_o nature_n side_n now_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v neither_o to_o believe_v the_o substantial_a presence_n nor_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n so_o that_o unless_o the_o establishment_n of_o these_o doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n appear_v elsewhere_o we_o can_v but_o suppose_v the_o church_n in_o what_o time_n and_o place_n soever_o we_o consider_v it_o in_o a_o state_n pure_o natural_a in_o this_o respect_n we_o can_v never_o reasonable_o predetermine_v without_o some_o considerable_a motive_n contrary_a to_o that_o common_a light_n which_o regulate_v the_o judgement_n of_o man_n nor_o contrary_a to_o universal_a notion_n and_o general_a custom_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o these_o three_o thing_n oppose_v the_o doctrine_n in_o question_n for_o our_o sense_n give_v in_o their_o testimony_n against_o they_o and_o reason_n carry_v we_o rather_o away_o from_o they_o than_o to_o '_o they_o universal_a notion_n give_v we_o quite_o different_a idea_n than_o those_o which_o these_o doctrine_n constrain_v we_o to_o have_v and_o the_o common_a custom_n be_v to_o judge_v of_o sensible_a thing_n according_a to_o their_o natural_a character_n we_o ought_v never_o to_o prejudicate_v without_o exceed_v great_a reason_n against_o a_o example_n i_o mean_v against_o the_o usual_a manner_n of_o proceed_v act_v think_v or_o speak_v in_o such_o like_a matter_n as_o be_v this_o in_o question_n now_o the_o example_n of_o all_o people_n and_o especial_o of_o christian_n show_v they_o conceive_v the_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n without_o imagine_v any_o conversion_n of_o substance_n in_o they_o that_o they_o give_v to_o sign_n the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o represent_v to_o distinguish_v mystery_n from_o miracle_n proper_o so_o call_v not_o to_o offer_v miracle_n wrought_v on_o sensible_a thing_n and_o which_o be_v yet_o not_o only_o imperceptible_a to_o the_o sense_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o their_o deposition_n when_o the_o question_n concern_v a_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o go_v to_o the_o make_v up_o of_o a_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o a_o religion_n a_o man_n ought_v never_o to_o prejudicate_v light_o against_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o analogy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o relation_n coherence_n and_o just_a proportion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v natural_o between_o the_o doctrine_n maxim_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n for_o it_o be_v with_o religion_n as_o with_o the_o several_a part_n of_o a_o building_n or_o aedifices_fw-la of_o the_o same_o city_n or_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n or_o if_o you_o will_v as_o with_o child_n of_o the_o same_o family_n they_o be_v know_v by_o one_o another_o because_o they_o all_o do_v in_o some_o sort_n resemble_v each_o other_o now_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o state_n wherein_o it_o be_v in_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o century_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o full_a of_o explication_n and_o mystical_a expression_n for_o this_o be_v the_o true_a character_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o those_o day_n we_o shall_v find_v perpetual_a discourse_n of_o that_o spiritual_a communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o jesus_n christ_n and_o immediate_a manducation_n of_o his_o flesh_n as_o a_o act_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o of_o a_o thing_n that_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o faithful_a we_o shall_v not_o find_v they_o consider_v any_o more_o than_o two_o state_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o his_o abasement_n and_o that_o of_o his_o exaltation_n without_o ever_o mention_v this_o three_o state_n call_v sacramental_a we_o shall_v not_o find_v they_o apply_v to_o
who_o have_v without_o doubt_n take_v they_o from_o isidor_n for_o it_o be_v the_o common_a custom_n of_o the_o author_n of_o those_o day_n to_o copy_n out_o one_o from_o another_o he_o say_v moreover_o in_o another_o place_n express_o that_o no_o infidel_n can_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o all_o those_o who_o he_o have_v redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n must_v be_v his_o slave_n circumcise_v in_o reference_n to_o vice_n and_o so_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o as_o bede_n and_o alcuinus_fw-la make_v a_o particular_a profession_n to_o be_v s._n augustine_n disciple_n so_o they_o have_v not_o scruple_v to_o transcribe_v into_o their_o book_n several_a passage_n take_v word_n for_o word_n out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o this_o great_a man_n which_o confirm_v the_o same_o thing_n bede_n among_o other_o have_v take_v this_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o sentence_n collect_v by_o prosper_n he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n as_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o eat_v his_o flesh_n nor_o drink_v his_o blood_n although_o for_o the_o condemnation_n of_o his_o presumption_n he_o receive_v every_o day_n the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n and_o he_o and_o alcuinus_fw-la 6._o beda_n in_o cor._n 11._o beda_n &_o alcu._n in_o joan._n 6._o have_n borrow_a from_o his_o treatise_n on_o s._n john_n these_o word_n jesus_n say_v to_o they_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v this_o be_v then_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o eat_v the_o meat_n which_o perish_v not_o but_o remain_v to_o life_n everlasting_a why_o prepare_v you_o your_o tooth_n and_o belly_n believe_v and_o you_o have_v eat_v it_o this_o be_v the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o which_o eat_v of_o it_o may_v not_o die_v this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n he_o that_o eat_v internal_o not_o external_o that_o eat_v with_o the_o heart_n not_o with_o the_o tooth_n and_o a_o little_a further_o our_o saviour_n explain_v what_o it_o be_v to_o eat_v his_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o to_o eat_v then_o this_o meat_n and_o drink_v this_o drink_n be_v to_o dwell_v in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o have_v jesus_n christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o so_o that_o he_o that_o dwell_v not_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o jesus_n christ_n in_o he_o do_v not_o eat_v spiritual_o his_o flesh_n although_o he_o sensible_o bite_v with_o the_o tooth_n the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o rather_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o his_o condemnation_n the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n and_o again_o the_o mark_n by_o which_o a_o man_n may_v know_v he_o have_v eat_v and_o drink_v be_v that_o he_o dwell_v in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o have_v jesus_n christ_n dwell_v in_o he_o we_o dwell_v in_o he_o when_o we_o be_v the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o he_o dwell_v in_o we_o when_o we_o be_v his_o temple_n and_o a_o little_a low_o the_o word_n which_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n that_o be_v they_o must_v be_v understand_v spiritual_o if_o you_o understand_v they_o spiritual_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n if_o carnal_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o they_o be_v spirit_n and_o life_n but_o not_o to_o you_o in_o short_a we_o find_v these_o author_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n acknowledge_v no_o other_o presence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n on_o earth_n than_o that_o of_o his_o divinity_n of_o his_o grace_n or_o providence_n and_o in_o no_o wise_a that_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n jesus_n christ_n ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n say_v isidor_n have_v absent_v himself_o 14._o isidor_n lib._n 1._o sentent_fw-fr cap._n 14._o as_o to_o the_o flesh_n but_o be_v ever_o present_a in_o respect_n of_o his_o majesty_n according_a to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o passage_n of_o bede_n on_o this_o subject_n be_v too_o many_o to_o be_v mention_v 12._o beda_n expos_n allegor_fw-la ipsam_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 12._o here_o i_o shall_v only_o relate_v some_o of_o '_o they_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o have_v perform_v the_o duty_n of_o his_o oeconomy_n return_v into_o heaven_n where_o he_o be_v ascend_v in_o respect_n of_o his_o body_n but_o visit_v we_o every_o day_n by_o his_o divine_a presence_n by_o which_o he_o be_v always_o every_o where_o and_o quiet_o govern_v all_o thing_n there_o be_v his_o flesh_n which_o he_o have_v assume_v and_o glorify_v for_o our_o sake_n because_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n say_v he_o again_o he_o be_v raise_v up_o into_o heaven_n where_o he_o sit_v as_o to_o his_o humanity_n which_o he_o assume_v on_o earth_n yet_o do_v he_o remain_v with_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n in_o his_o divinity_n by_o which_o he_o fill_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o the_o man_n mention_v in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o leave_v his_o house_n go_v a_o journey_n into_o a_o far_a country_n be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n who_o after_o his_o resurrection_n 13._o idem_fw-la comm._n in_o mare_n c._n 13._o ascend_v up_o to_o his_o father_n have_v leave_v as_o to_o his_o bodily_a presence_n his_o church_n although_o he_o never_o suffer_v it_o to_o want_v the_o assistance_n of_o his_o divine_a presence_n interpret_n mystical_o in_o another_o place_n the_o word_n concern_v ann_n the_o daughter_n of_o phanuel_n who_o be_v a_o widow_n and_o age_a 84._o year_n this_o ann_n 2._o idem_fw-la in_o luc._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o say_v he_o signify_v the_o church_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o widow_n since_o the_o death_n of_o her_o lord_n and_o spouse_n the_o year_n of_o her_o widowhood_n represent_v the_o time_n in_o which_o the_o church_n which_o be_v still_o burden_a with_o this_o body_n be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n expect_v every_o day_n with_o the_o great_a impatience_n that_o come_v concern_v which_o it_o be_v say_v we_o will_v come_v to_o he_o and_o make_v our_o abode_n with_o he_o it_o be_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n that_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o job_n i_o have_v comfort_v the_o heart_n 14._o idem_n exposit_n alleg_n in_o job_n lib._n 2._o c._n 14._o of_o the_o widow_n he_o say_v that_o this_o widow_n be_v the_o church_n our_o mother_n which_o our_o saviour_n comfort_n and_o that_o she_o be_v call_v a_o widow_n because_o her_o spouse_n have_v absent_v himself_o from_o she_o as_o to_o his_o corporeal_a presence_n according_a to_o what_o himself_o tell_v his_o disciple_n the_o poor_a you_o have_v always_o with_o you_o but_o i_o you_o have_v not_o always_o in_o one_o of_o his_o homily_n he_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o presence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n than_o a_o presence_n of_o divinity_n and_o grace_n for_o have_v exact_o denote_v how_o many_o time_n the_o lord_n appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o design_v say_v he_o to_o show_v by_o these_o frequent_a appearance_n paschal_n idem_fw-la hom._n fast_o de_fw-fr temp_n feria_fw-la 6_o paschal_n that_o he_o will_v be_v spiritual_o present_a in_o all_o place_n at_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o faithful_a he_o appear_v to_o the_o woman_n that_o weep_v at_o the_o sepulchre_n he_o will_v be_v likewise_o present_a with_o we_o when_o we_o grieve_v at_o the_o remembrance_n of_o his_o absence_n he_o appear_v whilst_o they_o break_v bread_n to_o those_o who_o take_v he_o for_o a_o stranger_n give_v he_o entertainment_n he_o will_v be_v likewise_o with_o we_o when_o we_o liberal_o relieve_v the_o poor_a and_o stranger_n he_o will_v be_v likewise_o with_o we_o in_o the_o fraction_n of_o bread_n when_o we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o live_a bread_n with_o a_o pure_a and_o chaste_a heart_n we_o find_v here_o no_o mention_n of_o any_o other_o presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o of_o the_o divinity_n alcvinus_n teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n for_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o poor_a you_o have_v ever_o with_o you_o but_o i_o not_o always_o he_o show_v say_v he_o we_o must_v not_o blame_v those_o that_o communicate_v to_o he_o their_o good_a 28._o alcuin_n in_o joan._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 28._o thing_n whilst_o he_o converse_v among_o they_o see_v he_o be_v to_o remain_v so_o short_a a_o a_o time_n with_o the_o church_n bodily_a he_o introduce_v our_o saviour_n elsewhere_o thus_o say_v to_o his_o church_n if_o i_o go_v away_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o absence_n of_o my_o flesh_n i_o will_v 34._o
idem_fw-la in_o joan._n lib._n 6._o cap._n 34._o come_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o my_o divinity_n by_o which_o i_o shall_v be_v with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o retire_v from_o they_o say_v he_o again_o as_o to_o his_o manhood_n 35._o ibid._n cap._n 35._o but_o as_o god_n he_o do_v not_o leave_v they_o for_o the_o same_o christ_n who_o be_v man_n be_v likewise_o god_n he_o leave_v they_o then_o as_o to_o his_o manhood_n but_o remain_v with_o they_o as_o to_o his_o godhead_n he_o go_v away_o in_o reference_n to_o that_o by_o which_o he_o be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n yet_o tarry_v with_o they_o by_o his_o divinity_n which_o be_v every_o where_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n reflect_v if_o he_o please_v on_o these_o passage_n and_o on_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o other_o like_v they_o with_o which_o his_o read_n will_v furnish_v he_o and_o tell_v we_o faithful_o see_v on_o one_o hand_n there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o author_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n either_o transubstantiation_n or_o a_o presence_n of_o substance_n or_o any_o natural_a consequence_n of_o these_o doctrine_n and_o see_v on_o the_o other_o so_o many_o thing_n to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o they_o contrary_a thereunto_o as_o those_o i_o now_o mention_v whether_o he_o believe_v it_o be_v likely_a we_o shall_v by_o the_o force_n of_o his_o preparation_n supposition_n reticency_n and_o supplement_n acquiesce_v in_o his_o assertion_n that_o the_o then_o church_n hold_v constant_o and_o universal_o as_o he_o speak_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n it_o be_v certain_a we_o must_v offer_v great_a violence_n to_o our_o mind_n and_o after_o all_o when_o we_o have_v endeavour_v to_o imagine_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v we_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o accomplish_v it_o we_o must_v imagine_v say_v he_o christian_n persuade_v that_o by_o the_o 737._o lib._n 8._o cap._n 2._o p._n 737._o word_n of_o the_o consecration_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v effectual_o change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o doctrine_n be_v know_v distinct_o by_o all_o the_o faithful_a i_o know_v not_o where_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v find_v any_o of_o these_o fanciful_a people_n that_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v themselves_o what_o they_o listen_v as_o to_o our_o part_n we_o be_v not_o such_o master_n of_o our_o imagination_n and_o in_o a_o affair_n of_o this_o nature_n he_o must_v pardon_v we_o if_o we_o tell_v he_o that_o we_o can_v fancy_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a when_o it_o appear_v so_o plain_o to_o we_o to_o be_v false_a but_o lest_o he_o shall_v again_o accuse_v we_o as_o indocible_a we_o will_v see_v what_o he_o have_v to_o offer_v we_o from_o these_o author_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n when_o they_o expound_v the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o the_o eucharist_n s._n isidor_n say_v he_o call_v 756._o lib._n 8._o cap._n 4._o p._n 755_o 756._o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v in_o what_o manner_n it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o it_o he_o will_v tell_v we_o that_o the_o bread_n we_o break_v be_v the_o body_n of_o he_o who_o say_v i_o be_o the_o live_a bread_n he_o further_o add_v that_o the_o wine_n be_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v the_o same_o mean_v by_o these_o word_n i_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n but_o he_o shall_v not_o suppress_v what_o he_o likewise_o immediate_o add_v but_o the_o 18._o isid_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr offic._n eccles_n cap._n 18._o bread_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n because_o it_o strengthen_v the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n allude_v to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o produce_v blood_n in_o our_o flesh_n these_o two_o thing_n be_v visible_a yet_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n they_o become_v the_o sacrament_n of_o this_o divine_a body_n be_v this_o the_o language_n of_o a_o man_n that_o believe_v a_o real_a conversion_n of_o substance_n he_o express_o assert_n say_v moreover_o m._n arnaud_n that_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n ibid._n ibid._n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o of_o which_o we_o be_v deprive_v when_o it_o be_v take_v from_o we_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n concern_v which_o it_o be_v say_v if_o you_o eat_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n nor_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o body_n the_o truth_n the_o original_n represent_v by_o the_o shadow_n and_o type_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n i_o answer_v that_o s._n isidor_n suppose_v we_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v true_a he_o likewise_o suppose_v that_o if_o we_o eat_v not_o this_o flesh_n we_o remain_v deprive_v of_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v moreover_o true_a from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v man_n ought_v not_o to_o abstain_v long_o from_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n because_o a_o total_a neglect_n of_o this_o mean_n which_o christ_n have_v ordain_v for_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n will_v put_v we_o in_o danger_n of_o be_v whole_o deprive_v of_o they_o for_o without_o eat_v and_o drink_v this_o flesh_n and_o blood_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n this_o be_v isidor_n sense_n whence_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o conclude_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o thesis_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n defend_v for_o we_o spiritual_o eat_v our_o lord_n flesh_n in_o the_o due_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v this_o manducation_n which_o s._n isidor_n speak_v of_o as_o appear_v from_o what_o he_o there_o say_v manifestrum_fw-la est_fw-la eos_fw-la vivere_fw-la qui_fw-la corpus_fw-la ejus_fw-la attingunt_fw-la and_o as_o to_o what_o he_o assert_n that_o this_o be_v the_o body_n the_o truth_n the_o original_a represent_v by_o the_o ancient_a figure_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o deny_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v hence_o conclude_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o body_n itself_o of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o substance_n i_o have_v sufficient_o elsewhere_o discourse_v in_o what_o manner_n the_o ancient_a type_n relate_v to_o our_o sacrament_n and_o those_o that_o please_v to_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o father_n novet_v will_v find_v there_o if_o i_o be_v not_o mistake_v enough_o to_o satisfy_v they_o in_o that_o particular_a bede_n add_v mr._n arnaud_n say_v that_o the_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n ibid._n ibid._n be_v change_v through_o a_o ineffable_a virtue_n into_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o expression_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v in_o this_o author_n he_o tell_v we_o in_o these_o follow_a word_n and_o thus_o say_v he_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o more_o shed_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o infidel_n for_o their_o ruin_n but_o receive_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o their_o salvation_n but_o this_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a objection_n the_o sense_n of_o bede_n be_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a because_o they_o receive_v the_o wine_n which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o term_n and_o thus_o sicque_fw-la for_o he_o show_v in_o what_o manner_n the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a receive_v the_o blood_n to_o wit_n inasmuch_o as_o they_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o it_o gregory_n the_o great_a say_v before_o bede_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o we_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n not_o only_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o body_n but_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o heart_n quando_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la passionis_fw-la evangel_n greg._n mag._n hom._n 22._o in_o evangel_n illius_fw-la cum_fw-la ore_fw-la ad_fw-la redemptionem_fw-la sumitur_fw-la ad_fw-la imitationem_fw-la quoque_fw-la interna_fw-la ment_fw-la cogitatur_fw-la when_o we_o receive_v with_o our_o mouth_n the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o inward_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o imitate_v his_o great_a saviour_n i_o shall_v elsewhere_o in_o its_o due_a place_n examine_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n allege_v touch_v amalarius_n florus_n drutmar_n and_o some_o other_o author_n of_o the_o 9th_o century_n contemporary_n with_o paschasus_n it_o only_o remain_v for_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o discussion_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o to_o answer_v some_o slight_a observation_n which_o he_o have_v make_v on_o a_o passage_n in_o the_o book_n of_o image_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o charlemain_n the_o author_n of_o this_o book_n will_v not_o have_v the_o eucharist_n be_v call_v a_o image_n but_o the_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n
and_o make_v they_o consider_v it_o in_o wrong_a circumstance_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n for_o they_o to_o be_v deceive_v and_o take_v that_o for_o a_o real_a presence_n which_o be_v far_o from_o be_v it_o but_o we_o must_v make_v another_o judgement_n of_o the_o eight_o first_o century_n wherein_o the_o pastor_n instruct_v their_o flock_n give_v they_o other_o idea_n of_o this_o mystery_n which_o carry_v they_o off_o from_o that_o of_o the_o invisible_a and_o incorporeal_a presence_n we_o may_v in_o a_o manner_n apply_v the_o same_o answer_n to_o mr._n arnaud_n three_o reason_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o example_n of_o several_a minister_n who_o although_o they_o pretend_v that_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n produce_v by_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o metaphorical_a one_o yet_o do_v conceive_v the_o literal_a sense_n for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o the_o people_n of_o the_o eight_o first_o century_n they_o live_v in_o those_o time_n wherein_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n such_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n believe_v be_v not_o discover_v whereas_o we_o live_v in_o those_o time_n wherein_o it_o be_v continual_o represent_v before_o our_o eye_n both_o rhetoric_n and_o philosophy_n be_v set_v on_o work_n to_o show_v it_o we_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a then_o but_o enter_v into_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o that_o dispute_v incessant_o against_o we_o and_o put_v ourselves_o in_o their_o place_n to_o comprehend_v what_o they_o think_v but_o we_o must_v conceive_v in_o the_o passage_n which_o they_o allege_v to_o we_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n although_o we_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v false_a it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o they_o offer_v some_o to_o we_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n which_o as_o mr._n daillé_n have_v well_o observe_v seem_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o admit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o protestant_n but_o these_o passage_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n for_o either_o they_o be_v false_o attribute_v to_o the_o father_n as_o be_v that_o denote_v by_o mr._n daillé_n that_o the_o bread_n change_v its_o nature_n and_o become_v by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n the_o flesh_n of_o the_o word_n which_o he_o have_v consider_v as_o the_o word_n of_o s._n cyprian_n under_o who_o name_n they_o have_v be_v usual_o cite_v whereas_o they_o be_v arnaud_n of_o bonneval_n a_o author_n of_o the_o 12_o century_n as_o to_o such_o as_o these_o i_o confess_v it_o be_v not_o easy_a for_o protestant_n to_o accommodate_v they_o to_o their_o sense_n but_o very_o easy_a on_o the_o contrary_a to_o conceive_v the_o idea_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o they_o but_o this_o happen_v by_o their_o be_v regard_v as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n whereas_o indeed_o they_o be_v not_o the_o other_o be_v real_o the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n but_o contain_v a_o particular_a sentiment_n which_o be_v neither_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o that_o of_o the_o protestant_n so_o that_o it_o can_v seem_v strange_a if_o those_o that_o will_v accommodate_v they_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o protestant_n find_v themselves_o perplex_v with_o they_o and_o such_o be_v several_a passage_n in_o gregory_n of_o nysse_n anastasius_n sinaite_n and_o damascen_n which_o to_o speak_v proper_o be_v neither_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o for_o we_o i_o mean_v do_v neither_o confirm_v our_o positive_a belief_n nor_o they_o although_o they_o allege_v they_o in_o their_o own_o favour_n as_o to_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n say_v touch_v the_o metaphor_n i_o grant_v they_o do_v natural_o form_v this_o double_a idea_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v but_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a there_o be_v as_o i_o say_v metaphorical_a term_n which_o use_n have_v make_v proper_a so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o of_o themselves_o offer_v to_o the_o mind_n the_o natural_a idea_n which_o they_o signify_v but_o only_o the_o metaphorical_a one_o unless_o a_o man_n mind_n make_v a_o particular_a reflection_n on_o they_o thus_o the_o term_n of_o house_n in_o astrology_n the_o term_n of_o aristotle_n and_o plato_n in_o a_o library_n and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o other_o of_o this_o nature_n do_v not_o present_v more_o to_o the_o mind_n than_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o original_o signify_v let_v mr._n arnaud_n call_v they_o as_o long_o as_o he_o will_v equivocal_a term_n dark_a metaphor_n which_o be_v abolish_v by_o use_n this_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o truth_n of_o my_o remark_n nor_o the_o application_n which_o i_o make_v of_o it_o to_o the_o term_n of_o corpus_n corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la which_o use_n have_v make_v so_o proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n that_o they_o bring_v no_o other_o idea_n to_o the_o mind_n than_o that_o of_o the_o sacrament_n according_a as_o our_o sense_n represent_v it_o without_o bring_v in_o that_o of_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v true_a say_v mr._n arnaud_n 602._o page_n 602._o that_o the_o custom_n of_o employ_v some_o term_n in_o a_o metaphorical_a use_n do_v sometime_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n obscure_v the_o double_a idea_n that_o the_o mind_n feel_v no_o more_o than_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o conceive_v as_o true_a this_o be_v exact_o what_o i_o will_v have_v i_o desire_v no_o more_o and_o it_o signify_v nothing_o to_o allege_v that_o this_o do_v not_o contradict_v the_o rule_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v propose_v because_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o term_n which_o be_v real_o metaphorical_a and_o not_o of_o equivocal_a term_n such_o as_o those_o be_v wherein_o the_o double_a idea_n be_v not_o feel_v this_o i_o say_v signify_v nothing_o for_o beside_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v propose_v his_o principle_n a_o little_a too_o general_o my_o exception_n invalidate_n the_o use_n which_o he_o will_v make_v of_o it_o for_o it_o show_v that_o in_o apply_v this_o principle_n to_o the_o term_n corpus_fw-la corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la a_o man_n can_v draw_v no_o advantage_n thence_o nor_o say_v that_o they_o bring_v into_o the_o mind_n the_o idea_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n because_o that_o in_o effect_n these_o term_n do_v not_o represent_v more_o than_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o sacrament_n according_a as_o our_o sense_n offer_v it_o i_o confess_v we_o can_v apply_v this_o remark_n to_o several_a passage_n of_o the_o father_n wherein_o the_o figure_n be_v more_o sensible_a and_o therefore_o we_o have_v only_o apply_v it_o to_o these_o term_n precise_o corpus_n corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la by_o which_o the_o sacrament_n have_v be_v often_o design_v a_o answer_n be_v not_o the_o less_o good_a for_o be_v proper_a and_o particular_a to_o a_o subject_n and_o as_o to_o other_o passage_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n propose_v we_o have_v already_o maintain_v and_o do_v still_o that_o their_o natural_a sense_n be_v the_o sacramental_a one_o and_o not_o that_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n except_v some_o which_o we_o will_v speak_v to_o hereafter_o and_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o we_o must_v first_o distinguish_v the_o particular_a sense_n of_o each_o term_n from_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a proposition_n each_o term_n have_v its_o proper_a common_a and_o ordinary_a signification_n and_o be_v thus_o take_v apart_o bring_v natural_o into_o the_o mind_n the_o idea_n of_o that_o which_o it_o signify_v but_o the_o first_o and_o natural_a sense_n of_o the_o entire_a proposition_n must_v not_o always_o be_v take_v from_o the_o natural_a signification_n of_o each_o term_n but_o ofttimes_o from_o the_o force_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n which_o guide_v nature_n to_o a_o certain_a sense_n without_o suffer_v she_o to_o imagine_v any_o other_o and_o this_o be_v oft_o the_o metaphorical_a sense_n which_o i_o illustrate_v by_o the_o example_n of_o these_o proposition_n the_o stone_n be_v christ_n the_o king_n be_v the_o head_n of_o gold_n the_o seven_o stalk_n be_v the_o seven_o year_n the_o particular_a term_n stone_n christ_n be_v take_v apart_o do_v natural_o bring_v into_o the_o mind_n the_o idea_n of_o what_o they_o signify_v the_o stone_n offer_v the_o idea_n of_o a_o rock_n christ_n the_o idea_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v give_v the_o idea_n of_o a_o affirmation_n but_o the_o simple_a and_o natural_a sense_n which_o result_v from_o these_o three_o term_n gather_v together_o be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o metaphorical_a one_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n which_o suffer_v not_o natural_o the_o mind_n to_o conceive_v another_o it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o reference_n to_o these_o proposition_n the_o bread_n be_v the_o
have_v take_v my_o pretend_a machine_n of_o retrenchment_n be_v this_o the_o question_n concern_v not_o all_o those_o in_o the_o 6._o answer_v to_o the_o second_o treatise_n part._n 3._o ch_n 6._o west_n who_o profess_v themselves_o christian_n but_o only_o one_o party_n that_o have_v grow_v prevalent_a and_o endeavour_v to_o get_v the_o pulpit_n to_o themselves_o thereby_o to_o become_v ruler_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n whereupon_o he_o cry_v out_o do_v ever_o any_o 890._o book_n 9_o ch_z 3._o p._n 890._o body_n affirm_v that_o the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o 11_o century_n hold_v not_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o have_v only_o a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n but_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o mind_n what_o he_o write_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o fifty_o year_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n and_o he_o come_v and_o allege_v to_o we_o the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o 11_o century_n it_o be_v sufficient_a we_o tell_v he_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n that_o 6._o refut_o part_n 3._o ch_z 6._o this_o change_n can_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o first_o fifty_o year_n of_o this_o century_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o 10_o seeing_z it_o be_v incredible_a that_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o whole_a earth_n have_v be_v instruct_v in_o the_o distinct_a belief_n of_o the_o real_a absence_n shall_v have_v embrace_v a_o opinion_n quite_o contrary_a in_o condemn_v their_o first_o sentiment_n and_o without_o this_o change_n be_v have_v make_v any_o noise_n these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n i_o recite_v and_o on_o which_o have_v say_v that_o the_o question_n concern_v not_o a_o change_n begin_v and_o finish_v in_o the_o 10_o century_n but_o the_o progress_n of_o a_o change_n begin_v eighty_o two_o year_n before_o the_o 10_o century_n and_o finish_v by_o the_o pope_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 11_o i_o add_v that_o our_o debate_n be_v not_o about_o all_o those_o in_o the_o west_n that_o profess_v themselves_o christian_n but_o only_o about_o one_o party_n that_o strengthen_v themselves_o and_o endeavour_v to_o become_v master_n of_o the_o pulpit_n that_o they_o may_v afterward_o be_v master_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o evident_o appear_v the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o first_o fifty_o year_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n and_o thereupon_o mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o by_o way_n of_o exclamation_n be_v there_o any_o one_o that_o affirm_v the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o 11_o century_n hold_v not_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o have_v only_o a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n no_o berenger_n himself_o acknowledge_v the_o contrary_a in_o call_v this_o doctrine_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o people_n sententia_fw-la vulgi_fw-la and_o in_o maintain_v the_o church_n be_v perish_v it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v there_o be_v a_o strange_a disorder_n in_o this_o kind_n of_o dispute_v i_o will_v grant_v that_o the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o 11_o century_n hold_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n through_o the_o labour_n of_o paschasus_n his_o disciple_n but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o first_o fifty_o year_n of_o the_o 10_o for_o when_o a_o new_a doctrine_n disperse_v itself_o in_o a_o church_n a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n make_v great_a alteration_n in_o it_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n in_o which_o paschasus_n write_v his_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a we_o suppose_v the_o people_n to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o state_n they_o be_v in_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n have_v make_v considerable_a progress_v neither_o will_v we_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o state_n the_o first_o fifty_o year_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n for_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o change_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o space_n of_o near_o three_o hundred_o year_n common_a sense_n will_v show_v there_o be_v more_o or_o less_o of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o time_n it_o be_v then_o reasonable_a on_o my_o hypothesis_n to_o consider_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n those_o that_o hold_v the_o real_a presence_n only_o as_o a_o party_n that_o strengthen_v themselves_o and_o endeavour_v to_o make_v '_o emselve_n most_o considerable_a in_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v in_o no_o sort_n reasonable_a to_o oppose_v against_o this_o the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o 11_o century_n see_v that_o in_o eighty_o or_o a_o hundred_o year_n the_o face_n of_o thing_n may_v be_v easy_o change_v it_o be_v moreover_o less_o reasonable_a to_o oft_o we_o the_o discourse_n of_o lanfranc_n 890._o book_n 9_o ch_z 3._o pag._n 890._o who_o brag_v that_o in_o his_o time_n all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n believe_v they_o receive_v in_o this_o sacrament_n the_o true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n for_o suppose_v what_o lanfranc_n say_v be_v true_a the_o sense_n he_o give_v to_o these_o word_n the_o true_a flesh_n and_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n understand_v they_o in_o a_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v false_a as_o we_o have_v sufficient_o show_v have_v any_o body_n charge_v this_o testimony_n to_o be_v false_a say_v mr._n arnaud_n no_o there_o be_v no_o one_o but_o mr._n claude_n who_o do_v it_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o without_o any_o ground_n but_o do_v mr._n arnaud_n know_v all_o that_o berenger_n answer_v and_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o suppose_v they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o the_o other_o church_n separate_v from_o the_o latin_a do_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o in_o effect_n they_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o that_o the_o proof_n i_o have_v give_v of_o the_o contrary_n be_v not_o good_a do_v reason_n add_v he_o show_v that_o in_o this_o point_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o pastor_n ibid_fw-la ibid_fw-la be_v not_o that_o of_o the_o people_n no_o it_o prove_v the_o quite_o contrary_a it_o be_v incredible_a that_o minister_n who_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n shall_v not_o take_v care_n to_o instruct_v they_o in_o it_o who_o they_o exhort_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n to_o who_o they_o ought_v to_o judge_n this_o belief_n to_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o make_v they_o avoid_v the_o unworthy_a communion_n mr._n arnaud_n fight_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n we_o never_o tell_v he_o that_o those_o who_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n do_v not_o endeavour_v to_o insinuate_v it_o into_o the_o people_n mind_n according_a as_o they_o be_v more_o or_o less_o prejudice_v or_o zealous_a in_o the_o propagation_n of_o this_o belief_n and_o more_o or_o less_o qualify_v to_o teach_v it_o and_o more_o or_o less_o again_o according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n occasion_n person_n but_o how_o do_v this_o hinder_v i_o from_o say_v that_o during_o the_o first_o fifty_o year_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n it_o be_v not_o all_o they_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o west_n but_o a_o party_n that_o strengthen_v themselves_o and_o endeavour_v to_o render_v themselves_o the_o most_o considerable_a be_v this_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n again_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o show_v that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o persuade_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n because_o some_o historian_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o berenger_n trouble_v the_o church_n by_o a_o new_a heresy_n do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n likewise_o inform_v we_o that_o he_o pervert_v several_a person_n with_o his_o novelty_n but_o we_o do_v not_o offer_v this_o alone_a as_o a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o persuade_v he_o the_o people_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n i_o confess_v that_o upon_o this_o alone_a one_o may_v just_o say_v either_o that_o those_o who_o follow_v berenger_n follow_v he_o in_o leave_v their_o first_o belief_n and_o embrace_v a_o new_a opinion_n or_o that_o they_o follow_v he_o because_o he_o preach_v only_o what_o they_o believe_v before_o or_o that_o they_o adhere_v to_o he_o because_o they_o be_v further_o instruct_v in_o a_o mystery_n of_o which_o they_o have_v but_o small_a knowledge_n or_o little_a certainty_n so_o far_o every_o man_n be_v at_o liberty_n to_o take_v that_o part_n which_o he_o shall_v judge_v the_o most_o reasonable_a but_o shall_v i_o say_v there_o be_v several_a that_o follow_v he_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o know_v what_o he_o teach_v be_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v very_o probable_a have_v show_v as_o i_o have_v do_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n that_o bertran_n doctrine_n be_v public_o teach_v in_o the_o 10_o century_n for_o it_o follow_v hence_o probable_o enough_o that_o this_o doctrine_n
the_o virtue_n of_o the_o divine_a word_n it_o be_v true_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o not_o corporeal_o but_o spiritual_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o this_o body_n in_o which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v suffer_v and_o that_o body_n which_o be_v consecrate_a in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o body_n with_o which_o our_o saviour_n have_v suffer_v be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n have_v blood_n bones_o skin_n sinew_n and_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n but_o his_o spiritual_a body_n which_o we_o call_v the_o eucharist_n be_v compose_v of_o several_a grain_n without_o blood_n bones_o member_n and_o soul_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o understand_v any_o thing_n of_o it_o corporeal_o but_o spiritual_o ii_o mr._n arnaud_v can_v hinder_v it_o from_o be_v true_a that_o the_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la people_n be_v instruct_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o heavenly_a food_n with_o which_o the_o jew_n be_v nourish_v by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o year_n and_o the_o water_n which_o run_v from_o the_o rock_n represent_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o we_o now_o every_o day_n offer_v in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o we_o offer_v at_o this_o day_n not_o corporeal_o but_o spiritual_o we_o have_v already_o tell_v you_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n before_o his_o passion_n consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v his_o eucharist_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o blood_n he_o have_v not_o yet_o suffer_v and_o yet_o he_o change_v by_o his_o invisible_a virtue_n this_o bread_n into_o his_o own_o body_n and_o this_o wine_n into_o his_o own_o blood_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o he_o have_v already_o do_v in_o the_o wilderness_n before_o he_o be_v incarnate_a when_o he_o change_v the_o heavenly_a manna_n into_o his_o flesh_n and_o the_o water_n which_o run_v from_o the_o rock_n into_o his_o own_o blood_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n have_v eternal_a life_n he_o do_v not_o command_v we_o to_o eat_v that_o body_n which_o he_o assume_v nor_o drink_v that_o blood_n which_o he_o spill_v for_o we_o but_o by_o this_o he_o mean_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n which_o be_v spiritual_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o whosoever_o shall_v taste_v with_o a_o pure_a heart_n shall_v live_v eternal_o under_o the_o ancient_a law_n the_o faithful_a offer_v to_o god_n several_a sacrifice_n which_o signify_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o come_v this_o body_n i_o say_v which_o he_o offer_v to_o god_n his_o father_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n but_o this_o eucharist_n which_o we_o now_o consecrate_v on_o god_n altar_n be_v the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n offer_v for_o we_o and_o blood_n shed_v for_o we_o according_a as_o he_o himself_o have_v command_v say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o iii_o mr._n arnaud_v must_v be_v remember_v that_o elfric_n abbot_n of_o voloc_n serm._n elfrici_fw-la apud_fw-la eund_n voloc_n malm●sbury_n and_o who_o be_v afterward_o as_o it_o be_v think_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o live_v in_o the_o same_o time_n write_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n corporal_o but_o spiritual_o not_o the_o body_n in_o which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v suffer_v but_o the_o body_n in_o which_o he_o speak_v the_o night_n before_o his_o passion_n when_o he_o consecrate_a the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o say_v of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o of_o the_o consecrate_a wine_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o lord_n who_o before_o his_o passion_n consecrate_a the_o eucharist_n and_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n true_o his_o blood_n do_v himself_o every_o day_n consecrate_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n by_o a_o spiritual_a mystery_n as_o we_o find_v it_o write_v this_o enliven_a bread_n be_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n the_o same_o body_n in_o which_o our_o lord_n suffer_v and_o the_o consecrate_a wine_n be_v not_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v shed_v as_o to_o the_o corporeal_a matter_n but_o it_o be_v as_o to_o the_o spiritual_a the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n as_o the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n which_o we_o call_v the_o manna_n with_o which_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v nourish_v during_o forty_o year_n and_o the_o water_n which_o run_v from_o the_o rock_n in_o the_o desert_n be_v his_o blood_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n they_o eat_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a food_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o say_v corporal_o but_o spiritual_o for_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o then_o bear_v nor_o his_o blood_n spill_v when_o the_o people_n eat_v of_o this_o food_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o rock_n iu_o mr._n arnaud_v can_v hinder_v wulstin_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n in_o cant._n mss._n in_o colleg._n s._n bened._n cant._n his_o sermon_n which_o he_o make_v to_o his_o clergy_n from_o speak_v in_o this_o manner_n this_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n wherein_o he_o suffer_v nor_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o but_o it_o be_v make_v spiritual_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o the_o manna_n which_o fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o water_n which_o gush_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o brethren_n to_o be_v ignorant_a that_o our_o father_n have_v be_v all_o under_o a_o cloud_n and_o pass_v the_o sea_n and_o all_o of_o they_o baptize_v by_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o that_o they_o have_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a food_n and_o drink_v the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n for_o they_o drink_v out_o of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o follow_v they_o now_o this_o rock_n be_v christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o psalmist_n say_v he_o give_v they_o the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n man_n have_v eat_v the_o angel_n food_n we_o likewise_o without_o doubt_n eat_v the_o bread_n of_o angel_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o rock_n which_o signify_v christ_n every_o time_n we_o approach_v with_o faith_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n v._o mr._n arnaud_fw-la must_v know_v that_o the_o people_n be_v public_o vigorn_n in_o eod_n mss._n eccl._n vigorn_n teach_v that_o jesus_n christ_n break_v the_o bread_n to_o represent_v the_o fraction_n of_o his_o body_n that_o he_o bless_v the_o bread_n and_o break_v it_o because_o it_o please_v he_o so_o to_o submit_v the_o human_a nature_n which_o he_o have_v take_v to_o death_n that_o he_o have_v also_o add_v that_o he_o have_v in_o it_o a_o treasure_n of_o divine_a immortality_n and_o because_o bread_n strengthen_v the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n beget_v blood_n in_o the_o flesh_n therefore_o the_o bread_n relate_v mystical_o to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n to_o the_o blood_n vi_o he_o must_v know_v that_o heriger_n abbot_n of_o lobbs_n in_o the_o county_n of_o 591._o sig_n de_fw-fr script_n eccles_n cap._n 137._o de_fw-fr cest_fw-fr abb._n lob._n tom_n 6._o spicil_n p._n 591._o liege_n public_o condemn_v paschasus_n his_o doctrine_n as_o new_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o learn_v by_o sigibert_n and_o the_o continuer_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o abbot_n of_o lobbs_n for_o both_o of_o they_o say_v that_o he_o produce_v against_o rabbert_n a_o great_a many_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n write_n touch_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n viii_o mr._n arnaud_v himself_o confess_v that_o john_n scot_n who_o withdraw_v 909._o book_n 9_o ch_z 6._o p._n 909._o into_o england_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o precede_a century_n make_v perhaps_o some_o disciple_n of_o his_o doctrine_n it_o be_v true_a he_o will_v have_v these_o disciple_n to_o be_v secret_a but_o why_o secret_a john_n scot_n keep_v not_o himself_o private_a bertran_n and_o raban_n be_v neither_o of_o they_o in_o private_a those_o that_o dislike_v paschasus_n his_o novelty_n hide_v not_o themselves_o in_o the_o 9th_o century_n why_o then_o must_v the_o disciple_n of_o john_n scot_n lie_v secret_a in_o the_o 10_o wherein_o be_v homily_n that_o be_v fill_v with_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o paschasus_n public_o read_v beside_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n that_o odon_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n shall_v think_v himself_o oblige_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o such_o a_o famous_a miracle_n as_o be_v that_o relate_v by_o william_n of_o malmsbury_n to_o
to_o his_o great_a common_a place_n of_o moral_a impossibility_n and_o suppose_v that_o according_a to_o we_o none_o of_o the_o clergy_n or_o laity_n imagine_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n that_o they_o all_o take_v the_o eucharist_n for_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o substance_n that_o they_o know_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v sign_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o which_o we_o obtain_v his_o grace_n and_o that_o we_o must_v meditate_v on_o the_o passion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o receive_v they_o that_o paschasus_n very_o well_o know_v that_o his_o opinion_n be_v opposite_a to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o remain_v in_o her_o external_a communion_n only_o out_o of_o a_o carnal_a motive_n lest_o he_o shall_v find_v himself_o too_o weak_a if_o he_o depart_v out_o of_o it_o suppose_v i_o say_v this_o he_o thus_o reason_n let_v we_o imagine_v a_o religious_a under_o a_o regular_a discipline_n and_o he_o so_o young_a that_o he_o call_v himself_o a_o child_n and_o who_o think_v he_o have_v discover_v this_o marvellous_a secret_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v real_o present_a on_o earth_n in_o infinite_a place_n that_o all_o christian_n receive_v he_o real_o every_o time_n they_o partake_v of_o the_o eucharist_n but_o that_o by_o a_o deplorable_a blindness_n they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o happiness_n do_v not_o know_v the_o saviour_n who_o they_o have_v often_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o which_o they_o receive_v into_o their_o mouth_n and_o take_v his_o real_a body_n for_o a_o image_n and_o simple_a figure_n that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a man_n that_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o mystery_n and_o be_v destine_v to_o declare_v it_o to_o the_o world_n this_o conceit_n be_v already_o very_o strange_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o idea_n which_o a_o man_n necessary_o form_n on_o paschasus_n from_o his_o write_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o remote_a from_o the_o humility_n and_o simplicity_n appear_v in_o they_o than_o this_o prodigious_a insolency_n with_o which_o mr._n claude_n charge_v he_o so_o that_o we_o may_v true_o say_v he_o can_v not_o worse_o represent_v the_o character_n of_o his_o mind_n he_o afterward_o say_v that_o this_o enterprise_n of_o paschasus_n of_o instruct_v all_o people_n in_o this_o new_a opinion_n be_v the_o great_a enterprise_n that_o ever_o any_o man_n undertake_v far_o great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o determine_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n for_o in_o fine_a they_o be_v twelve_o they_o wrought_v miracle_n have_v other_o proof_n than_o word_n they_o make_v disciple_n and_o establish_v they_o doctor_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o preach_v paschasus_n have_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o he_o triumphant_o fill_v five_o great_a page_n with_o this_o discourse_n to_o answer_v this_o with_o somewhat_o less_o heat_n we_o will_v reply_v that_o these_o arguing_n will_v have_v be_v perhaps_o of_o some_o use_n have_v mr._n arnaud_n live_v in_o paschasus_n his_o time_n and_o be_v oblige_v to_o make_v a_o oration_n before_o he_o in_o genere_fw-la deliberativo_fw-la to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o make_v his_o book_n public_a but_o who_o tell_v he_o at_o present_a that_o paschasus_n must_v necessary_o have_v all_o these_o thing_n in_o his_o mind_n and_o study_v they_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v do_v in_o his_o closet_n who_o tell_v he_o that_o all_o those_o who_o teach_v novelty_n think_v throly_a on_o what_o they_o do_v when_o arius_n a_o simple_a priest_n of_o alexandria_n trouble_v the_o church_n by_o teach_v this_o dreadful_a novelty_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v but_o a_o creature_n there_o be_v no_o great_a likelihood_n he_o propose_v to_o himself_o at_o first_o the_o change_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o instruct_v the_o people_n and_o every_o where_o overthrow_v what_o the_o apostle_n have_v establish_v or_o compare_v his_o design_n with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o examine_v what_o there_o be_v more_o or_o less_o in_o it_o it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o reference_n to_o eutychius_n and_o other_o teacher_n of_o new_a doctrine_n their_o first_o thought_n be_v present_o to_o set_v forth_o what_o they_o imagine_v most_o consonant_a to_o truth_n leave_v the_o success_n to_o time_n and_o manage_v themselves_o afterward_o as_o occasion_n require_v the_o great_a affair_n do_v usual_o begin_v after_o this_o manner_n man_n enter_v upon_o they_o without_o much_o reflection_n and_o afterward_o drive_v they_o on_o through_o all_o that_o happen_v unforeseen_a 2._o to_o discover_v the_o vanity_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n arguing_n we_o need_v only_o apply_v they_o to_o john_n scot_n or_o bertram_n suppose_v we_o then_o as_o he_o will_v have_v we_o that_o in_o their_o time_n the_o whole_a world_n believe_v firm_o and_o universal_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v a_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o it_o know_v all_o of_o they_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n no_o long_o subsist_v after_o their_o consecration_n that_o what_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o numerical_a substance_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n dead_a and_o rise_v and_o be_v now_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o the_o same_o body_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n at_o the_o same_o time_n john_n scot_n a_o simple_a religious_a undertake_v to_o disabuse_v all_o the_o people_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o what_o they_o have_v hitherto_o take_v for_o the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v a_o substance_n of_o bread_n that_o through_o a_o deplorable_a error_n they_o have_v hitherto_o worship_v a_o object_n which_o deserve_v not_o this_o adoration_n and_o that_o henceforth_o by_o his_o ministry_n and_o at_o his_o word_n all_o the_o earth_n shall_v change_v its_o faith_n and_o worship_n do_v this_o design_n appear_v less_o strange_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n than_o that_o he_o impute_v to_o paschasus_n upon_o our_o supposition_n all_o the_o difference_n i_o find_v be_v that_o scot_n enterprise_n will_v be_v great_a and_o hard_a than_o that_o of_o paschasus_n for_o it_o be_v difficulter_n to_o root_v ancient_a and_o perpetual_a opinion_n out_o of_o man_n mind_n than_o to_o inspire_v they_o with_o new_a one_o to_o make_v they_o lay_v aside_o their_o rite_n altar_n the_o object_n of_o their_o supreme_a adoration_n and_o piety_n than_o to_o make_v they_o receive_v new_a service_n in_o reference_n to_o a_o subject_n for_o which_o they_o have_v already_o a_o great_a respect_n howsoever_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o john_n scot_n write_v a_o book_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o according_a to_o mr_n arnaud_n hypothesis_n this_o book_n be_v a_o innovation_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a faith_n of_o his_o age._n a_o thousand_o argument_n will_v never_o hinder_v but_o that_o according_a to_o he_o this_o be_v true_a why_o then_o will_v he_o have_v it_o to_o be_v impossible_a for_o paschasus_n who_o write_v a_o book_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n to_o advance_v any_o novelty_n with_o which_o the_o church_n before_o that_o time_n be_v unacquainted_a why_o must_v there_o be_v in_o hypothesis_n which_o be_v alike_o facility_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o impossibility_n on_o the_o other_o paschasus_n and_o john_n scot_n write_v one_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o other_o against_o it_o this_o be_v a_o fact_n which_o be_v uncontrollable_a one_o of_o they_o must_v necessary_o have_v offer_v a_o new_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o general_a belief_n and_o consequent_o one_o of_o they_o must_v be_v a_o innovator_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o it_o be_v john_n scot_n it_o be_v yet_o more_o probable_a it_o be_v paschasus_n if_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o it_o be_v paschasus_n it_o be_v yet_o more_o impossible_a to_o be_v john_n scot._n mr._n arnaud_n then_o need_v not_o so_o warm_v himself_o in_o his_o consequence_n see_v it_o be_v his_o interest_n as_o well_o as_o we_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o nullity_n of_o they_o and_o we_o may_v true_o affirm_v without_o do_v he_o wrong_n that_o never_o man_n spend_v his_o pain_n to_o less_o purpose_n than_o he_o have_v do_v in_o this_o occasion_n 3._o all_z that_o can_v be_v reasonable_o say_v of_o paschasus_n be_v that_o be_v yet_o young_a and_o imagine_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v not_o subsist_v in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o think_v this_o marvel_n be_v not_o enough_o know_v and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o explain_v it_o and_o therefore_o he_o undertake_v to_o instruct_v his_o
disciple_n placidus_n in_o it_o to_o who_o he_o dedicate_v his_o book_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o scholar_n this_o appear_v from_o the_o read_n of_o his_o preface_n and_o second_o chapter_n placuit_fw-la say_v he_o in_o his_o preface_n ea_fw-la quoe_v de_fw-fr sacramento_n sanguinis_fw-la &_o corporis_fw-la tibi_fw-la exigis_fw-la necessaria_fw-la quoe_fw-la tui_fw-la proetexantur_fw-la amore_fw-la ita_fw-la tenus_fw-la perstringere_fw-la ut_fw-la coeteri_fw-la vitoe_n pabulum_fw-la &_o salutis_fw-la haustum_fw-la planius_fw-la tecum_fw-la caperent_fw-la ad_fw-la medelam_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la operis_fw-la proestantior_fw-la exuberaret_fw-la fructus_fw-la mercedis_fw-la pro_fw-la sudore_fw-la and_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n tanti_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la virtus_fw-la investiganda_fw-la est_fw-la &_o disciplina_fw-la christi_fw-la fides_fw-la erudienda_fw-la ne_fw-fr forte_fw-fr ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la censeamur_fw-la indigni_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la satis_fw-la discernimus_fw-la illud_fw-la nec_fw-la intelligimus_fw-la mysticum_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la quanta_fw-la polleat_fw-la dignitate_fw-la quantaque_fw-la proemineat_fw-la virtute_fw-la ideo_fw-la timendum_fw-la ne_fw-la per_fw-la ignorantiam_fw-la quod_fw-la nobis_fw-la provisum_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la medelam_fw-la fiat_fw-la accipientibus_fw-la in_o rvinam_fw-la there_o can_v be_v gather_v any_o more_o than_o this_o touch_v the_o first_o design_n of_o paschasus_n his_o design_n without_o doubt_n extend_v not_o so_o far_o as_o the_o whole_a universe_n they_o only_o respect_v placidus_n and_o some_o other_o scholar_n which_o he_o teach_v and_o the_o end_n he_o propose_v be_v to_o give_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n which_o he_o have_v obtain_v believe_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o know_v his_o book_n which_o be_v design_v only_o for_o young_a people_n be_v yet_o read_v by_o many_o other_o it_o excite_v the_o curiosity_n of_o several_a as_o he_o himself_o tell_v we_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o frudegard_n ad_fw-la intelligentiam_fw-la say_v he_o huius_fw-la mysterii_fw-la plures_fw-la ut_fw-la audio_fw-la commovi_fw-la i_o have_v stir_v up_o several_a people_n to_o understand_v this_o mystery_n it_o be_v likely_a several_a become_v of_o his_o mind_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a other_o condemn_v his_o opinion_n audiui_fw-la say_v he_o quosdam_fw-la i_o reprehendere_fw-la and_o that_o other_o in_o fine_a remain_v in_o suspense_n and_o uncertainty_n quoeris_n say_v he_o to_o frudegard_n de_fw-fr re_fw-mi ex_fw-la qua_fw-la multi_fw-la dubitant_fw-la and_o low_a multi_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la dubitant_fw-la quomodo_fw-la ille_fw-la integer_fw-la manet_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la esse_fw-la possit_fw-la this_o first_o success_n so_o little_a advantageous_a oblige_v he_o to_o write_v his_o commentary_n on_o the_o 26_o of_o s._n matthew_n where_o he_o urge_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o argue_v as_o strong_o as_o he_o can_v against_o those_o that_o say_v it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o a_o figure_n in_o a_o sacrament_n and_o in_o virtue_n in_o fine_a frudegard_n have_v offer_v he_o a_o passage_n of_o s._n austin_n out_o of_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_n wherein_o this_o father_n say_v that_o to_o eat_v this_o flesh_n and_o drink_v this_o blood_n be_v a_o figurative_a locution_n which_o seem_v to_o command_v a_o sin_n but_o which_o signify_v to_o meditate_v on_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o we_o he_o thence_o take_v occasion_n to_o write_v the_o letter_n to_o frudegard_n wherein_o he_o endeavour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o defend_v his_o doctrine_n press_v again_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o relate_v some_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n and_o liturgy_n which_o he_o imagine_v be_v on_o his_o side_n and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v historical_o touch_v paschasus_n his_o fact_n in_o which_o i_o think_v there_o be_v nothing_o that_o hinder_v we_o from_o believe_v he_o be_v a_o innovator_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n he_o offer_v be_v not_o that_o of_o the_o church_n as_o will_v be_v make_v plain_a by_o what_o we_o shall_v allege_v anon_o mr._n arnaud_n shall_v argue_v from_o these_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o not_o from_o imaginary_a supposition_n paschasus_n say_v he_o propose_v immediate_o his_o doctrine_n without_o 848._o book_n 8._o ch_z 8._o p._n 848._o any_o preface_n or_o insinuate_a address_n without_o suppose_v any_o other_o principle_n than_o that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o he_o please_v his_o doctrine_n then_o be_v not_o new_a this_o consequence_n be_v too_o quick_a he_o do_v not_o mention_v that_o horrid_a blindness_n wherein_o he_o must_v suppose_v the_o world_n although_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o it_o what_o can_v be_v thence_o conclude_v those_o that_o propose_v novelty_n as_o the_o perpetual_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v cautious_a of_o absolute_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o world_n lie_v in_o a_o error_n yet_o do_v paschasus_n insinuate_v in_o his_o book_n that_o this_o mystery_n be_v unknown_a that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o man_n know_v not_o yet_o his_o doctrine_n as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v and_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o frudegard_n he_o formal_o acknowledge_v that_o several_a be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o quamvis_fw-la say_v he_o plurimi_fw-la ignoraverint_fw-la tanti_fw-la mysterii_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la he_o do_v not_o trouble_v himself_o add_v mr._n arnaud_n to_o confirm_v what_o he_o say_v by_o proof_n sufficient_a to_o dissipate_v this_o error_n what_o follow_v hence_o he_o prove_v it_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v that_o be_v to_o say_v ill_a yet_o do_v he_o advertise_v his_o placidus_n in_o his_o preface_n that_o he_o take_v what_o he_o offer_v out_o of_o the_o principal_a author_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o name_v s._n cyprian_n ambrose_n hilary_n augustin_n chrysostom_n jerom_n gregory_n isidor_n isychius_n and_o bede_n now_o here_o be_v i_o think_v great_a name_n enough_o mr._n claude_n add_v further_a mr._n arnaud_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o a_o young_a religion_n 850._o page_n 850._o have_v teach_v in_o a_o book_n a_o doctrine_n unheard_a of_o contrary_a to_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o have_v teach_v it_o without_o proof_n live_v in_o a_o great_a communality_n have_v commerce_n with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o religious_a abbot_n and_o bishop_n be_v yet_o advertise_v by_o none_o of_o they_o that_o he_o offer_v a_o error_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o not_o only_o he_o escape_v unpunished_a but_o for_o thirty_o year_n together_o no_o body_n testify_v any_o astonishment_n at_o his_o doctrine_n so_o that_o he_o only_o learn_v from_o other_o people_n report_n and_o that_o thirty_o year_n after_o he_o write_v his_o book_n that_o there_o be_v some_o person_n who_o find_v fault_n with_o it_o mr._n arnaud_n prejudice_n put_v he_o upon_o strange_a thing_n do_v he_o not_o see_v we_o need_v only_o turn_v his_o reason_n on_o john_n scot_n and_o bertram_n to_o expose_v the_o weakness_n of_o it_o they_o write_v against_o the_o real_a presence_n who_o tell_v they_o they_o offer_v a_o error_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n who_o punish_v they_o for_o it_o what_o pope_n what_o council_n condemn_v '_o they_o who_o setting_z aside_o paschasus_n stand_v up_o against_o those_o that_o affirm_v the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n otherwise_o than_o sacramental_o figurative_o and_o virtual_o and_o not_o real_o non_fw-la in_o re_fw-mi esse_fw-la veritatem_fw-la carnis_fw-la christi_fw-la vel_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o sacramento_n virtutem_fw-la quandam_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o non_fw-la carnem_fw-la virtutem_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la &_o non_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la suppose_v no_o body_n do_v address_v themselves_o to_o paschasus_n himself_o to_o charge_v he_o with_o the_o publish_n in_o his_o book_n a_o new_a doctrine_n what_o can_v be_v rational_o infer_v hence_o but_o that_o his_o book_n be_v at_o first_o but_o little_a know_v by_o learned_a man_n who_o be_v fit_a to_o judge_n of_o it_o because_o a_o book_n design_v for_o scholar_n do_v not_o usual_o make_v any_o great_a noise_n or_o because_o perhaps_o that_o it_o be_v despise_v see_v that_o in_o effect_n there_o be_v little_a in_o it_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n at_o least_o the_o monk_n of_o the_o convent_n of_o corbie_n must_v oppose_v he_o have_v they_o do_v it_o they_o have_v do_v no_o more_o than_o they_o ought_v but_o paschasus_n be_v their_o master_n that_o teach_v they_o and_o the_o disciple_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o contradict_v their_o master_n paschasus_n have_v immediate_o win_v to_o his_o interest_n placidus_n who_o be_v a_o person_n of_o quality_n and_o a_o dignitary_n in_o this_o convent_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o term_n of_o paschasus_n himself_o for_o thus_o do_v he_o bespeak_v he_o dilectissimo_fw-la filio_fw-la &_o vice_fw-la christi_fw-la proesidenti_fw-la magistro_fw-la monasticae_fw-la disciplinoe_n alternis_fw-la successibus_fw-la veritatis_fw-la discipulo_fw-la again_o who_o tell_v mr._n
if_o it_o appear_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o have_v express_v themselves_o on_o the_o eucharist_n quite_o otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v do_v if_o one_o party_n of_o they_o have_v formal_o declare_v themselves_o against_o his_o doctrine_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o any_o man_n shall_v still_o obstinate_o maintain_v that_o paschasus_n have_v say_v or_o write_v nothing_o but_o what_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n believe_v and_o teach_v with_o he_o first_o it_o be_v certain_a we_o shall_v not_o find_v the_o author_n of_o that_o century_n although_o they_o be_v not_o inconsiderable_a for_o their_o number_n and_o almost_o all_o of_o they_o write_v something_a on_o the_o eucharist_n have_v deliver_v themselves_o on_o so_o great_a a_o subject_n in_o the_o manner_n paschasus_n have_v do_v neither_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o sense_n nor_o term_n let_v any_o man_n show_v we_o for_o example_n they_o have_v assert_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o it_o do_v not_o any_o long_o remain_v although_o the_o savour_n and_o colour_n still_o remain_v or_o teach_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n enter_v into_o our_o body_n that_o what_o we_o receive_v from_o the_o altar_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o same_o flesh_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n which_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o that_o it_o be_v this_o flesh_n in_o propriety_n of_o nature_n or_o have_v say_v that_o this_o flesh_n of_o the_o word_n pullule_n this_o be_v the_o expression_n paschasus_n use_v which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o multiply_v itself_o and_o that_o this_o multiplication_n be_v make_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o the_o same_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o yet_o he_o remain_v whole_o entire_a let_v any_o one_o show_v we_o any_o thing_n like_o this_o in_o these_o author_n mr._n arnaud_n ought_v to_o have_v employ_v himself_o in_o this_o instead_o of_o expatiate_v as_o he_o have_v do_v upon_o vain_a argument_n twenty_o whole_a chapter_n will_v not_o so_o well_o satisfy_v rational_a person_n as_o twelve_o clear_a passage_n out_o of_o author_n of_o the_o 9tth_v century_n do_v they_o contain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o paschasus_n have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o write_n for_o this_o will_v show_v the_o conformity_n there_o be_v between_o he_o and_o his_o contemporary_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n discharge_v he_o from_o the_o accusation_n of_o novelty_n which_o we_o lie_v against_o he_o but_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n take_v upon_o he_o this_o task_n because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o acquit_v himself_o well_o of_o it_o in_o the_o second_o place_n it_o be_v certain_a these_o author_n have_v not_o only_o not_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o paschasus_n have_v do_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a have_v speak_v of_o it_o in_o a_o very_a different_a manner_n from_o he_o whence_o we_o may_v easy_o collect_v that_o his_o doctrine_n agree_v in_o no_o sort_n with_o they_o i_o shall_v begin_v with_o walafridus_n strabo_n who_o word_n may_v be_v see_v more_o at_o length_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n we_o shall_v find_v he_o thus_o speak_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v establish_v 2._o answer_v to_o the_o second_o treatise_n part_v 3._o ch_z 2._o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o our_o saviour_n have_v choose_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o wit_n the_o same_o species_n which_o melchisedec_n offer_v to_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o instead_o of_o this_o great_a diversity_n of_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v in_o use_n under_o the_o law_n the_o faithful_a must_v be_v content_v with_o the_o simple_a oblation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n mr._n arnaud_n may_v talk_v as_o long_o as_o he_o please_v that_o these_o be_v expression_n which_o do_v natural_o link_v themselves_o with_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o be_v what_o we_o deny_v he_o these_o expression_n do_v natural_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v real_a bread_n and_o real_a wine_n and_o if_o any_o use_v these_o kind_n of_o expression_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o do_v it_o mere_o by_o constraint_n to_o accommodate_v themselves_o in_o some_o sort_n to_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o ancient_n mr._n arnaud_n again_o tell_v we_o that_o walafridus_n say_v that_o the_o mystery_n be_v real_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o we_o have_v already_o several_a time_n tell_v he_o that_o walafridus_n explain_v himself_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o refer_v this_o real_o to_o the_o virtue_n not_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o also_o appear_v from_o the_o title_n of_o his_o chapter_n which_o be_v de_fw-fr virtute_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la florus_n a_o author_n of_o the_o same_o century_n who_o have_v write_v a_o kind_n of_o missae_fw-la florus_n magister_n in_o exposit_n missae_fw-la commentary_n on_o the_o liturgy_n say_v that_o the_o oblation_n although_o take_v from_o the_o simple_a fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v make_v to_o the_o faithful_a fidelibus_fw-la the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n after_o which_o borrow_v the_o word_n of_o s._n augustin_n he_o say_v that_o the_o consecration_n make_v we_o this_o body_n and_o this_o mystical_a blood_n and_o the_o better_a to_o explicate_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o body_n and_o this_o mystical_a blood_n he_o add_v that_o the_o creature_n of_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o be_v eat_v sacramental_o that_o it_o remain_v whole_o entire_a in_o heaven_n and_o be_v so_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o again_o a_o little_a further_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o this_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o mystery_n we_o see_v therein_o one_o thing_n and_o understand_v another_o what_o we_o see_v have_v a_o corporal_a species_n what_o we_o understand_v have_v a_o spiritual_a fruit_n what_o he_o say_v of_o this_o mystical_a body_n and_o blood_n which_o he_o explain_v afterward_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o refer_v to_o this_o alone_a the_o effect_n of_o the_o consecration_n sufficient_o denote_v he_o have_v not_o in_o his_o view_n either_o change_n of_o substance_n or_o any_o real_a presence_n the_o opposition_n likewise_o which_o he_o make_v of_o jesus_n christ_n eat_v in_o part_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o himself_o who_o remain_v entire_a in_o heaven_n and_o who_o enter_v entire_a into_o our_o heart_n do_v no_o less_o denote_v it_o for_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v this_o distinction_n if_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v he_o not_o eat_v entire_a in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o whole_o entire_a in_o heaven_n the_o former_a word_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o mystery_n wherein_o we_o so_o one_o thing_n and_o understand_v another_o testify_z the_o same_o thing_n for_o what_o be_v this_o thing_n which_o we_o see_v but_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o what_o be_v this_o other_o which_o we_o understand_v but_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o understanding_n he_o explain_v himself_o immediate_o afterward_o the_o mystery_n say_v he_o of_o our_o redemption_n be_v wine_n according_a to_o what_o our_o saviour_n himself_o say_v i_o will_v drink_v no_o more_o of_o this_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n and_o again_o our_o lord_n recommend_v to_o we_o this_o mystery_n say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o which_o the_o apostle_n explain_v say_v as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n you_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v the_o oblation_n then_o of_o this_o bread_n and_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o commemoration_n and_o annunciation_n of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o which_o be_v most_o considerable_a be_v his_o make_v this_o commentary_n on_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o consecration_n without_o adjoin_v a_o word_n either_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n or_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n mr._n arnaud_v who_o oft_o lose_v his_o time_n in_o vain_a contest_v leave_v all_o these_o principal_a passage_n which_o i_o come_v now_o from_o relate_v and_o set_v himself_o only_o against_o the_o translation_n of_o these_o word_n oblatio_fw-la quamvis_fw-la de_fw-la simplicibus_fw-la terroe_n frugibus_fw-la sumpta_fw-la divinoe_v benedictionis_fw-la ineffabili_fw-la potentia_fw-la efficitur_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la i_o say_v that_o this_o fidelibus_fw-la must_v
bread_n the_o aforesaid_a waldensis_n dispute_v in_o the_o sequel_n against_o wicliff_n say_v 26._o ibid._n cap._n 26._o that_o wicliff_n prove_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n by_o the_o experience_n of_o nature_n because_o a_o man_n may_v be_v feed_v with_o host_n whence_o add_v he_o i_o conclude_v that_o as_o he_o admit_v the_o digestion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o must_v likewise_o grant_v that_o it_o pass_v into_o excrement_n and_o thus_o be_v he_o agree_v with_o heribald_a and_o raban_n of_o mayence_n who_o have_v teach_v that_o the_o true_a sacrament_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o casualty_n of_o other_o food_n it_o be_v plain_a he_o put_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o stercoranism_n of_o these_o two_o bishop_n and_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o wicliff_n elsewhere_o he_o also_o more_o clear_o prove_v that_o honorius_n of_o autun_n believe_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v or_o as_o he_o speak_v that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o panites_n because_o he_o allege_v the_o passage_n of_o raban_n which_o bear_v that_o the_o sacrament_n pass_v into_o our_o food_n et_fw-la ipse_fw-la enim_fw-la say_v he_o de_fw-fr secta_fw-la panitarum_fw-la rabani_n versum_fw-la 90._o ibid._n cap._n 90._o ponit_fw-la infra_fw-la ubi_fw-la agit_fw-fr de_fw-fr partibus_fw-la missoe_n sacramentum_fw-la inquiens_fw-la ore_fw-la percipitur_fw-la &_o in_o alimentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la redigitur_fw-la but_o if_o we_o will_v beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o these_o author_n harken_v moreover_o unto_o reason_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n than_o this_o pretend_a error_n of_o the_o stercoranist_n and_o that_o those_o who_o will_v have_v these_o two_o opinion_n agree_v together_o have_v never_o well_o consider_v what_o they_o undertake_v to_o establish_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n i_o mean_v of_o this_o same_o numerical_a substance_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n without_o believe_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o this_o substance_n be_v not_o sensible_a in_o it_o palpable_a visible_a extend_v capable_a of_o be_v divide_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o it_o be_v when_o our_o lord_n converse_v on_o earth_n it_o will_v be_v the_o great_a folly_n imaginable_a to_o impute_v to_o person_n that_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v the_o eucharist_n and_o have_v some_o remain_v of_o common_a sense_n to_o make_v therein_o exist_v this_o body_n without_o make_v it_o therein_o exist_v insensible_a indivisible_a impalpable_a after_o the_o manner_n of_o spirit_n as_o they_o also_o do_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o with_o what_o likelihood_n can_v one_o make_v this_o opinion_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o stercoranism_n which_o assert_n that_o this_o body_n be_v digest_v into_o the_o stomach_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o meat_n that_o one_o part_n of_o it_o pass_v into_o our_o nourishment_n and_o the_o other_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o common_a necessity_n of_o aliment_n what_o be_v digest_v be_v touch_v by_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o stomach_n penetrate_v by_o our_o natural_a heat_n divide_v and_o separate_v into_o several_a part_n reduce_v into_o chyle_n then_o into_o blood_n distribute_v through_o all_o the_o several_a part_n of_o our_o body_n and_o join_v immediate_o to_o they_o after_o it_o have_v be_v make_v like_o they_o whilst_o that_o which_o be_v most_o gross_a and_o improper_a for_o our_o nourishment_n pass_v into_o excrement_n what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o person_n who_o be_v not_o bereave_v of_o their_o sense_n can_v subject_v to_o these_o accident_n a_o indivisible_a and_o inpalpable_a substance_n which_o exist_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o spirit_n moreover_o they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v animate_v with_o its_o natural_a soul_n and_o that_o what_o pass_v into_o our_o nourishment_n be_v animate_v by_o we_o what_o a_o monstrous_a opinion_n than_o be_v it_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o same_o numerical_a body_n can_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n animate_v with_o two_o soul_n with_o that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o we_o to_o be_v unite_v hypostatical_o to_o the_o word_n and_o hypostatical_o to_o we_o on_o what_o hand_n soever_o we_o turn_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o inexpressible_a chimaera_n to_o say_v that_o those_o which_o be_v call_v stercoranists_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sense_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n understand_v it_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v panites_n as_o thomas_n waldensis_n call_v they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o believe_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o real_a substance_n of_o bread_n and_o see_v we_o show_v that_o amalarius_n heribald_n and_o raban_n be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o these_o pretend_a stercoranist_n it_o must_v be_v necessary_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paschasus_n whence_o it_o evident_o follow_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o common_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n then_o as_o mr._n arnaud_n pretend_v it_o be_v for_o these_o three_o great_a man_n hold_v in_o it_o too_o considerable_a a_o rank_n to_o permit_v we_o to_o believe_v they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o public_a belief_n in_o a_o point_n so_o considerable_a and_o mr._n arnaud_n himself_o will_v not_o have_v we_o think_v thus_o of_o '_o they_o one_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n amalarius_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n by_o the_o emperor_n lewis_n to_o seek_v the_o antiphonary_n as_o he_o himself_o testify_v the_o other_o to_o wit_n heribald_a be_v bishop_n of_o auxerre_n and_o repute_v a_o saint_n after_o his_o death_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o inscription_n of_o his_o sepulchre_n here_o lie_v the_o body_n of_o s._n heribald_n and_o the_o last_o to_o wit_n raban_n be_v abbot_n of_o fulde_n and_o afterward_o archbishop_n of_o mayence_n account_v one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o his_o age_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o baronius_n and_o sixtus_n of_o sienne_n to_o these_o three_o we_o must_v add_v bertram_z for_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o be_v also_o one_o of_o those_o who_o be_v afterward_o call_v stercoranists_n which_o be_v to_o say_v he_o believe_v that_o this_o substance_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v subject_a to_o digestion_n and_o pass_v into_o our_o nourishment_n he_o clear_o show_v his_o sense_n in_o several_a place_n of_o his_o book_n for_o have_v relate_v these_o word_n of_o isidor_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n dom._n bertram_z de_fw-fr corp._n &_o sang._n dom._n christ_n because_o that_o as_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o visible_a bread_n and_o wine_n inebriate_v the_o outward_a man_n so_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o live_a bread_n cheer_v the_o faithful_a soul_n when_o she_o participate_v of_o it_o he_o make_v this_o remark_n say_v this_o he_o clear_o confess_v that_o whatsoever_o we_o take_v outward_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v use_v for_o nourishment_n to_o our_o body_n and_o a_o little_a further_o secundum_fw-la visibilem_fw-la creaturam_fw-la corpus_fw-la pascunt_fw-la and_o speak_v afterward_o of_o the_o eucharistical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n negari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la corrumpi_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la part_n comminutum_fw-la disparitur_fw-la ad_fw-la sumendum_fw-la &_o dentibus_fw-la commolitum_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la trajicitur_fw-la and_o again_o non_fw-la attenditur_fw-la quod_fw-la corpus_fw-la pascit_fw-la quod_fw-la dente_fw-la premitur_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la part_n comminuitur_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la accipitur_fw-la these_o two_o last_o author_n to_o wit_n raban_n and_o bertram_n beside_o this_o doctrine_n which_o be_v common_a to_o they_o with_o the_o rest_n have_v especial_o this_o that_o they_o have_v formal_o oppose_v the_o novelty_n of_o paschasus_n by_o public_a write_n which_o be_v what_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o anonymous_a author_n who_o word_n we_o have_v already_o relate_v for_o he_o say_v in_o proper_a term_n that_o raban_n and_o ratram_n write_v against_o paschasus_n to_o wit_n raban_n a_o letter_n to_o the_o abbot_n egilon_n and_o ratram_n a_o book_n dedicate_v to_o king_n charles_n and_o that_o they_o defame_v he_o for_o offer_v this_o proposition_n that_o what_o we_o receive_v from_o the_o altar_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o same_o flesh_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o be_v at_o this_o day_n offer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n to_o believe_v that_o raban_n attack_v paschasus_n 874._o book_n 8._o ch_z 12._o p._n 874._o otherwise_o than_o
find_v nothing_o in_o they_o of_o what_o he_o see_v at_o first_o i_o confess_v they_o may_v be_v understand_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o this_o affair_n be_v political_o manage_v and_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o obtain_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o regain_v the_o people_n good_a will_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o worldly_a wisdom_n but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v find_v in_o they_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n do_v not_o write_v by_o persuasion_n but_o only_o through_o policy_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n imagine_v this_o he_o will_v not_o find_v why_o then_o do_v he_o extend_v my_o word_n beyond_o their_o natural_a signification_n and_o why_o do_v he_o wrong_v a_o man_n so_o scandalous_o on_o the_o imagination_n he_o say_v what_o he_o do_v not_o we_o understand_v say_v he_o altar_n the_o book_n entitle_v the_o port_n royal_a and_o geneva_n of_o intelligence_n against_o the_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n this_o language_n he_o show_v plain_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v it_o see_v he_o charge_v i_o with_o say_v what_o i_o do_v not_o and_o draw_v his_o commentary_n only_o from_o himself_o and_o not_o from_o my_o word_n have_v i_o reproach_v mr._n arnaud_n with_o the_o public_a write_n print_v against_o he_o wherein_o he_o be_v accuse_v for_o formal_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n by_o a_o proposition_n to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o frequent_a communion_n have_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o of_o late_a his_o opinion_n on_o the_o eucharist_n have_v be_v public_o in_o a_o letter_n treat_v as_o suspicious_a that_o he_o have_v be_v tell_v that_o if_o he_o be_v unwilling_a 187._o answer_v to_o the_o request_n present_v to_o the_o king_n etc._n etc._n book_n 2._o ch_z 6._o p._n 187._o together_o with_o his_o friend_n to_o be_v of_o intelligence_n with_o geneva_n he_o must_v change_v the_o act_n of_o the_o adoration_n which_o they_o perform_v assist_v at_o the_o mass_n to_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o host_n for_o they_o say_v only_o i_o adore_v thou_o raise_v on_o the_o cross_n at_o the_o general_a judgement_n and_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o adore_v he_o be_v present_a in_o the_o church_n have_v i_o severe_o apply_v myself_o to_o what_o he_o say_v somewhere_o in_o his_o book_n on_o the_o principle_n of_o des_n cartes_n his_o philosophy_n that_o god_n see_v in_o the_o matter_n in_o the_o figure_n and_o form_n only_o a_o different_a order_n of_o part_n to_o conclude_v thence_o that_o this_o proposition_n overthrow_v the_o existence_n of_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o a_o letter_n print_v not_o long_o since_o what_o tempest_n must_v i_o not_o have_v expect_v see_v for_o have_v only_o hint_v that_o there_o may_v be_v some_o policy_n in_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n work_n i_o have_v raise_v such_o a_o great_a disturbance_n mr._n arnaud_v protest_v he_o will_v never_o for_o my_o sake_n dispense_v with_o the_o 1132._o book_n 11._o ch_z 9_o p._n 1132._o rule_n of_o justice_n that_o he_o will_v never_o divine_v my_o secret_a intention_n let_v he_o not_o then_o pretend_v to_o read_v in_o my_o heart_n nor_o attribute_n to_o i_o a_o mystical_a sense_n which_o i_o never_o intend_v nor_o be_v contain_v in_o my_o word_n all_o those_o that_o believe_v transubstantiation_n be_v not_o in_o a_o capacity_n of_o write_v in_o its_o favour_n among_o those_o that_o be_v how_o many_o do_v betake_v themselves_o to_o other_o matter_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o very_a likely_a matter_n that_o a_o person_n who_o be_v at_o liberty_n to_o write_v on_o any_o subject_n but_o pitch_v upon_o transubstantiation_n be_v it_o not_o i_o say_v very_o likely_a his_o choice_n of_o this_o point_n be_v ground_v on_o some_o worldly_a policy_n and_o carnal_a consideration_n in_o attribute_v this_o to_o he_o we_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v very_o just_a and_o innocent_a and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o my_o word_n signify_v to_o pretend_v to_o know_v more_o of_o my_o mind_n be_v to_o attempt_v a_o thing_n which_o be_v possible_a only_a to_o god_n and_o yet_o this_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v do_v that_o he_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n for_o his_o passion_n mr._n arnaud_v i_o hope_v will_v suffer_v i_o likewise_o to_o tell_v he_o that_o what_o i_o say_v touch_v some_o word_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n which_o i_o believe_v be_v not_o very_o advantageous_a to_o the_o common_a mystery_n of_o our_o religion_n do_v neither_o respect_v his_o person_n nor_o the_o main_a of_o his_o sentiment_n which_o i_o never_o pretend_v to_o handle_v but_o only_o his_o expression_n which_o i_o judge_v and_o still_o do_v judge_n to_o be_v too_o rough_a and_o vehement_a on_o point_n to_o which_o we_o can_v show_v enough_o respect_n we_o ought_v all_o of_o we_o to_o be_v very_o circumspect_a in_o our_o way_n of_o speak_v to_o give_v no_o oecasion_n to_o the_o open_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n truth_n which_o we_o joint_o profess_v this_o be_v my_o opinion_n and_o my_o word_n will_v not_o admit_v fair_o of_o any_o other_o explication_n can_v mr._n arnaud_n wonder_v we_o shall_v be_v offend_v to_o hear_v these_o question_n why_o be_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o everlasting_a bliss_n so_o hide_v and_o as_o it_o be_v so_o bury_v in_o the_o book_n 1_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o faith_n refute_v part_n 1_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o jew_n why_o do_v not_o jesus_n christ_n declare_v his_o divinity_n in_o such_o clear_a and_o precise_a term_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o elude_v they_o what_o may_v the_o pagan_n say_v on_o what_o the_o church_n teach_v concern_v original_a sin_n and_o this_o inconceivable_a transmission_n of_o a_o crime_n which_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o voluntary_a action_n to_o all_o the_o son_n of_o he_o that_o commit_v it_o although_o they_o can_v not_o have_v any_o part_n in_o his_o action_n and_o of_o this_o dreadful_a condemnation_n of_o all_o humane_a nature_n for_o the_o fault_n of_o one_o man_n can_v he_o think_v it_o strange_a we_o have_v be_v trouble_v to_o hear_v the_o difficulty_n which_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n contain_v call_v dreadful_a difficulty_n and_o to_o find_v they_o exaggerated_a in_o this_o manner_n be_v a_o man_n in_o this_o point_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o his_o reason_n he_o must_v needs_o start_v back_o at_o these_o inconceivable_a verity_n shall_v he_o pretend_v to_o make_v use_n of_o its_o light_n to_o penetrate_v they_o she_o will_v only_o furnish_v he_o with_o arm_n to_o combat_v they_o who_o can_v but_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o proposition_n which_o be_v in_o this_o last_o work_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n on_o the_o subject_n of_o proof_n which_o i_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o 1042._o book_n 10._o ch_z 6._o p._n 1042._o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o trinity_n that_o this_o will_v be_v very_o rational_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o catholic_n because_o he_o accompany_v these_o proof_n with_o the_o public_a intelligence_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o of_o all_o tradition_n but_o that_o these_o same_o proof_n be_v infinite_o weak_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o calvinist_n without_o authority_n without_o possession_n and_o who_o renounce_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n authority_n that_o mr._n claude_n 1043._o page_n 1043._o who_o allege_v the_o best_a part_n of_o what_o there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o trinity_n and_o divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n overthrow_v the_o socinian_o beyond_o all_o remedy_n yet_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o be_v more_o likely_a to_o make_v they_o laugh_v than_o to_o convert_v '_o they_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v these_o question_n or_o proposition_n be_v justifiable_a take_v they_o how_o we_o we_o will_v but_o suppose_v they_o be_v it_o must_v be_v grant_v they_o be_v conceive_v in_o such_o rough_a dangerous_a and_o excessive_a term_n that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o public_a edification_n to_o avoid_v they_o yea_o and_o to_o censure_v '_o they_o but_o in_o fine_a we_o must_v leave_v these_o personal_a difference_n which_o can_v but_o be_v displease_v and_o therefore_o we_o will_v come_v to_o the_o preface_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o father_n noüet_o which_o seem_v to_o have_v much_o incense_a mr._n arnaud_n and_o see_v he_o seem_v to_o be_v much_o concern_v at_o it_o we_o will_v endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v he_o about_o it_o what_o then_o do_v this_o preface_n contain_v which_o be_v so_o troublesome_a and_o grievous_a i_o confess_v we_o have_v mention_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o
one_o hand_n the_o book_n can_v not_o 135._o dissert_n hist_o c._n 17._o p._n 134_o 135._o be_v deny_v to_o be_v true_a and_o acknowledge_v moreover_o that_o this_o bertram_z to_o who_o it_o be_v attribute_v be_v no_o other_o than_o ratramnus_n who_o he_o late_o mention_v with_o such_o great_a eulogy_n as_o be_v the_o defender_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v divine_a grace_n he_o i_o say_v believe_v it_o be_v best_a to_o attempt_v the_o justify_v he_o by_o any_o mean_n from_o the_o crime_n of_o heresy_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n and_o for_o this_o effect_n have_v bethink_v himself_o of_o maintain_v that_o ratramnus_n in_o the_o book_n in_o question_n defend_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o paschasus_n ratbert_n defend_v in_o that_o which_o he_o write_v on_o the_o same_o subject_n that_o both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n ratramnus_n and_o paschasus_n have_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o same_o heretic_n to_o wit_n certain_a stercoranists_n who_o according_a to_o cardinal_n perron_n appear_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n that_o they_o both_o of_o they_o admirable_o well_o agree_v in_o defend_v the_o catholic_n church_n so_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o charge_n of_o heresy_n bring_v against_o bertram_n as_o they_o of_o his_o communion_n have_v hitherto_o do_v without_o any_o reason_n mr._n herman_n canon_n of_o beauvais_n have_v approve_v of_o this_o sentiment_n of_o mr._n mauguin_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o mr._n de_fw-fr st._n beuve_n print_v in_o 1652._o under_o the_o name_n of_o hierom_n ab_fw-la angelo_n forti_fw-la and_o it_o be_v by_o this_o mean_n he_o endeavour_v to_o defend_v jansenius_n his_o disciple_n against_o mr._n desmarest_n professor_n in_o divinity_n at_o groningue_n who_o argue_v against_o transubstantiation_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o same_o ratramnus_n who_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o port_n royal_a quote_v as_o one_o of_o the_o most_o famous_a witness_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o novelty_n of_o molina_n it_o seem_v also_o that_o mr._n de_fw-fr st._n beuve_n do_v not_o disapprove_v of_o this_o opinion_n of_o mr._n mauguin_n and_o mr._n herman_n in_o his_o manuscript_n treatise_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o we_o may_v collect_v from_o the_o preface_n of_o de_fw-fr luc_n d'_fw-fr achery_n on_o the_o second_o tome_n of_o his_o spicilege_n yet_o by_o a_o strange_a kind_n of_o injustice_n after_o the_o testimony_n of_o cardinal_n du_n perron_n and_o other_o who_o have_v see_v bertram_n manuscript_n he_o still_o suspect_v it_o to_o have_v suffer_v some_o alteration_n howsoever_o he_o will_v have_v we_o remember_v that_o ratramnus_n die_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bear_v with_o his_o offensive_a expression_n this_o be_v the_o part_n which_o these_o two_o gentleman_n have_v take_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o ratramnus_n his_o authority_n who_o testimony_n be_v useful_a to_o they_o in_o other_o matter_n cellot_n the_o jesuit_n on_o the_o contrary_a design_v in_o his_o history_n of_o gottheschalc_n and_o in_o his_o appendix_n to_o oppose_v the_o sentiment_n of_o mr._n mauguin_n in_o the_o subject_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o discredit_v its_o champion_n have_v attack_v the_o person_n of_o ratramnus_n he_o do_v indeed_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o the_o true_a author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o he_o do_v all_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o discredit_v it_o and_o bereave_v it_o of_o all_o the_o authority_n which_o these_o other_o gentleman_n attribute_v to_o it_o howsoever_o he_o yield_v it_o to_o the_o protestant_n as_o be_v for_o they_o and_o maintain_v with_o possevin_n that_o although_o this_o book_n may_v be_v read_v with_o correction_n yet_o pope_n clement_n viii_o have_v do_v well_o in_o prohibit_v it_o other_o of_o better_a judgement_n in_o the_o romish_a communion_n have_v clear_o foresee_v that_o if_o what_o cellot_n the_o jesuit_n offer_v against_o ratramnus_n be_v of_o use_n to_o he_o against_o the_o disciple_n of_o jansenius_n and_o if_o his_o way_n of_o proceed_v be_v advantageous_a against_o the_o adversary_n which_o he_o have_v at_o his_o back_n it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o for_o as_o fast_o as_o he_o deprive_v his_o adversary_n of_o so_o famous_a a_o author_n as_o ratramnus_n in_o decry_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n on_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o yield_v he_o to_o we_o without_o any_o dispute_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n do_v himself_o furnish_v we_o with_o a_o very_a authentic_a author_n against_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n they_o have_v believe_v then_o that_o to_o prevent_v the_o fall_n into_o this_o inconveniency_n they_o must_v invent_v some_o other_o new_a mean_n which_o on_o one_o hand_n may_v be_v less_o bold_a and_o more_o likely_a than_o be_v that_o of_o mr._n mauguin_n which_o can_v reasonable_o be_v maintain_v and_o which_o on_o the_o other_o will_v not_o give_v we_o so_o great_a advantage_n as_o father_n cellot_n have_v give_v we_o in_o place_v ratramnus_n absolute_o on_o our_o side_n and_o this_o be_v what_o mr._n marca_n the_o decease_a archbishop_n of_o paris_n have_v seem_v to_o have_v do_v when_o he_o offer_v as_o a_o new_a discovery_n that_o the_o book_n in_o question_n be_v of_o john_n scot_n or_o erigenus_n for_o by_o mean_n of_o this_o opinion_n he_o pretend_v to_o secure_v to_o ratramnus_n his_o whole_a authority_n and_o reputation_n and_o attribute_v at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o infamy_n of_o a_o heretical_a piece_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a censurer_n we_o may_v charge_v mr._n de_fw-fr marca_n with_o inconstancy_n see_v that_o in_o his_o french_a treatise_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v publish_v since_o his_o death_n by_o the_o abbot_n faget_n his_o cousin-german_n he_o acknowledge_v that_o bertram_n and_o ratram_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o author_n and_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v true_o of_o ratramnus_n howsoever_o mr._n de_fw-fr marca_n affirm_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o de_fw-fr luc_n d'_fw-fr spicil_n tome_n 2._o spicil_n achery_n write_v in_o 1657._o first_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o of_o ratramnus_n as_o the_o learned_a have_v think_v second_o that_o it_o be_v john_n surname_v scot_n or_o erigenus_n three_o that_o john_n scot_n acknowledge_v this_o book_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n publish_v it_o under_o the_o name_n of_o ratramnus_n by_o a_o famous_a imposture_n to_o give_v it_o the_o more_o weight_n four_o that_o this_o book_n be_v then_o the_o same_o which_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o verseile_n by_o leo_n ix_o as_o lanfranc_n report_v and_o be_v at_o length_n burn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n under_o nicholas_n ii_o in_o 1059._o and_o thus_o do_v he_o reject_v his_o former_a opinion_n through_o human_a weakness_n from_o which_o the_o great_a wit_n be_v not_o exempt_a and_o wherein_o a_o man_n easy_o fall_v when_o it_o be_v his_o interest_n to_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n mr._n de_fw-fr marca_n well_o perceive_v what_o a_o troublesome_a thing_n it_o be_v to_o the_o roman_a faith_n to_o say_v that_o paschasus_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o head_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v oppose_v by_o all_o the_o learned_a and_o famous_a man_n which_o be_v then_o in_o the_o church_n he_o also_o well_o foresee_v that_o those_o who_o will_v reflect_v on_o the_o person_n of_o ratram_n will_v be_v extreme_o surprise_v to_o see_v that_o upon_o the_o contest_v to_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paschasus_n give_v birth_n charles_n the_o bald_a have_v consult_v ratram_n this_o great_a man_n take_v part_n with_o paschasus_n his_o adversary_n he_o know_v likewise_o that_o it_o be_v this_o same_o ratram_n who_o be_v consult_v on_o the_o subject_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o same_o charles_n the_o bald_a and_o who_o show_v himself_o so_o zealous_a for_o the_o truth_n that_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o withstand_v three_o time_n hincmar_n his_o archbishop_n as_o mr._n mauguin_n have_v 135._o dissert_n hist_o c._n 17._o p._n 135._o observe_v that_o this_o ratram_n be_v so_o famous_a in_o his_o time_n that_o after_o these_o bicker_n with_o hincmar_n hincmar_n himself_o and_o the_o other_o french_a prelate_n commission_v he_o to_o answer_v in_o their_o name_n the_o objection_n of_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o dispute_n which_o arise_v between_o they_o and_o the_o latin_n there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n of_o make_v such_o a_o one_o pass_v for_o a_o heretic_n moreover_o mr._n marca_n can_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o book_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n ought_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o ratram_n shall_v we_o
anno_fw-la quo_fw-la lanfrandus_fw-la ab_fw-la errore_fw-la berengarii_fw-la se_fw-la purgavit_fw-la unde_fw-la sicut_fw-la dicit_fw-la lanfrandus_fw-la ipse_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la desipuit_fw-la tandem_fw-la ivit_fw-la in_o angliam_fw-la ad_fw-la regem_fw-la elfredum_fw-la &_o apud_fw-la monasterium_fw-la malmsburiense_n à_fw-la pveris_fw-la quos_fw-la docebat_fw-la &_o à_fw-la graphiis_fw-la suis_fw-la ut_fw-la fertur_fw-la perforatus_fw-la martyr_n oestimatus_fw-la est_fw-la second_o that_o of_o petrus_n crinitus_n 30._o de_fw-fr honesta_fw-la discipl_n 14._o c_o 11._o genev._n p._n 30._o who_o speak_v of_o he_o in_o almost_o the_o same_o term_n three_o that_o of_o naucler_n alfred_n say_v he_o have_v enrich_v the_o college_n of_o oxford_n especial_o with_o john_n scot_n as_o with_o a_o divine_a star_n which_o he_o draw_v over_o into_o england_n from_o france_n where_o he_o be_v in_o favour_n with_o charles_n the_o bald._n if_o there_o need_v any_o thing_n more_o to_o confirm_v the_o reputation_n of_o our_o author_n we_o shall_v scarce_o find_v any_o one_o to_o who_o there_o can_v be_v give_v any_o authority_n it_o be_v true_a that_o his_o book_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o 11_o century_n but_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o neither_o this_o book_n nor_o its_o author_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n wherein_o he_o live_v and_o that_o his_o adversary_n who_o be_v great_o enrage_v against_o he_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n and_o the_o term_n of_o the_o council_n of_o valence_n and_o which_o consequent_o be_v not_o in_o a_o condition_n to_o pardon_v he_o a_o heresy_n on_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n yet_o do_v not_o accuse_v he_o on_o this_o article_n cellot_n the_o jesuit_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o agree_v concern_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o in_o that_o time_n they_o do_v not_o reproach_n john_n scot_n about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n turn_v the_o business_n into_o admiration_n and_o offer_v a_o pitiful_a reason_n of_o this_o silence_n i_o can_v sufficient_o wonder_v say_v he_o that_o leave_v 583._o append._n ad_fw-la hist_n gothesc_n p._n 583._o the_o error_n which_o john_n scot_n be_v say_v to_o hold_v touch_v the_o eucharist_n these_o drone_n for_o thus_o do_v he_o call_v those_o of_o lion_n shall_v only_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o subject_n of_o predestination_n this_o show_v add_v he_o that_o they_o do_v not_o matter_n so_o much_o the_o defend_n of_o the_o faith_n as_o the_o ruine_v the_o party_n of_o those_o of_o reims_n which_o be_v to_o say_v of_o hincmar_n and_o his_o friend_n who_o have_v condemn_v gotthescalc_n but_o both_o his_o astonishment_n and_o reason_n too_o will_v equal_o vanish_v if_o he_o will_v have_v take_v notice_n of_o what_o every_o one_o see_v that_o the_o true_a cause_n why_o john_n scot_n be_v not_o condemn_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n but_o in_o the_o 11_o be_v that_o his_o belief_n be_v conformable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o 9th_o age_n and_o become_v not_o otherwise_o till_o afterward_o when_o the_o follower_n of_o paschasus_n prevail_v the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n have_v take_v another_o course_n to_o full_o the_o scot._n artic._n 1._o of_o his_o dissert_n o●_n john_n scot._n same_o of_o john_n scot_n name_n and_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o his_o book_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o condemn_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n he_o say_v there_o be_v in_o the_o library_n of_o s._n germains_n des_fw-fr prés_fw-fr two_o manuscript_n of_o a_o dialogue_n entitle_v of_o nature_n the_o author_n of_o which_o be_v this_o same_o john_n scot_n and_o that_o this_o book_n be_v full_a of_o error_n he_o discourse_v on_o these_o error_n with_o the_o great_a art_n and_o care_n and_o draw_v from_o they_o these_o two_o consequence_n 1._o that_o john_n scot_n be_v a_o man_n very_o likely_a to_o invent_v heresy_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n 2._o we_o must_v not_o be_v astonish_v that_o heresy_n have_v be_v only_a tanght_n by_o a_o particular_a person_n who_o have_v no_o follower_n that_o the_o book_n wherein_o he_o teach_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v public_o condemn_v and_o this_o be_v what_o he_o believe_v the_o dialogue_n of_o nature_n do_v invincible_o show_v because_o that_o on_o one_o hand_n it_o be_v full_a of_o error_n and_o on_o the_o other_o we_o do_v not_o find_v it_o be_v condemn_v as_o to_o the_o first_o i_o free_o acknowledge_v this_o book_n be_v john_n scot_n and_o that_o there_o be_v error_n in_o it_o but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n ought_v not_o to_o conceal_v that_o john_n scot_n do_v not_o offer_v they_o of_o his_o own_o head_n but_o herein_o only_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o several_a famous_a father_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n as_o s._n basil_n s._n gregory_n of_o nysse_n and_o s._n ambrose_n the_o pretend_a denis_n the_o areopagite_n and_o s._n maximus_n which_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o these_o father_n have_v be_v always_o in_o great_a veneration_n in_o the_o church_n john_n scot_n cite_v they_o on_o each_o of_o these_o opinion_n he_o set_v down_o their_o passage_n which_o make_v william_n of_o malmsbury_n to_o say_v that_o his_o book_n may_v profitable_o serve_v to_o resolve_v difficult_a question_n provide_v he_o be_v excuse_v in_o some_o thing_n in_o which_o he_o have_v wander_v from_o the_o way_n of_o the_o latin_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o follow_v too_o much_o the_o greek_n as_o to_o the_o second_o consequence_n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o book_n of_o john_n scot_n of_o nature_n and_o that_o of_o the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o same_o author_n first_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n perhaps_o have_v not_o be_v know_v but_o to_o few_o person_n because_o it_o be_v write_v at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o a_o particular_a person_n to_o wit_n of_o wolfadus_fw-la canon_n of_o rheims_n whereas_o that_o which_o he_o write_v on_o the_o eucharist_n must_v needs_o have_v be_v public_a see_v he_o write_v by_o order_n of_o charles_n the_o bald_a and_o in_o a_o time_n wherein_o the_o novelty_n of_o paschasus_n have_v excite_v much_o clamour_n in_o the_o church_n second_o although_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n have_v be_v know_v the_o error_n which_o be_v therein_o contain_v be_v of_o the_o father_n who_o name_n be_v venerable_a in_o the_o church_n we_o must_v not_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o they_o be_v spare_v out_o of_o respect_n to_o the_o father_n for_o who_o the_o world_n have_v ever_o have_v so_o great_a a_o veneration_n and_o condescension_n although_o they_o have_v not_o approve_v all_o their_o sentiment_n but_o suppose_v the_o church_n ever_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o real_a presence_n the_o error_n broach_v and_o maintain_v by_o john_n scot_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o eucharist_n contrary_a to_o these_o two_o article_n will_v have_v be_v his_o only_a and_o not_o the_o father_n and_o consequent_o nothing_o will_v have_v hinder_v the_o world_n from_o exercise_v the_o great_a severity_n against_o john_n scot_n book_n and_o open_o condemn_v it_o three_o the_o error_n which_o be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o nature_n be_v speculative_a error_n in_o matter_n out_o of_o the_o common_a road_n and_o reach_n of_o sense_n whereas_o that_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o eucharist_n will_v have_v be_v a_o particular_a error_n on_o a_o sacrament_n which_o be_v continual_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o christian_n for_o suppose_v as_o i_o say_v the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n have_v believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n believe_v they_o at_o this_o day_n and_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o proper_a son_n of_o god_n incarnate_a the_o error_n of_o john_n scot_n will_v have_v overthrow_v the_o faith_n and_o rite_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o will_v have_v have_v as_o many_o adversary_n as_o there_o be_v person_n in_o the_o church_n the_o king_n himself_o by_o who_o order_n he_o write_v will_v have_v be_v interest_v to_o have_v condemn_v so_o pernicious_a a_o book_n to_o avoid_v the_o be_v suspect_v that_o he_o himself_o sow_v heresy_n by_o the_o borrow_a hand_n of_o john_n scot._n it_o be_v then_o evident_a that_o the_o two_o consequence_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n be_v insufficient_a to_o diminish_v or_o eface_v the_o reputation_n and_o authority_n of_o john_n scot_n name_n and_o thus_o when_o the_o book_n which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o bertram_n shall_v be_v in_o effect_n of_o john_n scot_n this_o book_n will_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o great_a authority_n chap._n vii_o a_o examination_n of_o what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n allege_v against_o the_o employ_v of_o john_n scot._n the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n find_v himself_o disturb_v with_o
1._o 7_o mr._n arnaud_n leave_v the_o method_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o his_o pretention_n 1._o 26_o mr._n arnaud_n produce_v nothing_o that_o be_v formal_a on_o the_o greek_n part_n of_o transubstantiation_n 1._o 118_o mr._n arnaud_n cite_v the_o testimony_n of_o latinised_a greek_n 1._o 263_o mr._n arnaud_n quote_v doubtful_a author_n 1._o 263_o mr._n arnaud_n produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o false_a greek_n scholar_n of_o the_o seminary_n at_o rome_n 1._o 265_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v his_o thesis_n touch_v the_o greek_n by_o positive_a argument_n whereas_o we_o may_v prove_v we_o by_o negative_a one_o 1._o 277_o mr._n arnaud_n contradict_v himself_o 1._o 315_o mr._n arnaud_n oppose_v himself_o and_o treat_v himself_o as_o ridiculous_a 1._o 317_o mr._n arnaud_n overthrow_v the_o argument_n which_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n draw_v from_o these_o word_n my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o 2._o 77_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v himself_o overthrow_n with_o one_o blow_n the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o book_n 2_o ibid._n mr._n arnaud_n discourse_n favour_v the_o sociniens_fw-la 2._o 114_o mr._n arnaud_n defence_n weak_a against_o my_o complaint_n 2._o 260_o mr._n arnaud'_v personal_a complaint_n and_o accusation_n unjust_a 2._o 264_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n expression_n disadvantageous_a to_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n 2._o 268_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o his_o friend_n suspect_v to_o be_v of_o intelligence_n with_o we_o 2._o ibid._n mr._n arnaud'_v negative_a argument_n take_v single_a overthrow_v one_o another_o 1._o 293_o article_n whereon_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n disagree_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o dispute_v thereon_o 1._o 279_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n the_o first_o occasion_n of_o this_o dispute_n 1._o 10_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n whereof_o it_o consist_v 1._o 12_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n have_v be_v indirect_o assault_v 1._o 13_o b._n bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n consider_v by_o the_o greek_n in_o two_o time_n or_o on_o the_o prothesis_n or_o on_o the_o altar_n 1._o 216_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o the_o greek_n 1._o 216_o bread_n in_o what_o manner_n change_v god_n only_o know_v say_v the_o greek_n 1._o ibid._n bread_n change_v thereof_o into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v understand_v in_o two_o manner_n 1._o 217_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v join_v to_o the_o divinity_n according_a to_o the_o greek_n 1._o 220_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o way_n of_o augmentation_n according_a to_o the_o greek_n 1._o 227_o c._n casaubon_n a_o man_n of_o a_o unsettled_a mind_n and_o of_o no_o great_a judgement_n 1._o 93_o centuriator_n of_o magdebourg_n be_v not_o witness_n to_o be_v allege_v in_o this_o controversy_n 1._o 38_o century_n all_o of_o they_o must_v be_v trace_v in_o beginning_n from_o the_o apostle_n in_o a_o search_n of_o tradition_n 2._o 100_o century_n 10._o mix_v with_o two_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o paschasus_n and_o that_o of_o bertram_n 2._o 175_o century_n 10._o very_a ignorant_a 2._o 178_o century_n 10._o very_a confuse_a 2._o 180_o change_n happen_v touch_v the_o point_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n 2._o 192_o change_n insensible_o happen_v either_o among_o the_o greek_n or_o among_o the_o latin_n 2._o 195_o christian_n of_o the_o east_n very_o ignorant_a 1._o 67_o christian_n of_o s._n john_n very_o ignorant_a 1._o ibid._n church_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o real_a body_n etc._n etc._n 2._o 74_o commerce_n frequent_a between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n since_o the_o 11_o century_n 1._o 27_o council_n of_o constantinople_n teach_v the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o substance_n of_o bread_n 1._o 347_o council_n of_o nice_a ii_o unjust_o arrogate_a the_o title_n of_o universal_a 1._o 356_o council_n of_o nice_a ii_o in_o what_o sense_n deny_v the_o bread_n be_v a_o image_n 1._o 340_o council_n of_o nice_a ii_o in_o what_o sense_n mean_v the_o bread_n be_v proper_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 1._o 339_o council_n of_o constantinople_n why_o it_o call_v the_o eucharist_n a_o image_n that_o be_v not_o deceitful_a 1._o 352_o council_n of_o constantinople_n in_o what_o sense_n it_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n choose_v in_o the_o eucharist_n a_o matter_n which_o have_v not_o any_o tract_n of_o humane_a likeness_n lest_o idolatry_n shall_v be_v introduce_v &c_n &c_n 1._o 353_o council_n of_o rome_n under_o nicolas_n ii_o do_v not_o formal_o establish_v transubstantiation_n 1._o 245_o council_n of_o florence_n hold_v on_o politic_a respect_n by_o both_o side_n 1._o 297_o council_n of_o florence_n in_o which_o the_o greek_n will_v no_o more_o dispute_v 1._o 300_o council_n of_o florence_n in_o which_o the_o greek_n assist_v against_o their_o will_n 1._o ibid._n council_n of_o florence_n in_o which_o the_o reunion_n be_v make_v in_o general_a term_n 1._o 127_o concomitance_n not_o teach_v by_o the_o greek_n 1._o 186_o conjunction_n of_o bread_n with_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v by_o some_o in_o the_o 9th_o century_n 2._o 233_o constantin_n monomaq_n greek_a emperor_n favour_v the_o pope_n against_o cerularius_n 1._o 180_o coptic_o extreme_a ignorant_a 1._o 68_o coptic_o superstitious_a 1._o 71_o coptic_o do_v not_o hold_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o real_a presence_n 2._o 54_o custom_n of_o communicate_v under_o both_o kind_n that_o of_o give_v the_o communion_n to_o little_a child_n and_o that_o of_o fast_v till_o the_o evening_n have_v be_v change_v 2._o 190_o croisado_n for_o the_o holy_a land_n in_o the_o 11_o and_o 12_o century_n 1._o 74_o cyril_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v the_o latin_n and_o the_o false_a greek_n for_o his_o enemy_n 1._o 206_o cyril_n ever_o belove_v by_o his_o church_n 1._o 207_o cyril_n confession_n not_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n 1._o 208_o d._n decease_a according_a to_o the_o greek_n receive_v the_o same_o as_o the_o live_n in_o the_o eucharist_n 1._o 151_o decision_n of_o council_n prescribe_v not_o against_o truth_n preface_n decision_n of_o council_n be_v considerable_a when_o conformable_a to_o scripture_n ibid._n deoduin_n bishop_n of_o liege_n impute_v to_o berenger_n 1._o 245_o difference_n and_o agreement_n between_o the_o latin_n and_o the_o greek_n on_o the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 1._o 233_o difference_n and_o agreement_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o we_o on_o the_o same_o point_n 1._o 236_o difference_n between_o the_o difficulty_n in_o the_o common_a mystery_n of_o christianity_n and_o those_o in_o transubstantiation_n 1._o 188_o difficulty_n of_o transubstantiation_n fall_v natural_o in_o the_o mind_n 1._o 189_o difference_n between_o not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o believe_v the_o real_a absence_n 2._o 128_o difference_n between_o the_o example_n of_o a_o angel_n appear_v under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n and_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n 2._o 148_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o eight_o century_n 2._o 89_o e._n emissary_n of_o the_o romish_a seminary_n send_v into_o greece_n to_o receive_v order_n there_o from_o schismatic_a bishop_n 1_o 205_o emissary_n make_v use_v of_o school_n to_o insinuate_v the_o roman_a religion_n 1._o 99_o emissary_n overspread_v the_o east_n since_o the_o 11_o century_n 1._o 90_o emperor_n greek_n have_v labour_v to_o introduce_v the_o latin_a religion_n into_o greece_n 1._o 81_o enthusiasm_n make_v in_o favour_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n 1._o 47._o 61_o emissary_n send_v express_o to_o establish_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 1._o 79_o eucharist_n necessary_a to_o little_a child_n according_a to_o s._n austin_n and_o the_o whole_a ancient_a church_n 1._o 58_o eucharist_n break_v the_o fast_a according_a to_o the_o greek_n 1._o 253_o eucharist_n bury_v by_o the_o greek_n or_o throw_v into_o wells_n and_o throw_v on_o the_o ground_n 1._o 172_o emissary_n prevail_v by_o money_n 1._o 98_o emissary_n gain_v the_o bishop_n 1._o 97_o eutychiens_n say_v our_o saviour_n be_v man_n only_o in_o appearance_n 2._o 16_o et_fw-la be_v oft_o explicative_a and_o take_v for_o that_o be_v to_o say_v 1._o 224_o ethiopian_n believe_v neither_o transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o real_a presence_n 2._o 54_o expression_n general_a capable_a of_o several_a particular_a sense_n 1._o 119_o expression_n of_o the_o greek_n on_o other_o subject_n be_v like_a to_o those_o on_o the_o eucharist_n 1._o 129_o eucharist_n according_a to_o the_o greek_n consist_v of_o bread_n and_o holy_a spirit_n 1._o 218._o f._n father_n be_v according_a to_o father_n novet_n be_v a_o forest_n preface_n father_n must_v not_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n 1._o 10_o father_n against_o transubstantiation_n 1._o 40_o father_n have_v write_v several_a thing_n
the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n write_v in_o french_a by_o the_o learned_a m._n claude_n veritas_fw-la fatigari_fw-la potest_fw-la vinci_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ethe●_n &_o b●●●_n 1683._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d london_n print_v for_o r._n royston_n the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o all_o age_n in_o answer_n to_o what_o m._n arnaud_v doctor_n of_o the_o sorbon_n allege_v touch_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_a moscovite_n armenian_n jacobite_n nestorian_a coptic_n maronite_n and_o other_z eastern_a church_n whereunto_o be_v add_v a_o account_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n publish_v under_o the_o name_n of_o bertram_z in_o six_o book_n london_n print_v for_o r._n royston_n bookseller_n to_o his_o most_o sacred_a majesty_n at_o the_o angel_n in_o amen-corner_n mdclxxxiv_o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a and_o right_a reverend_n father_z in_o god_n henry_n lord_z bishop_n of_o london_n and_o one_o of_o his_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a privy-council_a etc._n etc._n j._n r._n r._n humble_o dedicate_v this_o translation_n to_o the_o worthy_a gentleman_n the_o minister_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o consistory_n assemble_v at_o charenton_n gentleman_n and_o my_o most_o honour_a brethren_n the_o design_n of_o the_o book_n which_o i_o here_o offer_v you_o be_v chief_o to_o invalidate_v those_o pretend_a proof_n of_o perpetuity_n wherewith_o man_n will_v set_v up_o such_o new_a opinion_n as_o alter_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n touch_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n i_o have_v therefore_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o this_o present_a treatise_n will_v not_o prove_v unacceptable_a to_o you_o for_o although_o the_o religion_n we_o profess_v need_v not_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n to_o support_v it_o no_o more_o than_o heretofore_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o israelite_n yet_o have_v we_o cause_n to_o praise_n god_n when_o we_o see_v that_o reproach_n of_o depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a faith_n may_v be_v just_o retort_v upon_o they_o who_o charge_v we_o with_o it_o you_o will_v find_v here_o in_o this_o discourse_n a_o faithful_a and_o plain_a representation_n of_o thing_n such_o as_o they_o be_v in_o truth_n in_o opposition_n to_o every_o thing_n which_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n and_o the_o fruitfulness_n of_o human_a invention_n have_v be_v able_a to_o bring_v forth_o to_o dazzle_v man_n eye_n and_o corrupt_v their_o judgement_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o i_o have_v read_v the_o write_n of_o these_o gentleman_n who_o i_o answer_v the_o first_o thought_n that_o come_v into_o my_o mind_n be_v that_o of_o solomon_n that_o god_n make_v man_n eccles_n 7._o 29._o upright_o but_o he_o have_v seek_v out_o many_o invention_n and_o indeed_o what_o be_v plain_o than_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o he_o himself_o have_v institute_v it_o and_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v it_o to_o we_o and_o what_o can_v be_v more_o preposterous_a than_o to_o search_v for_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v touch_v this_o sacrament_n among_o the_o various_a opinion_n of_o these_o late_a age_n and_o different_a inclination_n of_o man_n and_o especial_o among_o they_o who_o be_v at_o far_a distance_n from_o we_o these_o remote_a way_n do_v of_o themselves_o fill_v we_o with_o doubt_n and_o suspicion_n and_o the_o bare_a proposal_n of_o they_o must_v needs_o disgust_v we_o and_o make_v we_o draw_v consequence_n little_a advantageous_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o these_o gentleman_n will_v authorize_v yet_o i_o have_v not_o refuse_v to_o join_v issue_n with_o they_o on_o their_o own_o principle_n as_o far_o as_o the_o truth_n will_v permit_v i_o and_o if_o they_o will_v read_v this_o answer_n with_o a_o free_a unprejudiced_a mind_n i_o be_o certain_a that_o they_o themselves_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o persuade_v other_o i_o here_o offer_v you_o then_o gentleman_n and_o my_o most_o honour_a brethren_n this_o last_o fruit_n of_o my_o labour_n first_o for_o your_o own_o edification_n and_o second_o for_o a_o public_a testimony_n of_o my_o respect_n and_o acknowledgement_n all_o that_o i_o do_v or_o have_v do_v be_v just_o due_a to_o you_o not_o only_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o right_n which_o you_o have_v over_o i_o and_o my_o labour_n but_o likewise_o because_o it_o be_v partly_o from_o your_o good_a example_n that_o i_o have_v take_v and_o do_v still_o every_o day_n draw_v the_o motive_n which_o strengthen_v i_o in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o love_n of_o his_o truth_n it_o be_v in_o your_o holy_a society_n that_o i_o learn_v the_o art_n of_o serve_v the_o common_a master_n of_o both_o angel_n and_o man_n according_a to_o the_o purity_n of_o that_o worship_n which_o he_o have_v prescribe_v we_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n how_o to_o work_v out_o my_o own_o salvation_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o other_o and_o indeed_o what_o be_v it_o that_o a_o man_n can_v learn_v in_o a_o assembly_n wherein_o all_o heart_n and_o mind_n do_v unanimous_o concur_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n which_o consist_v of_o person_n who_o have_v no_o other_o aim_n but_o so_o to_o order_v their_o conversation_n as_o to_o draw_v down_o thereby_o the_o blessing_n of_o heaven_n upon_o themselves_o and_o the_o people_n who_o god_n have_v commit_v to_o their_o charge_n and_o render_v themselves_o worthy_a of_o the_o protection_n of_o our_o great_a and_o invincible_a monarch_n this_o work_n will_v have_v be_v publish_v soon_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o three_o great_a loss_n we_o have_v suffer_v by_o the_o death_n of_o mr._n drelincourt_n mr._n daillé_n and_o morus_n three_o name_n worthy_a to_o be_v have_v in_o everlasting_a remembrance_n these_o person_n have_v leave_v we_o so_o sudden_o one_o after_o another_o that_o we_o have_v scarce_o have_v time_n to_o bewail_v each_o of_o they_o as_o much_o as_o we_o desire_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o extreme_o afflict_v we_o the_o loss_n of_o the_o second_o overwhelm_v we_o with_o sorrow_n and_o the_o death_n of_o the_o last_o stupefy_v we_o with_o heaviness_n god_n have_v take_v to_o himself_o these_o three_o famous_a divine_n it_o be_v impossible_a but_o this_o work_n shall_v be_v retard_v but_o be_v now_o at_o length_n able_a to_o publish_v it_o i_o therefore_o entreat_v you_o gentleman_n to_o suffer_v i_o to_o dedicate_v it_o to_o you_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o world_n honour_v with_o your_o name_n may_v the_o father_n of_o light_n from_o who_o descend_v every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n enrich_v you_o more_o with_o his_o grace_n and_o preserve_v your_o holy_a assembly_n and_o the_o flock_v commit_v to_o your_o care_n these_o be_v the_o ardent_a prayer_n of_o your_o most_o humble_a and_o obedient_a servant_n and_o brother_n in_o christ_n jesus_n claude_fw-la the_o preface_n the_o dispute_n which_o the_o first_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o faith_n have_v occasion_v on_o this_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n have_v make_v such_o a_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n since_o mr._n arnaud_n last_o book_n that_o i_o have_v no_o need_n to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o motive_n which_o engage_v i_o in_o this_o three_o reply_n beside_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o every_o one_o that_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o defend_v and_o which_o i_o can_v forsake_v without_o betray_v my_o trust_n and_o conscience_n oblige_v i_o necessary_o to_o state_n clear_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o maintain_v or_o refute_v those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v debate_v between_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o i_o and_o yet_o whatsoever_o justice_n and_o necessity_n there_o may_v be_v for_o publish_v this_o work_n i_o be_o afraid_a some_o person_n will_v be_v displease_v see_v so_o much_o write_v on_o the_o same_o subject_a for_o this_o be_v the_o six_o book_n since_o the_o first_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v be_v publish_v beside_o two_o other_o of_o father_n nouet_n and_z i_o and_o these_o tract_n which_o at_o first_o be_v but_o small_a have_v since_o insensible_o grow_v into_o great_a volume_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o have_v not_o see_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n or_o his_o friend_n be_v oblige_v to_o produce_v as_o to_o the_o first_o six_o century_n of_o which_o without_o doubt_n much_o may_v be_v say_v on_o both_o side_n if_o any_o complain_v of_o this_o prolixity_n i_o confess_v it_o will_v not_o be_v altogether_o without_o cause_n for_o although_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o important_a that_o be_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o protestant_n and_o which_o deserve_v therefore_o to_o be_v careful_o examine_v yet_o since_o it_o may_v be_v treat_v with_o great_a brevity_n even_o this_o consideration_n of_o its_o
of_o these_o pretend_a principle_n and_o their_o consequence_n and_o wherefore_o must_v this_o neglect_n have_v the_o title_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n defend_v for_o my_o part_n who_o do_v not_o believe_v myself_o bind_v to_o follow_v this_o example_n i_o have_v examine_v whatsoever_o i_o find_v of_o importance_n in_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v it_o never_o so_o difficult_a if_o i_o have_v change_v his_o method_n in_o some_o place_n it_o have_v be_v to_o lay_v down_o a_o better_a more_o short_a and_o natural_a as_o when_o i_o join_v his_o seven_o book_n which_o treat_v of_o greek_a author_n from_o the_o seven_o age_n to_o the_o 11_o to_o the_o general_n dispute_v touch_v the_o greek_a church_n to_o avoid_v do_v twice_o the_o same_o thing_n or_o when_o i_o refer_v his_o six_o book_n touch_v the_o distinct_a belief_n of_o the_o presence_n or_o real_a absence_n to_o the_o question_n of_o the_o impossibility_n of_o a_o change_n because_o that_o in_o effect_n this_o distinct_a belief_n be_v not_o invent_v but_o for_o this_o purpose_n or_o when_o i_o remit_v what_o he_o say_v of_o paschasius_fw-la and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 9th_o age_n in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o 8_o book_n to_o the_o account_n of_o the_o innovation_n because_o this_o be_v its_o proper_a place_n but_o even_o in_o this_o i_o have_v not_o at_o all_o weaken_a mr._n arnaud_n proof_n nor_o the_o less_o exact_o examine_v his_o book_n as_o to_o what_o further_o remain_v the_o author_n which_o i_o have_v make_v use_n of_o can_v be_v suspect_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n see_v they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n either_o greek_n or_o person_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n or_o author_n of_o former_a age_n which_o neither_o one_o nor_o other_o of_o they_o have_v write_v with_o any_o foresight_n of_o our_o debate_n i_o have_v allege_v but_o very_o few_o protestant_n and_o they_o such_o of_o who_o sincerity_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o doubt_v mr._n arnaud_n and_o his_o friend_n have_v not_o do_v the_o same_o who_o have_v cite_v in_o this_o controversy_n act_n and_o attestation_n send_v by_o the_o emissary_n such_o as_o the_o act_n of_o a_o synod_n of_o cyprus_n the_o profession_n of_o faith_n of_o six_o priest_n belong_v to_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o antioch_n and_o such_o like_a particular_n in_o the_o 12_o book_n of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o greek_n armenian_n or_o nestorian_n latinise_v as_o of_o manuel_n calecas_n of_o john_n plusiadene_n of_o adam_n nestorian_a and_o of_o hacciadour_n a_o armenian_a patriarch_n now_o resident_a at_o rome_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scholar_n of_o the_o seminary_n of_o rome_n as_o of_o paysius_fw-la ligardius_n of_o abraham_n ecchellensis_n and_o of_o leo_n allatius_n etc._n etc._n they_o have_v likewise_o frequent_o make_v use_n of_o he_o that_o have_v late_o continue_v baronius_n name_v odoricus_n raynaldus_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o oratory_n at_o rome_n but_o if_o any_o will_v know_v of_o what_o authority_n this_o author_n be_v he_o may_v be_v inform_v by_o this_o description_n he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o little_a wit_n of_o no_o judgement_n no_o sincerity_n no_o credit_n who_o take_v matter_n upon_o trust_n with_o a_o unsufferable_a boldness_n and_o deliver_v the_o most_o unjustifiable_a pretension_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o same_o confidence_n as_o if_o they_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n who_o cit_v author_n know_v to_o be_v the_o most_o partial_a and_o passionate_a of_o all_o other_o as_o poggius_n blondius_fw-la turrecremata_fw-la and_o such_o like_a as_o unreprovable_a witness_n and_o by_o follow_v who_o testimony_n we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o condemn_v the_o best_a of_o man_n even_o those_o who_o god_n have_v own_a by_o miracle_n who_o for_o want_v of_o proof_n make_v use_v of_o unjust_a clamour_n and_o outrageous_a declamation_n unbecoming_a a_o historian_n who_o ought_v never_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o passion_n and_o in_o short_a such_o a_o man_n than_o who_o there_o be_v never_o any_o less_o fit_a for_o so_o important_a a_o work_n as_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a character_n of_o this_o author_n who_o will_v imagine_v that_o person_n who_o believe_v what_o i_o now_o rehearse_v and_o who_o desire_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o they_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o he_o in_o a_o dispute_n so_o important_a as_o this_o and_o take_v from_o he_o the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o relation_n and_o yet_o these_o be_v the_o gentleman_n who_o quote_v he_o at_o present_a with_o so_o great_a confidence_n after_o they_o themselves_o have_v represent_v he_o in_o the_o manner_n i_o mention_v it_o be_v either_o mr._n arnaud_n or_o some_o of_o his_o remark_n on_o the_o 18_o tom_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a annal_n of_o rodoricus_n raynaeldus_n aug._n contr_n faust_n lib._n 32._o ch_n 16._o friend_n who_o under_o the_o name_n of_o several_a divine_n have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o publish_v their_o animadversion_n on_o this_o history_n after_o a_o diligent_a perusal_n of_o it_o whereupon_o may_v we_o not_o just_o apply_v to_o they_o that_o of_o s._n austin_n to_o faustus_n who_o be_v there_o that_o have_v decry_v a_o witness_n as_o false_a and_o corrupt_a will_v ever_o again_o produce_v his_o testimony_n if_o we_o believe_v he_o and_o believe_v he_o not_o according_a to_o your_o fancy_n it_o be_v not_o he_o who_o we_o believe_v but_o you_o and_o if_o we_o must_v needs_o believe_v you_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o your_o produce_v other_o witness_n we_o shall_v see_v what_o these_o gentleman_n will_v do_v henceforward_o for_o shall_v they_o take_v the_o same_o course_n again_o as_o they_o have_v take_v already_o in_o this_o occasion_n shall_v they_o pretend_v to_o quote_v no_o other_o author_n but_o what_o be_v decry_v false_a greek_n scholar_n of_o the_o seminary_n person_n win_v to_o the_o interest_n of_o rome_n or_o proselyte_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o remit_v to_o its_o sea_n this_o will_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o their_o authority_n will_v have_v a_o great_a share_n in_o this_o controversy_n than_o reason_n and_o perhaps_o they_o may_v be_v let_v alone_o to_o talk_v to_o themselves_o it_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v continual_o employ_v in_o combat_v phantasm_n and_o fight_v with_o shadow_n for_o to_o maintain_v faithful_o and_o solid_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n this_o be_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n be_v establish_v and_o common_o hold_v in_o all_o christian_a church_n when_o berengarius_fw-la his_o disputation_n be_v on_o foot_n for_o which_o end_n a_o thousand_o attestation_n of_o person_n now_o live_v will_v be_v of_o no_o use_n these_o attestation_n may_v serve_v to_o show_v that_o the_o care_n which_o have_v be_v so_o long_o take_v and_o which_o be_v still_o continue_a to_o introduce_v insensible_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n into_o other_o church_n by_o the_o way_n which_o i_o have_v observe_v in_o my_o second_o book_n and_o especial_o by_o their_o mission_n and_o seminary_n have_v not_o be_v altogether_o fruitless_a but_o this_o be_v the_o great_a absurdity_n of_o all_o to_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o doctrine_n in_o dispute_n be_v every_o where_o establish_v in_o berengarius_n time_n or_o that_o they_o be_v perpetual_a there_o be_v reason_n to_o hope_v that_o the_o world_n will_v not_o suffer_v itself_o so_o easy_o to_o be_v cheat_v and_o what_o have_v here_o be_v do_v will_v sufficient_o manifest_v the_o truth_n we_o live_v not_o now_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ignorance_n and_o darkness_n wherein_o man_n credulity_n be_v easy_o abuse_v our_o age_n be_v a_o enlighten_v one_o and_o its_o notice_n be_v clear_a and_o penetrant_fw-la and_o we_o shall_v soon_o see_v the_o downfall_n of_o several_a ancient_a error_n be_v they_o not_o support_v by_o the_o affinity_n which_o they_o have_v with_o man_n temporal_a interest_n god_n will_v break_v off_o this_o alliance_n when_o it_o shall_v seem_v good_a in_o his_o sight_n but_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o keep_v firm_a in_o his_o truth_n and_o prefer_v the_o honour_n we_o receive_v from_o it_o above_o all_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v reconcile_v those_o to_o it_o by_o his_o grace_n who_o be_v far_o from_o it_o that_o all_o of_o we_o may_v have_v but_o one_o heart_n to_o fear_v he_o and_o one_o and_o the_o same_o mouth_n to_o glorify_v he_o a_o table_n of_o chapter_n book_n i._n wherein_o be_v treat_v of_o the_o method_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v follow_v chap._n i._o that_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o take_v for_o grant_v as_o i_o have_v do_v the_o proof_n of_o mr._n aubertin_n against_o
do_v the_o proof_n of_o mr._n aubertin_n against_o the_o book_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n till_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v show_v they_o to_o be_v invalid_n although_o the_o passion_n which_o appear_v throughout_o mr._n arnaud_n whole_a book_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n persuade_v i_o that_o his_o censure_n be_v not_o always_o reasonable_a yet_o shall_v not_o this_o hinder_v i_o from_o examine_v they_o with_o a_o compose_a mind_n if_o they_o be_v find_v just_a i_o ought_v to_o make_v my_o advantage_n of_o they_o without_o mind_v the_o sharpness_n which_o accompany_v they_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o the_o interest_n of_o my_o cause_n require_v i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o manifest_v the_o injustice_n of_o they_o by_o a_o modest_a and_o christian_a defence_n and_o this_o method_n i_o intend_v to_o use_v not_o only_o in_o the_o begin_n but_o likewise_o in_o all_o the_o follow_a part_n of_o this_o work_n which_o i_o dedicate_v to_o the_o discovery_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n glory_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o father_n of_o light_n and_o of_o truth_n it_o be_v certain_a say_v mr._n arnaud_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n that_o provide_v mr._n claude_n may_v be_v grant_v the_o privilege_n which_o he_o immediate_o lay_v hold_v on_o of_o invent_v and_o suppose_v what_o he_o list_v he_o take_v a_o very_a sure_a way_n to_o conclude_v from_o thence_o what_o he_o please_v i_o only_o admire_v that_o while_o he_o fancy_v he_o have_v this_o peculiar_a liberty_n he_o yet_o still_o busy_v himself_o in_o write_v book_n for_o he_o can_v absolute_o determine_v all_o our_o difference_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n less_o trouble_n for_o he_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v but_o only_o immediate_o to_o suppose_v that_o the_o reason_n be_v on_o his_o side_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n be_v in_o the_o wrong_n and_o so_o the_o whole_a controversy_n will_v be_v at_o a_o end_n and_o thus_o may_v he_o satisfy_v himself_o with_o write_v half_o a_o page_n instead_o of_o a_o entire_a answer_n for_o it_o decide_v the_o whole_a it_o be_v but_o suppose_v that_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n have_v get_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o romish_a school_n and_o that_o he_o have_v manifest_v to_o all_o the_o world_n the_o change_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v make_v that_o the_o proof_n be_v clear_a strong_a and_o numerous_a which_o make_v the_o change_n sensible_o apparent_a and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o be_v oppose_v with_o any_o other_o than_o false_a and_o imaginary_a reason_n what_o need_n be_v there_o then_o of_o any_o other_o reply_n and_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v mr._n claude_n take_v upon_o he_o all_o this_o trouble_v calvinism_n have_v now_o win_v the_o day_n and_o catholic_n religion_n be_v utter_o rout_v the_o right_n of_o oppose_v to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n the_o proof_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n contain_v in_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n and_o to_o speak_v our_o thought_n concern_v it_o be_v not_o so_o marvellous_a nor_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a design_n that_o mr._n arnaud_n shall_v need_v raise_v such_o a_o contest_v about_o it_o this_o author_n have_v undertake_v to_o make_v we_o confess_v if_o we_o be_v not_o desperate_o obstinate_a that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o all_o antiquity_n and_o have_v make_v use_v of_o no_o other_o reason_v for_o this_o purpose_n but_o those_o which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o moral_a impossibility_n of_o this_o change_n which_o we_o believe_v have_v happen_v common_a sense_n convince_v we_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o examine_v the_o proof_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n on_o which_o the_o opinion_n he_o will_v root_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n be_v establish_v for_o till_o then_o all_o his_o arguing_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n neither_o can_v we_o just_o be_v deny_v the_o liberty_n of_o mention_v these_o proof_n according_a to_o our_o real_a thought_n for_o see_v we_o offer_v they_o against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n only_o as_o a_o prejudication_n which_o hinder_v we_o from_o heark'n_a to_o his_o argument_n it_o be_v therefore_o very_o requisite_a we_o shall_v speak_v our_o thought_n about_o they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o this_o author_n continue_v in_o the_o design_n of_o bring_v we_o to_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o what_o he_o pretend_v he_o especial_o take_v care_n to_o remove_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v those_o thing_n which_o render_v all_o his_o other_o endeavour_n ineffectual_a i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o doubt_n if_o man_n mind_n be_v free_a from_o prejudice_n but_o it_o will_v be_v grant_v that_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n do_v perfect_o decide_v the_o controversy_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v a_o complete_a piece_n in_o which_o this_o matter_n be_v search_v to_o the_o bottom_n he_o have_v answer_v those_o who_o have_v treat_v on_o this_o subject_a before_o his_o time_n and_o yet_o his_o book_n have_v lie_v even_o to_o this_o present_a unanswered_a which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o presume_v he_o have_v get_v the_o better_a and_o that_o his_o proof_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n say_v what_o he_o will_v be_v plain_o evident_a and_o numerous_a but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o end_n of_o a_o difference_n and_o quiet_v contradiction_n to_o suppose_v principle_n grant_v by_o both_o party_n and_o see_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v neither_o agree_v in_o the_o proof_n nor_o in_o the_o change_n here_o in_o question_n i_o do_v thereupon_o free_o confess_v the_o controversy_n lie_v still_o open_a in_o this_o respect_n and_o that_o in_o general_n we_o can_v stop_v any_o man_n mouth_n by_o the_o simple_a supposition_n of_o the_o strength_n and_o solidity_n of_o that_o book_n for_o every_o man_n be_v at_o liberty_n and_o have_v right_o if_o he_o please_v to_o examine_v and_o answer_v it_o but_o have_v not_o mr._n arnaud_n suppress_v a_o great_a part_n of_o what_o i_o write_v on_o this_o subject_a as_o well_o in_o my_o first_o as_o second_o answer_n it_o will_v immediate_o appear_v i_o have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v such_o a_o claim_n as_o that_o wherewith_o he_o charge_v i_o that_o i_o have_v every_o where_o express_o maintain_v the_o contrary_n see_v that_o mr._n aubertin_n have_v make_v it_o appear_v by_o express_a passage_n take_v out_o of_o the_o father_n these_o be_v the_o word_n in_o my_o first_o answer_n that_o transubstantiation_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_a church_n we_o may_v then_o well_o conclude_v there_o have_v happen_v a_o change_n especial_o consider_v that_o this_o same_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o till_o the_o 11_o century_n now_o consider_v this_o for_o a_o man_n to_o philosophize_v on_o the_o impossibility_n thereof_o be_v to_o give_v himself_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o trouble_n to_o no_o purpose_n if_o there_o yet_o remain_v any_o thing_n far_o to_o be_v do_v it_o will_v be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o passage_n produce_v by_o mr._n aubertin_n be_v either_o false_a or_o allege_v impertinent_o against_o transubstantiation_n but_o to_o pass_v by_o these_o matter_n of_o proof_n which_o be_v clear_a express_v and_o conclusive_a to_o adhere_v to_o i_o know_v not_o what_o kind_n of_o pretend_a impossibility_n this_o be_v to_o trifle_v with_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n observe_v here_o again_o what_o i_o say_v in_o my_o second_o answer_n we_o have_v reason_n to_o hope_v that_o the_o author_n treat_v my_o abridgement_n in_o the_o respect_n and_o relation_n which_o the_o sequel_n of_o its_o reason_n oblige_v he_o to_o shall_v have_v apply_v himself_o unto_o one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n either_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o mr._n aubertin_n '_o s_z proof_n on_o which_o we_o have_v rely_v be_v false_a and_o of_o no_o force_n or_o that_o the_o consequence_n which_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v draw_v from_o they_o be_v untrue_a that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o do_v not_o follow_v a_o thing_n be_v possible_a although_o it_o be_v make_v apparent_a that_o this_o very_a thing_n have_v actual_o happen_v when_o a_o man_n make_v supposition_n of_o this_o kind_n how_o absurd_a be_v it_o to_o say_v such_o a_o one_o put_v himself_o in_o possession_n of_o any_o privilege_n or_o usurp_v that_o marvellous_a right_n of_o terminate_a difference_n or_o decide_v controversy_n by_o groundless_a supposition_n for_o i_o not_o only_o give_v this_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n the_o liberty_n of_o oppose_a mr._n aubertin_n proof_n and_o to_o show_v if_o he_o can_v the_o falsity_n of_o they_o but_o i_o conjure_v he_o so_o to_o do_v be_v engage_v thereunto_o by_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o own_o reputation_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o course_n to_o end_v the_o controversy_n now_o if_o this_o may_v be_v style_v
man_n shall_v do_v that_o when_o he_o answer_v which_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o do_v but_o when_o he_o oppose_v or_o to_o expect_v he_o shall_v do_v that_o when_o he_o oppose_v which_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o do_v but_o in_o answer_v it_o sometime_o happen_v that_o a_o adversary_n make_v a_o exchange_n and_o whereas_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o answer_v direct_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o contrary_a party_n or_o to_o oppose_v other_o against_o he_o of_o the_o like_a nature_n and_o force_n he_o shift_v they_o and_o fall_v into_o a_o discourse_n to_o no_o purpose_n and_o all_o this_o while_n the_o contrary_a proof_n he_o shall_v have_v answer_v remain_v firm_a in_o such_o a_o occasion_n we_o have_v power_n to_o reduce_v such_o a_o one_o from_o his_o affect_a wand'ring_n by_o suppose_v the_o proof_n he_o have_v leave_v unanswered_a strong_a and_o solid_a for_o in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o be_v not_o suppose_v good_a and_o firm_a but_o only_o to_o oblige_v he_o to_o answer_v they_o and_o show_v their_o weakness_n or_o falsity_n and_o if_o he_o answer_v they_o not_o we_o may_v reckon_v as_o to_o he_o the_o question_n in_o effect_n be_v decide_v because_o when_o a_o man_n have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o the_o method_n of_o proceed_v and_o that_o the_o foremention_v proof_n have_v be_v propose_v according_a to_o the_o exact_a rule_n of_o disputation_n a_o man_n must_v then_o either_o acquiesce_v in_o they_o or_o answer_v they_o and_o to_o do_v neither_o of_o these_o be_v mere_a wrangle_n now_o to_o apply_v these_o maxim_n to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o to_o judge_v of_o mr._n arnaud_n censure_n we_o need_v but_o consider_v first_o that_o when_o i_o suppose_v mr._n aubertin_n proof_n to_o be_v firm_a and_o good_a i_o do_v not_o thereby_o propose_v to_o myself_o a_o absolute_a end_n of_o the_o question_n touch_v the_o change_n which_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o this_o simple_a supposition_n but_o only_o to_o regulate_v the_o debate_n and_o reduce_v it_o within_o those_o bound_n wherein_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v second_o that_o in_o suppose_v they_o good_a i_o have_v only_o deliver_v my_o opinion_n which_o i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o maintain_v against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n without_o deprive_v he_o of_o the_o liberty_n of_o defend_v the_o contrary_a three_o that_o i_o have_v suppose_v they_o to_o be_v good_a without_o prove_v they_o so_o because_o we_o ever_o suppose_v proof_n sufficient_o firm_a till_o such_o time_n as_o something_o at_o least_o be_v object_v against_o they_o and_o hitherto_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n have_v lie_v unanswered_a four_o that_o i_o make_v use_v of_o they_o as_o a_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n attempt_n and_o when_o a_o man_n only_o defend_v himself_o in_o a_o dispute_n he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o prove_v any_o thing_n five_o and_o last_o i_o do_v not_o offer_v they_o but_o only_o as_o prejudices_fw-la at_o his_o opinion_n which_o ought_v necessary_o to_o be_v remove_v out_o of_o our_o mind_n before_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v offer_v we_o for_o as_o much_o as_o these_o prejudices_fw-la make_v the_o author_n be_v reason_v ineffectual_a and_o improper_a to_o that_o design_n of_o make_v we_o acknowledge_v there_o have_v be_v introduce_v no_o change_n into_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o i_o may_v not_o only_o suppose_v these_o proof_n be_v clear_a firm_a and_o numerous_a see_v that_o it_o be_v under_o this_o notion_n we_o have_v entertain_v these_o prejudices_fw-la but_o morever_o suppose_v they_o without_o prove_v they_o and_o i_o do_v so_o to_o the_o end_n i_o may_v oblige_v the_o author_n of_o that_o treatise_n to_o show_v we_o if_o he_o can_v that_o they_o do_v not_o amount_v to_o what_o we_o imagine_v in_o short_a if_o he_o will_v obtain_v his_o end_n he_o must_v show_v we_o that_o our_o prejudice_n ought_v not_o to_o hinder_v we_o from_o harken_v to_o what_o he_o have_v far_a to_o offer_v we_o which_o be_v to_o say_v suppose_v our_o proof_n to_o be_v most_o firm_a and_o evident_a yet_o ought_v they_o not_o to_o avert_v our_o mind_n from_o consider_v his_o moral_a conjecture_n or_o show_v we_o that_o our_o prejudices_fw-la have_v not_o ground_n and_o that_o our_o proof_n be_v neither_o plain_a nor_o sufficient_a the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v absurd_a the_o second_o be_v what_o we_o desire_v he_o to_o take_v in_o hand_n but_o instead_o of_o this_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v bethink_v himself_o and_o require_v we_o to_o prove_v the_o validity_n of_o our_o proof_n if_o our_o proof_n be_v suppose_v good_a be_v in_o effect_n the_o calvinist_n victory_n and_o the_o romanist_n defeat_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n himself_o grant_v we_o have_v reason_n to_o admire_v he_o shall_v think_v he_o have_v overthrow_v they_o by_o five_o or_o six_o line_n stuff_v with_o raillery_n have_v he_o be_v more_o concern_v at_o the_o call_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n imaginary_a conjecture_n than_o at_o the_o glorious_a victory_n over_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o have_v be_v attribute_v to_o mr._n aubertin_n book_n and_o this_o innovation_n bring_v in_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v apparent_a to_o all_o the_o world_n do_v he_o more_o value_v the_o reputation_n he_o think_v he_o have_v get_v by_o write_v a_o small_a treatise_n than_o the_o settlement_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o aught_o he_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o a_o particular_a work_n to_o have_v rifle_v both_o east_n and_o west_n whilst_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o catholic_n church_n perish_v before_o his_o eye_n lie_v prostrate_a approbation_n mr._n de_fw-fr vence_n in_o his_o approbation_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o victorion_n calvinisme_n i_o will_v grant_v my_o supposition_n reside_v but_o in_o my_o own_o imagination_n and_o in_o they_o of_o the_o same_o communion_n yet_o certain_o this_o a_o man_n will_v think_v shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o stir_v up_o the_o zeal_n of_o a_o person_n who_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o teacher_n of_o truth_n and_o who_o have_v be_v enlighten_v by_o his_o grace_n and_o fill_v with_o his_o spirit_n on_o purpose_n to_o rescue_v and_o vindicate_v truth_n from_o the_o subtlety_n and_o false_a gloss_n of_o error_n as_o speak_v one_o of_o his_o approbationer_n this_o i_o think_v shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v he_o prefer_v the_o reputation_n of_o his_o whole_a church_n before_o that_o of_o a_o single_a author_n of_o who_o name_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v still_o ignorant_a and_o moreover_o as_o have_v be_v already_o say_v this_o prejudice_n under_o which_o we_o labour_v whether_o true_a or_o false_a make_v a_o distinction_n between_o the_o interest_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o those_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o it_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o all_o the_o pretension_n of_o the_o author_n and_o bereave_v he_o of_o all_o the_o conquest_n he_o promise_v himself_o for_o to_o regain_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n reputation_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n see_v that_o calvinisme_n will_v not_o give_v over_o celebrate_v aubertin_n victory_n and_o stand_v firm_a to_o his_o proof_n the_o confutation_n of_o aubertin_n book_n will_v be_v to_o give_v such_o a_o mighty_a stroke_n as_o will_v ever_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o calvinism_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n raise_v up_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n out_o of_o the_o dust_n there_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v no_o waver_n between_o these_o two_o party_n and_o yet_o mr._n arnaud_n this_o doctor_n who_o have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n furnish_v with_o such_o gift_n betake_v himself_o to_o the_o write_n of_o a_o treatise_n and_o send_v the_o church_n away_o till_o another_o time_n in_o short_a to_o finish_v the_o justification_n of_o my_o yet_o unproved_a supposition_n i_o need_v but_o propose_v the_o example_n of_o a_o man_n who_o to_o show_v i_o the_o victory_n which_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v obtain_v against_o we_o if_o we_o have_v any_o reason_n leave_v we_o suppose_v without_o prove_v it_o that_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o book_n be_v plain_a and_o solid_a if_o i_o shall_v apply_v to_o he_o mr._n arnaud_n maxim_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o provide_v he_o may_v have_v the_o liberty_n which_o he_o immediate_o make_v use_v of_o invent_v and_o suppose_v what_o he_o please_v he_o be_v in_o a_o sure_a way_n to_o conclude_v thence_o what_o he_o will_v that_o these_o kind_n of_o discourse_n found_v on_o unproved_a supposition_n be_v not_o whole_o judicious_a and_o that_o they_o show_v he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o assert_v
of_o the_o perpetuity_n argument_n for_o they_o be_v not_o demonstration_n which_o convince_v a_o man_n mind_n or_o of_o equal_a force_n with_o they_o which_o appear_v in_o our_o proof_n be_v at_o far_a but_o mere_a probability_n they_o be_v moral_a impossibility_n which_o he_o find_v in_o the_o alteration_n we_o suppose_v as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a but_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n together_o with_o the_o people_n will_v have_v oppose_v these_o innovation_n and_o disturb_v the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n under_o so_o great_a a_o contrariety_n in_o their_o opinion_n and_o many_o such_o like_a thing_n do_v he_o allege_v which_o be_v not_o ground_v on_o any_o certain_a principle_n nor_o draw_v from_o undeniable_a consequence_n in_o general_n it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o determine_v which_o be_v impossible_a event_n if_o you_o except_v they_o which_o carry_v along_o with_o they_o a_o palpable_a contradiction_n for_o the_o cause_n or_o principle_n of_o thing_n be_v at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o we_o we_o know_v little_a of_o they_o but_o by_o their_o effect_n and_o these_o effect_n not_o always_o show_v themselves_o at_o the_o bottom_n so_o that_o a_o man_n can_v positive_o say_v this_o can_v be_v or_o this_o can_v be_v moral_a impossibility_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n doubtful_a especial_o those_o ground_v on_o the_o inclination_n of_o the_o people_n who_o way_n be_v many_o time_n so_o uncertain_a and_o have_v so_o little_a of_o uniformity_n in_o they_o and_o so_o great_a dependence_n on_o particular_a circumstance_n that_o we_o can_v take_v any_o certain_a rule_n from_o thence_o have_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n show_v we_o that_o the_o alteration_n we_o speak_v of_o do_v imply_v a_o contradiction_n that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n that_o there_o follow_v from_o it_o evident_a and_o intolerable_a absurdity_n we_o shall_v then_o have_v examine_v his_o argument_n without_o trouble_v ourselves_o with_o his_o method_n but_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n will_v do_v in_o this_o this_o can_v amount_v to_o no_o more_o at_o far_a but_o mere_a conjecture_n and_o even_a conjecture_n very_o uncertain_a for_o he_o be_v not_o the_o arbitrator_n of_o all_o humane_a action_n neither_o do_v he_o know_v all_o their_o principle_n and_o different_a interest_n nor_o understand_v all_o the_o cause_n which_o concur_v in_o great_a accident_n or_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o hinder_v they_o from_o hap'n_v it_o be_v then_o a_o great_a piece_n of_o injustice_n to_o desire_v our_o proof_n of_o fact_n shall_v yield_v to_o his_o way_n of_o reason_v and_o i_o hope_v mr._n arnaud_n will_v not_o take_v it_o ill_a that_o in_o make_v use_n of_o his_o own_o term_n and_o accommodate_v they_o to_o my_o subject_n i_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a that_o he_o conte_v and_o heat_v himself_o about_o 55_o lib._n 10._o ch._n 7_o pag._n 55_o this_o subject_a of_o a_o alteration_n argument_n signify_v nothing_o in_o matter_n which_o be_v obvious_a to_o sense_n and_o we_o can_v make_v they_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o in_o this_o case_n it_o remain_v for_o the_o finish_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o shall_v satisfy_v some_o of_o 10._o lib._n 1._o ch._n 1_o p._n 10._o mr._n aruands_n minute_n observation_n the_o first_o of_o which_o be_v that_o it_o be_v every_o whit_n as_o bad_a to_o oppose_v vain_a argument_n against_o proof_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v firm_a and_o solid_a as_o to_o object_v solid_a and_o convince_a argument_n against_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a proof_n but_o there_o be_v no_o body_n who_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o and_o this_o be_v not_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n when_o he_o shall_v have_v make_v it_o appear_v our_o proof_n be_v vain_a and_o frivolous_a he_o shall_v be_v permit_v to_o oppose_v against_o they_o his_o argument_n yea_o and_o call_v they_o solid_a and_o convince_a one_o till_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v refute_v but_o our_o proof_n must_v always_o be_v begin_v withal_o their_o weakness_n and_o vanity_n lay_v open_a for_o without_o this_o we_o shall_v still_o be_v at_o liberty_n to_o hold_v they_o for_o good_a firm_a and_o conclusive_a he_o add_v that_o not_o only_a proof_n of_o fact_n be_v invalidated_n by_o proof_n of_o reason_v but_o likewise_o that_o proof_n of_o fact_n be_v reducible_a in_o some_o sort_n to_o proof_n of_o reason_v and_o even_o all_o of_o they_o ground_v on_o arguing_n like_a unto_o those_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v on_o the_o impossibility_n of_o certain_a event_n and_o that_o it_o be_v from_o these_o arguing_n they_o borrow_v whatsoever_o they_o have_v of_o solidity_n and_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o literal_a proof_n take_v from_o history_n to_o establish_v certain_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o by_o the_o proof_n of_o moses_n miracle_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o saviour_n concern_v which_o the_o humane_a certitude_n depend_v on_o a_o moral_a impossibility_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o perceivable_a but_o only_o by_o force_n of_o reason_v from_o thence_o he_o conclude_v that_o a_o proof_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v because_o it_o be_v call_v a_o proof_n draw_v from_o reason_n no_o more_o than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v because_o it_o be_v call_v a_o proof_n of_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o that_o both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v contemptible_a or_o estimable_a according_o as_o they_o be_v obscure_a or_o evident_a true_a or_o false_a slight_a or_o solid_a and_o that_o it_o be_v on_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o proof_n and_o not_o by_o its_o kind_a we_o ought_v to_o form_v our_o judgement_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v we_o must_v distinguish_v two_o kind_n of_o proof_n of_o fact_n the_o one_o immediate_n the_o other_o mediate_v the_o immediate_a depend_v on_o our_o sense_n the_o mediate_v consist_v in_o the_o deposition_n of_o witness_n the_o certainty_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o do_v not_o depend_v on_o argument_n it_o be_v evident_a in_o itself_o by_o its_o own_o nature_n and_o original_a for_o in_o that_o we_o believe_v our_o sense_n this_o persuasion_n come_v not_o simple_o from_o reason_n dictitate_v this_o to_o we_o but_o because_o their_o testimony_n be_v persuasive_a in_o itself_o and_o that_o we_o can_v doubt_v of_o the_o thing_n we_o see_v unless_o we_o have_v corrupt_v our_o own_o nature_n by_o a_o strange_a extravagancy_n as_o to_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o proof_n we_o must_v consider_v they_o either_o absolute_o or_o in_o their_o circumstance_n if_o absolute_o it_o be_v clear_a their_o certitude_n depend_v on_o argument_n for_o we_o do_v not_o give_v credit_n to_o witness_n but_o only_o upon_o the_o account_n that_o reason_n dictitate_v we_o ought_v to_o believe_v they_o yet_o do_v not_o this_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v common_o strong_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o fact_n they_o prove_v than_o the_o reason_v ground_v on_o the_o same_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o that_o which_o distinguish_v they_o be_v not_o their_o simple_a kind_n but_o the_o matter_n or_o subject_a to_o which_o they_o be_v apply_v see_v that_o a_o argument_n be_v more_o just_a and_o certain_a when_o it_o establish_v the_o fidelity_n of_o witness_n than_o when_o it_o will_v decide_v the_o fact_n itself_o concern_v which_o the_o witness_n make_v their_o deposition_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o testimony_n authorise_v by_o strong_a argument_n aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o those_o which_o be_v weak_a and_o after_o this_o manner_n do_v we_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o saviour_n resurrection_n because_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v ground_v on_o mighty_a argument_n stand_v more_o firm_a than_o all_o that_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n be_v able_a to_o devise_v against_o it_o but_o if_o the_o proof_n take_v from_o witness_n be_v attend_v with_o this_o circumstance_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o fidelity_n of_o the_o witness_n be_v agree_v upon_o and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o acknowledge_v and_o uncontrollable_a principle_n then_o i_o say_v this_o be_v no_o long_o a_o mediate_v proof_n but_o a_o immediate_a one_o it_o depend_v no_o long_o on_o argument_n for_o the_o validity_n of_o a_o testimony_n be_v a_o point_n once_o decide_v which_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o proof_n but_o only_o as_o a_o undoubted_a principle_n it_o than_o remain_v only_o to_o know_v what_o the_o witness_n depose_v and_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o which_o we_o may_v be_v inform_v by_o our_o sense_n whence_o it_o follow_v we_o must_v examine_v their_o testimony_n and_o that_o this_o way_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o that_o which_o be_v argumentative_a on_o the_o same_o fact_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o father_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o
what_o it_o believe_v or_o in_o beginning_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o it_o do_v not_o believe_v or_o that_o the_o representative_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o council_n or_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o principle_n be_v natural_a the_o second_o be_v of_o a_o supernatural_a order_n i_o handle_v not_o at_o present_a this_o point_n whether_o they_o be_v false_a or_o true_a at_o the_o bottom_n it_o suffice_v i_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n so_o difficult_a and_o require_v so_o much_o time_n that_o to_o expect_v ordinary_a apprehension_n to_o examine_v they_o be_v plain_o to_o deride_v they_o i_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o in_o the_o six_o chapter_n where_o i_o shall_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o extricate_v himself_o out_o of_o those_o perplexity_n wherein_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n engage_v he_o or_o to_o rest_v secure_a on_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o it_o be_v build_v it_o suffice_v i_o to_o say_v that_o people_n be_v not_o common_o so_o regular_a in_o thing_n which_o they_o believe_v by_o a_o distinct_a faith_n but_o that_o they_o be_v willing_a likewise_o to_o receive_v new_a doctrine_n and_o enlarge_v by_o this_o mean_v the_o number_n of_o popular_a mystery_n the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o divine_a grace_n be_v never_o popular_a in_o all_o the_o consequence_n draw_v from_o theology_n and_o yet_o we_o know_v that_o all_o imaginable_a care_n have_v be_v take_v to_o make_v these_o consequence_n popular_a there_o have_v be_v make_v on_o this_o subject_a i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o book_n adapt_v to_o woman_n capacity_n there_o have_v be_v catechism_n compile_v intit'led_a catechism_n of_o grace_n which_o evident_o show_v it_o have_v be_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a to_o make_v the_o people_n receive_v by_o way_n of_o illustration_n or_o addition_n article_n which_o they_o know_v not_o before_o whence_o it_o follow_v it_o have_v be_v suppose_v they_o be_v capable_a of_o change_n for_o else_o to_o what_o purpose_n serve_v these_o catechism_n if_o the_o people_n can_v of_o themselves_o either_o diminish_v or_o augment_v the_o number_n of_o mystery_n which_o they_o hold_v by_o a_o distinct_a faith_n this_o principle_n be_v not_o then_o so_o certain_a but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v of_o nor_o so_o clear_a or_o evident_a in_o itself_o that_o the_o most_o simple_a may_v be_v ascertain_v in_o it_o have_v before_o their_o eye_n a_o matter_n which_o appear_v so_o contrary_a to_o it_o as_o to_o the_o second_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o question_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o council_n or_o pope_n be_v not_o so_o easy_a that_o the_o most_o simple_a people_n may_v master_v it_o all_o society_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n oppose_v it_o if_o this_o church_n have_v this_o she_o have_v it_o by_o a_o particular_a privilege_n which_o must_v be_v examine_v before_o it_o be_v receive_v for_o it_o can_v be_v entertain_v on_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o this_o church_n without_o fall_v into_o a_o extravagancy_n and_o ridiculous_a circle_n which_o be_v that_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v infallible_a because_o she_o say_v so_o and_o we_o believe_v what_o she_o say_v in_o this_o matter_n to_o be_v true_a because_o she_o be_v infallible_a before_o that_o the_o most_o simple_a people_n can_v acquiesce_v in_o its_o authority_n this_o authority_n must_v also_o appear_v to_o they_o to_o be_v undeniable_a by_o thing_n independent_a on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o which_o may_v be_v judge_v of_o distinct_o by_o themselves_o otherwise_o this_o will_v be_v to_o begin_v a_o argument_n by_o its_o conclusion_n for_o this_o will_v be_v near_o the_o matter_n such_o a_o kind_n of_o reason_v as_o this_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a in_o what_o she_o say_v now_o she_o affirm_v she_o be_v infallible_a from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v so_o a_o person_n in_o who_o we_o suppose_v there_o be_v the_o least_o dram_n of_o sense_n will_v never_o be_v convince_v by_o this_o argument_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o must_v first_o make_v out_o its_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n to_o the_o most_o simple_a man_n live_v before_o it_o can_v be_v suppose_v that_o such_o a_o one_o or_o any_o other_o will_v receive_v its_o doctrine_n found_v on_o this_o principle_n now_o i_o affirm_v that_o this_o disquisition_n be_v beyond_o the_o reach_n of_o mean_a capacity_n for_o if_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o way_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o so_o plain_o describe_v therein_o but_o that_o the_o place_n on_o which_o it_o be_v ground_v may_v be_v capable_a of_o another_o sense_n they_o be_v controvert_v place_n and_o a_o man_n must_v read_v whole_a volume_n to_o prevent_v his_o be_v rash_a or_o passionate_a in_o his_o judgement_n now_o if_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o make_v such_o a_o disquisition_n and_o a_o judgement_n according_o he_o will_v then_o be_v able_a to_o enter_v upon_o the_o examination_n of_o particular_a doctrine_n and_o to_o discern_v the_o conformity_n which_o each_o of_o they_o have_v with_o the_o scripture_n in_o relation_n to_o what_o be_v produce_v on_o either_o side_n now_o if_o this_o doctrine_n be_v attempt_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o argument_n he_o that_o endeavour_v to_o do_v this_o engage_v himself_o yet_o far_a into_o tedious_a prolixity_n and_o difficulty_n which_o surpass_v ordinary_a apprehension_n in_o a_o word_n mr._n arnaud_n do_v himself_o decide_v the_o question_n this_o infallibility_n say_v he_o 66._o lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o p._n 66._o be_v not_o a_o thing_n clear_a in_o itself_o see_v it_o depend_v only_o on_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n not_o be_v natural_o infallible_a we_o must_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v supernatural_o so_o either_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n or_o by_o a_o long_a series_n of_o argument_n ordinary_a capacity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o examine_v this_o long_a sequel_n of_o argument_n nor_o sufficient_o to_o discuss_v the_o principle_n of_o faith_n to_o discern_v if_o this_o pretend_a infallibility_n may_v be_v draw_v thence_o and_o it_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v choose_v rather_o to_o take_v the_o popular_a infallibility_n for_o his_o principle_n than_o that_o of_o privilege_n mr._n arnaud_n testify_v as_o much_o for_o speak_v of_o the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o church_n alter_v its_o belief_n on_o the_o article_n which_o be_v not_o popular_a that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o this_o infallibility_n of_o privilege_n now_o in_o question_n reason_n say_v he_o do_v not_o clear_o show_v we_o this_o impossibility_n so_o that_o this_o author_n mean_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v desirous_a to_o ground_v his_o argument_n on_o 68_o lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o pag._n 68_o a_o principle_n of_o reason_n and_o humane_a evidence_n and_o not_o on_o a_o principle_n of_o iradition_n and_o authority_n or_o on_o abstract_a and_o remote_a arguing_n he_o must_v then_o necessary_o contain_v himself_o within_o the_o reach_n of_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o impossibility_n of_o a_o change_n appear_v plain_o by_o reason_n there_o be_v particular_a way_n of_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n never_o fall_v into_o a_o error_n on_o any_o point_n which_o it_o propose_v but_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o sense_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v fall_v into_o error_n relate_v to_o matter_n of_o faith_n see_v they_o be_v distinct_o know_v and_o understand_v by_o all_o the_o faithful_a the_o infallibility_n then_o of_o privilege_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v immediate_o apparent_a to_o sense_n there_o need_v more_o abstract_v and_o remote_a argument_n to_o prove_v it_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o person_n of_o ordinary_a capacity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v this_o much_o less_o be_v they_o fit_a for_o this_o shall_v this_o point_n be_v undertake_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o way_n of_o tradition_n for_o it_o will_v be_v to_o send_v they_o far_o enough_o in_o oblige_v they_o to_o read_v the_o father_n and_o council_n to_o be_v inform_v in_o this_o matter_n beside_o that_o the_o father_n and_o council_n be_v themselves_o the_o representative_a church_n and_o who_o authority_n be_v now_o in_o question_n and_o so_o consequent_o their_o testimony_n upon_o this_o account_n will_v signify_v nothing_o it_o be_v then_o manifest_a that_o common_a apprehension_n not_o be_v able_a to_o ascertain_v themselves_o in_o the_o infallibility_n of_o privilege_n as_o i_o come_v now_o from_o prove_v nor_o in_o the_o point_n of_o popular_a infallibility_n as_o i_o have_v already_o hint_v and_o which_o i_o shall_v do_v
one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v oblige_v to_o render_v themselves_o up_o to_o that_o evidence_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n because_o our_o proof_n of_o fact_n can_v be_v account_v by_o they_o but_o as_o unevident_a and_o uncertain_a and_o moreover_o this_o treatise_n be_v fit_v to_o all_o capacity_n and_o ground_v on_o the_o light_n of_o common_a sense_n it_o may_v be_v understand_v by_o all_o in_o general_n this_o be_v the_o summary_n of_o the_o five_o chapter_n in_o the_o six_o chapter_n he_o extend_v his_o pretention_n a_o great_a way_n far_o for_o have_v gain_v the_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a to_o his_o side_n he_o will_v not_o suffer_v even_o those_o who_o be_v obstinate_a among_o we_o to_o escape_v his_o hand_n it_o not_o 53._o lib._n 1._o c._n 6._o p._n 53._o be_v necessary_a for_o this_o say_v he_o to_o enter_v into_o a_o examination_n of_o all_o those_o passage_n without_o which_o mr._n claude_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n can_v prove_v nothing_o but_o lest_o this_o pretention_n shall_v at_o first_o amaze_v people_n observe_v after_o what_o sort_n he_o declare_v his_o meaning_n he_o say_v then_o that_o our_o proof_n of_o fact_n appear_v to_o we_o evident_a on_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n on_o the_o other_o these_o two_o contrary_a evidence_n necessary_o cause_v a_o suspension_n of_o our_o judgement_n and_o hinder_v we_o from_o determine_v and_o throw_v we_o upon_o doubt_n and_o uncertainty_n and_o thus_o far_o tend_v the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n which_o lead_v we_o hither_o mr._n arnaud_n take_v we_o in_o hand_n and_o tell_v we_o we_o can_v any_o long_o refuse_v to_o leave_v our_o sect_n and_o pass_v over_o to_o the_o catholic_n religion_n first_o because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o maternal_a original_a successive_a and_o catholic_n society_n from_o which_o we_o must_v never_o make_v aschisme_n second_o because_o we_o must_v ever_o be_v full_o convince_v of_o this_o church_n error_n before_o we_o separate_v from_o it_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n have_v a_o full_a certainty_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o that_o society_n we_o be_v of_o to_o keep_v in_o it_o three_o because_o the_o church_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n and_o authority_n and_o that_o the_o minister_n who_o have_v not_o be_v above_o a_o hundred_o year_n stand_v have_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n four_o because_o that_o people_n of_o ordinary_a capacity_n among_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o yield_v themselves_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o consequent_o to_o return_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o ought_v to_o serve_v for_o example_n to_o the_o judicious_a it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o all_o not_o to_o return_v to_o this_o society_n to_o which_o the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n must_v necessary_o belong_v last_o he_o confess_v that_o all_o these_o argument_n suppose_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o treatise_n be_v clear_a and_o substantial_a and_o maintain_v that_o be_v may_v reasonable_o make_v this_o supposition_n to_o convince_v i_o i_o have_v no_o other_o way_n leave_v to_o defend_v myself_o than_o by_o show_v these_o proof_n of_o the_o treatise_n be_v invalid_n and_o so_o by_o consequence_n i_o ought_v not_o to_o beat_v the_o air_n as_o i_o have_v do_v by_o declaim_v against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n method_n and_o thus_o have_v i_o epitomise_v these_o two_o mighty_a chapter_n in_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v take_v care_n to_o illustrate_v the_o glorious_a design_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o this_o perhaps_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o important_a point_n in_o his_o whole_a work_n he_o have_v therefore_o spend_v thereupon_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o wit_n and_o eloquence_n yet_o howsoever_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v i_o know_v not_o we_o be_v so_o different_a in_o our_o apprehension_n that_o have_v behold_v the_o explication_n of_o all_o this_o curious_a project_n i_o have_v find_v nothing_o at_o all_o therein_o of_o reason_n nor_o coherence_n of_o part_n neither_o in_o his_o supposition_n nor_o consequence_n and_o this_o i_o shall_v brief_o and_o clear_o manifest_a first_o methinks_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n impose_v on_o the_o world_n in_o propose_v as_o it_o be_v from_o we_o a_o difficulty_n which_o weaken_v our_o cause_n although_o it_o do_v not_o concern_v we_o for_o i_o do_v not_o pretend_v that_o one_o of_o our_o communion_n into_o who_o hand_n shall_v be_v put_v the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o who_o be_v able_a to_o read_v it_o be_v absolute_o oblige_v before_o he_o form_v his_o judgement_n thereupon_o to_o make_v a_o particular_a comparison_n of_o our_o proof_n with_o those_o of_o that_o treatise_n i_o maintain_v that_o he_o may_v reject_v these_o last_o by_o the_o general_a consideration_n alone_o which_o he_o may_v make_v without_o enter_v into_o the_o examination_n of_o each_o particular_a because_o that_o in_o this_o general_a view_n he_o will_v find_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o reject_v they_o viz._n that_o they_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o but_o bare_a probability_n nor_o can_v equal_v our_o proof_n of_o fact_n in_o clearness_n and_o solidity_n which_o be_v ground_v on_o common_a sense_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o treatise_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v and_o that_o if_o we_o take_v the_o trouble_n to_o examine_v they_o it_o be_v out_o of_o condescension_n not_o necessity_n in_o the_o second_o place_n mr._n arnaud_n have_v not_o exact_o reckon_v up_o the_o several_a rank_n of_o man_n who_o may_v profitable_o read_v the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o in_o our_o communion_n judge_v this_o perusal_n needless_a will_v not_o mind_v it_o for_o they_o will_v neither_o have_v leisure_n nor_o curiosity_n enough_o for_o this_o the_o title_n alone_o will_v disgust_v they_o without_o proceed_v any_o far_o but_o then_o he_o will_v say_v that_o these_o be_v unjust_a and_o obstinate_a person_n we_o believe_v it_o a_o point_n of_o rashness_n to_o judge_v of_o a_o piece_n of_o ground_n before_o we_o have_v 26._o lib._n 1._o c._n 6._o p._n 26._o hear_v the_o owner_n experience_v of_o it_o will_v it_o not_o then_o be_v a_o more_o inexcusable_a rashness_n to_o pretend_v to_o judge_v of_o a_o difference_n which_o respect_v our_o salvation_n by_o argument_n offer_v only_o on_o one_o side_n in_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v transport_v by_o the_o first_o impression_n the_o least_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v by_o they_o who_o pretend_v to_o judge_v of_o difference_n in_o religion_n be_v to_o hear_v both_o party_n and_o weigh_v their_o reason_n i_o answer_v that_o these_o person_n i_o mention_v will_v act_v very_o just_o and_o reasonable_o in_o do_v what_o i_o say_v for_o there_o be_v two_o question_n the_o one_o touch_v what_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v concern_v the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o other_o touch_v what_o have_v be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o first_o question_n be_v once_o dispatch_v we_o need_v not_o trouble_v ourselves_o about_o the_o second_o now_o as_o concern_v the_o person_n in_o our_o communion_n the_o first_o question_n be_v solve_v to_o they_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o this_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n this_o be_v it_o which_o judge_v we_o all_o and_o have_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n guide_v his_o reason_n by_o this_o principle_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o we_o but_o will_v glad_o hearken_v to_o he_o but_o instead_o of_o this_o he_o immediate_o tell_v we_o of_o nothing_o but_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o age_n and_o persuade_v himself_o that_o henceforward_o the_o minister_n will_v be_v no_o more_o hearken_v to_o when_o they_o say_v in_o general_a that_o we_o must_v only_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o question_n touch_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o age_n may_v be_v decide_v three_o way_n first_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a charity_n second_o by_o the_o confidence_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v in_o our_o saviour_n promise_n and_o care_n of_o his_o providence_n three_o by_o a_o exact_a knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n of_o all_o age_n now_o this_o last_o mean_n be_v above_o the_o capacity_n of_o most_o people_n be_v needless_a it_o be_v enough_o to_o a_o well_o mean_v person_n that_o he_o see_v in_o scripture_n what_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v touch_v the_o eucharist_n and_o thereupon_o charitable_o presume_v that_o the_o father_n have_v not_o deviate_v from_o this_o faith_n into_o capital_a error_n it_o suffice_v he_o to_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n promise_n to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o will_v never_o forsake_v it_o have_v have_v their_o
propound_v it_o to_o their_o hearer_n nor_o unfold_v the_o mystery_n of_o it_o nor_o defend_v its_o consequence_n as_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o have_v without_o question_n do_v have_v they_o believe_v it_o and_o this_o be_v what_o i_o say_v and_o mr._n daillé_n do_v not_o gainsay_v it_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a a_o few_o line_n after_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v recite_v he_o lay_v down_o this_o general_a proposition_n that_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o father_n on_o the_o controvert_v point_n which_o they_o so_o much_o value_n be_v of_o some_o weight_n and_o amount_v perhaps_o to_o a_o clear_a proof_n but_o sure_o not_o in_o favour_n of_o they_o ibid._n ibid._n who_o hold_v the_o affirmative_a so_o far_o mr._n daillé_n and_o i_o speak_v precise_o the_o same_o language_n but_o i_o affirm_v likewise_o that_o beside_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o father_n there_o be_v to_o be_v find_v several_a thing_n in_o their_o write_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o i_o hold_v this_o proof_n do_v evident_o conclude_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v these_o doctrine_n mr._n daillé_n speak_v in_o general_n of_o this_o order_n of_o proof_n say_v he_o free_o confess_v that_o every_o wise_a man_n faith_n be_v as_o a_o body_n who_o part_n have_v a_o dependence_n on_o each_o other_o so_o that_o we_o ibid._n ibid._n may_v know_v by_o the_o thing_n he_o express_v what_o he_o think_v of_o those_o which_o he_o express_v not_o whether_o he_o do_v believe_v they_o or_o not_o it_o be_v unlikely_a he_o will_v admit_v what_o do_v evident_o oppose_v his_o opinion_n or_o reject_v their_o necessary_a consequence_n to_o which_o he_o add_v that_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o way_n of_o handle_v the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n will_v be_v most_o profitable_a and_o more_o proper_a to_o dive_v into_o their_o bottom_n than_o any_o other_o provide_v we_o suppose_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n be_v all_o of_o a_o piece_n and_o do_v no_o way_n contradict_v itself_o and_o the_o other_o that_o he_o who_o will_v judge_v after_o this_o manner_n must_v have_v a_o pierce_a wit_n a_o good_a memory_n and_o a_o judgement_n free_a from_o prejudice_n as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o supposition_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_o out_o of_o doubt_n and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o that_o all_o these_o quality_n do_v seldom_o meet_v in_o one_o man_n what_o he_o say_v be_v true_a in_o this_o general_a consideration_n but_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v i_o from_o add_v that_o in_o the_o particular_a case_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n the_o first_o supposition_n be_v out_o of_o doubt_n and_o the_o second_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o make_v this_o apparent_a we_o need_v but_o consider_v on_o one_o hand_n the_o rank_a these_o doctrine_n hold_v in_o a_o church_n which_o believe_v they_o and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o number_n and_o nature_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o oppose_v they_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o example_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n show_v we_o that_o they_o that_o believe_v they_o respect_v they_o as_o inviolable_a mystery_n which_o must_v not_o be_v call_v in_o question_n and_o such_o as_o be_v of_o great_a importance_n in_o religion_n and_o which_o must_v be_v defend_v against_o the_o contradiction_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o for_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v arm_v with_o the_o great_a caution_n as_o be_v in_o short_a mystery_n which_o be_v daily_o represent_v we_o in_o their_o celebration_n and_o participation_n of_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o clear_o and_o plain_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o the_o end_n every_o one_o may_v know_v that_o what_o he_o receive_v be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o his_o saviour_n and_o give_v he_o the_o worship_n due_a to_o a_o creator_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o the_o ancient_a church_n believe_v these_o thing_n it_o have_v believe_v they_o in_o this_o degree_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a but_o the_o father_n in_o general_n will_v take_v such_o care_n as_o not_o to_o maintain_v thing_n which_o overthrow_v they_o or_o reject_v other_o which_o be_v the_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o they_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a i_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v all_o of_o they_o be_v thus_o inconsiderate_a as_o to_o assert_v several_a thing_n which_o may_v just_o scandalize_v their_o follower_n and_o that_o in_o so_o ticklish_a and_o well_o know_v a_o point_n as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o they_o every_o day_n receive_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o nature_n and_o number_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n contrary_a to_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n we_o shall_v observe_v they_o be_v contrary_a to_o they_o by_o a_o primary_n immediate_a and_o evident_a contrariety_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o sharp_a wit_n nor_o great_a memory_n but_o a_o sound_a understanding_n and_o disinterest_v judgement_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o great_a number_n and_o as_o well_o prevail_v over_o a_o man_n mind_n by_o their_o multitude_n as_o their_o quality_n and_o this_o mr._n daillé_n have_v not_o deny_v so_o that_o as_o i_o do_v not_o thwart_v his_o rule_n so_o he_o do_v not_o oppose_v my_o exception_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n betwixt_o we_o but_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v reply_v mr._n daillé_n do_v oppose_v our_o exception_n for_o he_o apply_v his_o rule_n to_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n acknowledge_v that_o as_o there_o be_v passage_n in_o the_o father_n write_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v inexplicable_a in_o 1._o c._n 1._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n sense_n so_o there_o be_v likewise_o some_o which_o can_v in_o no_o wise_n admit_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o protestant_n as_o they_o which_o express_o import_v that_o the_o bread_n change_v its_o nature_n that_o by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n it_o become_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o word_n and_o such_o like_a if_o cardinal_n perron_n say_v he_o and_o other_o sublime_a wit_n on_o both_o side_n protest_v they_o find_v no_o difficulty_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v they_o say_v it_o only_o out_o of_o a_o bravadoe_n turn_v the_o best_a side_n outward_n or_o else_o that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v very_o dim_a sight_v to_o perceive_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n where_o these_o people_n behold_v nothing_o but_o light_n and_o elsewhere_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o passage_n which_o seem_v to_o deny_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n determine_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n who_o precede_v that_o council_n let_v the_o father_n add_v he_o affirm_v or_o deny_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v real_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v not_o for_o all_o this_o contradict_v thy_o opinion_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v whether_o romanist_n or_o protestant_n more_o strong_o than_o the_o father_n of_o antioch_n do_v in_o appearance_n contradict_v they_o of_o nice_a to_o which_o we_o may_v now_o add_v that_o as_o the_o arian_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o draw_v to_o their_o opinion_n and_o allege_v as_o decisive_a part_n of_o their_o question_n such_o transient_a discourse_n as_o be_v innocent_o mean_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n without_o any_o design_n of_o treat_v on_o this_o so_o likewise_o we_o have_v no_o cause_n neither_o thou_o i_o say_v nor_o i_o to_o allege_v as_o sentence_n pronounce_v in_o our_o case_n which_o have_v be_v state_v but_o of_o late_a the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v write_v by_o they_o on_o other_o matter_n several_a age_n before_o our_o controversy_n begin_v concern_v which_o they_o have_v express_v themselves_o very_o different_o and_o obscure_o and_o even_o sometime_o in_o appearance_n contradictory_o have_v show_v afterward_o that_o the_o father_n design_v to_o be_v obscure_a in_o their_o discourse_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n to_o hide_v this_o mystery_n from_o the_o catecumenist_n see_v then_o say_v he_o that_o in_o this_o and_o other_o matter_n they_o design_v to_o conceal_v their_o thought_n we_o must_v not_o therefore_o wonder_v if_o their_o expression_n have_v be_v oftentimes_o obscure_a and_o that_o which_o common_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o obscurity_n if_o they_o seem_v sometime_o to_o differ_v and_o contradict_v one_o another_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v well_o understand_v do_v not_o at_o all_o obstruct_v my_o exception_n nor_o what_o i_o say_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n mr._n daillé_n speak_v of_o the_o particular_a judgement_n which_o we_o
of_o they_o how_o it_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v alter_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n they_o will_v answer_v their_o salvation_n depend_v not_o on_o this_o knowledge_n but_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v it_o have_v make_v a_o alteration_n see_v it_o believe_v at_o this_o day_n what_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v and_o which_o without_o doubt_n have_v not_o be_v believe_v heretofore_o as_o they_o judge_v out_o of_o charity_n to_o the_o ancient_n shall_v they_o be_v urge_v to_o tell_v how_o this_o have_v happen_v they_o will_v answer_v again_o this_o be_v not_o a_o account_n wherein_o their_o salvation_n be_v concern_v and_o that_o this_o question_v aught_o to_o be_v propose_v to_o those_o person_n who_o know_v it_o and_o in_o all_o this_o they_o will_v have_v reason_n if_o this_o treatise_n be_v offer_v to_o those_o of_o the_o second_o rank_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o they_o who_o be_v learn_v and_o have_v have_v the_o curiosity_n of_o inform_v themselves_o and_o to_o who_o proper_o the_o second_o question_n belong_v they_o will_v likewise_o answer_v they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o this_o method_n have_v already_o inform_v themselves_o by_o a_o natural_a and_o direct_a way_n which_o be_v of_o more_o value_n than_o all_o these_o conjecture_n or_o if_o they_o have_v not_o do_v it_o they_o will_v do_v it_o be_v not_o so_o silly_a as_o to_o shut_v their_o eye_n and_o reject_v the_o evidence_n of_o their_o sense_n to_o betake_v themselves_o to_o a_o method_n wherein_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o confusion_n to_o be_v expect_v and_o these_o last_o will_v have_v reason_n too_o but_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n we_o must_v suppose_v that_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o treatise_n be_v evident_a for_o they_o can_v be_v suppose_v false_a till_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v examine_v you_o ought_v then_o to_o have_v begin_v here_o wherefore_o your_o exception_n signify_v nothing_o i_o answer_v that_o these_o supposition_n be_v not_o just_a than_o his_o argument_n for_o if_o these_o curious_a person_n who_o i_o mention_v have_v already_o take_v the_o pain_n they_o ought_v whereby_o to_o ascertain_v themselves_o in_o the_o proof_n of_o fact_n they_o will_v be_v prepare_v to_o judge_v that_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o treatise_n be_v false_a and_o captious_a because_o that_o moral_a impossibility_n such_o as_o these_o be_v and_o in_o such_o a_o subject_a as_o this_o can_v subsist_v against_o proof_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v immediate_a certain_a and_o evident_a as_o we_o be_v if_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o take_v this_o pain_n i_o say_v that_o without_o examine_v whether_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o treatise_n be_v good_a or_o bad_a they_o will_v only_o mind_v the_o method_n and_o by_o compare_v it_o with_o that_o of_o discussion_n if_o they_o be_v man_n of_o reason_n they_o will_v prefer_v this_o last_o before_o the_o other_o because_o that_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n most_o natural_a in_o itself_o and_o more_o certain_a in_o its_o proof_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o with_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n which_o have_v make_v such_o a_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n will_v it_o be_v of_o no_o use_n there_o be_v a_o crew_n of_o people_n in_o the_o world_n who_o be_v curious_a and_o idle_a both_o together_o who_o be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o opinion_n of_o former_a age_n on_o these_o famous_a article_n about_o which_o europe_n be_v at_o this_o day_n divide_v but_o yet_o will_v be_v at_o no_o pain_n for_o this_o because_o labour_n be_v distasteful_a to_o they_o and_o they_o have_v other_o thing_n to_o do_v it_o be_v then_o for_o such_o person_n as_o these_o this_o treatise_n have_v be_v write_v for_o it_o court_v they_o and_o present_v itself_o to_o they_o whether_o at_o ease_n or_o in_o business_n it_o only_o desire_v they_o to_o spend_v two_o hour_n on_o its_o read_n whereby_o to_o decide_v a_o point_n of_o this_o importance_n the_o style_n of_o it_o be_v curious_a and_o entice_a and_o its_o expression_n emphatical_a it_o win_v on_o the_o mind_n and_o lead_v it_o insensible_o where_o it_o please_v all_o this_o flatter_v man_n curiosity_n and_o lazyness_n both_o together_o but_o if_o this_o sort_n of_o people_n love_v their_o salvation_n as_o we_o may_v suppose_v they_o ought_v we_o shall_v then_o have_v but_o two_o or_o three_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o they_o first_o that_o they_o beware_v of_o these_o short_a method_n which_o favour_n at_o the_o same_o time_n two_o inclination_n which_o seldom_o agree_v i_o mean_v idleness_n and_o curiosity_n for_o we_o can_v arrive_v at_o any_o certainty_n in_o these_o kind_n of_o question_n if_o we_o do_v not_o earnest_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o they_o for_o labour_n and_o knowledge_n do_v always_o go_v together_o and_o it_o common_o happen_v that_o they_o who_o thus_o promise_v we_o such_o great_a knowledge_n without_o any_o trouble_n do_v cheat_v we_o two_o way_n for_o they_o lead_v we_o into_o tedious_a prolixity_n and_o dreadful_a difficulty_n and_o at_o last_o have_v tire_v we_o they_o leave_v we_o as_o wise_a as_o we_o be_v at_o first_o and_o this_o be_v exact_o the_o case_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n if_o we_o right_o consider_v it_o for_o it_o promise_v we_o immediate_o nothing_o but_o perspicuity_n facility_n and_o conviction_n it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o undeniable_a truth_n yet_o let_v a_o man_n take_v but_o the_o pain_n to_o examine_v only_o his_o fix_a point_n which_o be_v his_o first_o supposition_n on_o which_o the_o whole_a stress_n of_o his_o book_n lie_v and_o he_o will_v find_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v certain_a in_o it_o i_o mean_v the_o year_n one_o thousand_o fifty_o three_o whereinis_fw-la berengarius_fw-la be_v at_o first_o condemn_v and_o in_o which_o time_n the_o author_n of_o the_o treatise_n pretend'_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v agree_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n now_o to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o this_o particular_a we_o shall_v have_v a_o exact_a knowledge_n of_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v discern_v whether_o this_o condemnation_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v the_o real_a effect_n of_o the_o church_n union_n or_o only_o that_o of_o a_o party_n which_o be_v then_o the_o strong_a at_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n we_o shall_v know_v each_o particular_a matter_n of_o this_o great_a affair_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o judge_v whether_o humane_a interest_n have_v no_o share_n in_o it_o whether_o those_o that_o be_v concern_v in_o it_o do_v not_o act_v against_o their_o conscience_n and_o whether_o the_o proceeding_n be_v just_a and_o regular_a we_o must_v examine_v the_o state_n of_o prince_n ecclesiastic_n and_o people_n to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o this_o suppose_a union_n we_o shall_v have_v before_o we_o the_o write_n of_o berengarius_fw-la and_o other_o who_o hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n to_o understand_v their_o argument_n and_o defence_n but_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v impossible_a we_o have_v no_o other_o account_n of_o this_o history_n than_o what_o some_o interest_v writer_n have_v be_v please_v to_o give_v we_o and_o in_o which_o there_o be_v relation_n just_o suspect_v to_o be_v false_a the_o secret_a design_n and_o motive_n which_o then_o prevail_v be_v out_o of_o our_o reach_n we_o know_v scarce_o any_o thing_n more_o of_o the_o person_n who_o then_o make_v up_o the_o church_n but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o bury_v in_o profound_a ignorance_n the_o write_n of_o berengarin_n and_o his_o follower_n be_v lose_v for_o there_o have_v be_v care_n take_v to_o extinguish_v the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o in_o short_a this_o be_v a_o abyss_n wherein_o we_o behold_v nothing_o whereby_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o affirm_v with_o any_o certainty_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v unite_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n for_o a_o man_n to_o give_v credit_n to_o any_o relation_n of_o berengarius_n adversary_n who_o brag_v that_o their_o opinion_n be_v that_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o will_v be_v to_o be_v over_o credulous_a in_o any_o affair_n of_o this_o importance_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o the_o contrary_n appear_v by_o substantial_a proof_n which_o shall_v be_v examine_v before_o we_o rest_v satisfy_v in_o they_o so_o that_o here_o we_o be_v already_o sufficient_o perplex_v in_o the_o first_o particular_a and_o shall_v be_v no_o less_o in_o the_o other_o if_o we_o will_v be_v ascertain_v in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o treatise_n we_o shall_v know_v perfect_o the_o temper_n of_o the_o people_n their_o condition_n and_o principal_a circumstance_n in_o the_o age_n which_o precede_v the_o eleven_o century_n we_o shall_v know_v how_o the_o body_n of_o the_o ecclesiastic_n be_v compose_v
we_o in_o suspense_n what_o follow_v thence_o that_o we_o must_v be_v determine_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o indeed_o mr._n arnaud_n say_v and_o i_o maintain_v we_o ought_v whole_o to_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o leave_v those_o perplexity_n touch_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n that_o we_o may_v ground_v our_o faith_n only_o on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o i_o pretend_v by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v adhere_v to_o the_o reform_a church_n what_o must_v we_o then_o do_v about_o this_o new_a difference_n mr._n arnaud_n and_o i_o must_v dispute_v concern_v the_o scripture_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o know_v which_o of_o we_o two_o have_v most_o reason_n and_o these_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o this_o admirable_a method_n the_o glory_n of_o our_o time_n and_o quintessence_n of_o humane_a wit_n which_o after_o several_a wind_n and_o turn_n several_a hot_a debate_n and_o sharp_a dispute_n and_o after_o a_o invitation_n of_o all_o france_n and_o all_o they_o of_o either_o communion_n to_o the_o behold_v of_o this_o famous_a contest_v refer_v the_o matter_n at_o length_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o indeed_o if_o we_o continue_v to_o dispute_v after_o this_o manner_n i_o think_v the_o world_n have_v little_a reason_n to_o concern_v itself_o in_o our_o debate_n see_v it_o be_v a_o vain_a amusement_n we_o wrestle_v against_o one_o another_o with_o all_o our_o may_v we_o sweat_v and_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n and_o make_v our_o book_n be_v buy_v dear_a and_o after_o all_o we_o be_v to_o begin_v again_o for_o if_o we_o must_v now_o dispute_v concern_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o church_n wherefore_o do_v we_o not_o do_v so_o in_o the_o beginning_n wherefore_o must_v the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v for_o a_o praeludium_n to_o this_o be_v it_o because_o the_o gate_n of_o this_o controversy_n be_v not_o yet_o wide_a enough_o of_o itself_o but_o that_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n must_v introduce_v we_o or_o be_v it_o not_o worthy_a our_o regard_n and_o therefore_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n must_v be_v its_o mediator_n be_v it_o that_o either_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o scripture_n have_v need_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v recommend_v to_o we_o the_o one_o of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o the_o other_o of_o my_o answer_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v betake_v himself_o to_o either_o of_o these_o without_o our_o guidance_n for_o my_o part_n i_o pretend_v not_o to_o this_o and_o therefore_o think_v it_o beside_o the_o purpose_n to_o begin_v a_o new_a controversy_n chap._n vii_o the_o six_o last_o chapter_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n examine_v mr_n arnaud'_v last_o six_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n be_v only_o as_o loose_v piece_n which_o relate_v not_o to_o the_o method_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n nor_o our_o proof_n of_o fact_n and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o consist_v in_o fruitless_a digression_n which_o have_v no_o connexion_n with_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n it_o seem_v thereupon_o he_o have_v intend_v they_o only_o as_o a_o enlargement_n to_o his_o book_n and_o as_o a_o mean_n to_o tire_v his_o reader_n patience_n which_o will_v oblige_v i_o to_o make_v only_o a_o succinct_a answer_n it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o carry_v off_o the_o debate_n to_o other_o subject_n and_o charge_v myself_o with_o unnecessary_a matter_n but_o howsoever_o concise_a my_o answer_n may_v be_v yet_o will_v it_o manifest_v the_o weakness_n and_o folly_n of_o all_o these_o tedious_a and_o troublesome_a discourse_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n his_o seven_o chapter_n respect_v a_o objection_n i_o make_v against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n he_o attribute_n to_o the_o people_n which_o he_o ground_n on_o this_o that_o people_n natural_o will_v not_o suffer_v their_o opinion_n to_o be_v snatch_v from_o they_o nor_o novelty_n introduce_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o i_o have_v intimate_v that_o this_o will_v oppose_v the_o infallibility_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n attribute_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n the_o remain_a part_n of_o the_o first_o book_n be_v spend_v in_o treat_v on_o some_o other_o innovation_n which_o we_o suppose_v to_o have_v insensible_o creep_v in_o as_o that_o in_o the_o establishment_n of_o episcopacy_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o prohibition_n of_o certain_a meat_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n i_o intend_v to_o treat_v of_o in_o this_o chapter_n that_o i_o may_v proceed_v orderly_o i_o shall_v first_o examine_v this_o pretend_a popular_a infallibility_n by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o infallibility_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n for_o we_o must_v see_v whether_o i_o have_v not_o reason_n to_o make_v against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n the_o objection_n contain_v in_o my_o preface_n this_o question_n will_v be_v soon_o end_v if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o i_o have_v allege_v some_o example_n of_o the_o insensible_a alteration_n which_o actual_o happen_v in_o the_o church_n in_o several_a point_n as_o 7._o perpetuity_n of_o the_o faith_n part_v 2._o c._n 7._o well_o practical_a as_o speculative_a and_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n can_v not_o defend_v himself_o but_o by_o protest_v that_o he_o have_v not_o offer_v in_o general_a this_o maxim_n that_o there_o can_v not_o happen_v in_o the_o church_n any_o imperceptible_a change_n in_o the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n or_o in_o opinion_n which_o be_v no_o way_n popular_a but_o speculative_a that_o he_o have_v be_v cautious_a of_o propose_v of_o it_o in_o this_o generality_n and_o therefore_o have_v restrain_v it_o to_o capital_a mystery_n which_o be_v know_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a by_o a_o distinct_a faith_n to_o answer_v after_o this_o manner_n what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o confess_v a_o change_n have_v happen_v in_o point_n which_o be_v not_o popular_a which_o confession_n absolute_o overthrow_v the_o infallibility_n claim_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n that_o mr._n arnaud_n distinguish_v betwixt_o a_o infallibility_n 7._o lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o of_o grace_n or_o privilege_n and_o a_o humane_a and_o popular_a infallibility_n and_o to_o assert_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n do_v in_o no_o wise_n pretend_v to_o disavow_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o council_n as_o it_o respect_v all_o kind_n of_o mystery_n whether_o popular_a or_o other_o for_o these_o example_n i_o produce_v do_v equal_o oppose_v all_o manner_n of_o infallibility_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v it_o in_o any_o kind_n will_v be_v to_o let_v go_v this_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o privilege_n i_o will_v suppose_v the_o alteration_n i_o mention_v to_o have_v happen_v in_o point_n not_o popular_a yet_o be_v they_o innovation_n nevertheless_o and_o when_o they_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o natural_a infallibility_n yet_o will_v they_o be_v to_o that_o which_o be_v term_v of_o grace_n see_v that_o they_o be_v actual_a alteration_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o a_o man_n who_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v true_a can_v deny_v but_o that_o he_o act_v contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v only_o infallible_a and_o that_o mr._n arnaud_v distinction_n be_v a_o mere_a illusion_n for_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v admit_v a_o alteration_n in_o point_n not_o popular_a she_o be_v not_o then_o infallible_a in_o respect_n of_o these_o point_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v mind_v to_o wrangle_v about_o some_o of_o the_o example_n i_o produce_v pretend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n have_v not_o be_v alter_v although_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o have_v be_v so_o but_o he_o do_v not_o oppose_v what_o i_o allege_v touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v not_o a_o point_n of_o practice_n but_o belief_n content_v himself_o only_o with_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o divine_a grace_n have_v 7._o perpetuity_n of_o the_o faith_n part_n 2._o c._n 7._o never_o be_v popular_a in_o all_o the_o consequence_n which_o have_v be_v draw_v from_o they_o in_o theology_n and_o that_o it_o be_v false_a they_o be_v not_o still_o the_o same_o in_o principal_a and_o essential_a point_n but_o be_v not_o this_o still_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o point_n not_o popular_a and_o which_o be_v neither_o principal_n nor_o essential_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o grace_n there_o have_v happen_v a_o change_n now_o these_o point_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v whether_o principal_a or_o not_o great_a or_o small_a be_v doctrinal_a
point_n which_o can_v be_v alter_v without_o pass_v over_o from_o truth_n to_o error_n or_o from_o error_n to_o truth_n if_o then_o it_o be_v true_a as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v and_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v several_a time_n of_o contrary_a opinion_n upon_o which_o account_n it_o be_v impossible_a but_o she_o have_v be_v in_o error_n and_o consequent_o she_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o this_o infallibility_n of_o grace_n and_o privilege_n attribute_v unto_o she_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n answer_n do_v evident_o suppose_v the_o actual_a reality_n of_o this_o change_n it_o have_v then_o give_v i_o just_a occasion_n to_o make_v this_o objection_n i_o have_v make_v and_o mr._n arnaud_n distinction_n come_v too_o late_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a he_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n never_o have_v the_o least_o thought_n of_o deny_v this_o infallibility_n of_o privilege_n and_o grace_n the_o question_n here_o be_v not_o to_o know_v absolute_o what_o that_o author_n believe_v or_o not_o believe_v what_o he_o think_v or_o do_v not_o think_v when_o this_o shall_v be_v question_v we_o shall_v always_o be_v ready_a to_o hear_v mr._n arnaud_n relation_n of_o that_o matter_n but_o here_o it_o concern_v we_o to_o inquire_v into_o the_o consequence_n which_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o his_o term_n and_o whether_o he_o have_v give_v i_o a_o just_a occasion_n to_o make_v that_o objection_n against_o he_o in_o my_o preface_n it_o will_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v declaration_n on_o this_o matter_n it_o must_v be_v show_v that_o the_o consequence_n be_v not_o true_a mr._n arnaud_n imagine_v he_o have_v sufficient_o justify_v his_o friend_n in_o assert_v he_o make_v not_o use_v of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o privilege_n because_o it_o be_v a_o privilege_n to_o be_v prove_v and_o not_o suppose_v and_o the_o calvinist_n deny_v it_o it_o be_v thence_o clear_a that_o to_o make_v a_o advantageous_a use_n of_o it_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v establish_v before_o which_o be_v to_o say_v there_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v a_o entire_a treatise_n make_v of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n before_o it_o can_v be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o this_o dispute_n but_o say_v he_o to_o conclude_v from_o thence_o he_o have_v deny_v it_o and_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o rash_a consequence_n as_o ever_o be_v draw_v although_o that_o mr._n claude_n have_v do_v this_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n and_o this_o be_v mr._n arnaud_n true_a character_n that_o he_o be_v never_o more_o fierce_a than_o when_o he_o be_v gravel_v or_o allege_v thing_n whole_o beside_o the_o purpose_n we_o have_v not_o ground_v our_o present_a objection_n on_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n not_o use_v the_o infallibility_n of_o privilege_n for_o his_o principle_n this_o be_v a_o wilful_a mistake_n for_o it_o have_v be_v ground_v on_o this_o that_o the_o term_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o instance_n of_o a_o change_n which_o i_o have_v affirm_v do_v oppose_v this_o infallibility_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o and_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o but_o that_o of_o the_o people_n now_o it_o be_v to_o this_o he_o shall_v apply_v himself_o and_o not_o continual_o entertain_v we_o with_o impertinent_a digression_n moreover_o what_o signify_v his_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o privilege_n be_v a_o principle_n to_o be_v prove_v and_o not_o suppose_v and_o that_o the_o reason_n dissuade_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n from_o make_v use_n of_o it_o be_v because_o we_o deny_v it_o we_o no_o less_o deny_v the_o pretend_a popular_a infallibility_n which_o be_v a_o principle_n needs_o prove_v as_o much_o as_o the_o other_o he_o himself_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o eight_o chapter_n that_o the_o principle_n of_o insensible_a alteration_n which_o be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o that_o of_o popular_a infallibility_n be_v a_o necessary_a foundation_n to_o the_o calvinist_n whereon_o to_o build_v the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o that_o all_o this_o great_a machine_n of_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n consist_v of_o so_o many_o different_a opinion_n have_v almost_o need_v upon_o all_o occasion_n of_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n which_o it_o undertake_v to_o overthrow_v have_v be_v insensible_o introduce_v into_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o do_v he_o speak_v when_o he_o will_v have_v we_o deny_v he_o his_o principle_n but_o when_o he_o will_v have_v we_o grant_v it_o he_o he_o than_o hold_v another_o language_n the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n 7._o lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o say_v he_o do_v not_o design_n to_o attribute_v to_o the_o people_n any_o other_o infallibility_n than_o that_o which_o all_o the_o world_n allow_v they_o and_o which_o mr._n claude_n do_v himself_o grant_v never_o any_o person_n dispose_v more_o free_o of_o other_o man_n thought_n then_o mr._n arnaud_n we_o deny_v we_o confess_v according_a as_o he_o please_v he_o bring_v we_o on_o his_o stage_n as_o often_o as_o he_o listen_v make_v we_o say_v sometime_o one_o thing_n and_o sometime_o another_o and_o be_v not_o this_o to_o dispute_v successful_o but_o whether_o we_o confess_v or_o deny_v this_o his_o popular_a infallibility_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o for_o here_o the_o question_n be_v not_o about_o this_o but_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v not_o oppose_v the_o infallibility_n attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n this_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v at_o a_o loss_n how_o to_o defend_v himself_o from_o it_o what_o signify_v his_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o thing_n 7._o lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o wherein_o not_o only_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o universe_n but_o a_o particular_a number_n of_o people_n a_o province_n a_o city_n a_o borough_n a_o particular_a person_n be_v infallible_a that_o be_v to_o say_v wherein_o it_o can_v happen_v he_o shall_v be_v deceive_v himself_o nor_o will_v deceive_v other_o wherefore_o must_v we_o have_v the_o gazetier_n bring_v in_o for_o a_o instance_n of_o this_o who_o be_v infallible_a when_o he_o tell_v we_o any_o considerable_a news_n such_o as_o be_v the_o king_n go_v into_o the_o low_a country_n the_o take_n of_o city_n in_o flanders_n the_o canonization_n of_o st._n francis_n de_fw-fr sales_n the_o death_n of_o pope_n alexander_n the_o seven_o and_o the_o election_n of_o clement_n the_o nine_o if_o he_o relate_v this_o news_n only_o to_o advertise_v we_o he_o begin_v his_o book_n after_o the_o king_n victory_n in_o the_o low_a country_n every_o man_n may_v believe_v as_o much_o as_o he_o think_v fit_v for_o we_o know_v it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o add_v a_o period_n or_o two_o to_o the_o begin_n of_o a_o book_n although_o it_o be_v already_o far_o advance_v but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v i_o dare_v say_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n victory_n will_v not_o be_v so_o certain_a as_o those_o of_o our_o monarch_n if_o in_o effect_n he_o have_v not_o mention_v this_o to_o we_o but_o to_o confirm_v by_o example_n his_o popular_a infallibility_n i_o have_v reason_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o these_o instance_n be_v beside_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n for_o there_o must_v be_v a_o distinction_n make_v betwixt_o a_o infallibility_n ground_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o single_a person_n or_o a_o particular_a sort_n of_o people_n and_o that_o which_o be_v ground_v on_o a_o whole_a body_n of_o people_n i_o will_v call_v the_o first_o if_o you_o will_v a_o infallibility_n of_o testimony_n and_o the_o second_o a_o infallibility_n of_o perseverance_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o state_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o the_o first_o of_o these_o may_v be_v attribute_v to_o a_o people_n a_o church_n a_o province_n a_o city_n or_o a_o particular_a person_n without_o the_o second_o i_o will_v grant_v likewise_o it_o be_v impossible_a in_o certain_a case_n for_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o a_o people_n to_o be_v mistake_v in_o the_o news_n it_o relate_v though_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n even_o this_o happen_v not_o seldom_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o usual_o false_a than_o popular_a news_n but_o though_o i_o grant_v this_o be_v impossible_a in_o some_o case_n yet_o this_o be_v far_o enough_o from_o acknowledge_v that_o a_o people_n govern_v by_o certain_a person_n may_v not_o insensible_o without_o any_o noise_n alter_v their_o sentiment_n and_o pass_v over_o into_o a_o opinion_n which_o they_o know_v not_o before_o for_o to_o make_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o change_n as_o this_o be_v there_o needs_o only_o the_o concurrence_n of_o two_o
of_o rome_n and_o in_o fine_a may_v be_v refute_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n own_o example_n which_o be_v the_o summary_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n ii_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n method_n be_v indirect_a and_o contrary_a to_o nature_n see_v he_o will_v decide_v question_n of_o right_n by_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o question_n of_o fact_n by_o proof_n draw_v from_o argument_n which_o be_v such_o a_o disorderly_a way_n of_o proceed_v as_o make_v his_o method_n just_o suspect_v to_o be_v artificial_a and_o deceitful_a iii_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v open_o assault_v mr._n aubertin_n book_n and_o that_o after_o a_o indirect_a and_o artificial_a manner_n which_o lie_v as_o a_o prejudication_n against_o he_o which_o be_v the_o summary_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n iv_o that_o the_o design_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v to_o destroy_v the_o impression_n which_o the_o proof_n of_o fact_n or_o the_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o father_n have_v make_v on_o our_o mind_n do_v nothing_o less_o than_o this_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o his_o treatise_n be_v whole_o useless_a which_o be_v the_o content_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n v._o that_o mr._n arnaud_n contradict_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n in_o pretend_v to_o defend_v he_o and_o ruin_v the_o whole_a design_n of_o his_o treatise_n vi_o that_o these_o method_n of_o prescription_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n so_o much_o glory_n in_o be_v vain_a and_o ineffectual_a and_o that_o the_o course_n we_o take_v to_o confirm_v people_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n be_v short_a certain_a and_o easy_a to_o the_o mean_a capacity_n whereas_o those_o mr._n arnaud_n offer_v be_v tedious_a difficult_a uncertain_a and_o unintelligible_a to_o ordinary_a apprehension_n whence_o it_o follow_v they_o can_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n remain_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n vii_o that_o the_o abridgement_n of_o our_o proof_n of_o fact_n which_o i_o offer_v in_o my_o first_o answer_n have_v be_v regular_a and_o that_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v but_o a_o mear_v chaos_n of_o confusion_n these_o three_o last_a particular_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n viii_o that_o all_o those_o pretend_a advantage_n mr._n arnaud_n hope_v to_o obtain_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a and_o to_o those_o he_o term_v the_o obstinate_a be_v groundless_a imagination_n which_o in_o fine_a do_v only_o manifest_v the_o unprofitableness_n of_o that_o treatise_n which_o be_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o five_o and_o six_o chapter_n ix_o and_o last_o that_o he_o can_v excuse_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n nor_o himself_o from_o the_o charge_n of_o contradict_v and_o oppose_v the_o infallibility_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n it_o be_v a_o avow_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o content_n of_o this_o seven_o chapter_n book_n ii_o wherein_o be_v show_v that_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a that_o those_o which_o be_v call_v the_o schismatical_a church_n believe_v transubstantiation_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o thence_o follow_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v always_o hold_v by_o these_o christian_n chap._n i._n contain_v the_o chief_a head_n of_o this_o whole_a controversy_n touch_v the_o eastern_a church_n and_o their_o opinion_n from_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a mr._n arnaud_n artifice_n lay_v open_a we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o other_o eastern_a church_n touch_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o must_v endeavour_v to_o shelter_v ourselves_o from_o the_o violent_a insulting_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o his_o friend_n we_o need_v not_o mention_v how_o this_o have_v be_v the_o subject_a of_o their_o triumph_n see_v all_o the_o world_n know_v it_o for_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v 256._o 2d_o part_v of_o the_o perpetuity_n c._n 5._o p._n 256._o already_o thereatn_v we_o with_o produce_v of_o twenty_o million_o of_o witness_n on_o his_o side_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n who_o be_v not_o a_o person_n of_o that_o humour_n as_o to_o abate_v any_o thing_n be_v continual_o charge_v we_o with_o absurdity_n rashness_n confidence_n conviction_n demonstration_n and_o tell_v we_o of_o minister_n confound_v by_o the_o number_n of_o his_o proof_n he_o tell_v the_o world_n in_o his_o preface_n that_o he_o have_v leave_v we_o no_o reason_n 11._o p._n 11._o to_o doubt_v in_o a_o matter_n so_o apparent_a as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o these_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n he_o tell_v we_o moreover_o in_o 113._o l._n 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 113._o another_o place_n that_o this_o be_v a_o point_n most_o clear_a and_o evident_a and_o that_o be_v we_o not_o withhold_v by_o obstinacy_n we_o shall_v confess_v as_o much_o ourselves_o and_o not_o let_v our_o tongue_n thus_o bely_v our_o conscience_n nay_o even_o before_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n appear_v abroad_o in_o the_o world_n it_o have_v already_o get_v the_o name_n of_o invincible_a like_a to_o that_o legion_n of_o old_a under_o the_o emperor_n marcus_n aurelius_n which_o cause_v fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o fall_v down_o on_o the_o head_n of_o its_o enemy_n and_o we_o may_v true_o affirm_v the_o world_n have_v not_o be_v want_v to_o usher_v in_o this_o his_o pretend_a victory_n with_o their_o shout_n and_o acclamation_n now_o if_o it_o be_v inquire_v of_o mr._n arnaud_n what_o advantage_n he_o can_v expect_v from_o this_o whole_a controversy_n he_o will_v tell_v we_o it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o be_v 115._o l._n 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 115._o will_v never_o be_v persuade_v to_o suffer_v one_o of_o its_o clear_a proof_n to_o be_v snatch_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n see_v it_o establish_v the_o faith_n of_o a_o mystery_n wherein_o consist_v the_o object_n of_o its_o devotion_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o god_n preserve_v all_o these_o christian_a society_n although_o divide_v from_o his_o church_n and_o suffer_v not_o the_o tyranny_n of_o infidel_n whole_o to_o swallow_v they_o up_o nor_o the_o knowledge_n of_o principal_a mystery_n to_o be_v quite_o extinguish_v among_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v remain_v as_o witness_n for_o the_o catholic_n cause_n in_o testify_v the_o antiquity_n of_o those_o doctrine_n which_o the_o new_a heretic_n deny_v if_o he_o be_v demand_v whether_o none_o of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v hitherto_o make_v use_n of_o this_o argument_n he_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o no_o 10._o in_o his_o prefa_n p._n 10._o one_o yet_o have_v exact_o handle_v this_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o great_a interest_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o this_o proof_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o famous_a she_o have_v whereby_o to_o establish_v her_o faith_n and_o devotion_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v reserve_v for_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o that_o the_o divine_a providence_n have_v not_o withhold_v for_o so_o many_o age_n the_o violence_n of_o the_o infidel_n nor_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o mahometan_n nor_o preserve_v these_o relic_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o east_n but_o only_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n excellent_a treatise_n which_o be_v to_o be_v the_o admiration_n of_o the_o universe_n you_o must_v not_o then_o think_v it_o strange_a if_o he_o himself_o after_o this_o have_v judge_v it_o worthy_a to_o be_v present_v to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o dedicate_v even_o to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o suffer_v so_o many_o doctor_n to_o make_v panegyric_n in_o its_o praise_n what_o far_o remain_v but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o honour_n have_v not_o be_v want_v to_o it_o the_o author_n of_o the_o enthusiasm_n say_v that_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o his_o birth_n purify_v john_n the_o baptist_n his_o forerunner_n and_o have_v wrought_v this_o miracle_n leave_v the_o virgin_n bosom_n to_o publish_v to_o man_n the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o peace_n so_o likewise_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n when_o as_o yet_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o its_o author_n have_v replenish_v a_o great_a man_n with_o its_o divinity_n and_o have_v begin_v its_o miracle_n by_o this_o conversion_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o late_a peace_n make_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o far_o have_v they_o carry_v it_o on_o beyond_o reason_n and_o christian_a modesty_n namque_fw-la si_fw-la liceat_fw-la pusilla_fw-la magnis_fw-la plenum_fw-la &_o numine_fw-la numini_fw-la libellum_fw-la aequare_fw-la ut_fw-la gravibus_fw-la licet_fw-la poetis_fw-la jis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la diem_fw-la subibis_fw-la o_fw-la quantum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la
libelle_n faustis_fw-la quibus_fw-la sydereus_fw-la subit_fw-la puellus_fw-la qui_fw-la dum_fw-la delituit_fw-la tenebricosus_fw-la sacris_fw-la visceribus_fw-la sacrae_fw-la pvellae_fw-la quot_fw-la miracula_fw-la sunt_fw-la secuta_fw-la natum_fw-la hoc_fw-la monstro_fw-la fuit_fw-la auspicatus_fw-la uno_fw-la quod_fw-la cum_fw-la numinis_fw-la ad_fw-la svi_fw-la perenne_fw-fr lumen_fw-la &_o prodomo_fw-la suoque_fw-la vali_n futuro_fw-la ingenitas_fw-la fugâsset_fw-la umbras_fw-la purgasset_fw-la veterique_fw-la labe_fw-la foedum_fw-la nil_fw-la beatius_fw-la aestimârit_fw-la ille_fw-la quam_fw-la per_fw-la pacificos_fw-la subire_fw-la plausus_fw-la diem_fw-la &_o virgin_n sinu_fw-la parentis_fw-la involare_fw-la sinum_fw-la recentioris_fw-la pacis_fw-la quid_fw-la melius_fw-la beatiusve_fw-la iis_fw-la ominibus_fw-la diem_fw-la videbis_fw-la o_o quantum_fw-la ominibus_fw-la libelle_fw-la faustis_fw-la ex_fw-la quo_fw-la dum_fw-la latites_fw-la tenebricosus_fw-la absque_fw-la sole_a tui_fw-la in_o sinu_fw-la parentis_fw-la dius_n immigravit_fw-la ardour_n affulsitque_fw-la viro_fw-la undequaque_fw-la numen_fw-la quod_fw-la imas_fw-la animi_fw-la in_o svi_fw-la medullas_fw-la quando_fw-la ambilius_fw-la vir_fw-la ille_fw-la sensit_fw-la chartis_fw-la gliscere_fw-la de_fw-la tuis_fw-la libelle_fw-fr magis_fw-la gliscere_fw-la quo_fw-la magis_fw-la magisque_fw-la lustraret_fw-la latebras_fw-la sinusque_fw-la rerum_fw-la tua_fw-la luce_fw-fr libre_fw-la nitoribusque_fw-la raptus_fw-la numine_fw-la quo_fw-la tumebat_fw-la intus_fw-la raptus_fw-la numine_fw-la numen_fw-la ecce_fw-la numen_fw-la ib_fw-la numeni_fw-la ait_fw-la severiorque_fw-la in_o se_fw-la se_fw-la exerit_fw-la hoc_fw-la side_n libello_fw-la enthusiasmo_fw-la to_o all_o which_o i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o only_o that_o i_o be_o not_o at_o all_o concern_v at_o this_o pretend_a divinity_n and_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n thunder_n have_v neither_o scare_v nor_o hurt_v i_o his_o twenty_o million_o of_o witness_n be_v no_o more_o in_o my_o apprehension_n than_o twenty_o million_o of_o phantasm_n and_o in_o short_a i_o doubt_v not_o but_o i_o shall_v prove_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o three_o proposition_n first_o suppose_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v able_a to_o make_v good_a his_o pretence_n concern_v the_o greek_a and_o other_o eastern_a church_n from_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a it_o will_v not_o hence_o follow_v that_o either_o the_o alteration_n here_o in_o question_n must_v be_v impossible_a or_o that_o it_o have_v not_o actual_o happen_v and_o consequent_o that_o this_o tedious_a dispute_n on_o this_o subject_n be_v vain_a and_o useless_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o main_a of_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o defend_v second_o that_o the_o true_a greek_a church_n and_o other_o who_o the_o latin_n call_v schismatic_n have_v never_o reckon_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n among_o the_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n three_o that_o all_o mr._n arnaud_n endeavour_n to_o prove_v the_o affirmative_a be_v ineffectual_a and_o that_o even_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o proof_n conclude_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o he_o pretend_v and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o inquire_v into_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o his_o pretend_a triumph_n so_o loud_o proclaim_v we_o shall_v therefore_o in_o confirm_v these_o three_o aforementioned_a proposition_n observe_v likewise_o how_o mr._n arnaud_n impose_v on_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n his_o proceed_n may_v be_v the_o better_o lay_v open_a to_o evidence_n then_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o first_o of_o they_o we_o must_v begin_v from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n since_o the_o eleven_o century_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o time_n berengarius_fw-la be_v condemn_v to_o this_o present_a for_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v come_v to_o know_v those_o happy_a field_n which_o have_v furnish_v mr._n arnaud_n with_o so_o many_o laurel_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n discover_v the_o first_o of_o his_o artifices_fw-la whereby_o he_o will_v conceal_v the_o condition_n of_o those_o church_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v the_o argument_n he_o draw_v from_o their_o consent_n have_v all_o the_o weight_n and_o strength_n which_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o argument_n of_o this_o nature_n to_o have_v i_o say_v since_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a because_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v divide_v his_o discourse_n touch_v the_o greek_n into_o two_o part_n the_o first_o from_o the_o seven_o century_n to_o the_o eleven_o and_o the_o other_o from_o the_o eleven_o to_o this_o present_a and_o have_v begin_v with_o this_o latter_a part_n i_o be_o thereby_o oblige_v to_o follow_v his_o order_n that_o i_o may_v accommodate_v myself_o as_o much_o as_o in_o i_o lie_v to_o his_o method_n it_o must_v then_o be_v remember_v the_o present_a question_n only_o concern_v these_o church_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o the_o greek_n from_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a for_o we_o shall_v examine_v in_o its_o place_n this_o other_o part_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n discourse_n which_o reach_v from_o the_o seven_o to_o the_o eleven_o century_n it_o must_v not_o be_v imagine_v these_o christian_a church_n be_v now_o in_o as_o flourish_v a_o condition_n as_o they_o have_v be_v heretofore_o for_o they_o lose_v soon_o after_o the_o eleven_o century_n their_o ancient_a splendour_n be_v fall_v into_o a_o most_o profound_a ignorance_n and_o corruption_n of_o manner_n and_o a_o horrid_a crowd_n of_o superstition_n and_o disregard_n to_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n which_o state_n of_o they_o instead_o of_o be_v amend_v by_o time_n have_v grow_v every_o day_n worse_o william_n archbishop_n of_o tyre_n describe_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o inundation_n of_o the_o barbarian_n into_o syria_n and_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o of_o this_o long_a 8._o bell._n s●cr_n l._n 1._o c._n 8._o servitude_n of_o the_o eastern_a christian_n the_o faith_n say_v he_o and_o fear_v of_o god_n depart_v the_o whole_a earth_n and_o especial_o from_o among_o they_o who_o style_v themselves_o the_o faithful_a justice_n and_o equity_n be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v find_v among_o they_o for_o fraud_n and_o violence_n reign_v everywhere_o and_o malice_n have_v take_v up_o the_o place_n of_o virtue_n so_o that_o the_o world_n seem_v to_o be_v at_o its_o period_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n at_o hand_n for_o the_o charity_n of_o many_o wax_v cold_a and_o there_o be_v no_o long_a faith_n to_o be_v find_v on_o earth_n the_o whole_a face_n of_o thing_n be_v change_v and_o a_o man_n will_v have_v think_v the_o universe_n to_o be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o fall_v into_o its_o ancient_a chaos_n the_o prince_n instead_o of_o keep_v their_o subject_n in_o peace_n break_v their_o allyance_n and_o make_v war_n upon_o every_o frivolous_a occasion_n waste_v whole_a province_n by_o their_o violence_n and_o expose_v the_o good_n of_o the_o poor_a to_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o rude_a soldiery_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o can_v be_v preserve_v from_o their_o snare_n man_n be_v hale_v into_o prison_n and_o suffer_v the_o most_o exquisite_a torment_n to_o make_v they_o confess_v and_o resign_v up_o their_o estate_n neither_o can_v the_o church_n treasure_n nor_o monastery_n escape_v their_o hand_n although_o their_o privilege_n and_o immunity_n have_v be_v grant_v by_o prince_n the_o sanctuary_n be_v violent_o break_v open_a the_o vessel_n dedicate_v to_o god_n service_n together_o with_o the_o sacerdotal_a vestment_n and_o ornament_n be_v forcible_o carry_v away_o the_o church_n be_v no_o long_o a_o shelter_n to_o the_o miserable_a the_o highway_n be_v fill_v with_o robber_n who_o spare_v neither_o pilgrim_n nor_o religious_a the_o town_n and_o city_n be_v as_o little_a free_a from_o danger_n be_v full_a of_o cutthroat_n who_o la●d_v wait_v for_o innocent_a blood_n fornication_n in_o all_o kind_n be_v common_a and_o suffer_v without_o shame_n or_o punishment_n as_o a_o thing_n lawful_a man_n add_v incest_n to_o their_o adultery_n and_o chastity_n which_o be_v a_o virtue_n so_o acceptable_a to_o god_n be_v grow_v out_o of_o use_n among_o they_o as_o well_o as_o moderation_n and_o sobriety_n which_o be_v force_v to_o give_v place_n to_o luxury_n and_o drunkenness_n and_o as_o to_o the_o ecclesiastic_n they_o live_v no_o more_o regular_o than_o the_o other_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o priest_n as_o with_o the_o people_n as_o speaks_z the_o prophet_n for_o the_o bishop_n grow_v careless_a become_v dumb_a dog_n have_v respect_n to_o person_n they_o besmear_v their_o head_n with_o the_o oil_n of_o sinner_n like_o hireling_n abandon_v their_o flock_n and_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o mercy_n of_o wolf_n and_o become_v simonist_n they_o forget_v the_o word_n of_o god_n free_o you_o have_v receive_v free_o give_v the_o almighty_a then_o be_v provoke_v by_o so_o many_o crime_n do_v not_o only_o suffer_v the_o faithful_a in_o the_o holy_a land_n to_o remain_v in_o bondage_n but_o far_o to_o chastise_v they_o who_o be_v at_o liberty_n he_o stir_v up_o
man_n who_o voyage_n be_v translate_v into_o french_a by_o mr._n de_fw-fr vicqfort_n speak_v of_o these_o same_o georgiens_n in_o 244._o herbert_n voyages_n l._n 2._o p._n 244._o the_o city_n of_o assepose_n say_v he_o and_o thereabouts_o dwell_v near_o forty_o thousand_o georgiens_n and_o circassian_n who_o all_o of_o they_o profess_v christianity_n but_o live_v most_o miserable_a life_n be_v slave_n and_o destitute_a moreover_o of_o all_o knowledge_n of_o the_o christian_a mystery_n only_o they_o have_v a_o great_a veneration_n for_o st._n george_n who_o be_v bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n and_o their_o apostle_n as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o coptite_n they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v as_o ignorant_a as_o any_o of_o 75._o thevenot_n voyage_n part_v 2._o c._n 75._o the_o rest_n these_o coptite_n say_v mr._n thevenot_n be_v a_o sort_n of_o very_o dull_a and_o stupid_a people_n so_o that_o there_o can_v be_v hardly_o find_v a_o person_n among_o they_o who_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o patriarch_n montcony_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o coptite_n 129._o montconis_fw-la voyages_n p._n 129._o hold_v the_o heretical_a doctrine_n of_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o be_v very_o ignorant_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n eugenius_n roger_n a_o franciscan_a friar_n one_o of_o the_o pope_n emissary_n 2._o description_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n l._n 2._o in_o barbary_n speak_v of_o these_o coptite_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o nation_n be_v the_o most_o dull_a and_o ignorant_a of_o all_o the_o eastern_a christian_n they_o be_v never_o hear_v to_o discourse_v concern_v divine_a mystery_n or_o religious_a matter_n the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o priest_n can_v neither_o write_v nor_o read_v and_o seem_v to_o act_v with_o as_o little_a reflection_n as_o bruit_v beast_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v perceive_v all_o the_o time_n i_o sojourn_v in_o egypt_n he_o add_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o religious_a who_o dwell_v in_o monastery_n in_o the_o desert_n of_o thebes_n be_v extreme_a brutish_a and_o work_v like_o horse_n mr._n de_fw-fr sponde_v bishop_n of_o pamiez_n give_v a_o account_n in_o his_o annal_n of_o a_o 1561._o spond_n ann._n tom_n 3_o ann._n 1561._o pretend_a union_n of_o the_o coptite_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v in_o the_o year_n 1561_o pius_n the_o four_o be_v pope_n he_o tell_v we_o among_o other_o thing_n that_o their_o patriarch_n who_o name_n be_v gabriel_n be_v a_o very_a ignorant_a man_n and_o one_o of_o their_o error_n be_v they_o reckon_v seven_o sacrament_n and_o instead_o of_o those_o of_o marriage_n confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n they_o substitute_v faith_n fast_v and_o prayer_n which_o they_o adopt_v into_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n the_o armenian_n be_v no_o less_o ignorant_a for_o anthony_n de_fw-fr gouveau_fw-fr tell_v we_o 368._o gouveau_n relation_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o p._n 368._o they_o be_v a_o peope_n whole_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a and_o that_o moreover_o david_n their_o patriarch_n know_v no_o more_o than_o only_o to_o write_v and_o read_v in_o his_o own_o language_n which_o be_v add_v he_o a_o thing_n very_o common_a among_o they_o john_n barbereau_n a_o jesuit_n who_o i_o already_o mention_v say_v they_o be_v in_o constantinople_n to_o the_o number_n of_o above_o sixty_o thousand_o and_o be_v if_o possible_a more_o ignorant_a than_o the_o greek_n they_o hold_v the_o same_o error_n with_o they_o and_o have_v a_o particular_a heresy_n which_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o rest_n their_o ignorance_n add_v he_o be_v so_o great_a that_o i_o have_v hear_v themselves_o say_v they_o never_o go_v to_o church_n 1._o foreign_a lettor_n let._n 1._o but_o when_o they_o consecrate_v know_v neither_o the_o use_v nor_o design_n of_o that_o mystery_n and_o who_o can_v instruct_v they_o in_o these_o thing_n their_o patriarch_n and_o prelate_n be_v busy_v in_o get_v money_n like_o the_o greek_n that_o they_o may_v have_v whereon_o to_o live_v vincent_n le_fw-fr blanc_n speak_v of_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o india_n call_v the_o christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n and_o who_o follow_v the_o nestorian_a heresy_n the_o 115._o le_z blanc_n voyage_n part_v 1_o p._n 115._o christian_n of_o these_o place_n say_v he_o have_v still_o retain_v some_o part_n of_o the_o instruction_n leave_v they_o by_o st._n thomas_n but_o they_o be_v extreme_a ignorant_a in_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o know_v not_o how_o to_o sing_v in_o their_o church_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o any_o kind_n of_o tune_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o socotora_n say_v du_n jarric_n the_o jesuit_n call_v themselves_o christians_o be_v likewise_o christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 84._o history_n of_o the_o east_n india_n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o p._n 84._o nestorian_n they_o very_o much_o honour_n and_o reverence_v the_o cross_n they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o very_o ignorant_a so_o that_o they_o can_v neither_o write_v nor_o read_v and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o their_o cacique_n that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o priest_n who_o have_v learn_v certain_a prayer_n by_o rote_n sing_v they_o in_o the_o church_n and_o often_o repeat_v a_o word_n which_o come_v near_o to_o our_o halleluja_n this_o same_o duke_n jarrick_n who_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o nestorian_n of_o malabar_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o alexis_n de_fw-fr meneses_n archbishop_n of_o goa_n in_o the_o year_n 1599_o do_v sufficient_o set_v forth_o the_o ignorance_n of_o this_o people_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a confusion_n among_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o essential_a form_n of_o baptism_n that_o every_o cacanar_n for_o so_o do_v they_o call_v their_o priest_n baptize_v after_o a_o several_a manner_n and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o add_v he_o can_v be_v say_v in_o any_o kind_n to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n see_v they_o use_v not_o word_n essential_a thereunto_o so_o that_o the_o archbishop_n find_v one_o of_o the_o great_a town_n of_o this_o bishopric_n of_o angomalé_n to_o have_v be_v deficient_a in_o this_o important_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n whereupon_o he_o private_o baptize_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n after_o a_o right_n and_o due_a manner_n he_o relate_v moreover_o that_o there_o be_v several_a among_o they_o who_o be_v not_o baptize_v at_o all_o and_o yet_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v a_o very_a common_a thing_n among_o they_o that_o they_o usual_o do_v not_o baptise_v their_o child_n till_o some_o month_n or_o year_n after_o their_o birth_n and_o that_o there_o be_v some_o at_o ten_o or_o eleven_o year_n of_o age_n unbaptise_v that_o they_o be_v wont_v every_o sunday_n to_o kindle_v a_o fire_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v cast_v incense_n thereon_o every_o one_o draw_v near_o to_o take_v of_o the_o smoke_n with_o his_o hand_n with_o which_o carry_v it_o to_o their_o breast_n they_o think_v thereby_o their_o sin_n be_v chase_v out_o of_o their_o soul_n he_o add_v that_o the_o latin_a bishop_n which_o be_v send_v they_o after_o their_o reduction_n visit_v several_a place_n of_o his_o diocese_n in_o which_o there_o have_v no_o prelate_n be_v for_o this_o thirty_o year_n where_o he_o find_v such_o a_o degeneracy_n both_o as_o to_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n that_o most_o of_o they_o have_v no_o more_o of_o christianity_n in_o they_o but_o the_o name_n although_o the_o maronites_n have_v be_v long_o since_o reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o better_o instruct_v than_o the_o rest_n joseph_n besson_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n say_v they_o be_v strike_v with_o four_o plague_n worse_o than_o the_o plague_n of_o egypt_n viz_o ignorance_n want_v of_o devotion_n usury_n and_o injustice_n they_o can_v scarce_o be_v persuade_v say_v he_o that_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v god_n dye_v and_o that_o god_n ever_o have_v a_o son_n it_o be_v incredible_a say_v they_o with_o the_o turk_n how_o can_v he_o have_v a_o son_n see_v he_o be_v never_o marry_v and_o if_o he_o be_v god_n how_o can_v he_o die_v i_o can_v easy_o produce_v several_a testimony_n touch_v the_o state_n of_o the_o moscovite_n abyssins_n and_o jacobite_n for_o their_o condition_n be_v no_o better_a than_o the_o rest_n god_n have_v suffer_v all_o these_o church_n which_o be_v heretofore_o so_o favour_v with_o the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n to_o fall_v insensible_o into_o so_o great_a darkness_n that_o a_o man_n can_v scarce_o perceive_v the_o least_o mark_n of_o christianity_n among_o they_o there_o be_v not_o in_o
moscovia_n say_v possevin_n the_o jesuit_n any_o greek_a book_n or_o academy_n have_v make_v diligent_a search_n for_o some_o that_o understand_v greek_a i_o can_v find_v none_o they_o have_v heap_v up_o error_n upon_o error_n and_o although_o they_o brag_v of_o their_o 5._o bibliot_n select_a l._n 6._o c._n 5._o christianity_n above_o other_o people_n yet_o do_v they_o refer_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o their_o prince_n as_o to_o a_o oracle_n have_v imbibe_v this_o principle_n from_o their_o infancy_n they_o value_v not_o stranger_n nor_o suffer_v they_o to_o come_v into_o their_o country_n unless_o they_o be_v polander_n german_n or_o portuguese_n for_o they_o despise_v all_o other_o he_o say_v moreover_o 2._o derebus_n moscow_n p._n 2._o the_o moscovite_n have_v such_o confidence_n in_o their_o prince_n that_o when_o they_o be_v ask_v touch_v any_o point_n they_o common_o answer_v god_n only_o and_o our_o prince_n know_v that_o our_o great_a czar_n know_v all_o thing_n he_o can_v immediate_o solve_v all_o difficulty_n there_o be_v no_o religion_n who_o ceremony_n and_o opinion_n he_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o whatsoever_o we_o have_v or_o be_v whether_o on_o horseback_n or_o in_o health_n it_o be_v all_o owe_a to_o our_o great_a prince_n he_o say_v far_a they_o have_v neither_o school_n nor_o academy_n among_o they_o only_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n to_o write_v and_o read_v learn_v they_o the_o gospel_n the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n a_o certain_a chronicle_n which_o they_o have_v with_o some_o of_o st._n chrysostom_n homily_n and_o the_o life_n of_o some_o of_o their_o saint_n that_o shall_v any_o person_n endeavour_v to_o make_v a_o far_a progress_n in_o learning_n he_o will_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o be_v punish_v as_o to_o their_o priest_n and_o monk_n he_o assure_v we_o they_o be_v prodigious_o ignorant_a for_o have_v demand_v of_o they_o who_o be_v the_o founder_n of_o their_o order_n not_o one_o of_o they_o can_v answer_v he_o and_o as_o to_o the_o people_n he_o say_v they_o work_v at_o all_o time_n not_o except_v sunday_n and_o holiday_n and_o think_v it_o belong_v to_o gentleman_n and_o not_o to_o they_o to_o frequent_v the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v very_o well_o please_v with_o their_o own_o simplicity_n and_o often_o make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v great_a worshipper_n of_o image_n as_o concern_v the_o russian_n which_o be_v under_o the_o king_n of_o poland_n government_n he_o say_v that_o sometime_o their_o bishop_n perform_v the_o divine_a service_n in_o greek_a although_o few_o of_o they_o if_o any_o do_v understand_v that_o language_n and_o that_o they_o be_v very_o ignorant_a in_o divinity_n as_o to_o the_o abyssins_n the_o relation_n of_o the_o jesuit_n paez_n which_o du_n jarrick_n have_v insert_v in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o east_n india_n give_v we_o sufficient_o to_o understand_v their_o ignorance_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o spirituality_n of_o the_o empire_n depend_v whole_o on_o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o ecclesiastic_n do_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o will_v have_v they_o and_o that_o shall_v he_o command_v they_o all_o to_o turn_v catholic_n they_o will_v not_o disobey_v he_o he_o tell_v we_o he_o dispute_v with_o one_o of_o they_o upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o legal_a ceremony_n which_o they_o observe_v and_o that_o this_o person_n can_v not_o tell_v how_o to_o answer_v he_o otherwise_o than_o that_o there_o be_v some_o who_o can_v satisfy_v he_o on_o that_o point_n he_o far_o add_v that_o these_o people_n know_v little_a there_o be_v immediate_o spread_v a_o report_n concern_v i_o that_o i_o be_v a_o great_a doctor_n and_o thereupon_o never_o come_v any_o person_n afterward_o to_o dispute_v with_o i_o du_n jarric_n observe_v that_o the_o jesuit_n paez_n have_v teach_v some_o child_n their_o catechism_n the_o king_n and_o all_o his_o court_n be_v so_o astonish_v at_o the_o matter_n that_o he_o tell_v those_o about_o he_o say_v what_o shall_v our_o monk_n dispute_v with_o this_o father_n for_o who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v these_o little_a child_n the_o plain_a truth_n of_o it_o be_v we_o have_v neither_o doctrine_n nor_o instruction_n neither_o any_o thing_n more_o than_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n maffeus_n the_o jesuit_n relate_v that_o a_o priest_n name_v gonsalvus_n rhoderick_n send_v from_o goa_n to_o claudus_n king_n of_o the_o abyssins_n in_o the_o year_n 1556._o find_a 938._o history_n of_o the_o india_n l_o 16._o p._n 938._o he_o and_o his_o great_a courtier_n very_o ignorant_a both_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o council_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a learning_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n mr._n de_fw-fr sponde_v relate_v in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a annal_n the_o principal_a article_n 1524._o annal._n eccl._n ad_fw-la ann_n 1524._o of_o their_o belief_n according_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o zaga_n zabo_n conclude_v in_o these_o term_n they_o have_v so_o many_o ridiculous_a foppery_n among_o they_o that_o they_o have_v scarce_o any_o thing_n more_o of_o christianity_n than_o the_o name_n moreover_o they_o be_v not_o only_o ignorant_a of_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n but_o likewise_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o learning_n which_o make_v besson_n the_o jesuit_n say_v concern_v syria_n that_o the_o science_n be_v more_o rare_a in_o the_o eastern_a part_n than_o the_o phoenix_n and_o mechanical_a art_n more_o prize_v than_o science_n wherefore_o add_v he_o the_o continual_a multitude_n of_o book_n which_o increase_v every_o day_n in_o europe_n continual_o decrease_v in_o syria_n the_o best_a of_o they_o have_v already_o pass_v the_o sea_n several_a of_o which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o library_n in_o france_n so_o that_o those_o which_o remain_v be_v very_o ordinary_a one_o to_o this_o gross_a ignorance_n we_o may_v join_v their_o superstition_n the_o usual_a attendant_n of_o ignorance_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a these_o people_n be_v incredible_o guilty_a of_o 53._o his●r_n eccl._n l._n 18._o c_o 53._o it_o the_o armenian_n according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o nicephorus_n still_o celebrate_v easter_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n slay_v sheep_n and_o ox_n and_o sprinkle_v the_o post_n of_o their_o door_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o a_o lamb_n and_o instead_o of_o communicate_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n they_o sacrifice_v a_o lamb_n which_o be_v roast_v they_o divide_v it_o among_o they_o this_o custom_n be_v a_o very_a ancient_a one_o be_v yet_o in_o use_n among_o they_o besson_n the_o jesuit_n tell_v we_o they_o call_v this_o sacrifice_n korban_n and_o that_o he_o that_o offer_v it_o cause_v a_o sheep_n to_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o church_n porch_n where_o the_o priest_n 48._o holy_a syria_n part_n 1._o of_o the_o armenian_n p._n 48._o bless_v salt_n and_o put_v it_o down_o the_o throat_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n afterward_o consecrate_v the_o knife_n and_o then_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o the_o head_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o cut_v its_o throat_n the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n take_v their_o share_n one_o part_n whereof_o be_v distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o another_o serve_v for_o the_o feast_n which_o be_v celebrate_v with_o all_o public_a testimony_n of_o rejoice_v the_o same_o emissary_n inform_v we_o that_o the_o great_a disorder_n of_o the_o levant_n be_v its_o superstition_n and_o the_o people_n recourse_n to_o magician_n the_o number_n of_o who_o be_v very_o considerable_a among_o christian_n who_o poverty_n and_o sickness_n make_v they_o use_v these_o wretched_a remedy_n the_o coptite_n and_o abyssins_n beside_o baptism_n use_v circumcision_n which_o they_o receive_v the_o eight_o day_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o abyssins_n 6._o boucher_n bouquet_n sacr_n l._n 4._o c._n 7._o brerowood_n '_o s_z inquiry_n c._n 22_o 23._o villamont_n &_o alii_fw-la passim_fw-la de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi moscow_n p._n 6._o baptise_v themselves_o every_o year_n on_o twelve_o day_n in_o the_o lake_n or_o pond_n in_o remembrance_n of_o our_o saviour_n baptism_n possevin_n relate_v the_o same_o of_o the_o moscovite_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o twice_o a_o year_n viz._n on_o the_o day_n of_o the_o epiphany_n and_o that_o of_o the_o assumption_n the_o metropolitan_a bless_v the_o river_n of_o moscow_n and_o that_o the_o priest_n bless_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n other_o river_n that_o several_a man_n and_o woman_n wash_v themselves_o therein_o with_o the_o ceremony_n of_o a_o triple_a immersion_n that_o the_o horse_n and_o image_n be_v baptize_v in_o like_a manner_n and_o that_o this_o in_o their_o language_n be_v call_v baptism_n opin_v christoph_n angel_n stat._n &_o rit_n eccl._n graec._n c._n 25._o vide_fw-la annot._n geor._n felsau_n eucholog_fw-la gore_n p._n 689._o allat_n epist_n de_fw-fr quorun●_n graecer_fw-la opin_v i_o scarce_o know_v what_o to_o think_v of_o that_o custom_n among_o
i_o pretend_v to_o manifest_v by_o those_o very_a thing_n he_o have_v offer_v and_o pervert_v that_o if_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n do_v believe_v transubstantiation_n as_o full_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o thence_o follow_v that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v perpetual_a in_o that_o church_n see_v they_o may_v have_v receive_v it_o from_o the_o latin_n first_o then_o mr._n arnaud_n take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n to_o prove_v there_o have_v be_v a_o frequent_a commerce_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o 172._o l._n 2._o c._n 8._o p._n 172._o pisa_n venice_n rome_n and_o several_a other_o city_n of_o italy_n be_v full_a of_o greek_n that_o constantinople_n be_v full_a of_o latin_n and_o latin_a church_n that_o the_o army_n be_v usual_o make_v up_o of_o greek_a italian_a and_o french_a soldier_n which_o be_v continual_o in_o great_a number_n at_o jerusalem_n where_o they_o communicate_v in_o the_o same_o church_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o priest_n of_o that_o city_n that_o so_o great_a be_v the_o multitude_n of_o pilgrim_n that_o they_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n every_o day_n that_o person_n of_o the_o great_a quality_n namely_o king_n prince_n and_o prelate_n and_o lady_n of_o the_o high_a rank_n undertake_v these_o pilgrimage_n and_o that_o jerusalem_n be_v then_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o eleven_o century_n a_o place_n whereunto_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n resort_v i_o shall_v not_o now_o enter_v into_o a_o debate_n concern_v what_o he_o tell_v we_o touch_v the_o christian_n receive_v the_o communion_n at_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o patriarch_n and_o priest_n of_o that_o city_n he_o affirm_v it_o without_o prove_v it_o for_o there_o be_v very_o little_a likelihood_n that_o ●_z of_o different_a church_n who_o be_v so_o great_o divide_v will_v receive_v the_o communion_n together_o from_o the_o same_o person_n but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o raise_v a_o contest_v about_o this_o frequent_a commerce_n of_o the_o greek_n with_o the_o latin_n that_o i_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v to_o the_o end_n i_o may_v thereby_o demonstrate_v to_o mr._n arnaud_n the_o weakness_n of_o his_o argument_n for_o when_o he_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o greek_n believe_v the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n and_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n he_o may_v then_o well_o conclude_v against_o i_o that_o i_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o rashness_n in_o deny_v it_o but_o he_o can_v any_o way_n thereby_o advantage_v his_o cause_n see_v it_o will_v remain_v still_o to_o be_v examine_v whether_o these_o people_n do_v not_o receive_v these_o doctrine_n from_o the_o latin_n by_o mean_n of_o their_o mutual_a commerce_n since_o berengarius_fw-la be_v last_o condemn_v what_o i_o relate_v in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n touch_v the_o ignorance_n which_o have_v reign_v for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n in_o those_o country_n and_o the_o foolish_a superstition_n which_o be_v introduce_v even_o without_o our_o knowledge_n of_o their_o original_a will_v ever_o render_v this_o supposition_n probable_a it_o be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n to_o conceive_v that_o a_o doctrine_n of_o this_o nature_n may_v creep_v in_o in_o the_o dark_a among_o ignorant_a and_o superstitious_a people_n who_o hold_v a_o perpetual_a commerce_n with_o other_o that_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o this_o doctrine_n mr._n arnaud_n proceed_v far_o and_o relate_v the_o history_n of_o the_o croisado_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o century_n and_o in_o the_o twelve_o for_o the_o conquest_n 10._o l._n 2._o c._n 10._o of_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o this_o history_n do_v well_o deserve_v our_o notice_n for_o there_o will_v result_v from_o it_o these_o two_o truth_n the_o one_o that_o the_o bad_a condition_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n oblige_v they_o how_o proud_a and_o haughty_a soever_o they_o may_v otherwise_o be_v to_o a_o servile_a complacency_n with_o the_o latin_n and_o to_o a_o accommodation_n with_o their_o humour_n and_o interest_n and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o latin_n have_v not_o neglect_v this_o favourable_a occasion_n which_o the_o conjuncture_n of_o affair_n than_o offer_v they_o to_o establish_v their_o religion_n in_o the_o east_n we_o all_o know_v in_o what_o condition_n palestine_n syria_n and_o egypt_n lie_v when_o 1._o guilliel_n tyr._n bell._n sacri_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 1._o those_o of_o the_o west_n go_v thither_o the_o saracen_n have_v overrun_v these_o country_n from_o heraclius_n his_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o the_o seven_o century_n and_o the_o power_n of_o these_o infidel_n grow_v formidable_a to_o all_o the_o world_n whilst_o the_o greek_n strength_n continual_o decay_v whether_o by_o the_o supinity_n of_o their_o emperor_n or_o by_o the_o horrible_a crime_n with_o which_o the_o same_o emperor_n dishonour_v their_o throne_n the_o turk_n have_v subdue_v persia_n overspread_v the_o whole_a east_n and_o possess_v themselves_o of_o palestine_n syria_n cilicia_n isauria_n pamphilia_n 9_o idem_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 9_o lycia_n pisida_n lyconia_n cappadocia_n galatia_n pontus_n bythinia_n and_o moreover_o of_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o asia_n minor_a and_o so_o great_o terrify_v the_o greek_n as_o relate_v wm._n of_o tyre_n that_o scarce_o do_v they_o repute_v themselves_o safe_a within_o the_o wall_n of_o constantinople_n although_o the_o sea_n be_v as_o a_o rampire_n betwixt_o they_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o east_n have_v already_o receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o charlemain_n intercession_n for_o they_o to_o aron_n under_o who_o government_n they_o then_o 2._o idem_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 2._o live_v but_o this_o last_v not_o long_o for_o the_o misery_n into_o which_o they_o fall_v afterward_o become_v so_o intolerable_a that_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o century_n simeon_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o the_o relation_n of_o wm._n of_o tyre_n 16._o gill._n tyr._n l_o 6._o c._n 11._o jacob._n de_fw-fr v●●r_n hist_o orient_n c._n 16._o and_o james_n de_fw-fr vitry_n resolve_v to_o procure_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o write_v to_o pope_n urban_n the_o second_o and_o the_o western_a prince_n as_o well_o in_o his_o own_o name_n as_o in_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o mean_n of_o a_o french_a pilgrim_n call_v peter_n the_o hermit_n a_o native_a of_o the_o diocese_n of_o amiens_n wm._n of_o tyre_n observe_v that_o in_o the_o conference_n the_o patriarch_n have_v with_o this_o hermit_n he_o tell_v he_o among_o other_o thing_n that_o they_o can_v expect_v no_o help_n from_o the_o greek_n although_o of_o the_o same_o blood_n with_o they_o and_o their_o neighbour_n because_o they_o can_v hardly_o preserve_v themselves_o have_v fall_v into_o such_o a_o declension_n that_o within_o a_o short_a time_n they_o have_v lose_v above_o half_o their_o empire_n in_o effect_n mr._n arnaud_n have_v himself_o very_o well_o observe_v that_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n find_v themselves_o 192._o p._n 192._o unable_a to_o withstand_v the_o turkish_a power_n implore_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o christian_a prince_n in_o europe_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n who_o at_o that_o time_n be_v the_o most_o powerful_a even_o in_o temporal_n of_o all_o christendom_n and_o that_o alexis_n comnenus_n send_v for_o that_o purpose_n ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n of_o plaisance_n this_o than_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o affair_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n which_o force_v they_o to_o a_o great_a compliance_n with_o the_o latin_n from_o who_o assistance_n they_o expect_v their_o establishment_n these_o letter_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o entreaty_n of_o alexis_n together_o with_o the_o solicitation_n of_o peter_n the_o hermit_n procure_v the_o expedition_n of_o the_o latin_n into_o syria_n and_o palestine_n the_o success_n be_v know_v i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o but_o that_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o country_n only_o change_v their_o master_n for_o the_o lattin_n settle_v themselves_o there_o not_o only_o as_o friend_n and_o deliverer_n but_o conqueror_n which_o make_v all_o thing_n depend_v on_o their_o will_n for_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o possess_v themselves_o of_o syria_n and_o palestine_n they_o establish_v latin_a bishop_n there_o and_o drive_v out_o the_o greek_a bishop_n from_o their_o church_n that_o will_v not_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o accommodate_v themselves_o to_o its_o way_n of_o worship_n mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o whole_o accord_v with_o i_o in_o this_o we_o must_v imagine_v say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o million_o 193._o l._n 2._o c._n 10._o p._n 193._o of_o transubstantiator_n that_o pass_v over_o from_o europe_n into_o asia_n and_o make_v themselves_o master_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o these_o eastern_a province_n
return_v home_o the_o whole_a country_n be_v immediate_o fill_v with_o priest_n and_o latin_a bishop_n to_o bring_v over_o the_o people_n to_o piety_n and_o orthodoxy_n whereunto_o mr._n arnaud_n consent_n and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v 256._o l._n 3._o c._n 1._o p._n 256._o more_o rigorous_o handle_v for_o their_o religion_n in_o cyprus_n than_o in_o greece_n that_o several_a greek_a author_n have_v grievous_o complain_v of_o these_o cruelty_n and_o that_o german_a the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n reside_v in_o asia_n most_o pathetical_o lay_v open_a their_o suffering_n to_o pope_n gregory_n the_o nine_o friar_n stephen_n a_o portugais_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o cyprus_n 71._o general_z hist_o of_o the_o isle_n and_o kingdom_n of_o cyprus_n fol._n 71._o relate_v that_o although_o guy_n de_fw-fr lusignan_n be_v king_n of_o jerusalem_n yet_o be_v he_o force_v to_o be_v content_v with_o be_v king_n of_o cyprus_n he_o bring_v along_o with_o he_o several_a greek_n armenian_n coptite_n maronites_n jacobite_n indian_n nestorian_n iberian_o and_o georgian_n who_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a prelacy_n each_o of_o these_o have_v their_o own_o patriarch_n it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o the_o king_n of_o lusignan_n will_v not_o permit_v their_o bishop_n to_o exercise_v any_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o ibid._n ibid._n but_o order_v they_o shall_v only_o administer_v to_o they_o the_o sacrament_n leave_v the_o overplus_n to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o latin_a archbishop_n to_o who_o these_o nation_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v subject_a he_o likewise_o relate_v that_o about_o the_o same_o time_n there_o be_v publish_v the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o st._n bridget_n in_o which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o exhort_v the_o greek_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n let_v ibid._n ibid._n the_o greek_n know_v these_o be_v the_o word_n that_o their_o empire_n kingdom_n and_o lordship_n will_v never_o be_v in_o peace_n and_o security_n but_o always_o subject_a to_o their_o enemy_n from_o who_o they_o will_v continual_o receive_v exceed_v great_a damage_n and_o perpetual_a misery_n till_o such_o time_n as_o they_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o a_o true_a humility_n and_o charity_n obey_v its_o holy_a constitution_n and_o ceremony_n and_o whole_o conform_v themselves_o to_o her_o faith_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n do_v they_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n meet_v to_o cause_v these_o people_n to_o change_v their_o religion_n we_o may_v then_o i_o think_v plain_o enough_o see_v that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v the_o latin_n fault_n if_o the_o greek_n have_v not_o receive_v their_o doctrine_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o it_o do_v appear_v they_o have_v from_o that_o time_n believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o it_o not_o appear_v they_o hold_v it_o before_o we_o may_v then_o reasonable_o conclude_v they_o receive_v it_o from_o the_o latin_n this_o be_v a_o consequence_n which_o follow_v natural_o of_o itself_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o greek_n can_v be_v any_o long_o produce_v as_o that_o of_o the_o pure_a greek_n after_o so_o many_o endeavour_n to_o make_v they_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o more_o mr._n arnaud_n strive_v to_o prove_v the_o intercourse_n of_o these_o two_o nation_n the_o great_a hold_n he_o give_v we_o to_o contest_v with_o he_o the_o advantage_n he_o pretend_v to_o have_v obtain_v from_o hence_o but_o he_o use_v a_o admirable_a expedient_a to_o hinder_v we_o from_o mind_v this_o consequence_n for_o have_v see_v on_o one_o hand_n that_o these_o history_n be_v too_o well_o know_v to_o be_v pass_v over_o whole_o in_o silence_n and_o on_o the_o other_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v sincere_o produce_v they_o as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o they_o will_v certain_o make_v for_o our_o advantage_n as_o it_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v he_o have_v thereupon_o bethink_v himself_o and_o present_v they_o in_o another_o kind_n of_o dress_n whereby_o he_o may_v insensible_o turn_v aside_o his_o reader_n mind_n and_o amuse_v they_o by_o a_o agreeable_a diversion_n and_o to_o this_o end_n have_v think_v good_a to_o suppose_v i_o deny_v the_o greek_n know_v what_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o to_o employ_v all_o these_o historical_a passage_n in_o oppose_v this_o fantastical_a supposition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o manifest_v the_o greek_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o latin_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n i_o shall_v make_v appear_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o vain_a pretence_n and_o a_o mere_a quibble_v on_o word_n which_o he_o have_v design_o take_v in_o a_o sense_n contrary_a to_o my_o meaning_n wherefore_o i_o here_o declare_v it_o never_o enter_v into_o my_o thought_n to_o deny_v what_o he_o make_v i_o deny_v for_o this_o be_v a_o invention_n he_o have_v use_v on_o purpose_n to_o conceal_v his_o indirect_a deal_n chap._n iii_o that_o the_o greek_a emperor_n lead_v by_o politic_a interest_n have_v themselves_o favour_v the_o design_n of_o the_o latin_n in_o introduce_v their_o doctrine_n into_o greece_n mr._n arnaud_n three_o artifice_n discover_v it_o have_v not_o be_v only_o the_o latin_n that_o earnest_o endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o greek_n receive_v their_o doctrine_n for_o even_o the_o grecian_a emperor_n themselves_o have_v favour_v this_o design_n induce_v by_o politic_a respect_n which_o put_v they_o upon_o seek_v the_o friendship_n of_o the_o western_a prince_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n who_o in_o those_o time_n as_o speak_v mr._n arnaud_n give_v law_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o even_o in_o temporal_n we_o all_o know_v what_o a_o great_a influence_n the_o inclination_n of_o prince_n have_v not_o only_o on_o the_o people_n but_o ecclesiastic_n and_o prelate_n it_o be_v usual_a with_o subject_n to_o turn_v themselves_o on_o that_o side_n which_o be_v most_o please_a to_o their_o sovereign_n and_o there_o be_v few_o person_n who_o make_v it_o not_o their_o business_n so_o to_o do_v especial_o when_o prince_n open_o declare_v their_o mind_n and_o make_v use_n of_o their_o authority_n in_o punish_v those_o that_o withstand_v they_o and_o reward_v those_o that_o approve_v they_o now_o this_o the_o grecian_a emperor_n have_v often_o particular_o do_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o which_o they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o unite_v their_o subject_n possevin_n the_o jesuit_n reckon_v up_o fourteen_o of_o these_o interest_v reunion_n 7._o de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi moscovit_fw-la p._n 7._o the_o greek_n say_v he_o have_v be_v reunite_v to_o we_o fourteen_o time_n by_o public_a confession_n and_o have_v so_o many_o time_n depart_v from_o we_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o as_o they_o have_v ever_o know_v the_o pope_n earnest_n desire_v to_o submit_v they_o to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n so_o likewise_o have_v they_o not_o fail_v to_o flatter_v this_o desire_n by_o fair_a promise_n when_o they_o need_v that_o church_n assistance_n either_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o some_o important_a design_n or_o for_o the_o avert_n of_o some_o dangerous_a tempest_n which_o threaten_v they_o but_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o these_o have_v be_v over_o they_o have_v return_v to_o their_o first_o state_n and_o slight_v these_o reunion_n i_o know_v not_o how_o it_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v so_o often_o deceive_v shall_v still_o continue_v so_o facile_a but_o perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o a_o single_a interest_n but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v the_o pope_n have_v never_o be_v backward_o in_o these_o matter_n my_o design_n be_v not_o to_o set_v down_o here_o all_o these_o reunion_n one_o after_o another_o and_o relate_v their_o particular_a circumstance_n see_v a_o account_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o sundry_a historian_n but_o more_o especial_o in_o the_o book_n leo_n allatius_n write_v touch_v the_o agreement_n of_o these_o two_o church_n i_o shall_v only_o here_o take_v notice_n of_o some_o of_o they_o observe_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o which_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v after_o what_o manner_n the_o greek_a emperor_n have_v proceed_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o latin_n when_o they_o want_v the_o pope_n assistance_n michael_z cerularius_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o leo_n bishop_n of_o acrida_n have_v write_v some_o letter_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o peter_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n thereupon_o cause_v the_o latin_a church_n to_o be_v shut_v up_o at_o constantinople_n pope_n leo_n the_o eleven_o be_v great_o move_v at_o it_o he_o therefore_o write_v to_o cerularius_n and_o leo_n of_o acrida_n a_o long_a letter_n wherein_o he_o answer_v their_o objection_n and_o accuse_v likewise_o the_o greek_a church_n of_o lightness_n rashness_n and_o presumption_n this_o happen_v about_o
c._n 20_o codin_n de_fw-fr officiis_n const_n cap._n 1._o rope_n to_o be_v fasten_v about_o his_o neck_n and_o to_o be_v thus_o expose_v through_o out_o all_o the_o city_n with_o his_o wife_n and_o niece_n together_o with_o ten_o other_o bind_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n cause_v the_o two_o former_a of_o these_o to_o be_v flapt_v ever_o and_o anon_o on_o the_o cheek_n with_o the_o entrail_n of_o a_o sheep_n which_o be_v among_o the_o greek_n a_o kind_n of_o infamous_a punishment_n wherewith_o only_o the_o vile_a offender_n be_v treat_v and_o those_o who_o add_v obstinacy_n to_o the_o crime_n of_o which_o they_o have_v be_v guilty_a he_o likewise_o imprison_v four_o of_o the_o chief_a officer_n of_o his_o house_n two_o of_o which_o be_v his_o kinsman_n and_o there_o keep_v they_o a_o long_a time_n lade_v with_o 16._o idem_fw-la l._n 6._o c._n 16._o iron_n this_o severity_n seem_v very_o great_a but_o not_o content_v therewith_o when_o the_o pope_n send_v legate_n to_o constantinople_n to_o confirm_v the_o greek_n in_o their_o obedience_n to_o he_o he_o make_v they_o witness_n of_o his_o cruelty_n towards_o the_o opposer_n of_o this_o union_n command_v a_o certain_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n to_o conduct_v they_o to_o the_o prison_n and_o show_v they_o these_o four_o person_n who_o be_v of_o the_o chief_a rank_n in_o greece_n they_o be_v in_o a_o square_a room_n each_o of_o they_o chain_v to_o a_o corner_n thereof_o and_o lade_v with_o iron_n and_o that_o which_o be_v a_o aggravation_n of_o their_o misery_n be_v to_o be_v thus_o expose_v a_o spectacle_n to_o their_o enemy_n will_v we_o know_v the_o motive_n induce_v this_o prince_n to_o use_v so_o great_a 18._o idem_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 18._o severity_n in_o this_o matter_n observe_v we_o then_o what_o pachymerus_n tell_v we_o he_o send_v oftentimes_o ambassador_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o endeavour_v to_o gain_v he_o by_o present_n for_o he_o plain_o perceive_v the_o danger_n lie_v on_o that_o side_n and_o that_o the_o italian_n can_v not_o lie_v long_o idle_a wherefore_o he_o make_v proposal_n of_o union_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v be_v secure_a as_o to_o they_o and_o the_o better_a dispose_n of_o his_o other_o affair_n these_o embassy_n than_o be_v frequent_a and_o the_o present_v magnificent_a not_o only_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o likewise_o to_o several_a cardinal_n and_o other_o who_o he_o judge_v powerful_a in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n in_o effect_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o pope_n urbain_n the_o four_o receive_v 1262._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1262._o num_fw-la 3._o etc._n etc._n ad_fw-la ann_n 1262._o the_o news_n of_o the_o re-taking_a of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o greek_n he_o earnest_o endeavour_v to_o stir_v up_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n to_o assist_v the_o latin_n he_o write_v for_o this_o effect_n to_o the_o friar_n minorite_n in_o france_n and_o enjoin_v they_o to_o preach_v a_o croisado_n on_o this_o occasion_n with_o the_o same_o indulgence_n which_o have_v be_v grant_v they_o that_o undertake_v the_o holy_a war_n he_o write_v likewise_o to_o king_n lewis_n upon_o the_o same_o account_n and_o threaten_v the_o genoise_n who_o favour_v michael_n be_v at_o varyance_n with_o the_o venetian_n that_o if_o they_o forsake_v not_o his_o alliance_n he_o will_v excommunicate_v they_o he_o write_v to_o the_o prelate_n of_o england_n and_o france_n exhort_v they_o to_o contribute_v to_o this_o war_n in_o short_a he_o forget_v nothing_o he_o judge_v necessary_a in_o this_o occasion_n michael_n then_o see_v that_o the_o only_a mean_n to_o shelter_v himself_o from_o this_o storm_n 22._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1263._o num_fw-la 22._o be_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o usual_a policy_n of_o the_o greek_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o negotiate_v the_o reunion_n of_o the_o two_o church_n he_o thereupon_o write_v to_o the_o pope_n letter_n full_a of_o respect_n and_o affection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o have_v receive_v such_o a_o answer_n as_o he_o desire_v he_o earnest_o apply_v himself_o to_o this_o business_n mr._n arnaud_n himself_o be_v agree_v on_o the_o motive_n which_o set_v this_o emperor_n at_o work_n foresee_v say_v he_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o arm_v the_o western_a prince_n 266._o l._n 3._o c._n 2._o p._n 266._o against_o he_o and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o potent_a enemy_n in_o the_o person_n of_o charles_n d'anjou_n king_n of_o naples_n and_o sicily_n with_o who_o the_o emperor_n baldwin_n be_v drive_v from_o constantinople_n be_v ally_v he_o resolve_v thereupon_o to_o reunite_v the_o greek_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o he_o may_v by_o this_o mean_n deliver_v himself_o from_o the_o fear_n of_o those_o dreadful_a croisado_n which_o make_v the_o greek_a emperor_n tremble_v at_o that_o time_n in_o constantinople_n the_o sultan_n in_o babylon_n and_o grand_a cairo_n and_o the_o tartar_n themselves_o as_o far_o as_o persia_n it_o be_v certain_a add_v he_o that_o this_o reunion_n be_v carry_v on_o upon_o politic_a respect_n and_o these_o in_o effect_n be_v the_o true_a reason_n of_o michael_n undertake_n which_o be_v his_o great_a interest_n he_o therefore_o leave_v no_o mean_n unattempted_a whereby_o to_o accomplish_v it_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v still_o grant_v we_o may_v read_v say_v he_o in_o pachymerus_n that_o he_o endeavour_v too_o violent_o to_o bring_v the_o bishop_n over_o to_o his_o will._n but_o do_v he_o not_o acknowledge_v it_o we_o need_v only_o 274._o l._n 3._o c._n 3._o p._n 274._o read_v what_o michael_n himself_o say_v in_o his_o harangue_n to_o the_o greek_a clergy_n assemble_v upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o must_v acknowledge_v say_v he_o that_o i_o have_v stisle_v within_o i_o the_o most_o tender_a sentiment_n of_o nature_n to_o accomplish_v my_o design_n you_o know_v 15._o pachym_n l._n 6._o c._n 15._o i_o love_v a_o person_n with_o the_o same_o tenderness_n and_o respect_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v my_o own_o father_n and_o i_o believe_v i_o owe_v he_o more_o than_o my_o father_n see_v he_o give_v i_o the_o communion_n and_o receive_v i_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o i_o esteem_v more_o than_o the_o give_v i_o life_n and_o yet_o have_v i_o sacrifice_v he_o to_o this_o interest_n it_o be_v the_o patriarch_n joseph_n i_o mean_v i_o have_v violent_o handle_v several_a other_o even_o my_o intimate_a friend_n and_o oppress_v divers_a among_o yourselves_o i_o have_v moreover_o several_a of_o my_o near_a kinsman_n in_o prison_n there_o have_v be_v no_o other_o reason_n for_o their_o oppose_v i_o or_o my_o punish_v they_o than_o only_o this_o reunion_n with_o the_o latin_n i_o think_v this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v we_o that_o this_o emperor_n abuse_v his_o power_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n i_o confess_v those_o that_o succeed_v he_o although_o they_o have_v the_o same_o opinion_n touch_v the_o reunion_n yet_o use_v not_o the_o same_o extremity_n nevertheless_o john_n paléologus_n 1370._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1370._o endeavour_v earnest_o to_o effect_v this_o and_o therefore_o go_v in_o person_n to_o rome_n in_o great_a pomp_n to_o make_v his_o declaration_n emanuel_n the_o second_o who_o succeed_v he_o tread_v in_o the_o same_o step_n address_v himself_o to_o pope_n boniface_n the_o nine_o who_o publish_v a_o croisado_n for_o his_o assistance_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o a_o while_n after_o he_o treat_v with_o martin_n the_o five_o touch_v the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o two_o church_n in_o fine_a john_n the_o seven_o paleologus_fw-la come_v to_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o 5._o syrup_n hist_o council_n flor._n sect._n 2._o c._n 5._o send_v his_o clergy_n thither_o on_o the_o same_o design_n we_o may_v then_o well_o conclude_v the_o latin_n want_v not_o opportunity_n to_o introduce_v their_o religion_n among_o the_o greek_n for_o first_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v but_o that_o this_o great_a passion_n these_o emperor_n show_v towards_o this_o union_n incline_v the_o mind_n and_o heart_n of_o several_a person_n as_o well_o of_o the_o clergy_n as_o laity_n to_o favour_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o embrace_v its_o interest_n and_o accommodate_v themselves_o to_o its_o doctrine_n we_o all_o know_v how_o weak_a and_o fickle_a the_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n be_v they_o approve_v and_o esteem_v whatsoever_o be_v in_o favour_n and_o credit_n there_o be_v few_o who_o mind_n be_v not_o bias_v even_o in_o religious_a matter_n by_o temporal_a advantage_n man_n common_o in_o such_o case_n endeavour_v to_o mollisy_n and_o take_v in_o a_o good_a sense_n that_o which_o before_o be_v a_o subject_a of_o scandal_n they_o enlarge_v or_o diminish_v object_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o point_n they_o desire_v they_o harken_v to_o nothing_o but_o what_o be_v please_v and_o behold_v whatsoever_o oppose_v their_o interest_n
they_o beautiful_a church_n he_o tell_v we_o likewise_o that_o in_o the_o isle_n of_o nixia_n there_o be_v jesuit_n recollet_n and_o capucin_n who_o make_v great_a progress_n in_o the_o propagate_a of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n beside_o the_o jesuit_n and_o capucin_n that_o be_v according_a 225._o stochove_n voyage_n p._n 225._o to_o thevenot_n relation_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o chios_n the_o sieur_n stochove_n tell_v we_o of_o carmelite_n friar_n who_o be_v there_o likewise_o at_o smyrna_n there_o be_v both_o capucin_n and_o jesuit_n say_v the_o sieur_n boulaye_n 20._o boulay_n le_fw-fr goux_fw-fr part_n 1._o c._n 9_o p._n 20._o le_fw-fr goux_fw-fr and_o villamont_n observe_v that_o in_o the_o isle_n of_o cephalonia_n and_o zant_n there_o be_v religious_a of_o the_o order_n of_o st._n francis_n we_o know_v that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v settle_v themselves_o since_o the_o year_n 1609_o at_o constantinople_n the_o jesuit_n say_v the_o sieur_n stochove_v have_v st._n bennet_n '_o s_o church_n where_o they_o be_v very_o well_o accommodate_v have_v a_o fine_a garden_n the_o 98._o villamont_n voyage_n l._n 2._o c._n 4._o stochovie_n voyage_n p._n 98._o church_n although_o it_o be_v but_o small_a yet_o be_v a_o very_a beautiful_a one_o be_v cover_v with_o mosaisk_n work_n these_o father_n say_v he_o do_v make_v great_a proficiency_n in_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n instruct_v they_o in_o the_o catholic_n apostolic_a roman_a faith_n but_o beside_o the_o jesuit_n there_o be_v jacobin_n and_o cordelier_n the_o cordelier_n say_v the_o sieur_n du_fw-mi loir_fw-fr be_v at_o st._n marys_n the_o jacobin_n at_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o jesuit_n at_o st._n bennet_n which_o be_v a_o very_a fair_a church_n and_o paint_a 67._o loir_n voyage_n p._n 67._o also_o with_o mosaic_a work_n very_o rich_a but_o not_o well_o contrive_v it_o be_v well_o know_v there_o be_v emissary_n likewise_o in_o hispaham_n in_o persia_n who_o have_v spread_v themselves_o as_o far_o as_o the_o border_n of_o the_o armenian_n we_o have_v not_o see_v any_o city_n in_o all_o our_o travel_n say_v the_o sieur_n de_fw-fr bourges_n which_o be_v better_o provide_v with_o emissary_n the_o reverend_a father_n the_o austin_n portugais_n monk_n carmelites_n and_o jesuit_n have_v successive_o establish_v themselves_o since_o some_o year_n and_o by_o the_o permission_n of_o the_o prince_n they_o exercise_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o liberty_n their_o function_n the_o reverend_a father_n the_o jesuit_n have_v settle_v themselves_o at_o julfa_n which_o be_v a_o small_a city_n about_o a_o league_n distant_a from_o hispaham_n chief_o consist_v of_o armenian_n have_v a_o particular_a conveniency_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o schismatic_n he_o tell_v we_o likewise_o that_o there_o be_v at_o surat_n a_o mission_n of_o french_a capucin_n and_o another_o at_o babylon_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o former_a of_o these_o these_o be_v say_v he_o the_o only_a emissary_n in_o this_o city_n we_o have_v be_v witness_n of_o the_o respect_n show_v they_o and_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o labour_n to_o bring_v home_o to_o the_o church_n the_o armenian_n jacobite_n and_o nestorian_n i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v myself_o with_o mention_v the_o mission_n of_o the_o india_n nor_o they_o of_o ethiopia_n for_o the_o relation_n of_o these_o be_v public_a and_o know_v by_o all_o the_o world_n we_o may_v read_v what_o john_n peter_n maffeé_v and_o du_fw-fr jaric_n both_o jesuit_n have_v write_v in_o their_o history_n of_o the_o india_n touch_v this_o matter_n and_o likewise_o the_o relation_n of_o ethiopia_n take_v out_o of_o the_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o general_n of_o the_o jesuit_n viteleschy_n and_o another_o history_n of_o the_o east_n india_n print_v at_o arras_n anno_fw-la 1628._o but_o what_o i_o already_o mention_v be_v sufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o fallacy_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n argument_n who_o pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o his_o faith_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o schismatical_a church_n for_o now_o after_o what_o i_o represent_v all_o which_o have_v be_v faithful_o transcribe_v out_o of_o author_n never_o suspect_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o assurance_n can_v we_o have_v if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v find_v establish_v among_o these_o people_n that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v communicate_v to_o they_o by_o all_o these_o emissary_n who_o have_v be_v send_v for_o so_o many_o year_n for_o no_o other_o purpose_n it_o ought_v methinks_v to_o be_v show_v we_o to_o colour_n over_o this_o proof_n that_o the_o source_n whence_o they_o draw_v their_o christianity_n have_v not_o be_v adulterate_v that_o these_o spring_n have_v run_v clear_a without_o be_v trouble_v to_o this_o day_n or_o at_o least_o the_o time_n of_o these_o mission_n must_v be_v lay_v aside_o and_o mr._n arnaud_n if_o he_o intend_v to_o deal_v sincere_o must_v begin_v from_o the_o age_n which_o precede_v they_o for_o if_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v these_o schismatic_n believe_v the_o same_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n before_o all_o this_o care_n for_o their_o instruction_n what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o we_o shall_v suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v surprise_v by_o so_o frivolous_a a_o argument_n i_o will_v suppose_v for_o once_o that_o i_o be_v deceive_v when_o i_o maintain_v that_o any_o one_o of_o these_o nation_n who_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n and_o submit_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o reckon_v transubstantiation_n among_o the_o article_n of_o their_o creed_n nor_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n among_o their_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n will_n mr._n arnaud_n then_o imagine_v that_o my_o mistake_n have_v prejudice_v my_o cause_n or_o justify_v the_o consequence_n he_o pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o his_o principle_n this_o pretention_n of_o he_o in_o my_o mind_n will_v be_v very_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a for_o whether_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n do_v or_o do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n this_o be_v only_o a_o question_n between_o he_o and_o i_o to_o which_o the_o subject_a i_o defend_v have_v no_o relation_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v expect_v no_o more_o at_o utmost_a than_o a_o victory_n over_o i_o and_o not_o my_o cause_n see_v the_o consequence_n he_o will_v draw_v hence_o will_v be_v continual_o dispute_v he_o to_o wit_n that_o transubstantiation_n have_v be_v perpetual_o believe_v in_o these_o church_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v be_v to_o blame_v in_o pass_v over_o so_o slight_o as_o he_o have_v do_v a_o point_n of_o this_o importance_n on_o which_o depend_v the_o whole_a force_n of_o his_o proof_n and_o he_o may_v just_o be_v complain_v of_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o he_o have_v in_o his_o whole_a proceed_n betray_v a_o great_a care_n for_o his_o own_o private_a reputation_n than_o that_o of_o the_o church_n who_o cause_n he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o defend_v as_o to_o what_o concern_v myself_o i_o hope_v i_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o give_v the_o world_n a_o good_a account_n touch_v what_o i_o deny_v and_o be_v i_o mistake_v i_o will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o make_v a_o open_a recantation_n without_o the_o least_o apprehension_n that_o this_o my_o retractation_n will_v in_o any_o sort_n prejudice_v my_o cause_n see_v in_o effect_n i_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o follow_v that_o a_o doctrine_n have_v be_v perpetual_a in_o religion_n although_o schismatical_a church_n now_o profess_v it_o as_o well_o as_o the_o latin_n this_o consequence_n must_v be_v prove_v as_o well_o as_o its_o principle_n do_v mr._n arnaud_n take_v a_o direct_a course_n and_o argue_v in_o a_o requisite_a manner_n to_o satisfy_v judicious_a person_n and_o therefore_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v give_v a_o sincere_a account_n of_o this_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o mission_n which_o i_o come_v now_o from_o represent_v in_o this_o chap._n for_o i_o can_v imagine_v how_o mr._n arnaud_n can_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n as_o he_o have_v do_v a_o history_n so_o important_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o make_n of_o a_o right_a judgement_n of_o this_o whole_a controversy_n see_v he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o if_o he_o believe_v he_o have_v do_v right_a i_o must_v needs_o say_v he_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o sincerity_n different_a from_o that_o of_o all_o other_o people_n and_o if_o he_o believe_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v take_v this_o course_n we_o must_v affirm_v that_o his_o silence_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o criminal_a in_o that_o he_o have_v act_v against_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n chap._n v._n that_o the_o mean_n the_o emissary_n have_v use_v for_o the_o introduce_v of_o the_o roman_a religion_n among_o the_o schismatic_n the_o seminary_n which_o have_v be_v set_v up_o for_o the_o same_o design_n and_o the_o particular_a
instruction_n give_v they_o touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n do_v sufficient_o show_v that_o there_o can_v no_o advantage_n accrue_v to_o mr._n arnaud_n by_o their_o belief_n mr._n arnaud_n five_o artifice_n discover_v whosoever_o consider_v the_o forego_n chapter_n will_v not_o i_o suppose_v overmuch_o value_n mr._n arnaud_n labour_n touch_v the_o grecian_a and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n call_v schismatic_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v never_o a_o more_o vain_a and_o fruitless_a amusement_n than_o his_o whole_a dispute_n on_o that_o subject_a at_o the_o end_n whereof_o i_o be_o much_o mistake_v if_o he_o find_v not_o he_o have_v ill_o bestow_v his_o time_n have_v give_v no_o light_n at_o all_o to_o the_o main_a question_n which_o be_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o all_o antiquity_n but_o beside_o what_o i_o already_o offer_v it_o remain_v that_o i_o make_v some_o important_a reflection_n on_o those_o thing_n the_o most_o part_n of_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n and_o which_o i_o shall_v recollect_v as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v in_o this_o chapter_n to_o the_o end_n i_o may_v not_o any_o long_o detain_v the_o reader_n on_o a_o point_n which_o i_o believe_v i_o have_v sufficient_o evidence_v first_o then_o i_o find_v in_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o emissary_n of_o st._n erinys_n that_o one_o of_o the_o reason_n for_o which_o they_o be_v send_v be_v to_o endeavour_v the_o advancement_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o author_n of_o these_o relation_n desirous_a to_o give_v the_o world_n a_o account_n of_o the_o honour_n they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o procure_v from_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o island_n to_o the_o sacrament_n begin_v thus_o i_o believe_v say_v he_o the_o gentleman_n of_o 304._o c._n 20._o p._n 304._o the_o confraternity_n of_o the_o august_n society_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n have_v testify_v so_o great_a zeal_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o this_o devotion_n especial_o in_o the_o eastern_a country_n will_v approve_v of_o these_o discourse_n see_v they_o will_v be_v inform_v by_o they_o that_o the_o prayer_n and_o vow_n they_o have_v make_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o these_o poor_a wretch_n be_v not_o fruitless_a these_o word_n sufficient_o show_v if_o i_o be_v not_o mistake_v that_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a end_n which_o the_o emissary_n propose_v to_o themselves_o in_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v to_o give_v they_o those_o sentiment_n which_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o entertain_v concern_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v unto_o this_o whereunto_o tend_v the_o zeal_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o confraternity_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v no_o great_a wonder_n if_o they_o have_v accomplish_v their_o design_n and_o that_o if_o these_o people_n do_v at_o this_o day_n believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o adore_v the_o eucharist_n it_o can_v be_v hence_o conclude_v that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v among_o they_o ever_o since_o they_o first_o receive_v the_o christian_a faith_n but_o the_o better_a to_o convince_v mr._n arnaud_n of_o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o pretend_a consequence_n and_o how_o little_a i_o will_v esteem_v his_o victory_n if_o it_o be_v as_o real_a as_o it_o be_v false_a and_o imaginary_a i_o need_v but_o set_v before_o he_o the_o mean_v these_o emissary_n have_v use_v whereby_o to_o insinuate_v the_o roman_a religion_n in_o these_o country_n in_o all_o which_o i_o shall_v relate_v no_o more_o than_o what_o i_o learn_v from_o author_n no_o wise_a suspect_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o instrument_n they_o use_v be_v money_n francis_n richard_n the_o jesuit_n in_o the_o foresay_a relation_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o st._n erinys_n plain_o tell_v we_o so_o above_o a_o hundred_o poor_a greek_n say_v he_o become_v our_o own_o be_v draw_v over_o to_o we_o by_o 247._o c._n 16._o p._n 247._o some_o small_a charity_n we_o bestow_v on_o they_o money_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n in_o these_o part_n and_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o provide_v we_o have_v wherewithal_o to_o give_v the_o greek_a bishop_n they_o will_v suffer_v we_o to_o confess_v preach_v and_o instruct_v they_o who_o be_v under_o their_o charge_n in_o whatsoever_o we_o please_v so_o that_o be_v not_o these_o very_a fit_a people_n to_o determine_v the_o antiquity_n of_o our_o doctrine_n anthony_n de_fw-fr gouveau_fw-fr one_o of_o the_o 3._o anthony_n gouveau_n relation_n lib._n 3._o emissary_n of_o persia_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o armenian_n which_o be_v carry_v over_o into_o persia_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o patriarch_n david_n express_o observe_v that_o one_o of_o the_o first_o course_n the_o missionary_n take_v to_o draw_v these_o people_n to_o they_o be_v to_o distribute_v money_n among_o they_o by_o which_o mean_v they_o be_v easy_o wrought_v on_o to_o come_v to_o catechise_n but_o beside_o money_n they_o make_v the_o practice_n of_o physic_n to_o serve_v as_o a_o pretence_n for_o the_o introduce_v of_o they_o into_o house_n where_o they_o take_v their_o opportunity_n 248._o relation_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o st._n erinys_n c._n 16._o p_o 248._o to_o discourse_v of_o religion_n by_o this_o mean_n say_v the_o jesuit_n richard_n we_o have_v free_a admittance_n into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o many_o time_n gain_v by_o conversation_n what_o we_o can_v not_o effect_v by_o preach_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o mathematics_n draw_v to_o they_o several_a person_n and_o furnish_v they_o with_o occasion_n of_o entertain_v they_o besson_n the_o jesuit_n speak_v of_o one_o of_o their_o emissary_n at_o damascus_n he_o draw_v say_v he_o to_o our_o 5._o holy_a syria_n part_n 1._o 3_o treatise_n c._n 5._o house_n several_a greek_n by_o the_o fame_n of_o his_o skill_n in_o the_o mathematics_n which_o be_v a_o science_n in_o great_a esteem_n among_o the_o levantine_n people_n and_o especial_o astronomy_n upon_o which_o account_n our_o emissary_n have_v easy_a admittance_n into_o great_a house_n whether_o of_o turk_n or_o christian_n they_o endeavour_v more_o especial_o to_o gain_v the_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n and_o that_o with_o success_n as_o it_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n i_o shall_v produce_v father_n john_n amien_n say_v besson_n speak_v of_o the_o emissary_n of_o tripolys_n gain_v 4._o ibid._n treatise_n the_o 4._o c._n 4._o the_o greek_a bishop_n of_o tripolys_n to_o the_o romish_a religion_n the_o same_o besson_n discourse_v of_o the_o mission_n in_o aleppo_n and_o of_o one_o of_o its_o father_n he_o have_v entire_o win_v say_v he_o philip_z the_o patriarch_n who_o be_v patriarch_n 9_o ibid._n treat_n 1._o c._n 9_o of_o great_a armenia_n who_o seat_n be_v in_o persia_n at_o eschiniadzin_n this_o venerable_a prelate_n be_v come_v to_o aleppo_n to_o visit_v the_o holy_a place_n receive_v the_o father_n with_o great_a expression_n of_o good_a will_n and_o show_v he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_n in_o hit_v heart_n be_v of_o a_o very_a frank_a nature_n he_o far_o declare_v this_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o another_o patriarch_n he_o say_v moreover_o that_o this_o same_o emissary_n convert_v a_o armenian_a bishop_n who_o be_v afterward_o force_v by_o the_o schismatic_n to_o leave_v his_o country_n and_o retire_v into_o a_o monastery_n in_o cappadocia_n and_o will_v turn_v jesuit_n but_o say_v he_o whatsoever_o great_a quality_n he_o have_v it_o be_v not_o judge_v meet_v to_o deprive_v the_o armenian_n of_o this_o pastor_n speak_v in_o another_o place_n of_o a_o emissary_n of_o aleppo_n he_o have_v bring_v over_o say_v he_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n another_o greek_a bishop_n and_o with_o this_o person_n endow_v 10._o ib._n chap._n 10._o with_o such_o good_a qualification_n he_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o shall_v gain_v several_a other_o who_o will_n it_o be_v likely_a follow_v so_o great_a a_o example_n certain_o add_v he_o in_o these_o mission_n of_o the_o levant_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o particular_a regard_n have_v to_o the_o bishop_n who_o example_n the_o people_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o imitate_v discourse_v elsewhere_o of_o the_o emissary_n of_o said_a we_o be_v oblige_v say_v he_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o greek_n who_o beside_o his_o be_v win_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n 7._o treatise_n 6._o c._n 7._o by_o one_o of_o our_o father_n lay_v other_o obligation_n on_o we_o for_o he_o open_v to_o we_o his_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o his_o church_n and_o public_o declare_v to_o his_o hearer_n that_o the_o frank_n church_n and_o that_o of_o the_o maronites_n be_v the_o true_a church_n these_o conquest_n can_v be_v lose_v unless_o by_o the_o ill_a conduct_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o the_o pernicious_a maxim_n they_o may_v give_v out_o
this_o be_v a_o especial_a mean_n to_o make_v all_o these_o people_n in_o a_o short_a time_n to_o become_v insensible_o roman_a catholic_n but_o we_o must_v likewise_o take_v notice_n that_o these_o gentleman_n who_o leave_v no_o mean_n untried_a do_v whole_o betake_v themselves_o to_o these_o two_o last_o way_n namely_o that_o of_o gain_v the_o prelate_n and_o that_o of_o instruct_v youth_n for_o when_o they_o have_v win_v any_o bishop_n to_o their_o party_n they_o oblige_v he_o to_o set_v they_o upon_o the_o educate_v of_o their_o child_n make_v use_n of_o his_o authority_n that_o they_o may_v manage_v their_o business_n with_o great_a success_n and_o security_n which_o the_o same_o author_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n show_v we_o father_n queriot_n say_v he_o be_v a_o fit_a person_n to_o offer_v his_o service_n to_o the_o greek_a metropolitain_n who_o be_v a_o good_a catholic_n 4._o holy_a syria_n part_n 1._o treat_n 1._o c._n 4._o and_o a_o man_n of_o a_o strict_a life_n he_o mean_v the_o metropolitain_n of_o aleppo_n he_o have_v oblige_v he_o to_o trust_v we_o with_o the_o education_n of_o the_o grecian_a child_n of_o that_o country_n and_o to_o slight_v the_o discourse_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o a_o little_a far_o it_o be_v to_o be_v moreover_o observe_v say_v he_o that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n reprehend_v he_o for_o employ_v a_o religious_a frank_n in_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o greek_n even_o in_o his_o episcopal_a house_n this_o great_a man_n who_o be_v ever_o like_o himself_o do_v notwithstanding_o permit_v the_o father_n to_o proceed_v on_o still_o in_o his_o undertake_n speak_v of_o the_o mission_n of_o damascus_n this_o mission_n say_v he_o be_v the_o work_n of_o father_n jerom_n queriot_n who_o be_v send_v from_o aleppo_n to_o damascus_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1643_o by_o the_o greek_a patriarch_n euthymius_n who_o be_v of_o the_o isle_n of_o chios_n and_o of_o the_o romish_a religion_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o youth_n and_o especial_o of_o his_o nephew_n and_o for_o the_o composition_n of_o his_o circular_a letter_n and_o greek_a and_o arabian_a patent_n yet_o he_o tell_v we_o this_o father_n be_v force_v to_o leave_v the_o place_n the_o greek_n grow_v jealous_a of_o he_o in_o as_o much_o as_o that_o he_o be_v a_o religious_a frank_n be_v employ_v in_o the_o chief_a affair_n of_o the_o patriarchate_o i_o can_v forbear_v mention_v what_o the_o say_a author_n relate_v on_o the_o same_o subject_a namely_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o greek_a youth_n we_o must_v betake_v ourselves_o to_o this_o course_n say_v he_o for_o the_o convert_v the_o greek_a schismatic_n we_o be_v too_o old_a say_v jerasimus_n a_o archbishop_n and_o vicar_n of_o the_o patriarchate_n to_o receive_v new_a impression_n but_o instruct_v our_o youth_n who_o by_o your_o care_n will_v be_v capable_a of_o try_v good_a thing_n and_o prove_v a_o seminary_n of_o perfect_a christian_n word_n say_v he_o which_o he_o utter_v in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o youth_n on_o purpose_n to_o encourage_v they_o to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o advantage_n offer_v they_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o we_o when_o we_o see_v young_a greek_n who_o be_v natural_o eloquent_a to_o instruct_v so_o handsome_o their_o servant_n and_o i_o have_v almost_o say_v even_o their_o very_a parent_n who_o become_v as_o it_o be_v their_o disciple_n in_o religion_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n more_o great_a and_o glorious_a than_o the_o build_n of_o new_a church_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o convert_v the_o world_n for_o new_a church_n be_v plant_v by_o the_o settlement_n of_o these_o mission_n and_o the_o old_a one_o repair_v at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o instruction_n of_o child_n who_o teach_v their_o parent_n this_o jesuit_n lay_v open_v the_o matter_n plain_o and_o sincere_o whereas_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o so_o for_o he_o will_v have_v these_o new_a church_n pass_v for_o old_a one_o the_o same_o author_n relate_v that_o have_v observe_v john_n damascen_n be_v esteem_v in_o this_o country_n as_o a_o infallible_a doctor_n and_o that_o his_o testimony_n against_o heresy_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n with_o they_o one_o of_o our_o father_n say_v he_o undertake_v to_o teach_v this_o saint_n logic_n and_o divinity_n touch_v the_o controvert_v point_n he_o say_v this_o invention_n take_v and_o inspire_v the_o scholar_n with_o great_a zeal_n but_o say_v he_o this_o their_o forwardness_n be_v take_v notice_n of_o by_o some_o envious_a person_n who_o inform_v the_o vicar_n of_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o the_o matter_n and_o so_o far_o incense_v he_o that_o he_o cause_v the_o young_a student_n to_o be_v bring_v before_o he_o and_o have_v reprehend_v their_o boldness_n condemn_v their_o opinion_n and_o charge_v they_o to_o desist_v from_o such_o discourse_n add_v therewithal_o that_o if_o they_o obey_v not_o his_o command_n he_o will_v ruin_v they_o and_o their_o family_n these_o argument_n say_v he_o can_v not_o prevail_v with_o the_o scholar_n to_o change_v their_o opinion_n or_o break_v off_o their_o assembly_n and_o forsake_v their_o master_n but_o they_o be_v more_o cautious_a afterward_o and_o do_v forbear_v publish_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o circle_n as_o they_o have_v heretofore_o do_v it_o be_v be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o comprehend_v the_o advantage_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v of_o the_o labour_n of_o these_o emissary_n and_o to_o be_v more_o particular_o inform_v thereof_o we_o need_v but_o read_v what_o the_o sieur_n poulet_n have_v write_v concern_v 20._o poulet_n voyage_n 2._o part_n c._n 20._o the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o manner_n of_o proceed_n in_o the_o east_n they_o right_o understand_v say_v he_o how_o difficult_a it_o be_v to_o work_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o a_o person_n grow_v old_a in_o his_o error_n and_o that_o the_o first_o impression_n be_v strengthen_v by_o a_o long_a custom_n become_v a_o new_a nature_n in_o we_o wherefore_o our_o instruction_n must_v be_v bestow_v on_o they_o who_o mind_n be_v not_o yet_o corrupt_v by_o maxim_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n they_o have_v therefore_o very_o advise_o set_v up_o school_n whereunto_o the_o child_n of_o schismatic_n and_o sometime_o of_o turk_n too_o do_v resort_n the_o desire_n of_o have_v some_o image_n or_o agnuss_n draw_v they_o to_o our_o congregation_n where_o hear_v our_o doctrine_n they_o become_v effectual_o catholic_n without_o perceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o as_o for_o the_o other_o schismatic_n they_o hear_v our_o sermon_n and_o pretend_v to_o be_v catholic_n only_a in_o hope_n of_o some_o advantage_n they_o expect_v by_o this_o their_o dissimulation_n we_o need_v likewise_o but_o read_v what_o besson_n the_o jesuit_n have_v write_v touch_v 11._o part._n 1._o tr._n 1._o c._n 11._o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o society_n at_o aleppo_n the_o religious_a order_n say_v he_o even_o the_o most_o regular_a among_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o society_n at_o aleppo_n not_o a_o few_o advantage_n and_o the_o eastern_a church_n have_v have_v such_o prelate_n from_o they_o as_o be_v at_o this_o day_n the_o great_a light_n of_o the_o syrian_a clergy_n whereupon_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o greek_n and_o syrian_n admit_v apostolical_a man_n into_o 2._o part._n 1._o tr._n 1._o c._n 2._o their_o house_n they_o likewise_o permit_v they_o the_o use_n of_o their_o church_n and_o the_o curate_n accept_v of_o our_o help_n the_o bishop_n entreat_v we_o to_o prune_v their_o vine_n and_o this_o church_n in_o the_o east_n be_v now_o weary_a of_o its_o misery_n and_o blind_v with_o its_o tear_n expect_v from_o the_o west_n the_o most_o pure_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o confess_v these_o gentleman_n have_v be_v very_o dexterous_a and_o fortunate_a in_o perform_v what_o have_v be_v give_v they_o in_o charge_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o general_n be_v very_o much_o oblige_v to_o they_o but_o i_o ●ind_v mr._n arnaud_n to_o be_v more_o fortunate_a than_o they_o for_o it_o seem_v as_o if_o these_o person_n have_v foresee_v long_o before_o by_o a_o prophetical_a spirit_n the_o book_n mr._n arnaud_n be_v to_o make_v and_o therefore_o will_v prepare_v he_o material_n and_o furnish_v he_o with_o this_o fine_a collection_n of_o attestation_n and_o testimony_n who_o will_v ever_o have_v think_v that_o these_o gentleman_n the_o jesuit_n shall_v pass_v over_o the_o sea_n and_o run_v to_o the_o far_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o do_v mr._n arnaud_n honour_n yet_o be_v it_o true_a that_o they_o have_v be_v his_o messenger_n and_o a_o man_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o think_v they_o go_v only_o into_o these_o country_n upon_o his_o account_n neither_o must_v we_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n the_o seminary_n establish_v in_o rome_n
and_o other_o place_n for_o the_o bring_n up_o of_o greek_a child_n wherein_o they_o be_v teach_v on_o one_o hand_n the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o leave_v these_o school_n they_o betake_v themselves_o to_o the_o east_n where_o it_o frequent_o happen_v they_o be_v call_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a function_n and_o these_o be_v as_o so_o many_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n creature_n who_o endeavour_n to_o the_o utmost_a of_o their_o power_n to_o establish_v the_o doctrine_n and_o maxim_n of_o the_o latin_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o during_o the_o popedom_n of_o gregory_n the_o xiii_o there_o be_v a_o college_n found_v at_o rome_n to_o what_o end_n we_o may_v be_v inform_v by_o leo_n allatius_n the_o college_n of_o the_o greek_n say_v he_o be_v build_v in_o gregory_n 970._o de_fw-fr perp_n cons_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6._o pag_n 970._o the_o thirteenth_n time_n to_o the_o end_n the_o grecian_a child_n may_v learn_v the_o art_n and_o science_n which_o be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v find_v in_o greece_n and_o also_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o catholic_n religion_n that_o they_o may_v afterward_o communicate_v it_o to_o other_o and_o especial_o to_o they_o of_o their_o own_o nation_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n relate_v what_o mean_n have_v be_v use_v to_o propagate_v the_o roman_a religion_n in_o greece_n since_o those_o country_n have_v be_v possess_v by_o the_o turk_n he_o add_v thus_o through_o a_o long_a series_n of_o time_n have_v religion_n make_v its_o progress_n in_o greece_n but_o at_o length_n gregory_n the_o xiii_o desirous_a to_o quench_v the_o fire_n which_o waste_v all_o greece_n and_o remedy_v its_o misery_n have_v therefore_o cause_v to_o be_v build_v at_o rome_n the_o greek_a church_n which_o he_o dedicate_v to_o st._n athenasius_n he_o buy_v likewise_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o neighbour_a house_n for_o dwelling_n to_o entertain_v the_o greek_a scholar_n which_o shall_v be_v bring_v over_o from_o greece_n be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o greek_n he_o give_v likewise_o a_o considerable_a yearly_a revenue_n for_o their_o maintenance_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a tongue_n may_v serve_v as_o a_o ornament_n and_o help_n to_o their_o distress_a country_n now_o this_o be_v not_o a_o matter_n needs_o prove_v see_v this_o church_n continue_v even_o to_o this_o day_n at_o rome_n in_o the_o same_o use_n for_o which_o it_o be_v intend_v the_o fruit_n gather_v hence_o be_v not_o inconsiderable_a for_o there_o have_v be_v and_o be_v now_o every_o day_n send_v i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o person_n full_a of_o zeal_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n its_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n into_o the_o east_n who_o spread_v themselves_o over_o all_o part_n of_o it_o and_o profess_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o schismatical_a greek_n and_o live_v in_o the_o same_o communion_n with_o they_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o insinuate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n into_o their_o mind_n leo_fw-la allatius_n have_v make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o these_o person_n which_o the_o curious_a may_v see_v if_o they_o please_v he_o have_v observe_v that_o several_a of_o they_o have_v be_v make_v archbishop_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o other_o promote_v to_o episcopal_a charge_n some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v too_o zealous_a occasion_v the_o greek_n to_o rise_v up_o against_o they_o and_o other_o have_v be_v so_o successful_a in_o their_o endeavour_n that_o they_o gain_v the_o very_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n themselves_o he_o mention_n among_o other_o one_o josaphat_n azales_n who_o have_v finish_v his_o study_n in_o the_o seminary_n be_v send_v to_o messene_n a_o city_n of_o pelopenesus_n to_o instruct_v the_o monk_n of_o st._n basil_n who_o live_v there_o and_o have_v be_v some_o time_n after_o make_v papas_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o greek_a priest_n he_o go_v to_o mount_n athos_n and_o there_o say_v allatius_n he_o teach_v the_o true_a faith_n now_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o mount_n athos_n be_v the_o general_a seminary_n of_o the_o whole_a east_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v from_o thence_o the_o religious_a do_v disperse_v themselves_o over_o all_o greece_n from_o this_o place_n they_o have_v their_o patriarch_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n so_o that_o to_o carry_v the_o roman_a religion_n to_o mount_n athos_n it_o be_v to_o go_v to_o the_o source_n which_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o gain_v in_o a_o short_a time_n all_o the_o greek_n he_o mention_n another_o who_o he_o call_v ignatius_n mindon_n who_o leave_v the_o seminary_n return_v into_o greece_n where_o he_o teach_v several_a year_n and_o from_o thence_o go_v to_o trebizonde_n which_o be_v a_o city_n on_o pont_n euxin_n where_o as_o before_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o the_o instruct_n of_o people_n and_o that_o with_o such_o success_n that_o he_o be_v take_v by_o they_o for_o a_o prophet_n and_o in_o fine_a be_v send_v for_o by_o raphael_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v rector_n of_o the_o patriarchal_a church_n at_o pera_n he_o endeavour_v say_v he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n to_o advance_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v in_o this_o seminary_n wherein_o be_v bring_v up_o two_o person_n who_o make_v 10._o arcudius_n epist_n ad_fw-la sigism_n regem_fw-la poloniae_fw-la de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi mosc_n pag._n 10._o a_o great_a noise_n in_o the_o world_n to_o wit_n john_n matthew_n caryophilus_n archbishop_n of_o iconia_n and_o peter_n arcudius_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v send_v into_o greece_n but_o have_v not_o discreet_o carry_v himself_o be_v force_v for_o his_o preservation_n to_o return_v to_o rome_n where_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o write_v against_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o other_o be_v send_v into_o poland_n lituania_n russia_n and_o muscovia_n where_o he_o employ_v himself_o according_a to_o his_o own_o relation_n for_o the_o space_n of_o twenty_o year_n in_o the_o propagate_a of_o the_o roman_a faith_n possevin_n the_o jesuit_n write_v to_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 13_o touch_v the_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v for_o the_o introduce_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n among_o the_o moscovite_n he_o so_o high_o esteem_v seminary_n that_o he_o advise_v he_o to_o settle_v one_o at_o rome_n for_o the_o russian_n and_o another_o at_o vilna_n in_o 1._o bibl._n select_a lib._n 6._o cap._n 1._o lituania_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v likewise_o their_o college_n in_o which_o there_o be_v many_o scholar_n he_o tell_v we_o in_o another_o place_n that_o this_o pope_n in_o effect_n found_v several_a seminary_n for_o the_o russian_n in_o lituania_n and_o other_o place_n m._n the_o bishop_n of_o pamiez_n have_v tell_v we_o in_o his_o annal_n that_o gregory_n found_v 1584._o spondanus_n annalaom_n 3._o ●d_a ann_n 1584._o a_o seminary_n at_o rome_n for_o the_o maronites_n say_v far_a that_o the_o same_o pope_n found_v other_o for_o the_o eastern_a and_o northern_a country_n as_o well_o at_o rome_n as_o in_o the_o province_n as_o to_o what_o remain_v we_o must_v not_o imagine_v the_o turk_n under_o who_o government_n the_o greek_n live_v do_v hinder_v the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o latin_n it_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o say_v john_n cottovicus_n that_o the_o turk_n have_v be_v in_o any_o sort_n severe_a against_o the_o religious_a who_o have_v finish_v their_o study_n at_o rome_n and_o take_v order_n return_v into_o their_o own_o country_n and_o be_v raise_v to_o dignity_n nor_o that_o the_o turkish_a magistrate_n have_v upon_o this_o account_n make_v they_o suffer_v the_o least_o damage_n in_o effect_n provide_v they_o oppose_v not_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v ready_a enough_o to_o connive_v at_o all_o other_o matter_n they_o favour_v they_o that_o give_v they_o most_o money_n and_o from_o thence_o it_o be_v we_o see_v on_o the_o patriarchal_a see_v of_o constantinople_n person_n who_o keep_v a_o good_a correspondency_n with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o such_o who_o have_v be_v the_o jesuit_n scholar_n who_o see_v themselves_o raise_v to_o this_o dignity_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o favour_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v this_o change_n so_o long_o prosecute_v and_o it_o be_v in_o this_o rank_n we_o must_v place_v raphael_n neophytus_n timotheus_n cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o other_o who_o the_o roman_a party_n have_v at_o divers_a time_n help_v to_o the_o patriarchate_n and_o who_o in_o requital_n do_v they_o afterward_o great_a service_n all_o this_o i_o think_v show_v evident_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v be_v very_o disingenuous_a in_o his_o whole_a proceed_n who_o conceal_v these_o intrigue_n
in_o the_o other_o there_o be_v several_a particular_a point_n express_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propter_fw-la diversas_fw-la haereses_fw-la a_o quibusdam_fw-la ex_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la ex_fw-la malitia_fw-la introductas_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o certain_a heresy_n introduce_v by_o the_o ignorance_n of_o some_o and_o malice_n of_o other_o now_o it_o be_v under_o these_o last_o point_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v contain_v which_o plain_o show_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v propose_v to_o they_o as_o late_o define_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o which_o those_o people_n have_v at_o that_o time_n no_o certain_a knowledge_n mr._n arnaud_n then_o must_v seek_v elsewhere_o for_o proof_n whereon_o to_o ground_v his_o pretention_n touch_v the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o opinion_n in_o question_n and_o i_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o affirm_v he_o must_v be_v a_o extraordinary_a person_n if_o he_o can_v solid_o acquit_v himself_o of_o what_o i_o have_v lay_v before_o he_o and_o in_o all_o which_o i_o defy_v he_o to_o produce_v a_o false_a quotation_n he_o have_v be_v show_v five_o remarkable_a deceit_n whereby_o he_o have_v impose_v on_o the_o world_n in_o conceal_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v in_o order_n to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o controversy_n and_o in_o turn_v to_o a_o vain_a and_o unprofitable_a use_n whatsoever_o conclude_v direct_o against_o he_o he_o have_v be_v show_v the_o profound_a ignorance_n wherein_o these_o people_n have_v lie_v from_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a and_o the_o fond_a superstition_n reign_v among_o they_o which_o make_v they_o very_o unfit_a judge_n of_o our_o controversy_n he_o have_v be_v show_v the_o miserable_a condition_n of_o these_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o temporal_n and_o the_o violence_n offer_v they_o by_o the_o latin_n to_o make_v they_o change_v their_o religion_n we_o have_v represent_v he_o with_o the_o persecution_n they_o suffer_v from_o their_o own_o prince_n upon_o this_o account_n we_o have_v observe_v all_o these_o country_n overspread_v with_o monk_n and_o emissary_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n and_o that_o without_o interruption_n to_o this_o day_n we_o have_v represent_v he_o with_o a_o particular_a account_n of_o what_o the_o emissary_n do_v and_o what_o the_o seminary_n contribute_v towards_o the_o make_v they_o receive_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o in_o fine_a we_o have_v show_v he_o that_o one_o of_o their_o chief_a care_n for_o these_o people_n be_v to_o make_v they_o learn_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n now_o after_o this_o whether_o they_o do_v believe_v it_o or_o not_o it_o be_v a_o indifferent_a matter_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o main_a of_o our_o controversy_n so_o that_o it_o only_o now_o lie_v upon_o i_o to_o vindicate_v my_o own_o particular_a reputation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o i_o have_v right_o or_o no_o affirm_v that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o and_o which_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v by_o god_n assistance_n in_o the_o follow_a part_n of_o this_o work_n and_o that_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o will_v satisfy_v all_o reasonable_a person_n book_n iii_o wherein_o be_v show_v that_o the_o greek_a schismatical_a church_n so_o call_v hold_v not_o transubstantiation_n chap._n i._n the_o question_n state_v and_o m._n arnaud_n six_o deceit_n manifest_v it_o may_v be_v remember_v that_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o dispute_n touch_v the_o schismatical_a church_n i_o undertake_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o of_o these_o three_o proposition_n first_o that_o when_o mr._n arnaud_n shall_v prove_v what_o he_o pretend_v concern_v these_o church_n since_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a yet_o will_v it_o not_o thence_o follow_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n have_v be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o christian_a religion_n or_o the_o change_n in_o question_n impossible_a or_o that_o it_o have_v not_o actual_o happen_v second_o that_o the_o true_a greek_a church_n and_o other_o which_o the_o latin_n call_v schismatic_n never_o reckon_v transubstantiation_n among_o the_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n nor_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n among_o their_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n three_o that_o whatsoever_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v offer_v to_o prove_v the_o affirmative_a be_v void_a and_o ineffectual_a and_o that_o even_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o proof_n conclude_v the_o contrary_a of_o that_o which_o he_o pretend_v i_o have_v already_o make_v good_a the_o first_o of_o these_o proposition_n in_o the_o precede_a book_n and_o shall_v in_o this_o inquire_v into_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_n from_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a that_o i_o may_v thereby_o accommodate_v myself_o to_o mr._n arnaud_n method_n and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o greek_a church_n i_o shall_v treat_v of_o they_o in_o my_o five_o book_n but_o it_o be_v first_o necessary_a to_o lay_v down_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n to_o the_o end_n that_o what_o we_o undertake_v may_v be_v the_o better_o understand_v and_o mr._n arnaud_n deceit_n more_o plain_o detect_v who_o continual_o wander_v from_o the_o point_n in_o dispute_n suppose_v impossibility_n prove_v impertinency_n and_o confound_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v distinguish_v we_o must_v know_v then_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o greek_n the_o one_o reunite_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n and_o receive_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o florentine_a council_n live_v in_o peace_n with_o the_o latin_n the_o other_o acknowledge_v only_o their_o own_o patriarch_n have_v their_o communion_n apart_o and_o separate_v from_o the_o latin_n and_o this_o i_o suppose_v mr._n arnaud_n or_o his_o friend_n will_v not_o deny_v see_v that_o in_o their_o observation_n on_o the_o request_n of_o m._n the_o archbishop_n of_o ambrun_n they_o have_v themselves_o make_v this_o distinction_n of_o the_o greek_n catholic_n church_n and_o the_o greek_a schismatical_a one_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o allege_v other_o proof_n touch_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n so_o well_o know_v in_o effect_v the_o endeavour_n of_o the_o latin_n to_o subject_v the_o greek_n to_o themselves_o have_v not_o be_v whole_o fruitless_a for_o beside_o that_o in_o greece_n itself_o and_o other_o patriarchates_n they_o have_v acquire_v a_o great_a number_n of_o person_n and_o entire_a family_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v there_o be_v whole_a nation_n which_o observe_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o live_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n who_o yet_o still_o observe_v the_o rite_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o greek_n we_o may_v place_v in_o this_o rank_n all_o the_o greek_n in_o italy_n rome_n venice_n tuscany_n the_o kingdom_n of_o sicily_n and_o naples_n which_o be_v call_v italian_a greek_n we_o may_v also_o bring_v under_o this_o rank_a a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o who_o live_v under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o venetian_n for_o allatius_n testify_v that_o not_o only_o all_o these_o do_v observe_v the_o same_o ceremony_n as_o they_o of_o the_o east_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n likewise_o oblige_v they_o to_o a_o observance_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o maintain_v a_o greek_a bishop_n to_o confer_v order_n according_a to_o the_o greek_a mode_n to_o hinder_v they_o from_o receive_v they_o in_o the_o east_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o schismatic_n we_o must_v likewise_o comprehend_v the_o russian_n which_o inhabit_v black_a russia_n and_o podolia_n under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o king_n of_o poland_n who_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o century_n arcudius_n commend_v sigismond_n the_o three_o for_o that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o solicit_v but_o in_o a_o manner_n sigismond_n arcud_v epist._n ad_fw-la sigismond_n constrain_v they_o to_o make_v this_o union_n ut_fw-la ad_fw-la romanam_fw-la say_v he_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ver_fw-la be_fw-mi dei_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la se_fw-la adjungerent_fw-la excitasti_fw-la ac_fw-la pene_fw-la dixerim_fw-la impulisti_fw-la our_o question_n do_v not_o concern_v they_o their_o submission_n to_o the_o roman_a see_v evident_o exclude_v they_o from_o this_o dispute_n i_o express_o except_v they_o when_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o christian_n hold_v transubstantiation_n and_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n have_v say_v in_o plain_a term_n except_o those_o that_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n second_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a advantage_n end_n answer_v to_o the_o first_o treatise_n towards_o the_o end_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v of_o these_o forementioned_a seminary_n and_o emissary_n in_o greece_n be_v the_o gain_n of_o proselyte_n and_o instruct_v young_a people_n in_o its_o doctrine_n to_o use_v they_o afterward_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o
of_o the_o latin_n which_o be_v proper_a distinct_a and_o clear_a and_o change_v they_o into_o other_o which_o be_v general_a and_o equivocal_a and_o that_o in_o the_o same_o act_n wherein_o those_o aforementioned_a exact_o describe_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n the_o other_n shall_v be_v so_o obstinate_a as_o not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o have_v they_o be_v persuade_v the_o latin_n do_v not_o innovate_v will_v they_o not_o have_v yield_v to_o a_o thousand_o reason_n which_o seem_v to_o constrain_v they_o to_o manifest_v their_o through_o conformity_n with_o they_o their_o affair_n be_v in_o very_o bad_a circumstance_n they_o leave_v their_o country_n to_o implore_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o western_a prince_n they_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n hand_n and_o maintain_v at_o his_o charge_n they_o consent_v to_o the_o reunion_n of_o the_o two_o church_n their_o emperor_n do_v not_o only_o solicit_v but_o constrain_v they_o thereunto_o and_o they_o have_v already_o offer_v great_a violence_n to_o their_o own_o conscience_n for_o they_o consent_v to_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o filioque_fw-la in_o the_o creed_n what_o reason_n then_o can_v hinder_v they_o from_o acknowledge_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n have_v their_o belief_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherefore_o shall_v they_o still_o affect_v their_o general_a term_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wherefore_o even_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o the_o reunion_n make_v at_o florence_n the_o term_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v never_o insert_v but_o only_o that_o of_o confici_fw-la in_o the_o latin_a and_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o greek_a for_o thus_o be_v it_o set_v down_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d item_n in_o azymo_fw-la sive_fw-la fermentato_fw-la pane_n triticeo_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la veraciter_fw-la confici_fw-la sacerdotesque_fw-la in_o altero_fw-la ipsum_fw-la domini_fw-la corpus_fw-la conficere_fw-la debere_fw-la unumquemque_fw-la scilicet_fw-la juxta_fw-la suae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sive_fw-la occidentalis_fw-la sive_fw-la orientalis_n consuetudinem_fw-la that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v real_o consecrate_v or_o make_v into_o wheaten_n bread_n either_o with_o or_o without_o leven_n and_o that_o the_o priest_n ought_v to_o make_v or_o consecrate_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n with_o either_o of_o these_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o church_n whether_o eastern_a or_o western_a here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n for_o the_o general_a term_n carry_v it_o away_o from_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o latin_n neither_o need_v mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o greek_n take_v 346._o lib._n 4._o cap_n 2._o pag._n 346._o these_o word_n in_o a_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n because_o the_o latin_n do_v so_o for_o if_o the_o greek_n believe_v a_o true_a and_o real_a conversion_n of_o substance_n wherefore_o then_o be_v not_o that_o article_n express_v in_o clear_a and_o proper_a term_n the_o latin_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o they_o the_o greek_n know_v they_o well_o enough_o there_o be_v no_o word_n more_o common_a among_o they_o than_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o of_o substantia_fw-la have_v be_v already_o affect_v by_o the_o latin_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o pope_n that_o precede_v eugenus_n the_o iv_o be_v not_o want_v to_o bring_v it_o into_o that_o famous_a confession_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v so_o often_o mention_v in_o short_a mr._n arnaud_n need_v not_o tell_v we_o so_o often_o of_o these_o equivocation_n for_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o in_o these_o kind_n of_o accommodation_n wherein_o interest_n hold_v the_o chief_a rank_n the_o two_o party_n agree_v common_o in_o certain_a generality_n which_o each_o of_o they_o endeavour_n to_o explain_v to_o their_o own_o advantage_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a than_o these_o kind_n of_o treaty_n in_o which_o when_o there_o be_v foresee_v any_o insuperable_a difficulty_n they_o be_v usual_o leave_v untouched_a both_o party_n content_v themselves_o with_o general_a term_n by_o which_o each_o of_o they_o think_v to_o compass_v their_o design_n mr._n arnaud_n be_v a_o person_n of_o too_o much_o read_v and_o experience_n to_o question_v a_o truth_n so_o well_o know_v and_o i_o believe_v we_o need_v not_o go_v far_o for_o instance_n of_o this_o kind_n but_o howsoever_o this_o be_v certain_a and_o undeniable_a that_o in_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o florentine_a council_n there_o appear_v nothing_o on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o greek_n that_o establish_v the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o seem_v as_o if_o they_o have_v prevail_v on_o the_o latin_n to_o abate_v their_o expression_n in_o the_o solemn_a act_n of_o their_o reunion_n but_o before_o we_o leave_v this_o proof_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o bessarion_n archbishop_n of_o nice_a who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a agent_n in_o this_o accommodation_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v a_o person_n already_o bring_v over_o to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o for_o his_o good_a service_n be_v soon_o after_o make_v a_o cardinal_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o can_v then_o but_o be_v suppose_v he_o favour_v the_o latin_n and_o use_v all_o possible_a mean_n to_o prevail_v on_o his_o own_o countryman_n in_o effect_n syropulus_n complain_v of_o this_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o sufficient_o show_v what_o judgement_n we_o ought_v to_o make_v of_o this_o particular_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n compare_v i_o pray_v the_o term_n bessarion_n use_v when_o he_o speak_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o conference_n of_o the_o council_n with_o those_o he_o use_v in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o eucharist_n wherein_o he_o speak_v from_o his_o own_o head_n since_o he_o be_v make_v a_o cardinal_n in_o specie_fw-la say_v he_o in_o this_o treatise_n panis_n &_o vini_n veritas_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la continetur_fw-la cum_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la substantia_fw-la panis_n vinique_fw-la mutetur_fw-la the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v real_o contain_v under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o substance_n be_v change_v into_o this_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o a_o little_a far_o verba_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la quibus_fw-la dictis_fw-la mox_fw-la consecratio_fw-la fit_a transubstantialitas_fw-la perficitur_fw-la the_o word_n be_v no_o soon_o say_v but_o the_o consecration_n be_v make_v and_o the_o transubstantiation_n finish_v it_o be_v no_o long_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d consecration_n and_o sanctification_n but_o substantia_fw-la mutatur_fw-la transubstantialitas_fw-la perficitur_fw-la the_o change_n of_o substance_n transubstantion_n whence_o come_v this_o difference_n but_o from_o that_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o use_v the_o same_o expression_n as_o the_o latin_n and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o conformity_n between_o these_o two_o church_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n bessarion_n counterfit_v the_o greek_a make_v use_v only_o of_o general_a expression_n but_o when_o he_o discover_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o latin_a he_o speak_v plain_o and_o distinct_o but_o beside_o bessarion_n this_o same_o difference_n be_v observable_a in_o other_o latinised_a greek_n engage_v to_o propagate_v the_o roman_a doctrine_n if_o we_o compare_v their_o style_n with_o that_o of_o the_o true_a greek_n compare_v for_o example_n what_o mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o out_o of_o emanüel_n calecas_n and_o john_n plusiadéne_v with_o what_o he_o himself_o allege_v out_o of_o cabisilas_n mark_v of_o ephesus_n simon_n of_o thessalonica_n and_o other_o and_o you_o will_v find_v these_o last_o mention_n not_o the_o change_n of_o substance_n whereas_o the_o former_a do_v express_o assert_v it_o emanuel_n tell_v we_o concern_v the_o eucharist_n that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o change_v the_o inward_a substance_n and_o yet_o conserve_v the_o same_o accident_n entire_a plusiadene_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o such_o expression_n in_o the_o true_a greek_n for_o we_o meet_v only_o with_o such_o expression_n as_o these_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v real_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o it_o be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o as_o to_o the_o substance_n they_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o it_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o mr._n arnaud_n consequence_n or_o synonimy_n which_o can_v make_v they_o do_v it_o chap._n iu._n the_o six_o proof_n take_v from_o the_o greek_n employ_v on_o other_o subject_n the_o same_o expression_n as_o on_o the_o eucharist_n mr._n arnaud_n ten_o delusion_n manifest_v the_o only_a way_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o author_n when_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o debate_n be_v
dispute_n and_o consider_v thing_n without_o passion_n i_o be_o persuade_v he_o will_v soon_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o sense_n he_o impute_v to_o the_o greek_n have_v no_o resemblance_n with_o the_o term_n of_o their_o liturgy_n nor_o other_o usual_a expression_n as_o for_o example_n we_o will_v know_v how_o we_o must_v understand_v this_o clause_n of_o their_o liturgy_n make_v this_o bread_n the_o precious_a body_n of_o thy_o christ_n and_o that_o which_o be_v in_o this_o cup_n the_o precious_a blood_n of_o thy_o christ_n change_v they_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n mr._n arnaud_n understand_v they_o as_o mention_v a_o change_n of_o substance_n i_o say_v on_o the_o contrary_a these_o be_v general_a term_n to_o which_o we_o can_v give_v at_o far_a any_o more_o than_o a_o general_a sense_n and_o that_o if_o they_o must_v have_v a_o particular_a and_o determinate_a one_o we_o must_v understand_v they_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o mystical_a change_n and_o a_o change_n of_o sanctification_n which_o consist_v in_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v to_o we_o in_o the_o stead_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o make_v deep_a impression_n of_o he_o in_o our_o soul_n that_o it_o spiritual_o communicate_v he_o to_o we_o and_o that_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o a_o quicken_a grace_n which_o sanctify_v it_o and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o this_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o natural_a substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v let_v we_o examine_v the_o liturgy_n themselves_o to_o see_v which_o of_o these_o two_o sense_n be_v most_o agreeable_a thereunto_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o that_o which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n and_o which_o be_v the_o most_o in_o use_n among_o the_o greek_n that_o immediate_o after_o the_o priest_n have_v say_v make_v this_o bread_n to_o become_v the_o precious_a body_n of_o thy_o christ_n and_o that_o 2._o euchar._n graecorum_n jacobi_n goar_n &_o bibl._n patr_n graecor_fw-la lat._n tom._n 2._o which_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n the_o precious_a blood_n of_o thy_o christ_n change_v they_o by_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n he_o add_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v purify_v the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o receive_v they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v be_v make_v a_o proper_a mean_n to_o purify_v the_o soul_n by_o the_o remission_n of_o its_o sin_n and_o communication_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n these_o word_n do_v sufficient_o explain_v what_o kind_n of_o change_n we_o must_v understand_v by_o they_o namely_o a_o change_n of_o sanctification_n and_o virtue_n for_o do_v they_o mean_v a_o change_n of_o substance_n it_o shall_v have_v be_v say_v change_v they_o by_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v make_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o this_o body_n and_o blood_n or_o some_o such_o like_a expression_n in_o the_o liturgy_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o st._n james_n we_o find_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n send_v say_v it_o thy_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o we_o and_o these_o holy_a gift_n lie_v 2._o bibliot_n patr._n graeco_n lat._n tom._n 2._o here_o before_o thou_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o come_v may_v sanctify_v they_o by_o his_o holy_a good_a and_o glorious_a presence_n and_o make_v this_o bread_n to_o become_v the_o holy_a body_n of_o thy_o christ_n and_o this_o chalice_n the_o precious_a blood_n of_o thy_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v have_v this_o effect_n to_o all_o they_o which_o shall_v receive_v it_o namely_o purify_v their_o soul_n from_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n and_o make_v they_o abound_v in_o good_a work_n and_o obtain_v everlasting_a life_n and_o this_o methinks_v do_v sufficient_o determine_v how_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o wit_n in_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o procure_v the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o our_o sanctification_n the_o liturgy_n which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o st._n marc_n have_v almost_o the_o same_o expression_n send_v on_o we_o and_o on_o these_o loaf_n and_o chalice_n thy_o holy_a spirit_n that_o he_o ibid._n ibid._n may_v sanctify_v and_o consecrate_v they_o even_o as_o god_n almighty_a and_o make_v the_o bread_n the_o body_n and_o the_o cup_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n our_o sovereign_a king_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v become_v to_o all_o those_o who_o shall_v participate_v of_o they_o a_o mean_n of_o obtain_v faith_n sobriety_n health_n temperance_n a_o regeneration_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n the_o participation_n of_o felicity_n eternal_a life_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o great_a name_n a_o person_n who_o mind_n be_v not_o whole_o prepossess_v with_o prejudice_n can_v but_o perceive_v that_o this_o clause_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v become_v etc._n etc._n be_v the_o explication_n of_o the_o forego_n word_n change_v they_o into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o it_o determine_v they_o to_o a_o change_n not_o of_o substance_n but_o of_o sanctification_n and_o virtue_n this_o truth_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o arcudius_n have_v not_o scruple_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o if_o this_o clause_n be_v take_v make_v this_o bread_n the_o body_n of_o thy_o christ_n in_o a_o absolute_a sense_n 33._o arcud_v lib._n 3._o cap._n 33._o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o but_o simple_o in_o itself_o it_o will_v have_v no_o agreement_n nor_o coherence_n with_o these_o other_o word_n that_o follow_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v make_v etc._n etc._n and_o he_o make_v of_o this_o a_o principle_n for_o the_o conclude_a that_o the_o consecration_n be_v not_o perform_v by_o this_o prayer_n but_o that_o it_o be_v already_o perfect_v by_o the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o greek_n who_o affirm_v it_o be_v make_v by_o the_o prayer_n so_o that_o if_o we_o apply_v arcudius_n observation_n to_o the_o true_a opinion_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o consecration_n be_v perform_v by_o this_o prayer_n we_o shall_v plain_o perceive_v that_o their_o sense_n be_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o inasmuch_o as_o it_o sanctify_v we_o and_o effect_n the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o with_o this_o agree_v the_o term_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o sanctify_v which_o the_o greek_n common_o make_v use_n of_o to_o express_v the_o act_n of_o consecration_n and_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o sanctification_n by_o which_o they_o express_v their_o mystery_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o liturgy_n and_o those_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a gift_n the_o sanctify_a gift_n the_o holy_a mystery_n the_o quicken_a mystery_n the_o holy_a bread_n which_o be_v common_a expression_n among_o they_o all_o which_o favour_v the_o change_n of_o sanctification_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n we_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n that_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n be_v give_v three_o time_n to_o the_o sacrament_n after_o consecration_n in_o the_o pontificia_fw-la four_o time_n and_o in_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o presanctified_a bread_n it_o be_v so_o call_v seven_o time_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o st._n basil_n the_o priest_n make_v this_o prayer_n immediate_o after_o the_o consecration_n lord_n remember_v i_o euchol_n archi._n habert_n apud_fw-la goar_n in_o euchol_n a_o sinner_n and_o as_o to_o we_o who_o participate_v all_o of_o we_o of_o the_o same_o bread_n and_o cup_n grant_v we_o may_v live_v in_o union_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n likewise_o what_o the_o latin_n call_v ciborium_n the_o greek_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v a_o bread_n saviour_n and_o it_o be_v in_o it_o wherein_o they_o put_v that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o presanctified_a bread_n be_v the_o communion_n for_o the_o sick_a i_o know_v what_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v say_v in_o reference_n to_o this_o namely_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v call_v bread_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o its_o species_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o its_o accident_n which_o remain_v sustain_v by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n without_o a_o subject_a but_o the_o greek_n themselves_o shall_v give_v we_o this_o explication_n for_o till_o then_o we_o may_v presume_v upon_o the_o favour_n of_o the_o natural_a signification_n of_o the_o term_n which_o we_o not_o find_v attend_v with_o the_o gloss_n of_o the_o latin_n it_o must_v therefore_o be_v grant_v not_o
and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n discover_v another_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n illusion_n my_o proof_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o greek_n not_o adore_v the_o eucharist_n with_o that_o sovereign_a adoration_n the_o latin_n do_v now_o if_o this_o be_v make_v apparent_a what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o a_o church_n which_o otherwise_o be_v not_o at_o all_o scrupulous_a in_o matter_n of_o ceremony_n and_o which_o have_v such_o a_o great_a devotion_n for_o picture_n for_o the_o write_n of_o the_o evangelist_n consecrate_a bread_n which_o they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o even_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n before_o it_o be_v consecrate_v shall_v believe_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o symbol_n to_o be_v real_o change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o not_o render_v it_o that_o sovereign_a honour_n which_o belong_v to_o it_o it_o concern_v we_o then_o to_o know_v what_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v touch_v this_o adoration_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o this_o question_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o our_o dispute_n it_o be_v therefore_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v thorough_o inform_v in_o it_o but_o before_o we_o proceed_v any_o far_a we_o must_v distinguish_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n two_o sort_n of_o adoration_n the_o one_o inferior_a and_o subalternate_a which_o be_v render_v to_o subject_n in_o which_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v a_o infinite_a majesty_n and_o the_o other_a a_o sovereign_a and_o high_a worship_n call_v that_o of_o latria_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o god_n we_o must_v likewise_o distinguish_v according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o greek_n and_o latin_n a_o adoration_n call_v relative_a which_o terminate_v not_o itself_o in_o any_o one_o subject_a but_o pass_v as_o it_o be_v from_o one_o subject_a to_o another_o as_o through_o a_o channel_n and_o a_o absolute_a adoration_n which_o terminate_v itself_o in_o that_o subject_n which_o be_v worship_v without_o a_o reference_n to_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o fine_a there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o distinction_n make_v betwixt_o a_o internal_a adoration_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o soul_n towards_o the_o subject_a adore_v and_o the_o external_a adoration_n which_o consist_v in_o outward_a expression_n which_o distinction_n be_v premise_v we_o be_v now_o to_o inquire_v whether_o the_o greek_n adore_v the_o eucharist_n with_o a_o sovereign_a adoration_n and_o that_o of_o latria_n not_o relative_o as_o we_o speak_v but_o absolute_o and_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n we_o ought_v to_o worship_v the_o proper_a substance_n and_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o because_o the_o internal_a affection_n of_o the_o soul_n can_v be_v immediate_o know_v it_o therefore_o concern_v we_o to_o inquire_v whether_o the_o greek_n do_v outward_o express_v any_o sign_n of_o such_o a_o adoration_n either_o by_o their_o word_n or_o action_n mr._n arnaud_n hold_v the_o affirmative_a and_o i_o the_o negative_a and_o this_o be_v here_o only_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n it_o be_v likewise_o by_o proof_n of_o fact_n wherewith_o it_o must_v be_v decide_v for_o this_o effect_n i_o shall_v first_o here_o offer_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o cannon_n of_o cracovia_n call_v sacranus_fw-la who_o in_o reckon_v up_o the_o error_n of_o the_o moscovite_n who_o we_o all_o know_v do_v follow_v the_o greek_a religion_n do_v express_o mention_v this_o before_o the_o cup_n be_v prepare_v say_v he_o they_o light_a torch_n and_o expose_v to_o the_o 20._o religio_fw-la ruthenor_n art_n 20._o people_n sight_n with_o exceed_v great_a devotion_n the_o bread_n which_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_v with_o the_o wine_n and_o hot_a water_n which_o they_o pour_v into_o the_o chalice_n they_o carry_v these_o about_o and_o the_o people_n bow_v down_o before_o they_o with_o the_o great_a testimony_n of_o respect_n and_o veneration_n but_o afterward_o when_o the_o bread_n be_v place_v on_o the_o altar_n and_o consecrate_a there_o be_v no_o veneration_n show_v it_o nor_o do_v they_o make_v any_o elevation_n of_o it_o john_n de_fw-fr lasko_n archbishop_n of_o gnesne_n and_o ambassador_n from_o poland_n 1514._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1514._o to_o rome_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o last_o century_n make_v the_o same_o relation_n of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o russian_n as_o sarcanus_n have_v do_v before_o he_o it_o be_v likely_a by_o what_o mr_n arnaud_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v only_o copy_v out_o what_o sacranus_fw-la write_v and_o appropriate_v it_o to_o himself_o for_o we_o find_v their_o expression_n to_o be_v both_o the_o same_o but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v he_o have_v not_o forget_v this_o article_n i_o now_o mention_v peter_z scarga_n a_o jesuit_n of_o vilna_n in_o lituania_n have_v write_v a_o book_n against_o the_o greek_n and_o russian_n which_o he_o entitle_v de_fw-fr uno_fw-la pastore_fw-la in_o which_o 8._o par._n 3._o cap._n 2._o art_n 8._o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o their_o error_n he_o particular_o mention_n this_o at_o mass_n they_o worship_n on_o their_o knee_n the_o bread_n before_o it_o be_v consecrate_v but_o after_o its_o consecration_n they_o give_v no_o honour_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o we_o have_v here_o already_o three_o witness_n who_o testimony_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v see_v they_o be_v of_o far_o great_a weight_n than_o the_o force_a consequence_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n for_o they_o live_v in_o those_o part_n and_o be_v eye-witness_n of_o what_o they_o tell_v we_o and_o moreover_o considerable_a person_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v a_o cannon_n the_o other_a a_o archbishop_n and_o the_o three_o a_o jesuit_n who_o do_v all_o three_o of_o they_o positive_o affirm_v the_o greek_n do_v not_o adore_v the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n behold_v here_o a_o four_o of_o the_o same_o order_n which_o be_v anthony_n caucus_n a_o venetian_a and_o archbishop_n of_o corfou_n he_o have_v a_o order_n from_o pope_n gregory_n xiii_o to_o inform_v himself_o exact_o of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o to_o make_v he_o a_o relation_n thereof_o which_o he_o do_v allatius_n speak_v of_o this_o relation_n as_o if_o it_o be_v publish_v i_o confess_v i_o never_o see_v it_o in_o print_n but_o i_o have_v see_v a_o manuscript_n of_o it_o in_o the_o king_n library_n wherein_o i_o find_v these_o word_n in_o the_o thirteen_o article_n of_o their_o error_n they_o yield_v no_o reverence_n honour_n veneration_n nor_o worship_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n consecrate_v with_o leaven_a bread_n according_a to_o their_o custom_n they_o carry_v it_o to_o the_o sick_a without_o light_n and_o torch_n they_o keep_v it_o in_o their_o church_n in_o a_o bag_n hang_v against_o a_o wall_n in_o a_o little_a wooden_a box_n and_o yet_o burn_v taper_n before_o the_o image_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n he_o inform_v we_o elsewhere_o that_o the_o greek_a priest_n when_o they_o carry_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o sick_a be_v wont_a to_o wrap_v it_o up_o in_o a_o linen_n cloth_n or_o handkerchief_n and_o so_o put_v it_o into_o their_o bosom_n without_o any_o other_o ceremony_n but_o when_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o the_o oppose_a of_o this_o error_n he_o thus_o speak_v there_o be_v no_o people_n that_o i_o know_v of_o who_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n that_o show_v less_o respect_n and_o veneration_n to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n than_o the_o greek_a nation_n they_o adore_v and_o reverence_v their_o leaven_a bread_n before_o it_o be_v consecrate_v even_o to_o the_o very_o idolize_v of_o it_o but_o after_o scarce_o rise_v up_o to_o respect_v it_o their_o priest_n carry_v the_o eucharist_n in_o their_o bosom_n to_o the_o sick_a without_o any_o light_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o absurd_a be_v they_o keep_v it_o in_o their_o church_n in_o a_o little_a wooden_a box_n tie_v up_o in_o a_o bag_n and_o hang_v against_o a_o wall_n without_o any_o light_n before_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o profane_a thing_n to_o the_o scandalize_a of_o all_o pious_a people_n i_o believe_v they_o have_v this_o custom_n from_o the_o heretical_a sacramentary_n who_o deny_v the_o virtue_n of_o this_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n they_o be_v moreover_o so_o super_fw-la stitious_a and_o covetous_a that_o when_o decease_a person_n have_v bequeath_v they_o any_o legacy_n they_o light_v candle_n before_o the_o image_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n draw_v near_o to_o they_o with_o the_o great_a testimony_n of_o reverence_n when_o they_o enter_v the_o church_n but_o they_o turn_v their_o back_n to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o wonder_v to_o see_v they_o do_v thus_o and_o be_v desirous_a to_o inform_v myself_o of_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o
god_n alone_o the_o author_n that_o write_v mr._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr haye'_v voyages_n the_o french_a ambassador_n 49._o mr._n haye'_v voyages_n part_n 49._o observe_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o the_o other_o concern_v the_o linen_n bag_n and_o that_o they_o hang_v it_o on_o a_o nail_n behind_o the_o altar_n wherein_o they_o put_v the_o consecrate_a particle_n he_o say_v he_o thus_o see_v it_o at_o seliurée_n and_o several_a other_o place_n but_o because_o this_o remark_n may_v offend_v his_o reader_n he_o have_v therefore_o attribute_v the_o cause_n thereof_o to_o the_o great_a poverty_n of_o the_o greek_n but_o this_o be_v but_o a_o false_a colour_n for_o the_o greek_n be_v not_o so_o poor_a but_o that_o they_o may_v keep_v the_o eucharist_n in_o a_o more_o decent_a manner_n do_v they_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o true_a reason_n of_o this_o custom_n be_v that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v what_o the_o latin_n do_v or_o as_o speak_v caucus_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o command_n which_o enjoin_v they_o to_o reverence_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o make_v of_o the_o latin_n mr._n thevenot_n a_o exact_a and_o inquisitive_a traveller_n give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o 77._o thevenot_n voyage_n part_n 2_o ch_z 77._o the_o manner_n which_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n use_v in_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n but_o in_o all_o his_o relation_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o adoration_n and_o he_o be_v even_o force_v to_o say_v that_o they_o do_v in_o truth_n behave_v themselves_o with_o less_o respect_n at_o the_o communion_n than_o the_o latin_n mr._n de_fw-fr montconis_n describe_v likewise_o very_o exact_o the_o divine_a service_n etc._n montconis_n voyage_n p._n 228._o etc._n etc._n which_o he_o see_v perform_v by_o a_o greek_a archbishop_n at_o mount_n sinai_n and_o observe_v not_o any_o thing_n which_o show_v they_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n mr._n arnaud_n who_o have_v see_v the_o use_n which_o may_v be_v make_v of_o the_o express_a testimony_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v the_o greek_n adore_v not_o the_o sacrament_n and_o several_a other_o proof_n which_o may_v be_v add_v and_o which_o conclude_v the_o same_o thing_n have_v betake_v himself_o to_o his_o usual_a artifices_fw-la first_o of_o all_o he_o have_v avoid_v the_o handle_n of_o the_o question_n touch_v the_o adoration_n as_o a_o mean_n whereby_o to_o clear_v up_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n or_o the_o real_a presence_n he_o on_o the_o contrary_n handle_v it_o only_o as_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o it_o i_o will_v say_v that_o instead_o of_o argue_v thus_o the_o greek_n give_v to_o the_o sacrament_n the_o supreme_a honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o jesus_n christ_n they_o believe_v therefore_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v jesus_n christ_n in_o propriety_n of_o substance_n he_o reason_n on_o the_o contrary_a after_o this_o manner_n the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n therefore_o they_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n now_o i_o say_v there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o deceit_n in_o this_o method_n for_o although_o transubstantiation_n may_v be_v use_v when_o it_o be_v agree_v it_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o mean_n whereby_o to_o conclude_v that_o those_o who_o believe_v it_o adore_v it_o yet_o who_o see_v not_o that_o in_o this_o debate_n wherein_o i_o deny_v both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o of_o these_o to_o mr_n arnaud_n it_o have_v be_v a_o more_o just_a and_o natural_a course_n to_o begin_v with_o the_o adoration_n as_o a_o mean_n whereby_o to_o conclude_v transubstantiation_n for_o adoration_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o discover_v itself_o by_o outward_a act_n a_o public_a rite_n wherein_o a_o whole_a church_n agree_v and_o consequent_o be_v more_o sensible_a and_o apparent_a and_o more_o easy_o know_v than_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n concern_v which_o we_o must_v consult_v the_o write_n of_o the_o learned_a judge_v of_o person_n and_o weigh_v their_o expression_n it_o be_v certain_o a_o great_a deal_n easy_o for_o we_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o greek_n give_v the_o same_o honour_n to_o the_o sacrament_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v or_o one_o equivalent_a thereunto_o than_o to_o know_v what_o their_o belief_n be_v touch_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n we_o may_v be_v impose_v on_o by_o this_o last_o for_o there_o may_v be_v forge_v attestation_n produce_v and_o hunger_n starve_v greek_n bring_v in_o as_o witness_n who_o a_o small_a pension_n will_v bias_n either_o way_n or_o the_o decree_n of_o latinised_a synod_n offer_v we_o for_o those_o of_o the_o greek_n a_o consul_n zealous_a for_o his_o religion_n may_v easy_o give_v or_o admit_v a_o change_n the_o testimony_n of_o a_o false_a greek_a may_v be_v allege_v as_o of_o that_o of_o a_o true_a one_o and_o moreover_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o dazzle_v people_n eye_n by_o a_o long_a train_n of_o narration_n and_o argument_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o these_o false_a colour_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o adoration_n in_o a_o word_n it_o plain_o appear_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n design_n be_v to_o send_v back_o this_o article_n to_o his_o treatise_n of_o consequence_n to_o hinder_v we_o from_o treat_v of_o it_o according_a to_o our_o method_n of_o proof_n the_o second_o thing_n he_o do_v seem_v to_o correct_v the_o first_o for_o he_o pretend_v to_o establish_v this_o adoration_n by_o particular_a proof_n which_o he_o call_v gross_a proof_n to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o that_o other_o more_o fine_a and_o slender_a proof_n which_o he_o draw_v from_o the_o real_a presence_n he_o immediate_o produce_v a_o passage_n of_o cabasilas_n in_o 9_o lib._n 10._o cap._n 9_o these_o term_n the_o faithful_a desirous_a to_o show_v their_o faith_n in_o receive_v the_o communion_n do_v adore_v bless_v and_o praise_n jesus_n christ_n as_o god_n who_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o gift_n i_o answer_v he_o ought_v faithful_o to_o translate_v this_o passage_n cabasilas_n speak_v of_o the_o gift_n and_o say_v that_o the_o faithful_a adore_v bless_v and_o praise_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v understand_v in_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d now_o a_o man_n must_v be_v very_o 37._o cap._n 37._o little_a conversant_a among_o greek_a author_n not_o to_o know_v that_o when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o symbol_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v the_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a object_n represent_v by_o the_o outward_a sign_n jesus_n christ_n then_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o gift_n be_v adore_v according_a to_o cabasilas_n and_o not_o the_o gift_n themselves_o which_o be_v what_o i_o observe_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v i_o before_o i_o make_v use_n of_o this_o passage_n to_o consider_v all_o that_o he_o have_v take_v out_o of_o this_o author_n to_o show_v he_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n for_o say_v he_o cabasilas_n assert_n in_o his_o book_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o show_v we_o in_o this_o passage_n we_o ought_v to_o adore_v he_o 317._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 8._o p._n 317._o in_o the_o gift_n therefore_o do_v he_o teach_v the._n adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o answer_v that_o cabasilas_n neither_o teach_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o i_o shall_v make_v appear_v in_o its_o place_n and_o have_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n allege_v the_o passage_n cite_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n we_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v want_v to_o examine_v they_o but_o the_o question_n then_o in_o hand_n only_o concern_v the_o adoration_n i_o can_v not_o without_o great_a injustice_n tire_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o long_o dispute_v about_o the_o real_a presence_n before_o i_o can_v allege_v one_o formal_a passage_n touch_v the_o subject_a i_o handle_v mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o afterward_o that_o cabasilas_n blame_v those_o that_o adore_v before_o 9_o lib._n 10._o cap._n 9_o the_o consecration_n the_o gift_n which_o be_v carry_v about_o and_o that_o speak_v to_o they_o as_o to_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o approve_v they_o shall_v give_v the_o same_o respect_n to_o the_o eucharist_n after_o its_o consecration_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o greek_n prostrate_v themselves_o before_o the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o speak_v to_o it_o as_o to_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o yet_o it_o can_v hence_o be_v conclude_v they_o adore_v the_o book_n itself_o with_o a_o absolute_a adoration_n as_o if_o the_o book_n be_v in_o effect_n our_o saviour_n himself_o cabasilas_n like_v they_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o consecrate_a gift_n but_o do_v not_o approve_v they_o shall_v do_v it_o before_o their_o consecration_n although_o he_o already_o
i_o say_v be_v so_o well_o know_v that_o allatius_n himself_o censure_v a_o protestant_n name_v jerom_n viscer_fw-la for_o say_v the_o greek_n carry_v the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o procession_n twice_o about_o the_o church_n so_o far_o be_v 15._o allatide_n perp._n cons_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 15._o they_o say_v he_o from_o carry_v the_o eucharist_n twice_o about_o the_o church_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o carry_v it_o not_o at_o all_o for_o that_o which_o they_o carry_v from_o the_o prothesis_n to_o the_o great_a altar_n which_o they_o call_v the_o great_a entry_n be_v no_o more_o than_o bread_n and_o wine_n unconsecrate_v and_o these_o be_v mr._n arnaud'_v gross_a proof_n as_o he_o call_v they_o for_o i_o meddle_v not_o here_o with_o what_o he_o tell_v we_o concern_v a_o letter_n from_o mr._n pompone_n we_o shall_v examine_v that_o in_o the_o follow_a book_n his_o fine_a proof_n as_o he_o tetm_v they_o be_v those_o he_o draw_v from_o the_o real_a presence_n in_o suppose_v the_o greek_n hold_v it_o for_o say_v he_o whosoever_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n 76._o book_n 10_o chap._n 9_o pag._n 76._o speak_v to_o he_o as_o god_n implore_v his_o assistance_n beg_v his_o pardon_n excite_v himself_o by_o expression_n of_o confidence_n in_o he_o acknowledge_v his_o own_o unworthiness_n and_o all_o these_o action_n be_v external_a be_v outward_a expression_n of_o adoration_n so_o that_o to_o bring_v proof_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n there_o need_v no_o more_o to_o be_v do_v but_o only_o to_o produce_v all_o the_o prayer_n contain_v in_o the_o liturgy_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o our_o saviour_n after_o the_o consecration_n but_o it_o have_v be_v already_o observe_v that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n illusion_n who_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o handle_v the_o question_n of_o the_o adoration_n as_o a_o mean_n whereby_o to_o decide_v that_o of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n but_o rather_o as_o a_o consequence_n thereof_o so_o that_o all_o the_o force_n of_o his_o pretend_a proof_n consist_v in_o suppose_v the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n there_o need_v no_o more_o to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o overthrow_v they_o than_o to_o send_v he_o to_o the_o refutation_n of_o these_o argument_n by_o which_o he_o pretend_v he_o have_v establish_v his_o principle_n and_o even_o this_o very_a consideration_n that_o he_o can_v not_o form_v his_o proof_n without_o make_v this_o supposition_n will_v only_o confirm_v what_o we_o maintain_v viz._n that_o the_o greek_n adore_v not_o the_o sacrament_n whence_o it_o follow_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a a_o church_n that_o hold_v this_o opinion_n will_v be_v want_v to_o give_v to_o the_o sacrament_n those_o outward_a expression_n of_o reverence_n which_o will_v distinguish_v themselves_o easy_o from_o all_o other_o kind_n of_o honour_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n furnish_v we_o with_o a_o example_n of_o this_o on_o which_o we_o need_v only_o cast_v our_o eye_n for_o it_o clear_o appear_v by_o her_o word_n and_o action_n that_o the_o honour_n she_o give_v the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sovereign_n and_o divine_a honour_n such_o as_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o have_v the_o greek_a church_n design_v to_o show_v it_o the_o same_o respect_n what_o shall_v hinder_v it_o from_o do_v as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v will_v she_o not_o at_o least_o endeavour_n to_o imitate_v its_o example_n in_o several_a particular_n why_o do_v they_o not_o carry_v it_o to_o the_o sick_a with_o the_o same_o solemnity_n as_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wherefore_o i_o say_v do_v not_o the_o greek_a church_n enjoin_v her_o child_n to_o kneel_v as_o oft_o as_o they_o shall_v meet_v the_o sacrament_n why_o do_v she_o not_o open_o expose_v it_o in_o public_a rejoice_n or_o affliction_n wherefore_o do_v she_o not_o carry_v it_o about_o in_o procession_n why_o not_o dedicate_v a_o particular_a festival_n to_o it_o mr._n arnaud_n may_v tell_v we_o as_o long_o as_o he_o please_v that_o there_o be_v no_o natural_a 78._o book_n 10._o chap._n 9_o pag._n 78._o coherence_n between_o these_o thing_n and_o the_o adoration_n that_o the_o institution_n of_o these_o ceremony_n be_v pious_a and_o commendable_a but_o no_o wise_a necessary_a and_o that_o the_o adoration_n may_v subsist_v without_o they_o as_o it_o do_v in_o effect_n in_o all_o the_o east_n when_o there_o be_v not_o a_o natural_a coherence_n between_o adoration_n and_o each_o of_o these_o particular_a custom_n yet_o will_v it_o be_v i_o think_v contrary_a to_o nature_n that_o the_o adoration_n shall_v subsist_v separate_v from_o all_o these_o thing_n in_o general_n see_v these_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n almost_o the_o same_o external_a mark_n of_o divine_a worship_n which_o people_n have_v ever_o render_v to_o some_o visible_a object_n what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o if_o the_o greek_n have_v the_o same_o sentiment_n as_o the_o latin_n touch_v this_o sacrament_n but_o they_o will_v adopt_v some_o one_o of_o these_o devotion_n which_o be_v so_o familiar_a to_o the_o latin_n especial_o those_o that_o approach_v the_o near_a their_o usual_a custom_n and_o which_o be_v moreover_o very_o proper_a to_o express_v this_o sovereign_a honour_n now_o in_o question_n as_o be_v that_o solemn_a feast_n call_v god_n festival_n with_o all_o its_o pomp._n but_o so_o far_o have_v they_o be_v from_o imitate_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o particular_a that_o they_o have_v on_o the_o contrary_n show_v the_o great_a aversion_n to_o it_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o metrophanus_n citropulus_n make_v at_o helmstad_n in_o the_o year_n 1625._o we_o carry_v not_o about_o the_o street_n say_v he_o this_o holy_a mystery_n unless_o dom._n confess_v eccles_n orient_n cap._n 9_o de_fw-la coena_fw-la dom._n it_o be_v to_o the_o sick_a it_o be_v not_o give_v we_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o it_o but_o to_o be_v religious_o receive_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n all_o historian_n be_v agree_v that_o the_o russian_n do_v not_o observe_v this_o festival_n sigismond_n in_o his_o commentary_n touch_v moscovia_n and_o gagnin_n in_o his_o description_n of_o this_o same_o country_n do_v express_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o but_o that_o which_o most_o considerable_a be_v that_o when_o those_o among_o they_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o king_n of_o poland_n be_v force_v to_o reunite_v themselves_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1595._o under_o pope_n clement_n the_o eight_o they_o make_v this_o contract_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v compel_v to_o make_v any_o procession_n on_o the_o ibid._n h●mber_n sum_n conir_fw-fr t._n 11._o tho._n à_fw-fr jesus_n lib_n 6._o p._n 3._o c._n 1._o thom._n ●_o jesus_n ibid._n festival_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n because_o they_o have_v other_o custom_n among_o they_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o sacrament_n whereupon_o a_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v consult_v give_v this_o answer_n that_o as_o to_o the_o carry_v or_o not_o carry_v of_o the_o sacrament_n about_o in_o procession_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v much_o regard_v but_o there_o be_v several_a other_o thing_n of_o great_a importance_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v consider_v this_o person_n although_o he_o speak_v not_o full_o his_o mind_n yet_o say_v enough_o to_o make_v we_o understand_v he_o for_o he_o mean_v if_o i_o mistake_v not_o that_o do_v the_o matter_n concern_v only_o the_o festival_n of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o signify_v little_a but_o that_o the_o unwillingness_n these_o people_n show_v to_o observe_v this_o feast_n do_v sufficient_o evidence_n they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o sentiment_n in_o the_o main_a with_o the_o latin_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n and_o in_o effect_n wherefore_o shall_v they_o refuse_v to_o observe_v this_o feast_n do_v they_o believe_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o adore_v it_o with_o a_o adoration_n of_o latria_n be_v they_o afraid_a of_o give_v it_o too_o much_o honour_n why_o not_o conform_v in_o this_o particular_a with_o the_o roman_a church_n see_v they_o be_v reunite_v to_o she_o and_o have_v leave_v the_o greek_n be_v not_o this_o a_o evident_a token_n that_o the_o greek_n can_v accommodate_v themselves_o to_o the_o adoration_n practise_v by_o the_o latin_n nor_o consequent_o to_o the_o doctrine_n they_o teach_v and_o on_o which_o this_o adoration_n be_v establish_v but_o when_o what_o i_o say_v shall_v have_v no_o ground_n and_o the_o adoration_n may_v subsist_v without_o these_o ceremony_n mr._n arnaud_n ought_v at_o least_o to_o show_v we_o they_o
be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o will_v be_v so_o neglectful_a of_o it_o and_o disrespectful_a to_o it_o as_o they_o be_v i_o have_v already_o relate_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n what_o cardinal_n humbert_n write_v from_o constantinople_n touch_v their_o custom_n of_o bury_v under_o ground_n the_o remain_v of_o the_o communion_n and_o let_v fall_v the_o crumb_n thereof_o without_o trouble_v themselves_o about_o they_o when_o you_o break_v say_v 4._o humbert_n contr_n nic._n bib._n patr._n tom._n 4._o edit_fw-la 4._o he_o the_o holy_a bread_n or_o receive_v it_o you_o be_v not_o concern_v at_o the_o crumb_n fall_v down_o on_o the_o ground_n neither_o be_v you_o more_o careful_a when_o you_o wipe_v the_o dish_n after_o a_o undecent_a manner_n with_o the_o leave_n of_o palm-tree_n or_o brush_v make_v with_o hogs-bristle_n some_o among_o you_o gather_v up_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o so_o great_a irreverence_n that_o you_o fill_v box_n with_o it_o and_o to_o prevent_v the_o scatter_n of_o the_o crumb_n press_v they_o down_o with_o your_o hand_n they_o eat_v likewise_o what_o be_v leave_v of_o the_o oblation_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o common_a bread_n and_o sometime_o so_o much_o of_o it_o till_o they_o glut_v themselves_o with_o it_o and_o what_o they_o can_v eat_v they_o bury_v under_o ground_n or_o throw_v it_o into_o well_n he_o in_o another_o place_n severe_o censure_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o bury_v say_v he_o the_o eucharist_n as_o some_o be_v say_v to_o do_v or_o put_v it_o in_o bottle_n or_o scatter_v it_o about_o be_v certain_o a_o great_a neglect_n and_o sign_n that_o such_o have_v calumn_n humbert_n contr_n g●●●_n calumn_n not_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n for_o the_o holy_a and_o divine_a mystery_n be_v the_o faith_n of_o christian_n and_o in_o another_o place_n in_o answer_n to_o cerularius_n who_o boast_v that_o he_o will_v teach_v great_a and_o excellent_a thing_n be_v these_o say_v he_o those_o great_a and_o excellent_a thing_n you_o speak_v of_o to_o place_v the_o oblation_n on_o the_o altar_n ibid._n ibid._n in_o so_o great_a a_o quantity_n that_o neither_o the_o minister_n nor_o people_n can_v devour_v it_o but_o you_o must_v bury_v it_o or_o throw_v it_o into_o well_n make_v for_o that_o purpose_n the_o anonymous_n author_n of_o the_o treatise_n against_o the_o greek_n observe_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o humbert_n at_o easter_n say_v he_o when_o the_o people_n receive_v the_o 4._o bibl._n patr._n tom._n 4_o edit_n 4._o communion_n they_o provide_v abundance_n of_o bread_n and_o consecrate_v it_o all_o and_o because_o the_o heap_n which_o be_v leave_v can_v be_v keep_v they_o bury_v they_o this_o custom_n of_o bury_v the_o eucharist_n remain_v still_o among_o the_o greek_n for_o the_o jesuit_n richard_n relate_v that_o a_o poor_a woman_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o saint_n erinis_fw-la have_v no_o soon_o receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n but_o she_o bring_v it_o up_o again_o by_o reason_n 2●0_n relation_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o st._n erin_n chap._n 17._o p._n 2●0_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o her_o stomach_n and_o that_o the_o greek_a priest_n who_o give_v it_o she_o before_o he_o confess_v she_o do_v not_o scruple_n to_o take_v up_o what_o she_o have_v vomit_v and_o bury_v it_o together_o with_o the_o sacred_a particle_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o altar_n for_o which_o fact_n he_o be_v blame_v by_o the_o other_o papa_n who_o will_v have_v he_o bury_v it_o on_o the_o seashore_n judge_v then_o add_v he_o how_o great_a be_v the_o ignorance_n of_o these_o greek_a priest_n and_o how_o great_a our_o saviour_n patience_n to_o bear_v this_o he_o undoubted_o see_v all_o these_o disorder_n and_o indignity_n he_o be_v to_o suffer_v when_o he_o institute_v this_o divine_a sacrament_n the_o same_o author_n say_v likewise_o that_o their_o priest_n follow_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o jew_n let_v their_o beard_n grow_v which_o be_v all_o over_o wet_a with_o the_o lord_n blood_n 60._o tract_n contr_n bibl._n patr._n tom._n 4._o arcud_v lib._n 3._o cap._n 60._o when_o they_o drink_v arcudius_n reproach_n they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n the_o greek_a priest_n say_v he_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n very_o undecent_o for_o take_v the_o consecrate_a bead_n they_o grasp_v it_o close_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o so_o lift_v it_o up_o on_o their_o head_n i_o suppose_v they_o do_v this_o as_o a_o sign_n of_o honour_n and_o veneration_n and_o have_v eat_v the_o eucharist_n and_o recite_v some_o praise_n they_o lift_v up_o their_o hand_n to_o their_o head_n and_o stroke_n they_o for_o it_o common_o happen_v that_o some_o crumb_n stick_v thereon_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v drink_v the_o blood_n they_o do_v not_o scruple_n to_o wipe_v their_o beard_n with_o their_o hand_n or_o handkerchief_n as_o if_o they_o have_v drink_v common_a wine_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o let_v their_o beard_n grow_v and_o never_o cut_v their_o moustache_n it_o frequent_o happen_v that_o drop_n of_o blood_n fall_v from_o they_o on_o the_o holy_a vestment_n or_o altar_n and_o not_o seldom_o on_o the_o ground_n he_o far_o add_v that_o the_o rubric_n of_o their_o liturgy_n deceive_v they_o and_o that_o these_o word_n shall_v be_v correct_v after_o the_o priest_n have_v wipe_v his_o lip_n and_o the_o brim_n of_o the_o sacred_a chalice_n with_o the_o veil_n he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n he_o call_v the_o deacon_n sacranus_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o russian_n say_v likewise_o that_o they_o give_v the_o communion_n to_o the_o people_n in_o nasty_a wooden_a spoon_n and_o wipe_v off_o the_o crumb_n which_o stick_v thereon_o with_o a_o cloth_n let_v they_o fall_v on_o the_o ground_n they_o be_v far_o from_o be_v scrupulous_a and_o take_v that_o care_n the_o roman_a church_n do_v to_o prevent_v the_o eucharist_n be_v eat_v by_o vermin_n for_o the_o rat_n may_v run_v away_o with_o great_a piece_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o they_o not_o concern_v thereat_o manuel_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o binius_fw-la rank_n in_o the_o seven_o century_n be_v ask_v by_o one_o of_o his_o bishop_n what_o punishment_n he_o think_v a_o priest_n deserve_v who_o let_v a_o mouse_n run_v away_o with_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n cold_o answer_v that_o those_o to_o who_o these_o mischance_n happen_v be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o these_o thing_n be_v usual_a multa_fw-la enim_fw-la ejusmodi_fw-la saepe_fw-la accidunt_fw-la if_o the_o like_a question_n be_v offer_v to_o a_o latin_a bishop_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o he_o will_v insist_v on_o the_o care_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o prevention_n of_o these_o inconvenience_n and_o instead_o of_o slight_v the_o matter_n and_o excuse_v the_o priest_n as_o this_o patriarch_n do_v by_o say_v this_o often_o happen_v he_o will_v on_o the_o contrary_n invent_v all_o way_n imaginable_a to_o prevent_v this_o from_o ever_o hap'n_v let_v mr._n arnaud_n if_o he_o please_v reflect_v a_o little_a on_o all_o these_o thing_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a these_o people_n will_v show_v so_o little_a reverence_n and_o so_o great_a neglect_n to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v they_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o their_o saviour_n they_o eat_v thereof_o as_o common_a bread_n till_o they_o have_v glut_v themselves_o they_o bury_v it_o and_o cast_v it_o into_o well_n and_o when_o any_o crumb_n thereof_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n or_o stick_v on_o their_o hair_n they_o be_v not_o all_o concern_v thereat_o they_o spill_v the_o consecrate_a wine_n on_o their_o beard_n on_o the_o altar_n yea_o on_o the_o ground_n and_o matter_n it_o not_o and_o their_o liturgy_n enjoin_v they_o to_o wipe_v their_o lip_n with_o their_o handkerchief_n when_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o communion_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v what_o i_o relate_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n that_o they_o let_v the_o sacrament_n hang_v a_o whole_a year_n in_o a_o linen_n bag_n on_o a_o nail_n expose_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o worm_n according_a to_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o sacranus_fw-la and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o gnesne_n now_o what_o congruity_n have_v all_o this_o with_o the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n mr._n arnaud_n may_v distinguish_v if_o he_o please_v between_o the_o necessary_a consequence_n and_o those_o of_o congruity_n yet_o all_o his_o philosophy_n fall_v short_a of_o persuade_v we_o that_o these_o practice_n be_v consistent_a with_o the_o belief_n that_o it_o be_v no_o long_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n but_o the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n i_o shall_v finish_v this_o chapter_n with_o a_o passage_n take_v out_o of_o oecumenius_n which_o shall_v be_v my_o seventeen_o proof_n this_o author_n who_o
his_o innocency_n and_o admirer_n of_o his_o virtue_n it_o be_v the_o fate_n of_o great_a man_n to_o be_v persecute_v and_o those_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o eastern_a affair_n must_v acknowledge_v there_o be_v no_o place_n more_o dangerous_a and_o expose_v to_o more_o revolution_n and_o tempest_n than_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o constantinople_n beside_o the_o traverse_n which_o envy_n and_o particular_a interest_n stir_v up_o against_o cyrillus_n he_o have_v the_o whole_a party_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o false_a greek_n against_o he_o who_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o obstacle_n that_o withstand_v their_o old_a design_n to_o bring_v over_o that_o church_n to_o roman_a see_n he_o ibid._n ibid._n be_v assay_v both_o by_o promise_n and_o threaten_n as_o allatius_n himself_o acknowledge_v but_o they_o find_v he_o unmovable_a and_o this_o be_v the_o real_a cause_n of_o their_o after_o hatred_n it_o be_v certain_a cyrillus_n have_v a_o great_a aversion_n to_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o his_o inclination_n lead_v he_o rather_o to_o the_o protestant_n side_n neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o he_o disapprove_v several_a superstition_n in_o vogue_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o labour_v with_o all_o his_o power_n to_o reform_v they_o according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o conscience_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o charge_n but_o to_o make_v he_o pass_v under_o pretence_n of_o this_o for_o a_o half_a calvinist_n that_o be_v false_a to_o his_o own_o principle_n this_o be_v very_o disingenuous_o do_v it_o be_v true_a he_o relate_v himself_o that_o in_o a_o conference_n he_o hold_v with_o fuxius_n a_o transylvanian_a doctor_n touch_v the_o invocation_n of_o 8._o hottinger_n in_o appendic●_n dissert_v 8._o saint_n he_o acknowledge_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o one_o rule_n and_o follow_v the_o fancy_n and_o opinion_n of_o man_n the_o difference_n between_o build_v a_o man_n faith_n on_o the_o foundation_n of_o christ_n and_o on_o hay_o or_o stubble_n but_o beside_o that_o hottinger_n from_o who_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v borrow_v this_o particular_a set_v not_o down_o the_o time_n in_o which_o cyrillus_n have_v this_o conference_n with_o fuxius_n and_o that_o we_o must_v not_o suppose_v without_o good_a proof_n this_o happen_v before_o his_o promotion_n to_o the_o patriarchate_o of_o alexandria_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v it_o can_v be_v hence_o conclude_v he_o whole_o renounce_v in_o his_o heart_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nor_o that_o he_o respect_v it_o as_o a_o impiety_n hottinger_n indeed_o call_v this_o worship_n superstition_n but_o from_o himself_o and_o not_o from_o cyrillus_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o fair_o do_v to_o confound_v one_o man_n opinion_n with_o another_o cyrillus_n perhaps_o may_v have_v acknowledge_v in_o this_o conference_n that_o this_o invocation_n aster_n the_o manner_n some_o teach_v and_o practice_v it_o be_v a_o mere_a fancy_n and_o humane_a invention_n that_o it_o be_v this_o word_n hay_o and_o stubble_n saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o and_o yet_o not_o absolute_o reject_v this_o doctrine_n in_o the_o main_a metrophanus_n critopulus_n 17._o confess_v ec●_n orient_a cap._n 17._o who_o i_o already_o mention_v express_o distinguish_v between_o a_o invocation_n direct_v to_o saint_n as_o mediator_n and_o that_o which_o respect_v they_o as_o ambassador_n who_o the_o church_n have_v near_o almighty_a god_n to_o beseech_v he_o in_o behalf_n of_o their_o brethren_n he_o reject_v the_o first_o upon_o this_o reason_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a mediator_n who_o be_v christ_n jesus_n but_o he_o receive_v the_o second_o and_o cyrillus_n himself_o in_o the_o eight_o article_n of_o his_o confession_n insinuate_v this_o distinction_n say_v that_o our_o saviour_n alone_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o chief_a priest_n and_o mediator_n it_o concern_v i_o not_o now_o to_o examine_v whether_o the_o distinction_n be_v good_a or_o not_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n which_o hold_v it_o may_v condemn_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o one_o respect_n and_o retain_v it_o in_o another_o and_o remain_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o practise_v it_o without_o act_v against_o his_o conscience_n and_o be_v a_o damnable_a hypocrite_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n call_v cyrillus_n we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o this_o patriarch_n by_o his_o confession_n in_o which_o and_o some_o answer_n which_o accompany_v it_o he_o clear_o declare_v his_o belief_n it_o contain_v thing_n which_o do_v not_o well_o agree_v with_o calvin_n doctrine_n as_o for_o 16._o cyril_n conf._n fi●_n dei_fw-la art_n 1._o &_o art_n 16._o instance_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n and_o that_o baptism_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o our_o communion_n with_o christ_n which_o plain_o show_v mr._n arnaud_n have_v be_v mistake_v in_o affirm_v he_o be_v a_o calvinist_n we_o do_v not_o find_v he_o oppose_v any_o where_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n nor_o the_o hierarchical_a order_n nor_o regulate_v fast_n lent_n arbitrary_a use_n of_o confession_n religious_a order_n monastic_a vow_n celebration_n of_o feast_n nor_o the_o use_n of_o the_o greek_a liturgy_n nor_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n common_o believe_v and_o practise_v in_o that_o church_n although_o calvin_n have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n disapprove_v of_o they_o he_o admit_v the_o use_n of_o the_o image_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v true_a he_o detest_v the_o give_v they_o the_o adoration_n of_o latria_n or_o any_o religious_a worship_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4._o resp_n ad_fw-la in●_n terr_v 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o insinuate_v he_o be_v willing_a to_o correct_v the_o superstition_n of_o the_o greek_n in_o this_o particular_a he_o teach_v likewise_o the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n and_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o clear_o than_o the_o eastern_a people_n know_v it_o but_o it_o must_v not_o therefore_o be_v conclude_v he_o be_v a_o person_n that_o betray_v his_o trust_n in_o perform_v the_o function_n of_o the_o patriarchate_o nor_o that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o leave_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o his_o church_n nor_o as_o speak_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o piety_n can_v not_o subsist_v with_o so_o damnable_a hypocrisy_n our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v we_o not_o to_o judge_v so_o rash_o of_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n judge_v not_o say_v our_o lord_n that_o you_o be_v not_o judge_v for_o 7._o matt._n 7._o with_o what_o judgement_n you_o judge_v you_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o with_o what_o measure_v you_o meet_v it_o shall_v be_v measure_v to_o you_o again_o and_o the_o apostle_n cry_v out_o to_o we_o who_o 14._o rom._n 14._o be_v thou_o that_o judge_v another_o man_n servant_n certain_o a_o man_n can_v be_v guilty_a of_o great_a rashness_n than_o to_o condemn_v people_n from_o the_o dictate_v of_o their_o own_o conscience_n when_o have_v never_o see_v nor_o hear_v they_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o have_v any_o other_o than_o a_o confuse_a and_o general_a knowledge_n of_o they_o such_o as_o be_v mr._n arnaud_n touch_v cyrillus_n for_o beside_o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v easy_o mistake_v in_o imagine_v that_o such_o and_o such_o a_o sentiment_n oblige_v a_o man_n in_o conscience_n to_o the_o do_v of_o this_o or_o the_o other_a thing_n if_o a_o man_n proceed_v not_o to_o a_o particular_a consideration_n of_o circumstance_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v it_o may_v be_v that_o this_o obligation_n which_o appear_v to_o we_o so_o cogent_a and_o inviolable_a have_v not_o so_o appear_v to_o the_o person_n concern_v which_o suffice_v to_o acquit_v he_o of_o the_o crime_n of_o act_v against_o his_o conscience_n mr._n arnaud_n censure_n can_v be_v justifiable_a unless_o he_o can_v prove_v cyrillus_n have_v real_o practise_v or_o approve_v the_o practice_n of_o thing_n which_o he_o believe_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o be_v not_o only_o indifferent_a or_o unprofitable_a but_o absolute_o evil_a and_o that_o he_o have_v practise_v they_o in_o the_o same_o time_n when_o he_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v so_o now_o this_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v not_o prove_v nor_o never_o will_v he_o may_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o cyrillus_n believe_v we_o must_v not_o ground_v the_o hope_n of_o our_o salvation_n on_o humane_a tradition_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o we_o must_v invoke_v only_a jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o mediator_n and_o render_v no_o kind_n of_o religious_a worship_n to_o image_n he_o may_v prove_v that_o cyrillus_n have_v find_v out_o the_o error_n in_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o superstition_n among_o the_o greek_n and_o detest_v both_o he_o may_v show_v that_o cyrillus_n have_v approve_v conformable_o to_o his_o confession_n divers_a point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o calvin_n but_o he_o can_v prove_v
st._n andrews_n where_o they_o private_o bury_v it_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o faith_n that_o hottinger_n be_v a_o minister_n and_o one_o of_o the_o most_o passionate_a and_o least_o sincere_a writer_n he_o ever_o read_v but_o why_o must_v we_o rather_o believe_v allatius_n than_o hottinger_n the_o former_a of_o these_o have_v all_o the_o mark_n of_o a_o passionate_a man_n who_o be_v ever_o upon_o disguish_a thing_n whereas_o this_o last_o on_o the_o contrary_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n say_v what_o he_o please_v have_v all_o the_o character_n of_o a_o faithful_a writer_n relate_v thing_n according_a to_o the_o best_a of_o his_o knowledge_n the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v i_o confess_v more_o polite_a but_o the_o other_a have_v more_o simplicity_n allatius_n relate_v from_o his_o own_o head_n what_o he_o please_v hottinger_n allege_v his_o witness_n and_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o mr._n leger_n and_o conopius_n who_o letter_n in_o its_o original_a i_o have_v by_o i_o invent_v these_o story_n thus_o circumstance_v as_o we_o find_v they_o if_o it_o be_v moreover_o true_a that_o the_o greek_a church_n respect_v cyrillus_n as_o a_o heretic_n and_o do_v her_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o deliver_v herself_o from_o he_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_a the_o latin_n and_o their_o disciple_n who_o so_o strenuous_o endeavour_v to_o get_v rid_v of_o a_o person_n who_o they_o can_v neither_o gain_v by_o promise_n nor_o threaten_n and_o that_o hinder_v they_o in_o their_o great_a design_n of_o a_o reunion_n it_o be_v in_o reference_n to_o they_o that_o cyrillus_n add_v at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o confession_n we_o plain_o foresee_v this_o short_a confession_n will_v be_v as_o a_o mark_n of_o contradiction_n to_o they_o who_o be_v please_v to_o calumniate_v and_o persecute_v we_o his_o presentiment_n be_v not_o vain_a and_o thus_o much_o touch_v mr._n arnaud'_v first_o objection_n as_o to_o the_o second_o which_o assert_n the_o principal_a article_n of_o his_o confession_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o greek_n i_o confess_v there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o wherein_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v more_o plain_o assert_v than_o in_o other_o greek_a book_n as_o the_o thirteen_o and_o fourteen_o article_n for_o instance_n which_o treat_v of_o our_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n of_o free_a will_n and_o divine_a grace_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o do_v not_o in_o the_o main_n contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o may_v be_v easy_o reconcile_v with_o the_o answer_n of_o jeremias_n to_o the_o divine_n of_o wittenberg_n the_o fifteen_o article_n acknowledge_v but_o two_o sacrament_n and_o jeremias_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n open_o profess_v to_o hold_v seven_o but_o i_o say_v the_o 9_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 387_o confess_v cap._n 9_o greek_n have_v no_o rule_n in_o this_o matter_n metrophanus_n acknowledge_v three_o of_o divine_a institution_n to_o wit_n baptism_n the_o eucharist_n and_o penance_n and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o four_o he_o affirm_v they_o be_v call_v mystery_n improper_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d jeremias_n acknowledge_v seven_o it_o be_v true_a but_o he_o reckon_v proper_o but_o two_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n namely_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o as_o to_o the_o five_o other_o he_o seem_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n have_v add_v they_o to_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n wherefore_o will_v mr._n arnaud_n needs_o have_v cyrillus_n who_o only_o speak_v of_o the_o true_a sacrament_n institute_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o not_o of_o humane_a ceremony_n which_o be_v improper_o call_v mystery_n because_o they_o have_v something_o that_o be_v mysterious_a in_o they_o as_o speak_v metrophanus_n to_o have_v contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_n why_o see_v he_o oppose_v jeremias_n to_o cyrillus_n do_v he_o not_o sincere_o relate_v the_o sentiment_n of_o jeremias_n arcudius_n have_v deal_v better_a in_o this_o respect_n than_o he_o for_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o jeremias_n do_v 2._o arcud_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o not_o only_o teach_v that_o the_o cream_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o tradition_n but_o that_o he_o pass_v the_o same_o judgement_n on_o all_o the_o rest_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n except_v contrary_a to_o what_o he_o have_v assert_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o answer_n as_o to_o the_o eighteen_o article_n in_o which_o cyrillus_n assert_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a be_v carry_v immediate_o into_o a_o state_n of_o bliss_n or_o misery_n mr._n arnaud_n 388._o ibid._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6_o pag._n 388._o say_v he_o therein_o contradict_v the_o general_a opinion_n of_o the_o greek_n touch_v the_o state_n of_o soul_n after_o death_n hornbeck_n and_o chytreus_n say_v he_o and_o all_o that_o ever_o treat_v on_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o greek_n affirm_v they_o admit_v beside_o paradise_n and_o hell_n a_o certain_a dark_a and_o doleful_a place_n in_o which_o the_o soul_n be_v purge_v after_o this_o life_n i_o answer_v the_o greek_n be_v not_o determinate_o positive_a touch_v the_o state_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o death_n as_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a there_o be_v some_o who_o hold_v they_o will_v not_o enjoy_v the_o beatific_a vision_n till_o after_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v in_o pleasant_a and_o delightful_a place_n place_n exempt_a from_o all_o kind_n of_o sorrow_n or_o else_o in_o dark_a and_o dismal_a shade_n where_o they_o continual_o ruminate_v on_o the_o sin_n they_o have_v commit_v and_o these_o hold_v there_o be_v three_o different_a rank_n of_o decease_a person_n namely_o the_o unfaithful_a or_o wicked_a the_o faithful_a that_o die_v in_o a_o state_n of_o repentance_n and_o perfect_a holiness_n and_o other_o who_o notwithstanding_o their_o faith_n and_o true_a piety_n yet_o have_v commit_v several_a sin_n for_o which_o they_o have_v not_o so_o true_o repent_v as_o they_o ought_v hell_n be_v design_v for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o the_o second_o say_v they_o go_v into_o place_n of_o rest_n and_o refreshment_n and_o the_o last_o into_o those_o doleful_a place_n where_o they_o feel_v the_o want_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o illumination_n but_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o that_o hold_v there_o be_v only_o two_o condition_n of_o man_n after_o death_n namely_o that_o of_o the_o virtuous_a and_o wicked_a and_o two_o place_n to_o wit_n heaven_n and_o hell_n syropulus_n relate_v in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o greek_n be_v urge_v by_o the_o latin_n to_o express_v themselves_o 16._o hist_o council_n flor._n sect._n 5._o cap._n 16._o plain_o touch_v the_o state_n of_o depart_a soul_n bessarion_n declare_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o saint_n receive_v the_o bliss_n prepare_v for_o they_o and_o those_o of_o sinner_n their_o punishment_n and_o that_o it_o only_o remain_v that_o each_o of_o these_o reassume_a their_o body_n after_o which_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v enter_v into_o a_o full_a enjoyment_n of_o happiness_n with_o their_o body_n and_o that_o sinner_n likewise_o with_o their_o body_n etc._n etc._n shall_v suffer_v everlasting_a punishment_n we_o see_v here_o but_o two_o state_n after_o death_n we_o find_v in_o allatius_n a_o passage_n of_o the_o greek_n which_o likewise_o assert_v but_o two_o place_n we_o must_v know_v say_v it_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a remain_n in_o certain_a place_n and_o 2._o allat_n de_fw-fr lib._n eccl._n disp_n 2._o those_o of_o sinner_n in_o like_a manner_n separate_v from_o they_o those_o rejoice_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o hope_n of_o bliss_n these_o lament_n in_o expectation_n of_o their_o torment_n there_o be_v moreover_o a_o passage_n of_o joseph_n briennius_n which_o assert_n that_o there_o be_v two_o ibid._n ibid._n place_n design_v for_o the_o entertainment_n of_o decease_a soul_n heaven_n for_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o hell_n for_o sinner_n that_o the_o saint_n be_v at_o liberty_n that_o they_o have_v all_o the_o world_n and_o especial_o the_o garden_n of_o eden_n for_o their_o abode_n that_o those_o who_o be_v condemn_v to_o hell_n will_v not_o come_v out_o from_o their_o abode_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o that_o they_o can_v receive_v the_o least_o beam_n of_o light_n or_o relaxation_n for_o add_v he_o the_o saint_n will_v not_o enjoy_v eternal_a happiness_n nor_o sinner_n suffer_v their_o everlasting_a torment_n before_o the_o last_o judgement_n but_o these_o last_o shall_v be_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o dark_a prison_n under_o the_o custody_n of_o cruel_a devil_n sigismond_n speak_v of_o the_o moscovite_n say_v they_o believe_v not_o there_o be_v
any_o purgatory_n but_o moscov_n sigism_n com._n ver_fw-la moscov_n hold_v that_o every_o one_o after_o death_n go_v to_o the_o place_n he_o deserve_v good_a people_n into_o a_o place_n of_o serenity_n among_o angel_n and_o the_o wicked_a into_o dismal_a and_o dark_a shade_n among_o terrible_a devil_n where_o they_o expect_v the_o last_o judgement_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a know_v they_o be_v in_o god_n favour_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o place_n they_o be_v in_o and_o by_o the_o presence_n of_o angel_n which_o accompany_v they_o and_o so_o the_o other_o on_o the_o contrary_n goar_n testify_v that_o ligaridius_n a_o greek_a author_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o chios_n expound_v exeq._n jacob._n gore_n in_o notis_fw-la in_o offic_n exeq._n the_o meaning_n of_o those_o frequent_a alleluja_n sing_v at_o the_o funeral_n of_o the_o decease_a say_v they_o be_v sing_v as_o sign_n of_o joy_n that_o those_o who_o remain_v alive_a may_v rejoice_v in_o that_o the_o defunct_a have_v happy_o leave_v this_o miserable_a life_n and_o be_v now_o in_o possession_n of_o everlasting_a bliss_n it_o appear_v then_o by_o this_o diversity_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o regulate_v on_o this_o subject_a among_o the_o greek_n but_o that_o cyrillus_n may_v assert_v the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o article_n before_o we_o without_o contradict_v the_o general_a belief_n of_o his_o church_n beside_o his_o term_n be_v not_o so_o strict_a but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v well_o accommodate_v with_o the_o sentiment_n of_o those_o who_o affirm_v the_o soul_n enjoy_v not_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n or_o a_o perfect_a felicity_n till_o the_o last_o judgement_n and_o that_o hold_v there_o be_v three_o state_n of_o decease_a person_n for_o he_o say_v only_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o decease_a be_v in_o bliss_n or_o misery_n and_o assoon_o as_o ever_o they_o leave_v their_o body_n be_v either_o in_o heaven_n or_o hell_n which_o will_v bear_v this_o sense_n that_o judgement_n be_v already_o pass_v upon_o they_o and_o that_o god_n have_v already_o show_v they_o their_o condition_n which_o hinder_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o one_o be_v not_o yet_o perfect_a and_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o other_o not_o yet_o complete_v and_o this_o sense_n seem_v to_o be_v favour_v by_o what_o cyrillus_n add_v immediate_o afterward_o that_o every_o one_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o the_o condition_n he_o be_v in_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n which_o seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o he_o will_v be_v understand_v to_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o judgement_n and_o not_o of_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a execution_n of_o this_o judgement_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n most_o certain_a in_o reference_n to_o the_o greek_n the_o one_o that_o they_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o other_a that_n they_o reject_v the_o purgatory_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o cyrillus_n touch_v not_o on_o the_o first_o of_o these_o and_z as_o to_o the_o second_o he_o agree_v very_o well_o therein_o with_o his_o own_o people_n for_o he_o call_v purgatory_n a_o imagination_n not_o to_o be_v admit_v so_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n impertinent_o accuse_v he_o of_o contradict_v the_o greek_n in_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o his_o confession_n we_o come_v now_o to_o mr._n arnaud_n three_o objection_n which_o consist_v of_o two_o pretend_a condemnation_n of_o cyrillus_n his_o confession_n the_o one_o under_o cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n and_o the_o other_a under_o parthenius_n i_o have_v already_o discourse_v of_o those_o two_o piece_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o father_n nüet_o wherein_o i_o have_v show_v they_o be_v suspect_v to_o be_v fictious_a but_o if_o the_o reader_n will_v not_o trouble_v himself_o with_o consult_v what_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o write_v touch_v the_o matter_n he_o may_v here_o behold_v a_o compendium_n of_o my_o reason_n i._o although_o these_o narrative_n have_v be_v often_o print_v there_o have_v be_v no_o body_n yet_o that_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o own_o and_o warrant_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o to_o the_o public_a there_o be_v one_o of_o they_o print_v from_o a_o manuscript_n send_v from_o rome_n and_o the_o other_a from_o a_o edition_n print_v at_o jasi_n in_o moldavia_n publish_v by_o a_o certain_a monk_n name_v arsenius_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v great_a assurance_n give_v than_o what_o we_o have_v already_o see_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o authorise_v so_o important_a a_o matter_n as_o the_o determination_n of_o two_o late_a council_n the_o one_o in_o the_o year_n 1639._o and_o the_o other_a in_o 1642._o ii_o these_o two_o narrative_n contradict_v one_o another_o the_o first_o of_o they_o which_o be_v publish_v under_o the_o name_n of_o cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n be_v subscribe_v by_o several_a of_o those_o who_o hand_n be_v to_o the_o second_o and_o by_o the_o same_o parthenius_n to_o who_o this_o last_o be_v attribute_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o second_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o first_o the_o first_o express_o anathematize_n cyrillus_n and_o call_v he_o a_o impious_a and_o wicked_a person_n the_o second_o say_v only_o there_o be_v certain_a article_n produce_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o patriarch_n cyrillus_n the_o first_o condemn_v with_o a_o anathema_n these_o article_n the_o second_o say_v it_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o synod_n whether_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v and_o hold_v for_o pious_a and_o orthodox_n point_n or_o reject_v as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n which_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o that_o make_v the_o second_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o first_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v both_o find_v subscribe_v by_o the_o same_o person_n iii_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n that_o metrophanus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v a_o assessor_n at_o the_o first_o synod_n under_o cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n nor_o that_o parthenius_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v hold_v the_o second_o will_v have_v so_o light_o and_o fraudulent_o condemn_v cyrillus_n lucaris_n see_v one_o of_o they_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a officer_n of_o his_o chamber_n and_o the_o other_a his_o protector_n and_o intimate_a friend_n iv_o arsenius_n the_o monk_n from_o who_o it_o be_v say_v we_o have_v the_o pretend_a account_n of_o the_o synod_n under_o parthenius_n and_o who_o send_v it_o from_o constantinople_n to_o a_o nameless_a friend_n at_o venice_n have_v stuff_v his_o letter_n with_o rail_n against_o cyrillus_n and_o his_o confession_n yet_o mention_n not_o a_o word_n touch_v its_o first_o condemnation_n under_o cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n which_o show_v we_o that_o these_o be_v counterfeit_a piece_n compose_v at_o several_a time_n and_o by_o different_a person_n who_o not_o consult_v one_o another_o nor_o furnish_v with_o sufficient_a instruction_n have_v be_v guilty_a of_o several_a contradiction_n i_o will_v now_o add_v to_o what_o have_v be_v already_o say_v some_o other_o remark_n which_o be_v no_o less_o considerable_a the_o first_o be_v that_o when_o cyrillus_n his_o confession_n of_o faith_n appear_v in_o our_o western_a part_n the_o first_o game_n that_o be_v play_v be_v to_o deny_v it_o and_o affirm_v it_o be_v a_o feign_a story_n but_o when_o this_o shift_n will_v no_o long_o serve_v turn_n and_o that_o the_o thing_n be_v make_v evident_a than_o a_o account_n of_o these_o pretend_a council_n appear_v which_o show_v that_o they_o be_v substitute_v as_o a_o new_a remedy_n instead_o of_o the_o other_o which_o can_v be_v of_o no_o long_o use_v second_o what_o parthenius_n be_v make_v to_o say_v that_o there_o have_v be_v some_o article_n produce_v under_o cyrillus_n his_o name_n be_v as_o every_o man_n may_v discover_v the_o style_n of_o the_o western_a people_n and_o not_o that_o of_o parthenius_n himself_o who_o can_v not_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n nor_o his_o synod_n neither_o because_o it_o be_v notorious_a in_o constantinople_n that_o this_o confession_n be_v in_o effect_n cyrillus_n his_o own_o see_v he_o offer_v it_o in_o a_o council_n and_o open_o justify_v it_o before_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o grand_a senior_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o several_a ambassador_n and_o because_o parthenius_n and_o his_o bishop_n in_o the_o precede_a synod_n have_v already_o consider_v it_o as_o unquestionable_o he_o moreover_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o parthenius_n and_o his_o council_n will_v thus_o gross_o and_o slanderous_o impute_v to_o cyrillus_n a_o thing_n that_o be_v false_a as_o they_o do_v for_o cyrillus_n have_v say_v in_o the_o first_o article_n of_o his_o confession_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n which_o be_v a_o expression_n from_o which_o the_o greek_n never_o vary_v the_o first_o article_n of_o the_o censure_n bear_v that_o he_o assert_v contrary_a to_o
among_o they_o and_o it_o be_v in_o fine_a from_o their_o proper_a testimony_n i_o have_v clear_o show_v that_o that_o which_o the_o greek_n hold_v touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o latin_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o only_a thing_n i_o have_v to_o do_v yet_o shall_v i_o answer_v in_o the_o follow_a book_n all_o mr._n arnaud'_v vain_a objection_n as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v for_o consider_v what_o i_o already_o establish_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o judge_v that_o his_o argument_n will_v not_o prove_v invincible_a demonstration_n as_o he_o will_v persuade_v the_o world_n book_n iu._n mr._n arnaud_n proof_n touch_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n refute_v chap._n i._n mr._n arnaud_n first_o proof_n take_v from_o cerularius_n his_o silence_n examine_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o illusion_n discover_v after_o what_o i_o have_v establish_v in_o the_o two_o former_a book_n it_o will_v be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n to_o answer_v mr._n arnaud_n objection_n and_o show_v as_o i_o promise_v that_o all_o his_o endeavour_n to_o demonstrate_v the_o greek_a church_n ever_o believe_v transubstantiation_n be_v ineffectual_a and_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o proof_n conclude_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o he_o pretend_v and_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o this_o book_n which_o i_o shall_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n in_o the_o first_o i_o shall_v examine_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v allege_v to_o prove_v his_o supposition_n since_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a and_o in_o the_o second_o consider_v what_o he_o have_v allege_v for_o the_o same_o purpose_n from_o the_o seven_o eight_o nine_o and_o ten_o century_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o book_n i_o shall_v handle_v four_o principal_a head_n under_o which_o i_o shall_v exact_o gather_v whatsoever_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v disperse_v in_o his_o second_o third_z and_o four_o book_n and_o part_n of_o his_o twelve_o book_n wherein_o he_o have_v treat_v on_o some_o particular_n respect_v this_o question_n our_o first_o remark_n shall_v be_v touch_v some_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n delusion_n beside_o those_o we_o already_o discover_v in_o the_o former_a book_n it_o be_v certain_a we_o may_v just_o so_o term_v all_o the_o part_n of_o his_o work_n but_o more_o especial_o what_o he_o have_v write_v touch_v the_o greek_n for_o it_o be_v all_o delusory_a but_o at_o present_a we_o mean_v to_o apply_v this_o term_n to_o certain_a thing_n only_o wherein_o his_o artifice_n plain_o appear_v and_o which_o be_v whole_o inconsistent_a with_o that_o sincerity_n wherewith_o controversy_n ought_v to_o be_v manage_v the_o second_o head_n contain_v the_o testimony_n of_o some_o protestant_n who_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v allege_v which_o seem_v in_o effect_n to_o attribute_v to_o the_o greek_n the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o three_o shall_v contain_v the_o negative_a argument_n draw_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o both_o greek_n and_o latin_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o never_o dispute_v one_o against_o another_o on_o this_o article_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o four_o we_o shall_v explain_v all_o the_o passage_n mr._n arnaud_n have_v take_v out_o of_o greek_a author_n and_o from_o which_o he_o will_v infer_v by_o dint_n of_o argument_n that_o the_o greek_n hold_v this_o conversion_n of_o substance_n to_o begin_v at_o his_o delusion_n the_o first_o or_o to_o speak_v better_a the_o twelve_o after_o those_o we_o already_o discover_v consist_v in_o that_o he_o will_v have_v we_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o own_o bare_a word_n without_o any_o proof_n suppose_v that_o when_o michael_n cerularius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o leo_n archbishop_n of_o acrida_n write_v their_o letter_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n leo_n the_o nine_o the_o then_o present_a pope_n have_v already_o condemn_v berengarius_fw-la and_o that_o the_o greek_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o censure_n but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o hear_v he_o speak_v himself_o to_o show_v say_v he_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n with_o the_o roman_a 139._o lib._n 2._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 139._o in_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o have_v make_v use_n in_o the_o refutation_n of_o mr._n claude_n '_o s_o answer_n of_o the_o contest_v which_o arise_v in_o the_o year_n 1053._o between_o michael_n cerularius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o leo_n archbishop_n of_o acrida_n on_o one_o hand_n and_o pope_n leo_n the_o nine_o and_o the_o whole_a latin_a church_n on_o the_o other_o for_o these_o person_n although_o such_o passionate_a adversary_n against_o the_o western_a church_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o azyme_n yet_o never_o reproach_v she_o as_o err_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n although_o they_o write_v against_o the_o latin_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o after_o pope_n leo_n have_v censure_v berengarius_fw-la in_o two_o council_n of_o italy_n the_o one_o hold_v at_o rome_n the_o other_a at_o verseil_n whence_o we_o conclude_v they_o be_v agree_v with_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o she_o so_o loud_o assert_v at_o that_o time_n this_o be_v mr._n arnaud_n first_o proof_n which_o he_o have_v set_v forth_o to_o the_o life_n in_o the_o best_a colour_n wherewith_o his_o eloquence_n can_v furnish_v he_o have_v turn_v it_o several_a way_n by_o his_o usual_a dexterary_a in_o amplify_a and_o exaggerate_v the_o subject_n he_o handle_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o to_o make_v this_o argument_n valid_a he_o must_v clear_o establish_v before_o all_o thing_n that_o berengarius_fw-la his_o condemnation_n precede_v cerularius_n and_o leo_n of_o acrida_n letter_n and_o precede_v it_o to_o a_o very_a considerable_a time_n to_o show_v that_o these_o prelate_n be_v well_o inform_v of_o it_o and_o have_v reason_n to_o mention_v it_o in_o their_o letter_n for_o without_o this_o we_o can_v conclude_v nothing_o from_o their_o silence_n yet_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v not_o trouble_v himself_o with_o the_o clear_n up_o this_o matter_n of_o fact_n content_v himself_o in_o say_v only_o that_o cerularius_n and_o leo_n of_o acrida_n write_v against_o the_o latin_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o a_o little_a after_o pope_n leo_n condemn_v berengarius_fw-la in_o two_o council_n of_o italy_n a_o man_n will_v then_o think_v this_o be_v a_o point_n out_o of_o doubt_n and_o at_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v no_o need_n to_o stop_v a_o moment_n have_v judge_v it_o evident_a beyond_o contradiction_n in_o his_o chronology_n but_o he_o will_v be_v much_o startle_v to_o find_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o uncertain_a than_o his_o supposition_n and_o moreover_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unlikely_a than_o what_o he_o say_v to_o be_v ascertain_v in_o this_o matter_n we_o must_v know_v that_o cerularius_n and_o leo_n d'_fw-fr acrida_n letter_n be_v write_v in_o the_o year_n 1053._o as_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o all_o the_o world_n grant_v we_o must_v moreover_o know_v that_o although_o baronius_n and_o binius_fw-la attribute_v the_o two_o condemnation_n of_o berengarius_fw-la to_o the_o year_n 1050._o 3_o year_n before_o cerularius_n his_o letter_n be_v write_v yet_o there_o be_v author_n that_o be_v better_o inform_v in_o this_o matter_n than_o baronius_n and_o binius_fw-la who_o refer_v these_o two_o condemnation_n to_o the_o year_n 1053._o be_v exact_o the_o same_o year_n wherein_o the_o letter_n be_v write_v and_o these_o be_v such_o author_n who_o testimony_n will_v go_v far_o with_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v those_o that_o publish_v the_o office_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o same_o office_n to_o which_o the_o first_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n in_o its_o primary_n design_n be_v to_o serve_v as_o a_o preface_n as_o a_o preface_n as_o we_o have_v be_v already_o twice_o inform_v observe_v here_o what_o they_o say_v neither_o malmesbury_n nor_o baronius_n have_v exact_o observe_v all_o the_o cent._n office_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n hist_o and_o chron._n 11._o cent._n council_n which_o be_v call_v touch_v this_o heresy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v hold_v at_o rome_n by_o pope_n leo_n the_o nine_o the_o second_o at_o verseil_n in_o the_o month_n of_o september_n in_o the_o same_o year_n under_o the_o same_o pope_n we_o can_v doubt_v after_o the_o testimony_n of_o lanfranc_n in_o his_o book_n against_o berengarius_fw-la but_o that_o these_o two_o council_n be_v hold_v both_o in_o the_o same_o year_n but_o some_o as_o baronius_n and_o binius_fw-la will_v have_v this_o year_n to_o be_v 1050._o other_o the_o year_n 1053._o first_o because_o sigibert_n say_v that_o pope_n leo_n hold_v two_o council_n in_o 1050._o but_o he_o immediate_o observe_v likewise_o this_o be_v only_o to_o reform_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o ecclesiastic_n
in_o reference_n to_o the_o other_o communion_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o greek_n of_o who_o i_o come_v from_o treat_v what_o i_o say_v before_o and_o what_o i_o say_v even_o there_o touch_v the_o other_o communion_n sufficient_o show_v what_o may_v be_v answer_v in_o this_o respect_n to_o the_o objection_n take_v out_o of_o breerwood_n it_o not_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v thereof_o a_o particular_a article_n nor_o to_o comprehend_v they_o among_o the_o rest_n i_o confess_v the_o sense_n of_o my_o answer_n in_o general_n may_v be_v extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o greek_n in_o observe_v the_o difference_n of_o they_o with_o other_o people_n but_o to_o apply_v they_o to_o even_o the_o very_a lest_o of_o my_o term_n and_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o it_o be_v of_o they_o i_o speak_v be_v that_o which_o justice_n and_o equity_n can_v suffer_v have_v positive_o say_v as_o i_o have_v do_v that_o i_o speak_v of_o other_o communion_n but_o suppose_v my_o answer_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o greek_n themselves_o can_v not_o mr._n arnaud_n understand_v that_o i_o speak_v of_o people_n in_o general_n and_o not_o of_o particular_a person_n and_o mean_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n have_v make_v no_o noise_n among_o the_o people_n that_o their_o pastor_n never_o propose_v it_o to_o they_o in_o order_n to_o its_o be_v receive_v by_o they_o nor_o declaim_v against_o it_o to_o make_v they_o reject_v it_o and_o in_o a_o word_n that_o they_o never_o make_v of_o it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n nor_o controversy_n my_o sense_n appear_v by_o the_o bare_a read_n of_o my_o answer_n breerwood_n say_v i_o have_v only_o transient_o observe_v the_o common_a difference_n of_o religion_n content_v himself_o with_o tell_v we_o what_o people_n embrace_v or_o what_o they_o positive_o reject_v without_o proceed_v to_o the_o thing_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v by_o way_n of_o negation_n as_o not_o have_v hear_v speak_v of_o they_o it_o be_v clear_a i_o distinguish_v three_o sort_n of_o point_n some_o which_o these_o people_n profess_v positive_o to_o believe_v other_o which_o they_o profess_v likewise_o positive_o to_o reject_v and_o the_o three_o which_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v or_o express_o reject_v it_o be_v in_o this_o three_o rank_n i_o put_v transubstantiation_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o it_o as_o a_o point_n they_o ought_v to_o believe_v or_o a_o error_n they_o ought_v positive_o to_o reject_v they_o meet_v not_o with_o it_o either_o among_o the_o article_n their_o religion_n teach_v nor_o among_o those_o which_o it_o oppose_v and_o express_o condemn_v and_o this_o be_v what_o i_o call_v in_o respect_n of_o this_o people_n the_o not_o believe_v a_o thing_n by_o way_n of_o negation_n as_o not_o have_v hear_v speak_v of_o it_o i_o ought_v not_o for_o this_o to_o be_v charge_v with_o a_o absolute_a denial_n that_o the_o greek_n never_o hear_v the_o latin_n believe_v transubstantiation_n for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o thing_n i_o speak_v of_o people_n in_o general_n and_o not_o of_o particular_a person_n and_o i_o speak_v moreover_o of_o point_n which_o be_v not_o find_v either_o among_o the_o article_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v nor_o among_o those_o that_o be_v actual_o to_o be_v reject_v and_o not_o of_o those_o concern_v which_o we_o may_v be_v historical_o inform_v that_o other_o people_n hold_v they_o let_v any_o man_n judge_v then_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n character_n and_o with_o what_o kind_n of_o person_n i_o be_o concern_v beside_o what_o i_o come_v from_o observe_v we_o shall_v immediate_o see_v how_o he_o abuse_v what_o i_o say_v touch_v the_o halcyon_n day_n of_o the_o church_n he_o catch_v at_o the_o least_o expression_n and_o if_o he_o can_v turn_v any_o of_o they_o into_o a_o counter_a sense_n he_o make_v thereof_o a_o matter_n of_o triumph_n this_o proceed_n seem_v whole_o unworthy_a a_o person_n of_o his_o reputation_n have_v he_o design_v to_o enrich_v himself_o with_o the_o spoil_n of_o allatius_n and_o raynaldus_n and_o to_o transcribe_v as_o he_o have_v do_v their_o history_n can_v not_o he_o find_v a_o just_a occasion_n than_o this_o to_o introduce_v they_o into_o his_o volume_n or_o if_o he_o can_v find_v no_o better_o must_v the_o love_n he_o have_v to_o story_n and_o the_o pleasure_n he_o take_v in_o impose_v on_o we_o prevail_v over_o his_o conscience_n which_o forbid_v he_o to_o charge_v i_o with_o a_o false_a meaning_n with_o a_o sense_n as_o be_v apparent_a i_o never_o have_v and_o which_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o sequel_n of_o my_o discourse_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v on_o no_o better_a ground_n than_o these_o that_o he_o make_v i_o draw_v system_n and_o build_v machine_n that_o he_o make_v general_a division_n of_o the_o world_n assemble_v council_n send_v out_o ambassador_n transport_v army_n fill_v jerusalem_n with_o pilgrim_n preach_v croisado_n and_o conquer_v the_o holy_a land_n constantinople_n and_o the_o grecian_a empire_n that_o he_o fill_v the_o east_n with_o bishop_n abbot_n religious_a and_o latin_a inquisitor_n that_o he_o introduce_v prince_n king_n emperor_n and_o pope_n and_o set_v on_o foot_n negotiation_n make_v treaty_n of_o peace_n and_o reunion_n between_o the_o two_o church_n and_o all_o this_o to_o prove_v the_o greek_n be_v not_o ignorant_a the_o latin_n hold_v transubstantiation_n which_o be_v to_o say_v to_o prove_v a_o thing_n i_o never_o deny_v who_o can_v think_v that_o all_o this_o costly_a and_o stately_a pageantry_n shall_v be_v carry_v about_o to_o so_o little_a purpose_n and_o all_o these_o great_a figure_n be_v put_v upon_o their_o motion_n without_o any_o necessity_n to_o convince_v we_o of_o a_o thing_n we_o never_o deny_v yet_o be_v it_o true_a that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o false_a equivocation_n that_o have_v occasion_v all_o this_o preparation_n and_o bustle_n a_o equivocation_n which_o have_v he_o but_o be_v please_v to_o consult_v i_o about_o for_o a_o full_a meaning_n of_o it_o suppose_v there_o be_v need_n of_o it_o i_o can_v have_v save_v he_o all_o this_o trouble_n of_o translate_n allatius_n and_o raynaldus_n and_o several_a other_o passage_n from_o the_o greek_a of_o pachimerus_n and_o anne_n comnenus_n i_o will_v have_v tell_v he_o i_o never_o intend_v to_o deny_v but_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o greek_n know_v what_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o latin_n concern_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n but_o withal_o that_o since_o the_o eleven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a this_o nation_n have_v be_v so_o prodigious_o ignorant_a and_o careless_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o perplex_v with_o their_o temporal_a affair_n that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o paradox_n to_o affirm_v the_o great_a part_n among_o they_o know_v little_a of_o what_o the_o latin_n believe_v in_o this_o particular_a see_v it_o be_v certain_a they_o scarce_o know_v what_o they_o believe_v themselves_o that_o which_o i_o assert_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o controversy_n touch_v their_o ignorance_n confirm_v what_o i_o say_v but_o observe_v here_o moreover_o what_o thomas_n à_fw-la jesus_n have_v write_v the_o greek_n say_v he_o since_o their_o 5._o thomas_n à_fw-fr jesus_n de_fw-fr proc_fw-fr salu._n omn._n gent._n lib._n 6._o cap._n 5._o separation_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v fall_v into_o a_o most_o desperate_a ignorance_n which_o will_v more_o plain_o appear_v if_o we_o cast_v our_o eye_n on_o the_o age_n which_o precede_v the_o separation_n wherein_o greece_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o art_n and_o science_n he_o afterward_o relate_v a_o passage_n take_v out_o of_o bozius_n in_o these_o word_n since_o the_o sixteenth_o century_n when_o the_o greek_a church_n begin_v to_o separate_v from_o we_o there_o have_v scarce_o any_o person_n be_v find_v among_o they_o excel_v in_o any_o science_n it_o be_v certain_a gregory_n relate_v that_o in_o the_o emperor_n andronicus_n his_o time_n which_o be_v about_o 250_o year_n since_o there_o be_v not_o a_o person_n in_o all_o greece_n that_o be_v able_a to_o dispute_v with_o our_o people_n about_o religion_n and_o now_o there_o be_v not_o one_o that_o can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v indifferent_o learn_v if_o any_o among_o they_o desire_n to_o learn_v any_o thing_n they_o must_v leave_v constantinople_n and_o come_v to_o the_o college_n at_o rome_n which_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o build_v for_o the_o greek_n all_o the_o bishop_n among_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n who_o have_v a_o law_n among_o they_o to_o this_o effect_n that_o all_o those_o that_o study_v philosophy_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v as_o testify_v belon_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o observation_n now_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o useful_a to_o man_n for_o the_o find_n
obtain_v her_o favour_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o assert_v this_o doctrine_n in_o clear_a distinct_a term_n therefore_o they_o hold_v it_o not_o now_o let_v a_o man_n reflect_v on_o the_o consequence_n mr._n arnaud_n draw_v and_o he_o will_v find_v that_o it_o have_v none_o of_o these_o quality_n which_o i_o come_v now_o from_o observe_v in_o i_o it_o be_v not_o evident_a for_o what_o certainty_n be_v there_o that_o if_o a_o church_n do_v not_o embrace_v a_o doctrine_n she_o must_v therefore_o immediate_o condemn_v it_o and_o make_v thereof_o a_o matter_n of_o controversy_n this_o proposition_n take_v in_o its_o generality_n be_v not_o only_o unevident_a but_o false_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o reason_n and_o scripture_n be_v apply_v in_o particular_a to_o transubstantiation_n it_o have_v no_o evidence_n for_o it_o must_v be_v suppose_v that_o a_o church_n which_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o consider_v it_o in_o a_o due_a manner_n whereby_o to_o judge_n that_o it_o be_v a_o damnable_a error_n and_o that_o she_o want_v not_o knowledge_n for_o the_o make_n of_o this_o judgement_n and_o suppose_v she_o want_v not_o knowledge_n whereby_o to_o make_v this_o judgement_n we_o must_v far_o suppose_v that_o she_o believe_v herself_o oblige_v to_o pass_v this_o censure_n against_o a_o church_n from_o which_o she_o be_v actual_o separate_v we_o must_v beside_o this_o suppose_v she_o have_v courage_n enough_o to_o do_v her_o duty_n and_o that_o no_o humane_a respect_n can_v withhold_v she_o from_o it_o now_o it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o these_o three_o supposition_n be_v evident_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o greek_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n consequence_n be_v of_o no_o certainty_n for_o what_o certainty_n be_v there_o in_o a_o consequence_n that_o depend_v on_o three_o supposition_n which_o be_v not_o only_o very_o uncertain_a but_o false_a as_o will_v appear_v upon_o examination_n neither_o be_v it_o likewise_o immediate_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v no_o medium_n between_o believe_a transubstantiation_n and_o clear_o explain_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v at_o full_a liberty_n to_o speak_v on_o it_o what_o she_o think_v but_o betwixt_o not_o believe_v it_o and_o make_v thereof_o a_o point_n of_o controversy_n with_o stranger_n that_o do_v believe_v it_o there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n in_o fine_a i_o say_v this_o consequence_n have_v no_o necessity_n for_o it_o may_v be_v hinder_v by_o a_o thousand_o thing_n through_o want_n of_o learned_a man_n able_a to_o manage_v this_o controversy_n by_o the_o temporal_a interest_n of_o their_o empire_n and_o church_n and_o fear_v of_o provoke_v the_o latin_n who_o have_v be_v almost_o continual_o their_o master_n by_o the_o intrigue_n of_o their_o emperor_n and_o several_a of_o their_o patriarch_n and_o bishop_n but_o especial_o by_o a_o spirit_n of_o superstition_n which_o have_v occasion_v long_o since_o the_o turn_n of_o religion_n into_o childish_a ceremony_n neglect_v the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n to_o apply_v themselves_o to_o foppery_n to_o illustrate_v more_o clear_o this_o comparison_n which_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o make_v between_o mr._n arnaud_n negative_a argument_n and_o i_o it_o will_v be_v convenient_a to_o make_v here_o a_o general_a reflection_n on_o the_o state_n of_o our_o controversy_n the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n or_o not_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v undertake_v to_o prove_v the_o affirmative_a and_o i_o the_o negative_a now_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v evident_a i_o be_o only_o oblige_v to_o prove_v my_o thesis_n by_o negative_a argument_n the_o greek_n teach_v not_o transubstantiation_n nor_o its_o necessary_a and_o natural_a consequence_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o this_o conclude_v very_o well_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thesis_n which_o i_o defend_v and_o this_o proof_n be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v a_o man_n mind_n and_o decide_v the_o question_n but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o mr._n arnaud_n for_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v his_o proposition_n not_o so_o much_o by_o the_o silence_n of_o these_o people_n as_o by_o their_o word_n not_o so_o much_o by_o negative_a argument_n as_o by_o positive_a one_o the_o greek_n say_v he_o believe_v transubstantiation_n which_o be_v what_o he_o ought_v to_o show_v by_o affirmative_a argument_n be_v then_o the_o conclusion_n he_o draw_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o greek_n more_o probable_a than_o it_o be_v yet_o can_v it_o not_o persuade_v by_o itself_o any_o reasonable_a person_n our_o mind_n may_v be_v perplex_v with_o it_o but_o yet_o it_o will_v be_v still_o say_v we_o must_v examine_v what_o the_o greek_n positive_o teach_v touch_v the_o eucharist_n and_o see_v how_o they_o explain_v themselves_o concern_v it_o because_o this_o be_v the_o just_a and_o only_o mean_v of_o decide_v the_o question_n in_o effect_n if_o it_o be_v true_a the_o greek_n teach_v transubstantiation_n the_o negative_a argument_n draw_v from_o their_o not_o make_v a_o controversy_n of_o it_o with_o the_o latin_n be_v superfluous_a the_o matter_n be_v decide_v and_o we_o need_v go_v no_o far_o but_o if_o it_o be_v true_a on_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o do_v not_o teach_v it_o the_o negative_a argument_n be_v of_o no_o consequence_n we_o must_v keep_v to_o what_o we_o find_v contain_v in_o their_o form_n of_o doctrine_n it_o be_v then_o certain_a there_o be_v more_o show_n than_o real_a solidity_n in_o this_o part_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n dispute_n and_o that_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a to_o divert_v the_o fancy_n than_o satisfy_v the_o judgement_n it_o may_v dazzle_v our_o eye_n by_o a_o false_a appearance_n but_o can_v instruct_v we_o for_o it_o decide_v nothing_o a_o man_n still_o remain_v in_o the_o desire_n and_o necessity_n of_o know_v what_o the_o greek_n teach_v if_o he_o satisfy_v this_o desire_n it_o be_v sufficient_a but_o if_o not_o his_o negative_a argument_n signify_v nothing_o mr._n arnaud_n then_o may_v well_o have_v spare_v all_o those_o history_n account_n of_o reunion_n and_o the_o enumeration_n of_o all_o the_o author_n that_o have_v treat_v on_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n all_o which_o have_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n see_v that_o when_o we_o have_v bestow_v never_o so_o much_o time_n on_o the_o discussion_n of_o these_o thing_n we_o must_v return_v again_o to_o the_o principal_a point_n which_o be_v to_o know_v positive_o what_o the_o greek_n teach_v concern_v the_o eucharist_n for_o as_o i_o now_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n proposition_n be_v affirmative_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n he_o must_v clear_o establish_v it_o by_o affirmative_a proof_n for_o it_o be_v on_o these_o alone_a whereon_o depend_v the_o decision_n of_o the_o question_n and_o not_o on_o negative_a argument_n draw_v from_o what_o they_o do_v not_o do_v and_o thus_o far_o touch_v my_o general_a mean_n come_v we_o now_o to_o particular_n mr._n arnaud_n pretend_v that_o if_o the_o greek_n have_v not_o heretofore_o believe_v transubstantiation_n nor_o yet_o still_o believe_v it_o they_o ought_v to_o make_v it_o a_o point_n of_o controversy_n with_o the_o latin_n i_o answer_v the_o greek_n content_v themselves_o with_o keep_v their_o own_o belief_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n and_o hold_v to_o their_o usual_a expression_n and_o have_v not_o admit_v the_o determination_n of_o gregory_n the_o vii_o or_o innocent_a the_o iii_o nor_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o yet_o never_o proceed_v to_o a_o formal_a condemnation_n of_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o latin_n nor_o make_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o dispute_n and_o controversy_n in_o a_o word_n they_o do_v neither_o believe_v nor_o oppose_v transubstantiation_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n book_n of_o divinity_n decision_n of_o their_o council_n liturgy_n catechism_n nor_o sermon_n neither_o do_v they_o oppose_v it_o for_o as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v find_v they_o never_o dispute_v this_o point_n with_o the_o latin_n nor_o formal_o debate_v it_o in_o their_o ancient_a difference_n i_o say_v as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v find_v for_o it_o be_v impossible_a but_o some_o have_v dispute_v on_o it_o although_o all_o record_n thereof_o have_v be_v lose_v or_o suppress_v see_v none_o of_o they_o ever_o come_v to_o our_o knowledge_n but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v at_o worst_a it_o only_o concern_v we_o to_o know_v whether_o my_o answer_n be_v reasonable_a and_o whether_o in_o effect_n the_o greek_n not_o believe_v the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n it_o be_v possible_a they_o have_v not_o condemn_v this_o opinion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o
rome_n now_o i_o maintain_v this_o be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o most_o probable_a whence_o it_o follow_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n argument_n be_v neither_o conclusive_a in_o genere_fw-la necessario_fw-la nor_o probabili_fw-la as_o the_o school_n speak_v when_o we_o near_o examine_v it_o i._o to_o show_v this_o i_o first_o of_o all_o produce_v the_o example_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o which_o condemn_v not_o several_a opinion_n which_o she_o know_v be_v hold_v by_o particular_a person_n and_o even_o by_o whole_a society_n too_o under_o her_o jurisdiction_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o receive_v they_o nor_o approve_v of_o they_o she_o keep_v silence_n in_o their_o respect_n for_o reason_n best_o know_v to_o herself_o yet_o will_v not_o have_v it_o argue_v from_o her_o silence_n so_o resolute_o as_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v from_o that_o of_o the_o greek_n the_o question_n whether_o the_o infallibility_n reside_v in_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n have_v remain_v hitherto_o undetermined_a several_a person_n still_o debate_v it_o and_o we_o know_v which_o side_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n favour_n yet_o we_o can_v positive_o say_v that_o they_o have_v condemn_v or_o oppose_v as_o a_o error_n the_o opinion_n of_o those_o who_o prefer_v the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n and_o yet_o they_o will_v be_v loath_a man_n shall_v argue_v from_o their_o silence_n how_o long_o have_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n suffer_v the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o dominican_n touch_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n without_o oppose_v or_o condemn_v it_o although_o she_o do_v not_o approve_v of_o it_o this_o consequence_n draw_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v so_o little_a solid_a and_o if_o i_o may_v say_v the_o truth_n so_o captious_a that_o innocent_a the_o x._o advise_v we_o not_o to_o abuse_v thus_o the_o silence_n of_o person_n for_o in_o his_o constitution_n wherein_o he_o condemn_v the_o five_o proposition_n suppose_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o jansenius_n his_o write_n he_o express_o declare_v that_o although_o he_o have_v only_o condemn_v these_o five_o proposition_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o have_v any_o man_n think_v he_o approve_v by_o his_o silence_n the_o rest_n of_o that_o book_n if_o i_o say_v then_o that_o the_o greek_n in_o dispute_v only_o on_o some_o article_n never_o pretend_v to_o approve_v by_o their_o silence_n on_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o latin_n much_o less_o in_o particular_a of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n i_o assert_v nothing_o but_o what_o may_v be_v judge_v reasonable_a from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n own_o example_n and_o maxim_n of_o pope_n innocent_a himself_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o observe_v two_o thing_n in_o these_o example_n i_o now_o instance_a the_o one_o that_o the_o point_n before_o we_o be_v concern_v what_o pass_v in_o the_o very_a bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n between_o person_n that_o belong_v to_o it_o and_o who_o she_o be_v oblige_v to_o instruct_v and_o reduce_v into_o the_o right_a way_n and_z '_o other_o that_o she_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o fear_v lest_o under_o the_o favour_n of_o this_o toleration_n the_o error_n will_v communicate_v itself_o to_o several_a person_n and_o in_o fine_a the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o people_n be_v infect_v with_o it_o now_o the_o first_o of_o these_o thing_n have_v no_o place_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o greek_n for_o the_o point_n before_o we_o do_v not_o concern_v a_o opinion_n spring_v up_o in_o their_o church_n but_o in_o a_o foreign_a and_o separate_a one_o and_o over_o which_o they_o pretend_v no_o jurisdiction_n as_o to_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o confess_v have_v the_o greek_n reflect_v as_o they_o ought_v on_o this_o their_o silence_n they_o can_v not_o but_o perceive_v that_o the_o latin_n who_o make_v advantage_n of_o every_o thing_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o endeavour_v the_o bring_n in_o of_o transubstantiation_n into_o greece_n under_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o silence_n and_o take_v from_o thence_o occasion_n to_o persuade_v simple_a people_n that_o the_o two_o church_n be_v agree_v in_o this_o particular_a but_o how_o manifest_a soever_o this_o danger_n be_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o that_o wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n venture_v herself_o in_o suffer_v those_o opinion_n to_o take_v root_n which_o she_o tolerate_v in_o she_o own_o bosom_n be_v yet_o more_o evident_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o she_o remain_v silent_a which_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n consequence_n for_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v suffer_v opinion_n in_o the_o very_a midst_n of_o she_o which_o she_o do_v not_o approve_v why_o can_v the_o greek_n use_v the_o same_o forbearance_n towards_o a_o opinion_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o if_o we_o may_v not_o conclude_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o oppose_v a_o doctrine_n that_o she_o hold_v it_o or_o teach_v it_o why_o may_v we_o not_o make_v the_o same_o conclusion_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o greek_n ii_o in_o the_o second_o place_n i_o instance_n in_o several_a other_o important_a article_n wherein_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o latin_n and_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o find_v they_o make_v they_o a_o matter_n of_o dispute_v any_o more_o than_o transubstantiation_n for_o example_n the_o greek_n believe_v the_o pain_n of_o the_o damn_a be_v ease_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n they_o far_o believe_v that_o so_o great_a be_v the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o prayer_n that_o they_o sometime_o deliver_v these_o wretch_n absolute_o from_o their_o torment_n and_o rescue_v they_o from_o damnation_n they_o be_v say_v allatius_n extreme_o find_v of_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o prayer_n of_o good_a people_n profit_v the_o infidel_n grec_n allat_n diss_n 2._o de_fw-fr lib._n eccl._n grec_n and_o those_o condemn_v to_o eternal_a misery_n and_o that_o they_o be_v ease_v and_o sometime_o whole_o deliver_v by_o they_o which_o he_o prove_v by_o several_a passage_n in_o their_o triode_n which_o be_v one_o of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a book_n and_o other_o their_o most_o famous_a author_n the_o latin_n be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n it_o be_v certain_a say_v bellarmin_n that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n be_v beneficial_a neither_o to_o the_o bless_a 18._o bellarm_n de_fw-mi purge_v lib._n 2._o c._n 18._o in_o heaven_n nor_o damn_v in_o hell_n but_o only_o to_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n which_o doctrine_n be_v hold_v by_o all_o the_o schoolman_n that_o follow_v st._n austin_n '_o s_o opinion_n yet_o do_v we_o not_o find_v the_o two_o church_n ever_o make_v a_o point_n of_o controversy_n thereof_o or_o charge_v one_o another_o with_o error_n about_o it_o we_o do_v not_o find_v this_o question_n be_v agitate_a when_o the_o union_n be_v in_o hand_n whether_o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n or_o elsewhere_o nor_o mention_v make_v of_o it_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o pope_n so_o often_o send_v they_o in_o order_n to_o a_o agreement_n the_o aforesaid_a allatius_n observe_v another_o opinion_n of_o the_o greek_n which_o have_v some_o relation_n with_o that_o i_o now_o mention_v for_o they_o believe_v that_o when_o pentecost_n allat_n diss_n 2._o de_fw-fr pentecost_n our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o hell_n he_o preach_v his_o gospel_n to_o all_o the_o dead_a as_o well_o to_o the_o damn_a as_o saint_n and_o save_v from_o among_o they_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o word_n and_o raise_v they_o up_o it_o appear_v from_o the_o passage_n produce_v by_o allatius_n as_o well_o out_o of_o their_o pentecostare_fw-la which_o be_v one_o of_o their_o church_n book_n as_o other_o write_n that_o this_o be_v their_o opinion_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v evident_a this_o be_v not_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o latin_n for_o they_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o erroneous_a and_o heretical_a none_o of_o the_o damn_a soul_n say_v bellarmin_n be_v deliver_v for_o philastrius_n and_o st._n augustin_n say_v it_o be_v heretical_a to_o assert_v 16._o bellarm._n de_fw-fr christi_fw-la anim_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 16._o that_o any_o of_o the_o wicked_a be_v convert_v and_o save_v by_o christ_n preach_v in_o hell_n allatius_n add_v that_o st._n ireneas_n and_o epiphanius_n condemn_v this_o error_n in_o martion_n and_o that_o gregory_n the_o i._o who_o live_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o century_n censure_v it_o likewise_o as_o a_o heresy_n in_o the_o person_n of_o george_n and_o theodorus_n 2._o allat_n diss_n 2._o the_o one_o a_o priest_n and_o the_o other_a a_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n now_o although_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o two_o church_n on_o this_o article_n be_v manifest_a yet_o we_o do_v not_o find_v they_o make_v thereof_o a_o controversy_n or_o that_o the_o author_n on_o either_o side_n write_v one_o against_o another_o on_o this_o subject_a nor_o
avoid_v the_o danger_n that_o threaten_v we_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o shall_v be_v the_o better_o approve_v of_o by_o those_o that_o understand_v the_o nature_n of_o affair_n and_o again_o you_o must_v not_o affright_v the_o people_n by_o tell_v they_o we_o design_v to_o proceed_v any_o far_a in_o this_o reconciliation_n than_o we_o ought_v and_o as_o if_o we_o intend_v to_o change_v our_o ancient_a custom_n and_o ceremony_n for_o those_o of_o the_o latin_n and_o make_v the_o same_o confession_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o do_v which_o discourse_n do_v manifest_o show_v we_o three_o thing_n first_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_n not_o dispute_v and_o charge_v they_o with_o error_n nay_o proceed_v so_o far_o as_o a_o union_n with_o they_o and_o the_o embrace_v of_o their_o doctrine_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n say_v what_o he_o please_v for_o michael_n desire_v but_o the_o first_o of_o these_o and_o protest_v he_o intend_v not_o thereby_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o other_o the_o second_o thing_n that_o appear_v from_o the_o discourse_n of_o this_o emperor_n be_v that_o the_o principle_n on_o which_o i_o ground_n my_o answer_n and_o by_o which_o i_o pretend_v to_o overthrow_v mr._n arnaud_n argument_n be_v not_o a_o proposition_n forge_v in_o my_o own_o brain_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o my_o dispute_n but_o a_o principle_n not_o only_o well_o know_v by_o the_o greek_n but_o approve_v and_o practise_v in_o a_o occasion_n far_o more_o important_a than_o that_o now_o in_o question_n betwixt_o we_o for_o it_o be_v far_o less_o important_a to_o lay_v aside_o one_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o church_n and_o not_o dispute_v on_o it_o than_o to_o be_v unite_v with_o she_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o greek_a church_n consent_v to_o this_o reunion_n in_o hope_n she_o shall_v keep_v her_o religion_n entire_a and_o not_o receive_v any_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_n in_o fine_a i_o gather_v from_o michael_n discourse_n and_o the_o effect_v it_o have_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o his_o clergy_n that_o the_o only_a care_n the_o greek_n take_v be_v to_o keep_v their_o own_o religion_n be_v willing_a to_o be_v silent_a and_o embrace_v the_o union_n provide_v they_o be_v not_o force_v to_o embrace_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o latin_n if_o it_o be_v reply_v that_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o disposition_n of_o michael_n paleologus_fw-la but_o not_o that_o of_o his_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o michael_n engage_v they_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o reunion_n upon_o this_o regard_n that_o each_o of_o the_o church_n shall_v keep_v its_o own_o opinion_n and_o not_o contend_v and_o charge_v one_o another_o with_o error_n now_o people_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o be_v prevail_v on_o by_o principle_n which_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v good_a and_o therefore_o plausible_a pretence_n and_o fair_a colour_n be_v make_v use_n to_o win_v they_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o greek_n be_v far_o from_o imagine_v it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n not_o to_o dispute_v against_o the_o latin_n on_o a_o article_n and_o to_o receive_v and_o own_v it_o with_o they_o whence_o it_o likewise_o follow_v that_o if_o this_o reason_n or_o hope_v which_o michael_n propose_v to_o they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o do_v a_o thing_n in_o which_o they_o fear_v he_o will_v deceive_v they_o as_o indeed_o he_o do_v a_o matter_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o duty_n and_o conscience_n and_o against_o which_o they_o have_v moreover_o the_o great_a aversion_n it_o may_v likewise_o be_v sufficient_a to_o withhold_v and_o hinder_v they_o from_o do_v another_o thing_n to_o which_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o be_v oblige_v and_o from_o which_o they_o may_v refrain_v without_o the_o least_o violence_n to_o their_o inclination_n this_o reflection_n will_v be_v strengthen_v by_o consider_v after_o what_o sort_n veccus_n the_o patriarch_n justify_v himself_o when_o he_o become_v a_o great_a stickler_n in_o the_o union_n which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o promote_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v i_o never_o 65._o hottinger_n ex_fw-la allat_n in_o orth._n grec_n pag._n 65._o design_v say_v he_o by_o any_o thing_n i_o either_o think_v say_v or_o do_v to_o disparage_v any_o of_o the_o ceremony_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_n but_o only_o to_o establish_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n if_o any_o person_n in_o embrace_v this_o peace_n have_v despise_v our_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o prefer_v the_o doctrine_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n before_o they_o let_v he_o be_v exclude_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o have_v his_o portion_n with_o the_o traitor_n judas_n and_o his_o companion_n who_o cracify_v our_o saviour_n we_o see_v here_o this_o patriarch_n suppose_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o not_o condemn_v the_o latin_n and_o let_v they_o alone_o with_o their_o doctrine_n nay_o so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o grant_v mr._n arnaud_n consequence_n that_o he_o make_v this_o a_o principle_n whereby_o to_o justify_v himself_o to_o the_o greek_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o this_o proposition_n agree_v with_o the_o genius_n of_o that_o nation_n for_o people_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o justify_v themselves_o by_o maxim_n odious_a and_o public_o abhor_v if_o michael_n paleologus_fw-la veccus_n or_o the_o greek_n in_o general_a have_v displease_v mr._n arnaud_n by_o this_o their_o deportment_n they_o be_v excusable_a for_o in_o those_o day_n the_o world_n be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o secret_n of_o his_o reason_v the_o rule_n of_o his_o logic_n be_v not_o then_o publish_v they_o may_v henceforward_o become_v a_o rule_n to_o posterity_n but_o he_o must_v not_o expect_v they_o shall_v be_v more_o privilege_v than_o the_o edict_n of_o prince_n which_o have_v no_o retroactive_a virtue_n v._o to_o convince_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o greek_n be_v averse_a to_o controversy_n i_o need_v only_o represent_v to_o he_o what_o anthony_n eparkus_n of_o corcyra_n write_v to_o philip_n melancthon_n for_o have_v tell_v he_o how_o careful_a the_o turk_n be_v to_o establish_v their_o religion_n every_o where_o and_o to_o extend_v the_o limit_n of_o their_o empire_n it_o 545._o turco_n grec_n 1_o 8._o pag._n 545._o will_v be_v very_o absurd_a add_v he_o for_o we_o to_o dispute_v of_o sublime_a matter_n in_o the_o condition_n we_o be_v in_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o watch_v and_o apply_v ourselves_o diligent_o to_o the_o avoid_v the_o danger_n threaten_v we_o lest_o we_o lose_v our_o possession_n here_o on_o earth_n whilst_o we_o idle_o and_o over_o curious_o inquire_v into_o the_o thing_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v certain_a the_o greek_n do_v not_o care_v to_o concern_v themselves_o overmuch_o about_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o next_o life_n their_o thought_n be_v whole_o take_v up_o with_o their_o worldly_a interest_n this_o be_v the_o key_n that_o open_v and_o shut_v their_o mouth_n possevin_n the_o jesuit_n distinguish_v the_o greek_n into_o three_o rank_n the_o first_o of_o people_n who_o be_v very_o ignorant_a the_o second_o of_o those_o that_o have_v some_o 24._o biblioth_n selert_fw-la de_fw-fr rat_n ag_n cum_fw-la grec_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 24._o experience_n and_o behold_v on_o one_o hand_n the_o majesty_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o greek_a one_o the_o pomp_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o the_o neglect_v wherewith_o the_o greek_n treat_v they_o conclude_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v better_a belove_v by_o god_n almighty_a than_o the_o greek_a one_o the_o three_o be_v of_o those_o who_o have_v some_o knowledge_n of_o the_o world_n be_v yet_o transport_v by_o a_o habitual_a hatred_n against_o the_o latin_n although_o their_o bishop_n and_o most_o prudent_a person_n among_o they_o be_v of_o another_o temper_n and_o not_o know_v for_o the_o most_o part_n what_o they_o say_v or_o will_v have_v they_o compare_v the_o greek_a and_o roman_a church_n together_o their_o ceremony_n with_o we_o and_o prefer_v their_o priest_n to_o our_o latin_a priest_n suppose_v they_o not_o so_o vicious_a as_o we_o yet_o they_o dare_v not_o affirm_v we_o be_v in_o a_o error_n or_o that_o what_o we_o believe_v or_o practice_v touch_v the_o sacrament_n be_v unwarrantable_a but_o they_o affirm_v as_o to_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n and_o do_v not_o doubt_v of_o salvation_n in_o their_o own_o religion_n observe_v these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o greek_a bishop_n and_o prudent_a person_n in_o their_o church_n be_v averse_a to_o controversy_n and_o second_o that_o those_o that_o be_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o maintain_v their_o own_o doctrine_n without_o condemn_v those_o of_o the_o latin_n vi_o but_o it_o will_v be_v
he_o but_o john_n die_v before_o his_o affair_n be_v end_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n proceed_v no_o far_o in_o it_o mr._n arnaud_n who_o will_v needs_o have_v the_o greek_n not_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o pass_v among_o the_o latin_n and_o suppose_v all_o greece_n to_o resound_v with_o berengarius_n condemnation_n and_o peoples_n italy_n with_o greek_n and_o greece_n with_o latin_n with_o order_n to_o give_v one_o another_o account_n of_o whatsoever_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n who_o will_v have_v the_o very_a soldier_n entertain_v themselves_o with_o it_o in_o the_o army_n as_o well_o as_o the_o pilgrim_n in_o their_o voyage_n can_v he_o i_o say_v find_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o greek_n know_v not_o what_o such_o famous_a author_n as_o rupert_n durand_n john_n of_o paris_n and_o cardinal_n dailly_n public_o maintain_v in_o the_o twelfth_n thirteen_o fourteen_o and_o fifteen_o century_n that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o pass_v in_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a city_n in_o the_o west_n and_o in_o a_o faculty_n so_o illustrious_a as_o that_o of_o paris_n that_o they_o know_v not_o a_o affair_n that_o be_v carry_v to_o rome_n and_o touch_v which_o that_o court_n make_v no_o decission_n in_o truth_n if_o they_o know_v nothing_o of_o this_o and_o that_o neither_o the_o pilgrim_n nor_o ambassador_n nor_o soldier_n nor_o inquisitor_n nor_o the_o greek_n in_o italy_n nor_o the_o latin_n in_o constantinople_n give_v they_o no_o notice_n thereof_o they_o may_v have_v be_v ignorant_a as_o well_o of_o other_o thing_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n assurance_n signify_v nothing_o that_o their_o curiosity_n make_v they_o search_v into_o all_o thing_n for_o although_o that_o in_o some_o of_o these_o century_n there_o be_v no_o more_o croisado_n into_o the_o holy_a land_n nor_o latin_v that_o hold_v the_o greek_a empire_n yet_o the_o commerce_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n be_v frequent_a and_o both_o one_o and_o other_o be_v often_o together_o in_o italy_n and_o several_a other_o place_n and_o it_o be_v a_o very_a easy_a matter_n to_o send_v notice_n to_o the_o greek_n of_o what_o pass_v in_o the_o west_n concern_v these_o doctor_n shall_v mr._n arnaud_n say_v they_o know_v this_o he_o must_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o if_o they_o make_v this_o a_o reason_n for_o their_o silence_n and_o reservedness_n for_o why_o shall_v they_o accuse_v a_o church_n wherein_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o affirm_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v wherein_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v positive_o assert_v concern_v the_o subject_a of_o transubstantiation_n and_o appeal_v make_v to_o rome_n itself_o thereupon_o and_o yet_o this_o court_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o declare_v the_o contrary_n viii_o suppose_v the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v they_o be_v not_o scandalize_v at_o the_o boldness_n of_o all_o these_o author_n why_o will_v they_o not_o satisfy_v themselves_o in_o so_o considerable_a a_o point_n as_o that_o which_o these_o author_n handle_v namely_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o yet_o determine_v any_o thing_n touch_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n why_o do_v they_o not_o reprove_v the_o latin_n for_o this_o and_o especial_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o be_v silent_a in_o a_o particular_a wherein_o her_o belief_n and_o practice_n be_v concern_v let_v mr._n arnaud_n give_v we_o a_o reason_n for_o this_o reservedness_n of_o the_o greek_n who_o make_v they_o such_o great_a disputer_n and_o let_v he_o also_o show_v we_o a_o reason_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n silence_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o yet_o determine_v it_o so_o to_o be_v we_o find_v john_n of_o paris_n ready_a to_o justify_v within_o the_o wall_n of_o rome_n itself_o and_o yet_o she_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o she_o suffer_v a_o person_n to_o die_v in_o this_o error_n neither_o condemn_v his_o opinion_n nor_o memory_n and_o that_o which_o be_v moreover_o worse_o be_v that_o she_o leave_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o suspense_n about_o a_o point_n wherein_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o her_o child_n be_v concern_v for_o if_o a_o man_n doubt_n whether_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v believe_v it_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o a_o man_n can_v believe_v it_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n how_o will_v he_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o if_o it_o must_v be_v hold_v only_o as_o a_o probable_a opinion_n of_o learned_a man_n what_o will_v become_v of_o it_o when_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o so_o improbable_a and_o so_o little_a agreeable_a to_o right_a reason_n yet_o do_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n mention_v a_o word_n of_o this_o but_o let_v the_o question_n lie_v dormant_n so_o that_o shall_v we_o argue_v from_o her_o silence_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v from_o that_o of_o the_o greek_n we_o may_v conclude_v she_o approve_v john_n of_o paris_n his_o opinion_n see_v she_o do_v not_o condemn_v it_o yet_o will_v i_o not_o go_v so_o far_o it_o suffice_v i_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o condemn_v the_o proposition_n in_o question_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o hinder_v the_o greek_n from_o reproach_v the_o latin_a church_n with_o transubstantiation_n this_o affair_n of_o john_n of_o paris_n together_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o faculty_n in_o theology_n and_o silence_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v of_o such_o importance_n that_o this_o alone_a be_v sufficient_a to_o decide_v the_o question_n and_o manifest_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n have_v not_o be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o church_n for_o that_o a_o faculty_n so_o considerable_a as_o be_v that_o of_o paris_n shall_v assure_v we_o this_o manner_n of_o the_o existence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v assert_v that_o it_o be_v so_o aught_o to_o be_v anathematise_v that_o the_o affair_n have_v be_v carry_v to_o rome_n and_o that_o court_n be_v silent_a therein_o and_o determine_v nothing_o about_o it_o i_o say_v this_o be_v enough_o to_o refute_v this_o pretend_a perpetuity_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o defend_v but_o return_v we_o to_o the_o greek_n we_o may_v add_v to_o what_o i_o already_o mention_v this_o considerable_a remark_n which_o be_v that_o the_o latin_n never_o raise_v a_o dispute_n with_o the_o greek_n about_o the_o general_a expression_n which_o these_o last_o make_v use_n of_o touch_v the_o eucharist_n but_o before_o we_o carry_v on_o this_o consideration_n any_o far_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o i_o put_v the_o reader_n again_o in_o mind_n that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o greek_n have_v the_o same_o opinion_n with_o we_o touch_v the_o eucharist_n much_o less_o whether_o they_o explain_v themselves_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n this_o be_v mr._n arnaud_n perpetual_a illusion_n to_o suppose_v we_o make_v they_o berengarian_n and_o it_o be_v on_o this_o wrong_a ground_n whereon_o he_o build_v his_o whole_a discourse_n we_o scarce_o meet_v with_o any_o other_o but_o these_o kind_n of_o arguing_n in_o his_o dispute_n viz._n whether_o the_o greek_n be_v berengariens_n whether_o they_o believe_v the_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v only_o a_o figure_n whether_o they_o understand_v our_o saviour_n word_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o significat_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o the_o end_n then_o the_o reader_n may_v not_o be_v deceive_v i_o do_v here_o again_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o greek_n believe_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o touch_v the_o eucharist_n than_o we_o do_v that_o they_o express_v themselves_o otherwise_o about_o it_o and_o follow_v neither_o the_o sentiment_n nor_o expression_n of_o berengarius_fw-la neither_o have_v we_o give_v mr._n arnaud_n any_o occasion_n to_o assert_v what_o he_o do_v we_o only_o affirm_v they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n with_o a_o sovereign_a adoration_n and_o it_o be_v upon_o this_o mr._n arnaud_n ought_v to_o argue_v to_o deal_v sincere_o and_o therefore_o i_o say_v the_o latin_n never_o dispute_v with_o the_o greek_n touch_v their_o expression_n how_o general_a soever_o they_o have_v be_v they_o have_v indeed_o do_v what_o they_o can_v whereby_o to_o introduce_v insensible_o among_o they_o the_o term_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transubstantiation_n change_n of_o substance_n they_o have_v for_o this_o purpose_n make_v use_v of_o their_o proselyte_n and_o scholar_n of_o the_o seminary_n to_o who_o they_o
have_v give_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o observe_v in_o the_o precede_a book_n in_o which_o those_o term_n be_v find_v they_o have_v set_v they_o down_o in_o latin_a in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o reunion_n but_o in_o the_o greek_a of_o these_o same_o act_n they_o have_v content_v themselves_o with_o the_o general_a expression_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o we_o have_v already_o see_v they_o have_v not_o quarrel_v with_o they_o about_o they_o for_o reason_n not_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o which_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o and_o when_o the_o proselyte_n and_o scholar_n of_o the_o seminary_n find_v their_o term_n be_v not_o receive_v they_o become_v angry_a thereat_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_n accommodate_v themselves_o to_o other_o we_o can_v then_o wonder_v if_o this_o conduct_n have_v keep_v the_o greek_n from_o discuss_v any_o far_o the_o difference_n which_o separate_v the_o two_o church_n they_o agree_v in_o the_o general_a expression_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o latin_n require_v no_o more_o the_o snare_n lie_v hide_v under_o this_o compliance_n and_o this_o conduct_v keep_v off_o the_o greek_n from_o all_o inquiry_n for_o for_o to_o find_v the_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o that_o of_o the_o latin_n and_o make_v a_o right_a judgement_n thereon_o we_o must_v not_o light_o and_o superficial_o examine_v they_o see_v they_o require_v a_o application_n of_o mind_n and_o study_n we_o must_v read_v latin_a author_n compare_v they_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o with_o that_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o not_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v surprise_v with_o false_a appearance_n but_o consider_v the_o two_o doctrine_n themselves_o and_o especial_o their_o consequence_n to_o find_v wherein_o they_o differ_v for_o at_o first_o sight_n the_o difference_n seem_v not_o great_a they_o explain_v themselves_o sometime_o in_o the_o like_a manner_n but_o their_o consequence_n infinite_o differ_v as_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o precede_a book_n now_o how_o few_o among_o the_o greek_n have_v be_v able_a to_o go_v through_o with_o this_o discussion_n and_o of_o those_o that_o be_v capable_a how_o few_o be_v in_o a_o condition_n to_o make_v a_o right_a judgement_n we_o have_v see_v what_o bozius_n say_v of_o they_o from_o the_o relation_n of_o one_o gregory_n that_o under_o the_o empire_n of_o andronicus_n he_o mean_v i_o suppose_v andronicus_n the_o young_a in_o who_o reign_n the_o reunion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v again_o propose_v there_o be_v no_o person_n to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o greece_n that_o be_v able_a to_o dispute_v with_o the_o latin_n about_o religious_a matter_n can_v it_o seem_v strange_a that_o people_n who_o can_v not_o maintain_v their_o ancient_a controversy_n so_o great_o insist_v on_o by_o their_o father_n and_o which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v hereditary_a to_o they_o shall_v neglect_v to_o discuss_v those_o new_a doctrine_n i_o speak_v of_o and_o content_v themselves_o with_o keep_v their_o own_o belief_n without_o concern_v themselves_o with_o that_o of_o stranger_n x._o moreover_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o greek_n have_v ever_o refer_v to_o almighty_a god_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o change_n hap'n_v in_o the_o eucharist_n without_o offer_v to_o determine_v it_o this_o appear_v as_o well_o by_o their_o general_a term_n as_o by_o what_o i_o already_o relate_v concern_v the_o confession_n of_o metrophanus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n compile_v for_o the_o sarracen_n proselyte_n from_o the_o prayer_n in_o their_o euchology_n the_o judgement_n which_o nicetas_n make_v on_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o patriarch_n camaterus_n and_o the_o dispute_n of_o john_n the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n when_o then_o they_o hear_v the_o latin_n who_o determine_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o change_n say_v it_o be_v a_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o must_v not_o find_v it_o strange_a if_o they_o contain_v themselves_o in_o their_o generality_n and_o neither_o receive_v nor_o condemn_v this_o doctrine_n whether_o they_o do_v well_o or_o ill_o in_o this_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o determine_v but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a strange_a that_o people_n of_o that_o temper_n the_o greek_n be_v of_o shall_v thus_o deport_v themselves_o i_o have_v already_o observe_v elsewhere_o that_o he_o that_o show_v himself_o most_o forward_o among_o they_o be_v the_o patriarch_n cyrillus_n for_o he_o proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o a_o positive_a rejection_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o yet_o he_o reject_v it_o only_o under_o the_o title_n of_o rash_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transubstantiation_n rash_o invent_v all_o which_o thing_n be_v consider_v let_v any_o man_n judge_v whether_o what_o i_o say_v concern_v the_o greek_n not_o express_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n although_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o be_v not_o ground_v on_o all_o imaginable_a probability_n and_o whether_o on_o the_o contrary_a mr._n arnaud_n consequence_n how_o surprise_v soever_o it_o may_v seem_v at_o first_o be_v not_o in_o effect_n void_a of_o all_o kind_n of_o probability_n they_o have_v live_v time_n out_o of_o mind_n in_o most_o stupid_a ignorance_n they_o have_v be_v overwhelm_v in_o confusion_n and_o oppress_v with_o domestic_a misfortune_n they_o have_v be_v continual_o urge_v by_o their_o emperor_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o latin_n that_o they_o may_v thereby_o avoid_v their_o displeasure_n and_o procure_v their_o favour_n they_o have_v be_v persuade_v that_o this_o compliance_n will_v bring_v no_o prejudice_n to_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v moreover_o a_o people_n that_o be_v ever_o note_v to_o be_v natural_o more_o than_o other_o fix_v to_o their_o temporal_a interest_n prefer_v the_o preservation_n of_o their_o estate_n before_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o the_o roman_a church_n resent_v it_o when_o accuse_v of_o error_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o complaint_n of_o cyrillus_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o latin_n say_v that_o they_o obstinate_o defend_v whatsoever_o they_o do_v right_a or_o wrong_n let_v their_o error_n be_v make_v erud_v epist._n cyrill_n ad_fw-la wittemb_v in_o epist._n viror_fw-la erud_v never_o so_o apparent_a that_o they_o maintain_v they_o can_v neither_o err_v in_o belief_n nor_o practice_n and_o that_o which_o be_v yet_o worse_o they_o fly_v in_o the_o face_n of_o those_o that_o christianly_o admonish_v they_o and_o show_v they_o their_o error_n that_o they_o persecute_v such_o with_o fire_n and_o sword_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o repel_v the_o injury_n they_o do_v to_o christianity_n and_o to_o guard_v and_o defend_v ourselves_o against_o the_o evil._n it_o appear_v in_o their_o ordinary_a conversation_n how_o reserve_v and_o fearful_a they_o be_v of_o offend_v the_o latin_n the_o question_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o their_o primitive_a and_o original_a dispute_n they_o may_v likewise_o reasonable_o doubt_v whether_o the_o roman_a church_n determine_v it_o before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n the_o latin_n have_v not_o dispute_v with_o they_o about_o it_o but_o accommodate_v themselves_o to_o the_o form_n of_o their_o expression_n it_o be_v no_o easy_a matter_n for_o they_o to_o penetrate_v as_o far_o as_o the_o real_a difference_n which_o distinguish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o two_o church_n and_o in_o fine_a one_o of_o their_o maxim_n be_v that_o they_o may_v very_o well_o leave_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o change_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o eucharist_n unto_o god_n without_o trouble_v themselves_o any_o far_a about_o it_o be_v it_o not_o near_o to_o truth_n to_o say_v as_o i_o do_v that_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v these_o people_n believe_v transubstantiation_n although_o they_o have_v not_o make_v thereof_o a_o point_n of_o controversy_n and_o keep_v themselves_o in_o a_o kind_n of_o medium_fw-la neither_o believe_v it_o nor_o condemn_v it_o than_o to_o say_v as_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v that_o if_o they_o have_v not_o oppose_v it_o nor_o dispute_v on_o it_o nor_o reproach_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o it_o as_o a_o error_n it_o inevitable_o follow_v they_o have_v and_o do_v still_o believe_v it_o chap._n vi_o a_o far_a examination_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n negative_a argument_n a_o particular_a reflection_n concern_v what_o pass_v in_o the_o treaty_n of_o reunion_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o afterward_o the_o more_o we_o consider_v the_o principle_n on_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n reason_n the_o plain_o appear_v the_o nullity_n of_o the_o consequence_n he_o pretend_v to_o draw_v thence_o
charge_v and_o caluminate_v the_o latin_n with_o who_o they_o have_v treat_v and_o the_o greek_n who_o have_v consent_v to_o the_o union_n that_o their_o hatred_n and_o rage_n shall_v discover_v it_o self-without_a disguise_n and_o constraint_n admire_v i_o beseech_v you_o this_o flight_n of_o fancy_n and_o vast_a extent_n of_o thought_n the_o good_a and_o evil_a which_o befall_v the_o christian_a world_n two_o hundred_o year_n ago_o appear_v design_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n with_o this_o only_a difference_n that_o the_o evil_n contribute_v to_o it_o more_o than_o the_o good_a for_o it_o be_v the_o schism_n passion_n hatred_n and_o rage_n of_o the_o greek_n which_o give_v he_o a_o complete_a victory_n it_o be_v necessary_a say_v he_o they_o shall_v be_v thus_o furious_a which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a half_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v damn_v according_a to_o he_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v dishonour_v by_o a_o thousand_o crime_n and_o his_o church_n tear_v to_o piece_n by_o a_o dreadful_a division_n and_o why_o for_o to_o furnish_v mr._n arnaud_n with_o a_o argument_n and_o that_o he_o may_v have_v matter_n for_o one_o chapter_n more_o but_o he_o will_v be_v much_o amaze_v to_o find_v this_o argument_n so_o dear_o buy_v to_o conclude_v nothing_o be_v ground_v on_o a_o false_a supposition_n for_o it_o be_v false_a the_o greek_n approve_a transubstantiation_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o they_o dispute_v not_o of_o it_o i_o acknowledge_v but_o that_o they_o approve_v it_o i_o deny_v bessarion_n speak_v in_o their_o name_n say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v consecrate_a and_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o decree_n bear_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o consecrate_a therefore_o they_o approve_a transubstantiation_n what_o a_o consequence_n here_o be_v mr._n arnaud_n have_v a_o secret_a above_o my_o apprehension_n for_o he_o can_v change_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o thing_n he_o can_v diminish_v and_o augment_v they_o as_o he_o please_v but_o the_o misery_n on_o it_o be_v this_o appear_v contrary_a to_o reason_n why_o will_v he_o have_v the_o new_a schism_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o have_v happen_v mere_o for_o the_o furnish_n he_o with_o a_o argument_n it_o be_v not_o know_v in_o those_o day_n he_o be_v to_o make_v a_o book_n why_o will_v he_o have_v the_o greek_n approve_v transubstantiation_n at_o florence_n see_v there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o mention_n of_o it_o why_o must_v those_o that_o break_v the_o union_n reproach_n the_o other_o with_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_n why_o will_v he_o have_v syropulus_n marc_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o declaim_v on_o this_o point_n see_v they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o do_v so_o certain_o such_o gross_a illusion_n as_o these_o deserve_v not_o such_o exclamation_n it_o only_o remain_v for_o the_o finish_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o this_o matter_n of_o negative_a argument_n to_o show_v a_o reason_n for_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o that_o will_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o do_v the_o latin_n have_v innovate_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o have_v ground_v their_o innovation_n on_o certain_a expression_n of_o the_o father_n which_o bear_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o have_v make_v it_o their_o business_n for_o some_o age_n to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v these_o term_n signify_v a_o true_a and_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o that_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o defend_v themselves_o by_o this_o mean_n from_o the_o reproach_n of_o innovation_n observe_v then_o that_o the_o greek_n do_v common_o use_v these_o kind_n of_o expression_n and_o even_o add_v to_o they_o some_o other_o which_o seem_v more_o emphatical_a as_o for_o instance_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o a_o figure_n that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o the_o body_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o two_o thing_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o they_o well_o know_v it_o be_v their_o interest_n to_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o these_o general_a expression_n although_o in_o effect_n they_o signify_v nothing_o less_o than_o transubstantiation_n have_v they_o condemn_v they_o as_o insufficient_a and_o urge_v the_o greek_n to_o admit_v of_o they_o they_o will_v at_o the_o same_o time_n condemn_v themselves_o as_o innovator_n they_o choose_v then_o rather_o to_o pass_v over_o soft_o this_o article_n than_o to_o venture_v near_o a_o rock_n against_o which_o their_o cause_n run_v a_o risk_a of_o be_v dash_v to_o piece_n and_o this_o oblige_v they_o in_o their_o deal_n with_o the_o greek_n to_o content_v themselves_o with_o their_o expression_n and_o accommodate_v themselves_o to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o move_v they_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o formulary_a of_o the_o reunion_n already_o mention_v and_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n wherein_o be_v use_v only_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_a and_o confioi_fw-fr in_o latin_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v but_o that_o judicious_a person_n among_o the_o latin_n and_o especial_o those_o that_o have_v the_o government_n in_o their_o hand_n see_v well_o enough_o the_o difference_n between_o these_o general_a expression_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o precise_a and_o determinate_a one_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o learned_a man_n i_o mention_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o forego_n book_n who_o be_v consult_v on_o the_o article_n which_o the_o russian_n in_o poland_n propose_v in_o order_n to_o their_o reunion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n among_o which_o be_v this_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o celebrate_v corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la feast_n nor_o carry_v about_o the_o sacrament_n in_o procession_n answer_v that_o as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o procession_n it_o be_v not_o a_o 3._o thom._n a_o jesus_n lib._n 6._o p._n 3._o c._n 3._o matter_n to_o stick_v at_o but_o there_o be_v thing_n of_o great_a importance_n to_o be_v consider_v touch_v the_o sacrament_n de_fw-fr processione_n infesto_fw-la corporis_fw-la non_fw-la laborarem_fw-la multa_fw-la tamen_fw-la circa_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la examinanda_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o therefore_o when_o particular_a person_n among_o the_o greek_n embrace_v the_o roman_a religion_n the_o usual_a term_n of_o their_o church_n be_v not_o count_v sufficient_a but_o they_o be_v make_v to_o understand_v distinct_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o term_n of_o transubstantiation_n as_o we_o already_o offer_v in_o the_o procession_n of_o faith_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o make_v hence_o proceed_v all_o those_o effort_n since_o so_o long_a a_o time_n to_o introduce_v insensible_o among_o the_o greek_n this_o belief_n by_o mean_n of_o false_a greek_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o that_o monk_n mention_v by_o mr._n basire_n who_o have_v sly_o insinuate_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o catechism_n and_o be_v censure_v for_o it_o by_o the_o rest_n when_o the_o scholar_n of_o the_o seminary_n be_v send_v into_o greece_n to_o live_v among_o the_o schismatic_n and_o procure_v the_o establishment_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n they_o be_v make_v to_o sign_n the_o confession_n of_o faith_n i_o now_o mention_v which_o express_o denote_v transubstantiation_n so_o likewise_o be_v their_o language_n far_o different_a from_o that_o of_o the_o real_a greek_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o great_a paysius_fw-la ligaridius_n and_o the_o terrible_a baron_n of_o spartaris_n and_o this_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o greek_n that_o embrace_v the_o romish_a religion_n for_o they_o speak_v not_o as_o other_o nor_o as_o they_o do_v themselves_o before_o their_o conversion_n as_o i_o already_o instance_a in_o bessarion_n emanuel_n calecas_n and_o john_n plusiadene_n it_o be_v the_o latin_n great_a interest_n not_o to_o dispute_v against_o the_o greek_n on_o all_o the_o point_n wherein_o the_o two_o church_n differ_v and_o therefore_o they_o give_v in_o charge_n to_o the_o emissary_n to_o use_v the_o great_a caution_n in_o handle_v controversy_n it_o be_v sometime_o expedient_a to_o fall_v upon_o controversy_n say_v possevin_n but_o they_o must_v be_v 24._o possevin_n bibl._n select_a l._n 5._o c._n 24._o wary_o and_o moderate_o handle_v neither_o must_v a_o man_n mention_v any_o of_o these_o five_o article_n which_o be_v heretofore_o the_o principal_a one_o and_o which_o the_o synod_n of_o florence_n and_o gennadius_n handle_v for_o now_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o azyme_n and_o eucharist_n be_v no_o long_o agitate_a neither_o in_o candia_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o the_o eastern_a part_n and_o therefore_o these_o
that_o he_o must_v of_o necessity_n either_o deny_v what_o the_o whole_a church_n believe_v to_o wit_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n or_o fall_v into_o this_o other_o absurdity_n of_o maintain_v that_o this_o conversion_n be_v make_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n common_a sense_n lead_v he_o to_o this_o and_o yet_o we_o find_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o all_o his_o discourse_n after_o anastasius_n come_v german_a the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n mr._n aubertin_n have_v place_v he_o according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n in_o the_o eight_o century_n but_o in_o effect_n there_o be_v more_o likelihood_n according_a to_o allatius_n his_o conjecture_n that_o he_o live_v in_o the_o twelve_v and_o the_o reflection_n mr._n arnaud_n make_v on_o this_o subject_a seem_v to_o i_o just_o enough_o to_o be_v follow_v till_o we_o have_v great_a certainty_n but_o howsoever_o this_o author_n say_v no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n to_o which_o we_o have_v 3._o lib._n 7._o c._n 3._o so_o often_o already_o answer_v that_o it_o will_v be_v needless_a to_o say_v any_o more_o mr._n arnaud_n set_v to_o phylosophise_v on_o some_o passage_n which_o mr._n aubertin_n allege_v in_o his_o favour_n but_o this_o be_v a_o illusion_n for_o when_o what_o mr._n aubertin_n allege_v concern_v germane_a to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o transubstantiation_n shall_v not_o be_v conclusive_a it_o will_v not_o thence_o follow_v he_o believe_v it_o nor_o teach_v it_o if_o this_o do_v not_o appear_v elsewhere_o from_o good_a proof_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v oblige_v to_o produce_v such_o without_o suppose_v it_o be_v sufficient_a he_o refute_v mr._n aubertin_n consequence_n for_o refute_v be_v not_o prove_v german_a sufficient_o show_v we_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o treatise_n in_o what_o sense_n he_o understand_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n moses_n say_v finem_fw-la germ._n theor._n rer_n eccles_n sub_fw-la finem_fw-la he_o sprinkle_v the_o people_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o goat_n and_o heifer_n say_v this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n but_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v give_v his_o own_o proper_a body_n and_o shed_v his_o own_o blood_n and_o give_v we_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n shed_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o your_o sin_n as_o often_o then_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o this_o cup_n you_o declare_v my_o death_n and_o resurrection_n thus_o believe_v than_o we_o eat_v the_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o the_o cup_n as_o of_o the_o flesh_n of_o god_n declare_v thereby_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n we_o have_v already_o observe_v in_o the_o forego_n book_n that_o the_o greek_n do_v often_o use_v this_o expression_n as_o the_o flesh_n as_o the_o body_n to_o mollify_v and_o abate_v in_o some_o sort_n their_o usual_a way_n of_o speak_v which_o be_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o signify_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v to_o we_o instead_o of_o this_o body_n it_o appear_v from_o the_o sequel_n of_o germain_n discourse_n his_o sense_n be_v that_o for_o the_o better_a apply_v our_o mind_n to_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n we_o eat_v the_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o to_o john_n damascen_n the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v allege_v he_o as_o a_o witness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n i_o say_v he_o ought_v not_o 2._o answer_v to_o the_o 2d_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpet_n c._n 2._o to_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o person_n who_o we_o except_v against_o and_o that_o with_o good_a cause_n see_v he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o that_o leave_v the_o common_a road_n of_o the_o church_n expression_n and_o betake_v himself_o to_o affect_a and_o singular_a one_o which_o be_v at_o as_o great_a distance_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o reform_a one_o now_o this_o exception_n be_v so_o just_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n that_o except_v mr._n arnaud_n i_o do_v not_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o man_n how_o little_a conversant_a soever_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n but_o grant_v it_o for_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n term_v the_o eucharist_n a_o figure_n or_o representation_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o damascen_n not_o only_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v one_o but_o also_o that_o the_o father_n thus_o term_v it_o after_o consecration_n he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o that_o bring_v into_o credit_n the_o comparison_n of_o food_n which_o change_v itself_o into_o our_o body_n whereby_o to_o explain_v the_o change_n which_o happen_v to_o the_o bread_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v make_v a_o augmentation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n overshadow_a and_o that_o of_o wood_n unite_v to_o the_o fire_n his_o expression_n be_v compare_v with_o those_o of_o the_o ancient_n be_v whole_o extraordinary_a he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n and_o the_o body_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n because_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o augmentation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o that_o the_o same_o oeconomy_n have_v be_v observe_v in_o both_o i_o suppose_v damascen_n be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o have_v these_o kind_n of_o conception_n see_v we_o have_v meet_v with_o something_o like_o this_o in_o anastasius_n his_o discourse_n and_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o some_o trace_v of_o this_o in_o gregory_n de_fw-fr nysses_n his_o catechism_n but_o howsoever_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v i_o have_v reason_n to_o call_v these_o conception_n affect_v and_o singular_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o usual_a expression_n of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o say_v they_o vary_v as_o much_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o we_o yet_o to_o hear_v only_o mr._n arnaud_n a_o man_n will_v imagine_v that_o damascen_n clear_o teach_v transubstantiation_n to_o prove_v it_o he_o allege_v these_o same_o passage_n of_o his_o four_o book_n touch_v the_o true_a orthodox_n faith_n which_o have_v be_v a_o thousand_o time_n canvas_v by_o controvertist_n and_o which_o conclude_v nothing_o damascen_n say_v that_o god_n make_v the_o bread_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n that_o it_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o his_o almighty_a power_n which_o have_v create_v all_o thing_n that_o see_v the_o lord_n take_v his_o body_n from_o the_o pure_a and_o immaculate_a blood_n of_o the_o virgin_n we_o must_v not_o doubt_v but_o he_o can_v change_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n that_o if_o we_o demand_v how_o this_o change_n happen_v he_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v true_a and_o almighty_a but_o that_o the_o manner_n be_v incomprehensible_a but_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v rational_o say_v that_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n wherewith_o a_o man_n be_v nourish_v be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n so_o that_o they_o become_v another_o body_n than_o that_o which_o they_o be_v before_o so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n mix_v with_o water_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o awonderful_a manner_n by_o prayer_n and_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o two_o different_a body_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n have_v not_o damascen_n express_v himself_o as_o he_o have_v do_v it_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o we_o to_o tell_v mr._n arnaud_n the_o change_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o transubstantiation_n see_v his_o sense_n be_v that_o the_o bread_n become_v a_o growth_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o be_v make_v by_o this_o mean_v one_o with_o this_o body_n that_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n he_o attribute_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n act_v above_o nature_n and_o not_o that_o of_o a_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o same_o substance_n which_o the_o body_n have_v before_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v not_o fail_v to_o term_v this_o extravagancy_n and_o dotage_n but_o see_v we_o say_v no_o more_o in_o this_o matter_n than_o what_o be_v ground_v on_o damascen_n own_o word_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o what_o we_o relate_v when_o we_o treat_v on_o the_o real_a belief_n of_o the_o greek_n this_o illustration_n will_v be_v sufficient_a without_o proceed_v any_o far_o to_o make_v insignificant_a this_o long_a
the_o russian_n sacramentum_fw-la religiosius_fw-la russis_fw-la venerantur_fw-la these_o be_v also_o his_o word_n whence_o i_o conclude_v it_o be_v not_o likely_a the_o russian_n or_o moscovite_n believe_v transubstantiation_n the_o reason_n be_v sufficient_o evident_a to_o wit_n that_o those_o that_o believe_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n can_v but_o show_v it_o more_o respect_n than_o those_o that_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o substanee_n of_o bread_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o mr._n arnaud_n to_o say_v that_o my_o argument_n suppose_v 448._o lib._n 5._o c._n 4._o p._n 448._o according_a to_o this_o author_n the_o armenian_n do_v neither_o hold_v the_o real_a presence_n nor_o transubstantiation_n and_o that_o if_o i_o do_v not_o suppose_v this_o nothing_o can_v be_v less_o reasonable_a than_o my_o discourse_n for_o if_o the_o armenian_n add_v he_o together_o with_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v moreover_o admit_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v no_o wise_a improbable_a but_o that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a respect_n for_o the_o eucharist_n than_o those_o that_o do_v not_o admit_v this_o substance_n of_o bread_n the_o respect_n of_o the_o eucharist_n come_v only_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o presence_n or_o absence_n of_o the_o bread_n contribute_v not_o any_o thing_n thereunto_o i_o hope_v mr._n arnaud_n will_v not_o be_v offend_v if_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o his_o authority_n be_v not_o yet_o great_a enough_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o counterbalance_n that_o of_o thomas_n aquinas_n now_o thomas_n his_o doctrine_n be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o he_o contrariatur_fw-la say_v this_o author_n venerationi_fw-la huius_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la si_fw-la aliqua_fw-la substantia_fw-la creata_fw-la esset_fw-la ibi_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n adoratione_n latriae_fw-la adorari_fw-la it_o will_v be_v 2._o thom._n sum._n 3._o part._n quaest_n 75._o art_n 2._o contrary_a to_o the_o veneration_n due_a to_o this_o sacrament_n be_v there_o any_o create_a substance_n in_o it_o to_o which_o may_v not_o be_v give_v the_o adoration_n of_o latria_n now_o let_v any_o man_n if_o he_o can_v make_v this_o agree_v with_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n proposition_n say_v that_o the_o respect_v due_a to_o the_o eucharist_n proceed_v only_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o presence_n or_o absence_n of_o the_o bread_n do_v not_o at_o all_o contribute_v thereunto_o and_o thomas_n assure_v we_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v present_a it_o will_v hinder_v the_o adoration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n whence_o it_o follow_v according_a to_o he_o that_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n cease_v to_o be_v aught_o more_o to_o reverence_v the_o sacrament_n than_o those_o that_o believe_v it_o remain_v so_o that_o whether_o the_o armenian_n do_v or_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n this_o signify_v nothing_o to_o my_o argument_n it_o be_v clear_a according_a to_o lasicius_n that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v clear_a according_a to_o thomas_n aquinas_n that_o they_o hold_v a_o opinion_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o veneration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o do_v they_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n more_o religious_o than_o the_o moscovite_n how_o then_o can_v the_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o moscovite_n for_o if_o they_o hold_v this_o doctrine_n they_o must_v have_v a_o great_a veneration_n for_o the_o sacrament_n than_o the_o other_o this_o argument_n can_v be_v otherwise_o deny_v than_o by_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n so_o that_o with_o draw_v myself_o out_o of_o the_o list_n i_o shall_v offer_v in_o my_o stead_n either_o saint_n thomas_n to_o be_v handle_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n or_o mr._n arnaud_n by_o saint_n thomas_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o master_n by_o the_o disciple_n or_o the_o disciple_n by_o the_o master_n moreover_o our_o question_n touch_v the_o moscovite_n relate_v only_o to_o transubstantiation_n it_o be_v evident_a it_o will_v be_v a_o digression_n from_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n to_o discuss_v the_o entire_a passage_n of_o lasicius_n to_o know_v whether_o he_o impute_v to_o the_o armenian_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n it_o will_v appear_v by_o what_o we_o shall_v say_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n what_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o they_o touch_v this_o particular_a the_o question_n now_o concern_v only_o the_o moscovite_n and_o what_o lasicius_n say_v concern_v their_o worship_a less_o religious_o the_o sacrament_n than_o the_o armenian_n be_v uncontrollable_a consider_v the_o testimony_n we_o have_v produce_v in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o sacranus_fw-la a_o cannon_n of_o cracovia_n john_n de_fw-fr lasco_n arch_n bishop_n of_o gnesne_n and_o scarga_n the_o jesuit_n who_o express_o depose_v that_o the_o russian_n of_o who_o the_o moscovite_n be_v a_o part_n do_v indeed_o adore_v the_o bread_n before_o its_o consecration_n but_o afterward_o show_v it_o no_o respect_n nor_o veneration_n scatter_v the_o crumb_n thereof_o on_o the_o ground_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o mr._n arnaud_n to_o say_v that_o that_o which_o hinder_v they_o from_o give_v the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n a_o external_a honour_n be_v that_o the_o consecration_n be_v perform_v in_o a_o place_n separate_v from_o the_o people_n and_o that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o respect_n to_o the_o sacrament_n that_o the_o people_n be_v deprive_v for_o some_o time_n of_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o mystery_n it_o be_v evident_a these_o be_v mere_a subter_fw-la fuges_fw-la do_v they_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n with_o a_o internal_a adoration_n they_o will_v declare_v as_o much_o themselves_o and_o ease_v mr._n arnaud_n of_o the_o trouble_n of_o search_v their_o secret_a thought_n they_o will_v show_v it_o by_o some_o expression_n of_o external_a reverence_n and_o for_o this_o effect_n expose_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n the_o people_n will_v at_o least_o make_v profession_n of_o adore_v it_o before_o they_o receive_v it_o and_o the_o priest_n will_v adore_v it_o in_o the_o sanctuary_n when_o they_o have_v consecrate_v it_o yet_o do_v these_o author_n absolute_o say_v that_o they_o give_v it_o no_o adoration_n this_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n 432._o lib._n 5._o c._n 1._o pag._n 432._o be_v not_o so_o for_o oderbornus_fw-la tell_v we_o that_o the_o priest_n come_v from_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o walk_v leisurely_o show_v the_o people_n that_o which_o he_o have_v consecrate_v in_o secret_a that_o then_o the_o people_n fall_v down_o on_o their_o knee_n the_o priest_n say_v to_o they_o in_o the_o moscovit_fw-la language_n behold_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o the_o jew_n unjust_o put_v to_o death_n but_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o three_o book_n when_o we_o treat_v of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o oderborn_n be_v apparent_o mistake_v have_v take_v a_o ceremony_n which_o be_v use_v before_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n as_o if_o it_o be_v use_v after_o this_o consecration_n the_o moscovite_n even_o as_o the_o greek_n do_v but_o once_o show_v the_o people_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n take_v one_o turn_v round_o the_o church_n before_o the_o consecration_n which_o they_o call_v the_o great_a entrance_n if_o mr._n arnaud_n know_v not_o this_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o a_o matter_n well_o know_v by_o other_o and_o if_o he_o do_v know_v it_o he_o show_v little_a sincerity_n in_o design_v to_o prevail_v over_o we_o by_o mean_n of_o oderborn_n mistake_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o armenian_n that_o the_o armenian_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n first_o proof_n take_v from_o that_o the_o armenian_n believe_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v swallow_v up_o by_o the_o divinity_n we_o shall_v not_o here_o particular_o treat_v of_o the_o melchites_n or_o syrian_n 5._o lib._n 5._o c._n 5._o as_o well_o for_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n acknowledge_v they_o differ_v not_o at_o all_o from_o the_o greek_n in_o their_o religion_n as_o that_o likewise_o what_o he_o allege_v concern_v they_o out_o of_o the_o note_n of_o abraham_n echellensis_fw-la maronite_n on_o the_o catalogue_n of_o caldean_a book_n make_v by_o abed-jesu_n a_o nestorian_a bishop_n deserve_v not_o our_o consideration_n the_o testimony_n of_o abraham_n echellensis_fw-la be_v of_o no_o credit_n and_o i_o refer_v myself_o thereupon_o to_o gahriel_n sionita_n his_o country_n man_n who_o have_v set_v he_o forth_o as_o a_o ignorant_a and_o impertinent_a fellow_n a_o liar_n and_o impostor_n these_o two_o person_n have_v both_o of_o they_o their_o education_n at_o rome_n in_o the_o seminary_n of_o the_o maronites_n both_o endeavour_v to_o advance_v the_o roman_a interest_n but_o fall_v out_o about_o the_o edition_n
a_o spectrum_n sometime_o likewise_o they_o affirm_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o word_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o divinity_n and_o become_v consubstantial_a with_o it_o they_o do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n deny_v the_o word_n assume_v a_o humane_a body_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o say_v that_o have_v be_v change_v without_o a_o change_n and_o make_v flesh_n he_o have_v only_o pass_v through_o the_o virgin_n and_o fasten_v his_o divinity_n to_o the_o cross_n and_o although_o it_o be_v neither_o finite_a nor_o circumscribe_v yet_o he_o have_v deposit_v it_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n they_o deny_v the_o birth_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n affirm_v it_o happen_v in_o appearance_n only_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o use_v the_o azyme_n and_o not_o bread_n they_o put_v no_o water_n in_o the_o chalice_n design_v to_o represent_v thereby_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n whereas_o we_o by_o the_o mixture_n of_o water_n with_o wine_n represent_v the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n it_o can_v be_v more_o clear_o affirm_v that_o the_o armenian_n be_v real_a eutychiens_n see_v he_o not_o only_a attribute_n to_o they_o the_o believe_v that_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o divinity_n but_o make_v consubstantial_a with_o it_o but_o he_o be_v too_o a_o terrible_a calumniator_n if_o we_o believe_v mr._n arnaud_n howsoever_o let_v we_o proceed_v guy_n carmus_fw-la who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 1340._o and_o have_v exact_o reckon_v up_o the_o error_n of_o the_o armenian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n express_o tell_v we_o 22._o guido_n carmel_n summam_fw-la de_fw-la haeres_fw-la de_fw-mi haer_fw-mi arm._n c._n 22._o they_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o dioscorus_n deny_v with_o he_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o wit_v the_o divine_a and_o humane_a in_o the_o unity_n of_o person_n that_o they_o admit_v only_o one_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v the_o divine_a one_o will_n and_o one_o operation_n and_o in_o the_o twelve_o error_n he_o remark_n they_o hold_v that_o after_o the_o union_n the_o humane_a nature_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o divine_a so_o that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o person_n in_o jesus_n christ_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o nature_n in_o he_o to_o wit_v the_o divine_a and_o that_o they_o cruel_o persecute_v those_o that_o hold_v there_o be_v two_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o divine_a and_o humane_a in_o the_o year_n 1341_o the_o then_o pope_n cause_v this_o information_n to_o be_v draw_v up_o touch_v the_o error_n of_o the_o armenian_n which_o we_o have_v already_o mention_v and_o shall_v have_v far_a occasion_n to_o discourse_v of_o hereafter_o the_o second_o article_n have_v these_o word_n that_o there_o be_v hold_v heretofore_o a_o council_n in_o armenia_n wherein_o assist_v the_o catholic_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o armenian_n with_o their_o bishop_n doctor_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o suriens_fw-la 1341._o raynald_n ad_fw-la a_o 1341._o that_o in_o this_o council_n be_v reject_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n especial_o because_o it_o have_v determine_v we_o must_v believe_v there_o be_v two_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n to_o wit_n the_o humane_a and_o the_o divine_a and_o one_o only_a person_n subsist_v in_o two_o nature_n that_o the_o council_n of_o the_o armenian_n have_v on_o their_o side_n determine_v that_o as_o in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a person_n so_o likewise_o be_v there_o in_o he_o but_o one_o nature_n to_o wit_v the_o divine_a one_o only_a will_n and_o one_o operation_n that_o they_o anathematise_v those_o that_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a and_o persecute_v they_o not_o only_o by_o imprisonment_n and_o load_v they_o with_o chain_n but_o even_o to_o the_o put_v they_o to_o death_n that_o in_o this_o council_n they_o have_v condemn_v pope_n leo_n and_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o flavian_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n because_o he_o assert_v therein_o two_o nature_n and_o one_o person_n two_o will_n and_o two_o operation_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o in_o fine_a they_o canonize_v dioscorus_n who_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v condemn_v and_o the_o armenian_n celebrate_v his_o festival_n three_o time_n in_o a_o year_n as_o a_o saint_n and_o curse_a leo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o have_v condemn_v dioscorus_n the_o twenty_o article_n bear_v that_o the_o armenian_n believe_v and_o hold_v that_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n beget_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n have_v unite_v to_o himself_o the_o humane_a nature_n and_o be_v make_v man_n yet_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o in_o the_o union_n the_o humane_a nature_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o as_o there_o be_v after_o the_o union_n but_o one_o person_n in_o jesus_n christ_n so_o be_v there_o but_o one_o nature_n in_o it_o to_o wit_v the_o divine_a and_o not_o the_o humane_a that_o they_o curse_v all_o those_o who_o say_v the_o contrary_a so_o great_o detest_a those_o that_o hold_v the_o two_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n after_o the_o union_n to_o wit_n the_o divine_a and_o humane_a that_o if_o any_o baptise_a armenian_a among_o they_o say_v this_o they_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o he_o but_o esteem_v he_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o upon_o his_o return_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o armenian_n rebaptise_v he_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o if_o he_o come_v from_o paganism_n and_o after_o this_o second_o baptism_n lay_v twenty_o year_n penance_n on_o he_o and_o in_o the_o twenty_o first_o article_n the_o armenian_n believe_v and_o hold_v that_o because_o after_o the_o union_n of_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o humane_a nature_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o divine_a in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o from_o that_o very_a moment_n there_o be_v only_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o he_o the_o divinity_n have_v be_v passable_a and_o impassable_a mortal_a and_o immortal_a according_a as_o our_o saviour_n himself_o please_v and_o that_o thus_o he_o have_v suffer_v and_o be_v dead_a in_o the_o divine_a nature_n because_o he_o will_v have_v no_o humane_a nature_n when_o he_o suffer_v and_o dye_v do_v mr._n arnaud_n imagine_v we_o shall_v rest_v content_v when_o he_o shall_v tell_v we_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v mere_a imposture_n eugenus_n iv_o instruct_v the_o armenian_n in_o council_n of_o florence_n florent_fw-la ad_fw-la calcem_fw-la council_n florent_fw-la sufficient_o show_v he_o take_v they_o for_o real_a and_o perfect_a eutychiens_n for_o he_o chief_o apply'_v himself_o to_o show_v they_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o teach_v they_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v consubstantial_a with_o we_o and_o have_v take_v on_o he_o a_o real_a humane_a nature_n this_o nature_n have_v subsist_v and_o do_v still_o subsist_v in_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n without_o confusion_n or_o conversion_n we_o need_v but_o read_v this_o discourse_n to_o find_v that_o its_o drift_n be_v to_o oppose_v against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o armenian_n the_o contrary_a doctrine_n which_o must_v be_v hold_v to_o be_v conformable_a with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n he_o design_v to_o insist_v on_o be_v that_o of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o 1434._o spondan_n annal_n eccles_n tom._n 2._o ad_fw-la ann._n 1434._o mr._n sponde_v bishop_n of_o pamiez_n he_o do_v not_o give_v they_o say_v he_o in_o his_o decretal_n all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o content_v himself_o as_o i_o take_v it_o with_o those_o wherein_o they_o err_v or_o of_o which_o they_o doubt_v and_o first_o he_o give_v they_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o filioque_fw-la to_o have_v it_o sing_v in_o church_n than_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n touch_v the_o two_o nature_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o unity_n of_o person_n three_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o six_o council_n touch_v the_o two_o will_n and_o two_o operation_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n four_o because_o the_o armenian_n have_v acknowledge_v hitherto_o only_o the_o three_o first_o council_n that_o of_o nice_n constantinople_n and_o ephesus_n reject_v those_o that_o be_v hold_v afterward_o he_o show_v they_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o they_o believe_v favour_v the_o nestorian_a heresy_n do_v as_o well_o condemn_v nestorius_n as_o eutyches_n and_o that_o they_o must_v receive_v it_o prateolus_n who_o make_v a_o catalogue_n of_o all_o the_o sect_n say_v armen_n prateol_n elench_v haeret._n de_fw-fr armen_n that_o it_o be_v
of_o consecration_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n who_o suffer_v and_o rise_v again_o but_o they_o hold_v that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o representation_n a_o resemblance_n or_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o this_o some_o of_o the_o armenian_a doctor_n have_v particular_o assert_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o representation_n and_o a_o resemblance_n of_o they_o they_o say_v likewise_o that_o when_o our_o saviour_n institute_v this_o sacrament_n he_o do_v not_o transubstantiate_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o his_o body_n but_o only_o institute_v a_o representation_n or_o a_o resemblance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o call_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o the_o host_n the_o sacrifice_n or_o the_o communion_n one_o of_o their_o doctor_n call_v darces_n have_v write_v that_o when_o the_o priest_n say_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n than_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v dead_a but_o when_o he_o add_v by_o which_o holy_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n then_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v alive_a yet_o have_v he_o not_o express_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o true_a body_n or_o the_o resemblance_n of_o it_o the_o armenian_n likewise_o say_v we_o must_v expound_v that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o cannon_n of_o their_o mass_n by_o which_o holy_a spirit_n the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o real_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o by_o the_o real_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o real_a resemblance_n or_o representation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o therefore_o damascen_n censure_v they_o for_o this_o say_v that_o the_o armenian_n have_v this_o two_o hundred_o year_n abolish_v all_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o their_o sacrament_n be_v not_o give_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o greek_a or_o latin_a church_n but_o that_o they_o have_v take_v they_o up_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n mr_n arnaud_n who_o in_o look_v over_o his_o raynaldus_n have_v meet_v with_o this_o clear_a testimony_n yet_o 〈◊〉_d have_v not_o be_v perplex_v with_o it_o for_o his_o invention_n never_o fail_v of_o find_v out_o way_n to_o shift_v the_o force_n of_o the_o most_o plain_a and_o positive_a truth_n and_o to_o turn_v they_o to_o his_o own_o advantage_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o after_o a_o exact_a search_n into_o the_o cause_n which_o may_v move_v guy_n carme_n to_o impute_v this_o error_n to_o the_o armenian_n he_o at_o length_n find_v it_o in_o this_o information_n which_o pope_n benedict_n the_o xii_o order_v to_o be_v draw_v up_o he_o add_v that_o if_o this_o original_a have_v be_v know_v to_o the_o minister_n yet_o they_o have_v find_v great_a advantage_n in_o stand_v by_o the_o testimony_n 485._o c_o 9_o 348._o &_o 485._o of_o guy_n carme_v then_o in_o ascend_v up_o to_o this_o source_n but_o all_o this_o discourse_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a amusement_n for_o when_o mr._n arnaud_v conjecture_n shall_v be_v right_a it_o will_v not_o thence_o follow_v guy_n carme_v his_o testimony_n be_v void_a and_o the_o minister_n have_v no_o right_a to_o allege_v he_o nor_o that_o the_o information_n aforemention_v do_v impute_v to_o the_o armenian_n those_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v not_o there_o be_v great_a likelihood_n that_o guy_n carme_v make_v not_o this_o information_n his_o rule_n for_o beside_o that_o he_o say_v nothing_o of_o it_o he_o reckon_v up_o but_o thirty_o error_n of_o the_o armenian_n whereas_o the_o information_n compute_v they_o to_o be_v about_o one_o hundred_o and_o seventeen_o but_o suppose_v it_o be_v so_o all_o that_o can_v be_v conclude_v thence_o be_v that_o in_o the_o fourteen_o century_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n contain_v in_o this_o act_n be_v not_o question_v but_o past_a for_o such_o certainty_n that_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o time_n scruple_v not_o to_o make_v they_o the_o subject_a of_o their_o book_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o use_n which_o can_v be_v make_v of_o mr._n arnaud_n remark_n but_o howsoever_o what_o can_v be_v say_v against_o a_o act_n so_o authentic_a as_o that_o of_o benedict_n which_o be_v not_o ground_v on_o uncertain_a report_n but_o on_o the_o testimony_n of_o several_a person_n worthy_a of_o credit_n armenian_n or_o latin_n who_o have_v be_v in_o armenia_n and_o who_o the_o pope_n will_v hear_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v be_v ascertain_v of_o the_o truth_n to_o know_v of_o what_o weight_n or_o authority_n this_o piece_n be_v we_o need_v but_o read_v what_o the_o pope_n write_v on_o this_o subject_a to_o the_o catholic_n or_o patriarch_n of_o armenia_n ibid._n raynald_n ibid._n we_o have_v long_o since_o say_v he_o be_v inform_v by_o several_a person_n of_o good_a credit_n that_o in_o both_o the_o armenia_n there_o be_v hold_v several_a detestable_a and_o abominable_a error_n and_o that_o they_o be_v maintain_v contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n hold_v and_o teach_v which_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o although_o at_o first_o we_o be_v unwilling_a to_o credit_v these_o report_n yet_o be_v at_o length_n force_v to_o yield_v to_o the_o certain_a testimony_n of_o person_n who_o tell_v we_o they_o perfect_o understand_v the_o state_n of_o those_o country_n yet_o before_o we_o give_v full_a credit_n we_o think_v ourselves_o oblige_v to_o make_v exact_a search_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o way_n of_o judiciary_n and_o solemn_a information_n both_o by_o hear_v several_a witness_n who_o likewise_o tell_v we_o they_o know_v the_o state_n of_o these_o country_n and_o take_v in_o write_v these_o their_o deposition_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o book_n which_o we_o be_v inform_v the_o armenian_n do_v common_o use_v wherein_o be_v plain_o teach_v these_o error_n he_o say_v the_o same_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o king_n of_o armenia_n and_o in_o his_o information_n it_o be_v express_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n cause_v these_o witness_n to_o appear_v personal_o before_o he_o and_o give_v ibid._n ra●nald_n ibid._n they_o a_o oath_n to_o speak_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o they_o know_v concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o armenian_n that_o these_o witness_n be_v not_o only_a latin_n that_o have_v be_v in_o armenia_n but_o armenian_n themselves_o and_o that_o the_o book_n produce_v be_v write_v in_o the_o armenian_a tongue_n and_o some_o of_o those_o be_v such_o as_o be_v in_o use_n in_o both_o the_o armenia_n '_o s_o i_o think_v here_o be_v as_o many_o formality_n as_o can_v be_v desire_v and_o all_o these_o circumstance_n will_v not_o suffer_v a_o man_n to_o call_v in_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o those_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o act_n yet_o will_v not_o mr._n arnaud_n agree_v herein_o he_o say_v that_o in_o this_o monstrous_a heap_n of_o error_n there_o be_v several_a senseless_a extravagant_a and_o socinian_n opinion_n 4●4_n lib._n 5._o c._n 9_o p._n 4●4_n that_o therein_o original_a sin_n the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o vision_n of_o god_n the_o existence_n of_o hell_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o point_n of_o religion_n be_v deny_v that_o therein_o be_v also_o contrary_a error_n so_o that_o it_o be_v plain_a this_o be_v not_o the_o religion_n of_o a_o people_n or_o nation_n but_o rather_o a_o rhapsody_n of_o opinion_n of_o several_a sect_n and_o nation_n i_o confess_v there_o be_v in_o these_o article_n several_a absurd_a opinion_n and_o some_o that_o differ_v little_a from_o socinianism_n but_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o they_o may_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o a_o particular_a people_n the_o pope_n express_o distinguish_v in_o his_o bull_n three_o sort_n of_o error_n contain_v in_o his_o information_n some_o that_o be_v hold_v in_o both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o armenia_n other_o which_z be_v hold_v only_o in_o one_o armenia_n and_o the_o three_o which_o be_v only_o hold_v and_o teach_v by_o some_o particular_a person_n and_o this_o distinction_n be_v exact_o observe_v in_o the_o article_n themselves_o in_o which_o the_o particular_a opinion_n be_v describe_v in_o these_o term_n quidam_fw-la or_o aliqui_fw-la tenent_fw-la as_o in_o article_n cvi_o quidam_fw-la catholicon_fw-la armenorum_n dixit_fw-la &_o scripsit_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o generali_fw-la resurrectione_n omnes_fw-la homines_fw-la consurgent_fw-la cum_fw-la corporibus_fw-la suis_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la in_o corporibus_fw-la eorum_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la sexuum_fw-la discretio_fw-la and_o in_o the_o cviii_o article_n aliqui_fw-la magni_fw-la homines_fw-la armeni_n laici_fw-la dixerunt_fw-la
quod_fw-la sicut_fw-la bestiae_fw-la in_o morte_fw-la expirant_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la moriuntur_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o homines_fw-la &_o sicut_fw-la bestiae_fw-la cum_fw-la semel_fw-la morte_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la nunquam_fw-la resurgent_fw-la ita_fw-la nec_fw-la homines_fw-la the_o opinion_n hold_v only_o in_o one_o armenia_n be_v likewise_o denote_v exact_o in_o these_o word_n in_o majori_fw-la armenia_n in_o minori_fw-la armenia_n or_o catholicon_fw-la majoris_fw-la armeniae_n catholicon_fw-la minoris_fw-la armeniae_n the_o common_a opinion_n be_v express_v in_o these_o term_n armeni_n dicunt_fw-la armeni_n tenent_fw-la and_o although_o in_o the_o article_n which_o respect_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n we_o find_v these_o word_n et_fw-la hoc_fw-la specialiter_fw-la aliqui_fw-la magistri_fw-la armenorum_n dixerunt_fw-la videlicet_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la erat_fw-la ibi_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la verum_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la sed_fw-la exemplar_n &_o similitudo_fw-la ejus_fw-la yet_o be_v this_o same_o sentiment_n impute_v general_o to_o all_o the_o armenian_n for_o the_o article_n begin_v thus_o item_n quod_fw-la armeni_n non_fw-la dicunt_fw-la quod_fw-la post_fw-la verba_fw-la consecrationis_fw-la panis_n &_o vini_n sit_fw-la facta_fw-la transubstantiatio_fw-la panis_n &_o vini_n in_o verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la and_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o article_n there_o be_v quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la armeni_n illud_fw-la quod_fw-la ponitur_fw-la in_o eorum_fw-la canone_o missae_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la panis_fw-la benedictus_fw-la efficitur_fw-la verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la exponunt_fw-la quia_fw-la efficitur_fw-la ibi_fw-la vera_fw-la similitudo_fw-la &_o exemplar_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la unde_fw-la damascenus_n propter_fw-la hoc_fw-la reprehendens_fw-la eos_fw-la dixit_fw-la quod_fw-la ducenti_fw-la tunc_fw-la anni_fw-la erant_fw-la quod_fw-la armeni_n perdiderunt_fw-la omne_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v then_o clear_a that_o this_o information_n attribute_n this_o opinion_n not_o to_o some_o particular_a person_n but_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o armenian_n see_v that_o on_o one_o hand_n this_o article_n bear_v the_o character_n of_o error_n common_a to_o the_o armenian_n and_o on_o the_o other_o there_o be_v apply_v to_o they_o what_o damascene_fw-la say_v of_o they_o so_o long_o before_o that_o they_o have_v lose_v all_o the_o sacrament_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n bestir_v himself_o as_o fierce_o as_o he_o please_v he_o can_v hinder_v we_o from_o perceive_v that_o if_o this_o article_n relate_v only_o to_o particular_a person_n witness_n of_o the_o fourteen_o century_n that_o depose_v what_o it_o contain_v will_v never_o have_v seek_v in_o the_o eight_o century_n that_o be_v to_o say_v six_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o authority_n of_o damascen_n to_o confirm_v what_o they_o depose_v and_o even_o to_o confirm_v it_o by_o a_o passage_n which_o respect_v the_o church_n of_o the_o armenian_n in_o general_a and_o which_o accuse_v it_o for_o have_v no_o true_a sacrament_n mr._n arnaud_n observe_v afterward_o that_o in_o this_o same_o article_n there_o be_v accuse_v another_o armenian_a doctor_n name_v narces_n for_o say_v when_o the_o priest_n 48._o c._n 9_o p._n 48._o pronounce_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v then_o in_o a_o state_n of_o death_n and_o when_o he_o add_v perquem_fw-la the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v then_o alive_a it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o the_o information_n add_v that_o this_o doctor_n do_v not_o express_v whether_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o of_o the_o figure_n but_o the_o difference_n of_o these_o two_o state_n of_o life_n and_o death_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o a_o figure_n which_o do_v not_o change_n sufficient_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o these_o two_o state_n of_o life_n and_o death_n can_v be_v find_v in_o a_o figure_n much_o less_o in_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v no_o more_o subject_a to_o death_n nor_o the_o necessity_n of_o rise_v again_o be_v mr._n arnaud_n so_o great_o prejudice_v that_o he_o can_v perceive_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o doctor_n be_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o mystery_n which_o express_v the_o whole_a oeconomy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n especial_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n according_a to_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_n from_o which_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o greek_n do_v not_o vary_v in_o the_o seventy_v error_n say_v he_o moreover_o the_o same_o armenian_n be_v ibid_fw-la ibid_fw-la charge_v with_o believe_v that_o when_o any_o one_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n descend_v into_o his_o body_n and_o be_v convert_v therein_o as_o other_o aliment_n which_o be_v a_o contrary_a heresy_n to_o that_o of_o berengarius_fw-la but_o as_o berengarius_fw-la will_v not_o have_v scruple_v to_o call_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o neither_o will_v he_o have_v scruple_v to_o express_v himself_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o this_o article_n make_v the_o armenian_n do_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o it_o descend_v into_o our_o body_n and_o be_v change_v into_o our_o body_n so_o that_o this_o contrariety_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n imagine_v have_v no_o ground_n but_o there_o be_v a_o real_a opposition_n between_o this_o discourse_n of_o the_o armenian_n that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v change_v into_o our_o body_n as_o other_o food_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n for_o how_o can_v it_o be_v conceive_v that_o the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o our_o body_n that_o a_o incorruptible_a substance_n shall_v be_v digest_v and_o change_v that_o a_o substance_n which_o exist_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o spirit_n shall_v nourish_v we_o and_o become_v food_n to_o we_o it_o appear_v then_o from_o this_o very_a thing_n that_o by_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o armenian_n mean_v only_o the_o sacrament_n or_o mystery_n of_o this_o body_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o substance_n be_v real_a bread_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o any_o purpose_n to_o remark_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v ibid._n ibid._n that_o those_o to_o who_o be_v attribute_v the_o believe_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v only_o the_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o yet_o common_o the_o armenian_n do_v thus_o call_v it_o as_o appear_v by_o their_o liturgy_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o sense_n of_o this_o article_n be_v not_o that_o absolute_o the_o armenian_n reject_v this_o expression_n see_v it_o immediate_o afterward_o attribute_n it_o to_o they_o but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o usual_a among_o they_o especial_o since_o they_o see_v the_o latin_n abuse_v it_o and_o therefore_o they_o choose_v rather_o to_o use_v those_o of_o host_n sacrifice_n and_o communion_n it_o be_v also_o to_o no_o purpose_n to_o say_v the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o armenian_n be_v contrary_a ibid._n ibid._n to_o this_o opinion_n see_v it_o contain_v the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o real_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o they_o expound_v it_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o true_a resemblance_n or_o the_o representation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o explication_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n be_v so_o absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v very_o common_a it_o be_v impossible_a the_o generality_n shall_v entertain_v it_o but_o do_v mr._n arnaud_n believe_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v full_o and_o true_o explain_v as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o and_o consequence_n and_o dependency_n can_v be_v more_o easy_o entertain_v by_o a_o people_n than_o this_o sense_n which_o the_o armenian_n give_v to_o the_o term_n of_o their_o liturgy_n as_o to_o what_o he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o seventy_v article_n that_o ibid._n ibid._n according_a to_o the_o armenian_n the_o eucharist_n do_v not_o effect_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n nor_o confer_v grace_n and_o that_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o armenian_n of_o leopolis_n and_o a_o passage_n of_o the_o catholic_n of_o armenia_n in_o the_o conference_n of_o theorien_n which_o say_v they_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n all_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n can_v conclude_v hence_o be_v that_o the_o armenian_n reside_v in_o armenia_n do_v not_o well_o agree_v in_o this_o point_n with_o those_o of_o leopolis_n in_o poland_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n which_o confer_v with_o theorien_n be_v of_o no_o great_a consideration_n among_o they_o but_o it_o can_v hence_o follow_v
his_o own_o interest_n and_o cite_v the_o person_n from_o who_o he_o learn_v what_o he_o tell_v we_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v soon_o forget_v what_o he_o write_v on_o this_o same_o subject_n edition_n chap._n 8._o first_o edition_n in_o his_o first_o edition_n we_o may_v well_o admire_v say_v he_o that_o mr._n claude_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o propose_v slight_a objection_n shall_v omit_v one_o which_o be_v very_o considerable_a in_o appearance_n and_o enough_o to_o startle_v people_n because_o the_o solution_n of_o it_o be_v so_o hard_a to_o be_v find_v that_o we_o can_v just_o reproach_v he_o if_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o the_o objection_n be_v that_o we_o meet_v with_o this_o passage_n in_o a_o translation_n of_o herbert_n '_o s_z voyage_n that_o the_o armenian_n deny_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o seem_v there_o can_v be_v nothing_o reply_v to_o so_o clear_a a_o passage_n and_o that_o this_o author_n who_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o learn_v from_o the_o inhabitant_n themselves_o of_o those_o country_n as_o well_o as_o mr._n olearius_n may_v at_o least_o weaken_v his_o authority_n whence_o i_o pray_v come_v this_o so_o manifest_a a_o contrariety_n of_o judgement_n as_o long_o as_o the_o pretend_a imposture_n of_o the_o translator_n continue_v in_o mr._n arnaud_n thought_n herbert_n authority_n be_v weighty_a and_o sufficient_a to_o startle_v people_n the_o solution_n of_o it_o be_v difficult_a and_o it_o seem_v there_o can_v be_v nothing_o reply_v to_o so_o plain_a a_o passage_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o this_o pretend_a imposture_n vanish_v then_o it_o be_v we_o matter_n not_o the_o testimony_n of_o herbert_n and_o judicious_a person_n ought_v not_o to_o credit_v it_o before_o he_o be_v a_o author_n who_o speak_v what_o he_o learn_v from_o the_o inhabitant_n themselves_o through_o who_o country_n he_o pass_v now_o he_o be_v a_o person_n that_o to_o enlarge_v his_o book_n have_v in_o his_o second_o edition_n add_v what_o he_o please_v before_o he_o be_v a_o author_n who_o may_v well_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o mr._n olearius_n now_o he_o be_v a_o calvinist_n in_o no_o wise_a comparable_a with_o a_o lutheran_n such_o as_o mr._n olearius_n what_o be_v this_o but_o a_o sport_v with_o author_n extol_v they_o depress_v they_o and_o make_v they_o good_a or_o bad_a according_a as_o mr._n arnaud_n occasion_n require_v it_o be_v plain_a he_o want_v a_o object_n to_o exercise_v his_o wrath_n on_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o translator_n it_o must_v then_o be_v the_o author_n and_o when_o the_o live_a escape_n he_o than_o the_o dead_a must_v pay_v for_o it_o who_o tell_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o what_o mr._n herbert_n relate_v in_o his_o second_o edition_n be_v not_o what_o he_o learned_a from_o the_o inhabitant_n themselves_o through_o who_o country_n he_o travel_v but_o excerption_n from_o breerewood_n he_o dare_v not_o mention_v say_v he_o from_o who_o he_o learn_v what_o he_o relate_v if_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o invalidate_v the_o testimony_n of_o traveller_n we_o can_v be_v certain_a in_o nothing_o they_o tell_v we_o touch_v the_o manner_n of_o people_n and_o their_o religion_n for_o it_o seldom_o happen_v that_o traveller_n denote_v the_o person_n from_o who_o they_o have_v be_v inform_v and_o if_o they_o be_v unfaithful_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o tell_v we_o they_o may_v be_v as_o well_o so_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o name_n of_o person_n mr._n herbert_n be_v a_o person_n of_o quality_n deserve_o honourable_a both_o for_o his_o learning_n and_o integrity_n he_o have_v view_v whatsoever_o be_v worth_a his_o observation_n both_o in_o asia_n and_o africa_n and_o careful_o denote_v the_o manner_n and_o religion_n of_o people_n write_v nothing_o till_o such_o time_n as_o he_o be_v well_o inform_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o what_o mean_v mr._n arnaud_n then_o thus_o to_o attack_v his_o memory_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o person_n thus_o qualify_v have_v copy_v out_o from_o breerewood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o a_o scholar_n who_o perhaps_o never_o travel_v far_a than_o his_o own_o country_n chap._n v._n mr._n arnaud_n '_o s_z proof_n touch_v the_o armenian_n examine_v but_o here_o be_v say_v mr._n arnaud_n certain_a and_o positive_a proof_n which_o show_v that_o the_o armenian_n have_v ever_o effectual_o believe_v both_o one_o 457._o lib._n 5._o c._n 6._o p._n 457._o and_o the_o other_o point_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o accuse_v they_o of_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o transubstantiation_n which_o we_o shall_v now_o examine_v in_o this_o chapter_n his_o first_o proof_n be_v take_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o lanfranc_n who_o dispute_v against_o berengarius_fw-la say_v that_o the_o greek_n and_o armenian_n and_o general_o all_o christian_n hold_v the_o same_o faith_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o mr._n ibid._n ibid._n arnaud_n have_v not_o consider_v that_o lanfranc_n do_v not_o direct_o impute_v transubstantiation_n either_o to_o the_o armenian_n or_o greek_n he_o impute_v it_o to_o they_o only_o by_o a_o consequence_n draw_v from_o their_o glory_v all_o of_o they_o that_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o real_a body_n and_o real_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n take_v from_o the_o virgin_n now_o we_o have_v see_v as_o well_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o carme_n as_o from_o the_o information_n of_o benedict_n that_o the_o armenian_n give_v this_o expression_n a_o sense_n whole_o contrary_a to_o lanfranc_n consequence_n so_o that_o this_o proof_n have_v be_v already_o invalidate_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o armenian_n themselves_o the_o second_o be_v take_v from_o the_o berengarian_o never_o allege_v they_o be_v of_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o armenian_n or_o any_o other_o eastern_a church_n yet_o be_v it_o impossible_a but_o they_o must_v know_v what_o be_v their_o opinion_n see_v that_o person_n voyage_v from_o all_o part_n of_o europe_n into_o the_o east_n and_o this_o will_v have_v be_v a_o specious_a pretence_n to_o the_o henrician_n and_o albingenses_n to_o avoid_v the_o rigour_n of_o those_o punishment_n they_o undergo_v but_o to_o discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o this_o reason_n we_o need_v only_o remember_v that_o in_o the_o 14_o century_n under_o john_n xxii_o benedict_n xii_o and_o clement_n vi_o it_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o west_n for_o a_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o the_o armenian_n deny_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n as_o we_o have_v already_o see_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n that_o it_o be_v the_o unanimous_a report_n of_o the_o armenian_n themselves_o who_o be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o latin_n which_o have_v be_v in_o armenia_n yet_o although_o the_o disciple_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v rigorous_o persecute_v in_o that_o age_n we_o do_v not_o find_v they_o ever_o justify_v themselves_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o armenian_n nor_o that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n handle_v they_o less_o severe_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o this_o conformity_n we_o find_v on_o the_o contrary_a their_o adversary_n have_v reproach_v they_o with_o follow_v the_o heresy_n of_o these_o eastern_a people_n as_o appear_v by_o what_o i_o have_v already_o relate_v concern_v the_o dispute_n of_o thomas_n waldensis_n against_o wicliff_n so_o that_o that_o be_v object_v against_o they_o as_o a_o crime_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v they_o make_v use_n of_o for_o a_o apology_n the_o iii_o and_o iv_o proof_n be_v no_o more_o conclusive_a than_o the_o two_o first_o 459._o ibid._n p._n 459._o they_o contain_v that_o gregory_n vii_o mark_v in_o particular_a the_o error_n which_o the_o armenian_n ought_v to_o condemn_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o error_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1145._o the_o patriarch_n and_o bishop_n of_o armenia_n send_v ambassador_n to_o pope_n eugenius_n ii_o to_o render_v he_o all_o kind_n of_o submission_n and_o make_v he_o judge_v of_o the_o difference_n which_o they_o have_v with_o the_o greek_n that_o if_o this_o pope_n have_v believe_v they_o be_v in_o the_o error_n of_o berengarius_fw-la he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v content_v to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n and_o manner_n of_o celebrate_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o othon_n of_o frisinga_n who_o relate_v this_o history_n will_v never_o have_v conceal_v so_o important_a a_o circumstance_n i_o answer_v that_o gregory_n vii_o 114._o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la con_fw-mi 114._o particularize_n only_o four_o error_n for_o which_o he_o censure_v the_o armenian_n i._o that_o they_o mix_v no_o water_n with_o their_o wine_n in_o the_o chalice_n ii_o that_o they_o compound_v the_o chream_n with_o butter_n and_o not_o with_o balm_n iii_o that_o they_o reverence_n dioscorus_n
as_o a_o saint_n although_o he_o be_v condemn_v in_o fine_a that_o they_o add_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o the_o triasagios_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n how_o many_o other_o doctrine_n and_o custom_n have_v the_o armevians_n beside_o these_o four_o article_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o approve_v of_o they_o hold_v the_o opinion_n of_o eutyches_n they_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o propagation_n of_o original_a sin_n they_o deny_v purgatory_n they_o still_o offer_v sacrifice_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n they_o condemn_v three_o marriage_n for_o as_o bad_a as_o fornication_n they_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n they_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v by_o the_o only_a word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o believe_v the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o and_o several_a other_o point_n which_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o latin_n and_o of_o which_o neither_o gregory_n vii_o eugenius_n iii_o nor_o othon_n of_o trisinga_n make_v any_o mention_n which_o show_v there_o can_v be_v draw_v no_o conclusion_n from_o their_o silence_n and_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n may_v better_o employ_v his_o time_n than_o in_o collect_v these_o kind_n of_o proof_n the_o v._o be_v take_v from_o some_o expression_n of_o a_o catholic_n of_o armenia_n 460._o ibid._n p._n 460._o who_o say_v in_o the_o conference_n of_o theorien_n that_o the_o wine_n become_v by_o consecration_n the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v sacrifice_v within_o the_o church_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o this_o proof_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o confirm_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n pretend_v for_o first_o we_o have_v already_o show_v he_o that_o this_o catholic_n speak_v of_o his_o own_o head_n and_o not_o from_o his_o church_n and_o moreover_o what_o he_o say_v do_v neither_o conclude_v the_o real_a presence_n nor_o transubstantiation_n the_o wine_n become_v by_o its_o consecration_n the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o representation_n and_o mystery_n according_a to_o the_o exposition_n which_o the_o armenian_n themselves_o give_v to_o these_o way_n of_o speak_v as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v sacrifice_v in_o the_o church_n in_o commemortion_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o action_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o mystery_n which_o represent_v his_o death_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n consult_v if_o he_o please_v the_o marginal_a note_n which_o be_v on_o the_o side_n of_o this_o last_o passage_n and_o he_o will_v find_v the_o solution_n of_o his_o difficulty_n the_o greek_a text_n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o latin_a mactatur_fw-la intus_fw-la armen_n theorien_n dial._n adver_o armen_n dei_fw-la filius_fw-la pro_fw-la totius_fw-la mundi_fw-la salute_n and_o the_o marginal_a note_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la representatur_fw-la in_o sacra_fw-la caena_fw-la mactatio_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o vi_o proof_n be_v take_v from_o that_o during_o the_o croisado_n the_o pope_n 462._o ibid._n pag._n 462._o hold_v a_o last_a and_o strict_a union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o armenia_n that_o the_o catholic_n of_o armenia_n yield_v obedience_n to_o pope_n eugenius_n iii_o that_o this_o union_n be_v confirm_v under_o innocent_a iii_o who_o send_v a_o crown_n to_o leo_n king_n of_o armenia_n and_o that_o as_o well_o this_o king_n as_o gregory_z the_o patriarch_n of_o armenia_n send_v a_o ambassador_n to_o innocent_a to_o acknowledge_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o there_o be_v alliance_n make_v between_o the_o latin_a prince_n and_o those_o of_o armenia_n that_o pope_n innocent_a excommunicate_v the_o king_n of_o armenia_n at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o templar_n and_o some_o time_n after_o give_v he_o absolution_n that_o this_o union_n last_v during_o gregory_n ix_o his_o time_n and_o clement_n vi_o but_o what_o be_v this_o but_o a_o tell_n of_o story_n and_o copy_v out_o of_o raynadus_n at_o any_o rate_n if_o the_o proof_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o this_o union_n be_v sufficient_a to_o conclude_v the_o armenian_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o conclude_v likewise_o that_o they_o be_v conformable_a to_o she_o in_o all_o the_o other_o point_n concern_v which_o we_o do_v not_o find_v the_o pope_n ever_o trouble_v themselves_o to_o correct_v they_o or_o make_v the_o least_o inquiry_n about_o they_o they_o be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o king_n and_o patriach_n of_o armenia_n acknowledge_v their_o authority_n hope_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o introduce_v hereafter_o quiet_o among_o they_o the_o religion_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n make_v use_v of_o they_o in_o other_o occasion_n the_o king_n of_o armenia_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n be_v very_o ready_a to_o give_v the_o pope_n encouragement_n to_o believe_v they_o will_v reduce_v their_o kingdom_n to_o the_o obeisance_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n procure_v the_o assistance_n and_o protection_n of_o the_o latin_n who_o power_n be_v then_o formidable_a throughout_o the_o whole_a east_n but_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o armenian_n from_o keep_v still_o their_o doctrine_n and_o custom_n as_o appear_v by_o what_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n of_o john_n xxii_o benedict_n xii_o and_o clement_n vi_o the_o 79_o article_n of_o the_o information_n of_o benedict_n express_o mention_n that_o the_o priest_n and_o bishop_n of_o armenia_n enjoin_v a_o penance_n during_o some_o year_n to_o those_o that_o have_v be_v baptise_a by_o the_o latin_n and_o condemn_v they_o to_o undergo_v a_o 5_o year_n penance_n who_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o the_o other_o sacrament_n and_o the_o 86_o article_n that_o the_o armenian_n say_v and_o hold_v that_o since_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o roman_a prelate_n have_v no_o more_o authority_n over_o they_o which_o be_v under_o he_o then_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o nestorian_n over_o the_o nestorian_n or_o the_o greek_a patriarch_n over_o the_o greek_n that_o the_o pope_n know_v his_o own_o power_n and_o the_o armenian_n likewise_o they_o and_o the_o 99_o article_n that_o the_o armenian_n persecute_v those_o among_o they_o who_o have_v be_v baptize_v according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o they_o say_v the_o roman_a church_n err_v and_o that_o they_o armenian_n keep_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_n faith_n and_o the_o 117_o the_o article_n that_o the_o armenian_n keep_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v nor_o its_o sacrament_n and_o blaspheme_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n say_v they_o be_v heretic_n that_o the_o catholic_n of_o armenia_n minor_a say_v the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n destroy_v more_o man_n every_o day_n than_o they_o have_v hair_n on_o their_o head_n and_o although_o they_o preach_v against_o simony_n yet_o do_v they_o grant_v no_o favour_n without_o commit_v it_o that_o as_o to_o they_o armenian_n they_o have_v all_o of_o they_o keep_v themselves_o undefiled_a in_o armenia_n minor_fw-la except_o the_o king_n and_o some_o person_n of_o quality_n who_o hold_v the_o roman_a faith_n it_o be_v then_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o mr._n arnaud_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o innocent_a iii_o and_o the_o other_o pope_n will_v not_o have_v hold_v so_o strict_a a_o union_n with_o the_o armenian_a church_n have_v they_o believe_v the_o armenian_n be_v berengarian_n see_v they_o do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n stir_v up_o all_o france_n against_o the_o albingenses_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v exterminate_v with_o fire_n and_o sword_n these_o excellent_a reason_n do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o armenian_n hold_v still_o all_o their_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n under_o the_o popedom_n of_o benedict_n xii_o and_o ii_o that_o among_o those_o opinion_n that_o which_o deny_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v plain_o remark_v iii_o that_o although_o the_o king_n and_o some_o person_n of_o quality_n embrace_v the_o roman_a religion_n yet_o the_o body_n of_o the_o armenian_a church_n keep_v to_o their_o ancient_a religion_n even_o to_o the_o blaspheme_a the_o roman_a church_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o article_n which_o i_o now_o mention_v iv_o in_o fine_a it_o will_v not_o be_v find_v that_o innocent_a iii_o or_o any_o other_o pope_n require_v of_o the_o armenian_n any_o particular_a renunciation_n of_o their_o error_n be_v they_o what_o they_o will_n it_o seem_v either_o these_o pope_n suppose_v the_o armenian_n have_v absolute_o the_o same_o faith_n as_o the_o roman_a
and_o which_o express_o contain_v the_o article_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o these_o term_n sacramentum_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la ex_fw-la azymo_fw-la conficit_fw-la romana_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tenens_fw-la et_fw-la docens_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o ipso_fw-la sacramento_n panis_n verè_fw-la transubstantiatur_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la in_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n with_o unleavened_a bread_n hold_v and_o teach_v that_o in_o this_o sacrament_n the_o bread_n be_v real_o transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o pope_n have_v ever_o earnest_o recommend_v to_o the_o missionary_n the_o instruct_n of_o the_o nestorian_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n according_a to_o this_o formulary_a they_o have_v send_v it_o to_o the_o nestorian_a proselyte_n bishop_n enjoin_v they_o to_o have_v it_o continual_o in_o their_o mind_n and_o to_o teach_v it_o their_o people_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o raynaldus_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o 1445._o raynaldus_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1445._o timotheus_n a_o nestorian_a archbishop_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o cyprus_n make_v in_o the_o year_n 1445._o not_o long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n he_o be_v make_v to_o say_v that_o he_o confess_v and_o approve_v of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o 1445._o raynaldus_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1445._o of_o the_o manner_n after_o which_o she_o hold_v teach_v and_o preach_v they_o and_o in_o the_o reunion_n make_v in_o the_o year_n 1583._o of_o certain_a nestorian_a christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n who_o the_o portuguese_v find_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o cochin_n coulan_n and_o cranganor_n du_n jarric_n observe_v their_o archbishop_n be_v india_n du_n jarric_n history_n of_o the_o east_n india_n cause_v to_o profess_v what_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n have_v decree_v touch_v the_o doctrine_n which_o must_v be_v hold_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n he_o mean_v without_o doubt_n that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o instruction_n give_v to_o the_o armenian_n in_o which_o we_o see_v the_o article_n of_o transubstantiation_n all_o which_o show_v we_o they_o well_o know_v the_o necessity_n there_o be_v of_o introduce_v transubstantiation_n into_o the_o nestorian_a church_n to_o make_v it_o conformable_a to_o the_o roman_a whence_o it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o conclude_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o establish_v in_o it_o before_o in_o effect_n have_v the_o emissary_n and_o other_o traveller_n into_o these_o country_n find_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n establish_v in_o they_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o they_o will_v have_v proclaim_v it_o to_o the_o world_n and_o make_v this_o a_o proof_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o that_o article_n mr._n arnaud_n will_v not_o have_v be_v reduce_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o draw_v a_o proof_n from_o their_o silence_n see_v they_o will_v have_v positive_o declare_v they_o find_v these_o people_n imbue_v with_o this_o sentiment_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o pope_n will_v have_v loud_o glory_v in_o it_o and_o certain_o there_o will_v have_v be_v some_o body_n or_o other_o that_o will_v have_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o protestant_n in_o europe_n but_o instead_o of_o this_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o emissary_n make_v mention_n of_o this_o pretend_a conformity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n philosophise_n upon_o their_o not_o charge_v the_o nestorian_n with_o their_o be_v calvinist_n and_o upon_o some_o passage_n of_o their_o liturgy_n which_o be_v very_o uncertain_a and_o which_o at_o bottom_n be_v of_o no_o consideration_n in_o respect_n of_o our_o difference_n leontius_n of_o byzanejus_n recite_v a_o discourse_n concern_v these_o nestorian_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v their_o opinion_n touch_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o be_v very_a earnest_n according_a to_o his_o relation_n 4._o leontius_n biz_n advers._fw-la nest_n &_o eutych_n lib._n 3._o bibl._n patr_n tom_fw-mi 4._o with_o a_o orthodox_n christian_n to_o communicate_v with_o they_o and_o this_o person_n tell_v they_o he_o can_v not_o have_v communion_n at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o they_o they_o answer_v he_o that_o this_o need_v not_o trouble_v he_o because_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v propose_v as_o a_o type_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n contain_v a_o great_a blessing_n than_o that_o sell_v in_o the_o market_n or_o the_o bread_n which_o the_o philomarianite_n offer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o mary_n it_o be_v apparent_o see_v these_o be_v not_o the_o expression_n of_o person_n that_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v this_o show_v they_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o effect_n from_o the_o consecration_n than_o that_o of_o a_o virtue_n of_o benediction_n or_o grace_n and_o it_o be_v also_o very_o remarkable_a that_o in_o this_o discourse_n they_o do_v not_o give_v any_o other_o title_n to_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n than_o that_o of_o the_o type_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o which_o they_o follow_v the_o expression_n of_o 508._o apud_fw-la cyrill_n alex._n contra_fw-la nest_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 6._o see_v the_o eight_o chapter_n wherein_o be_v several_a passage_n of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o nestorian_n and_o indian_n lib._n 5._o c._n 12._o p._n 508._o nestorius_n himself_o the_o author_n of_o their_o sect_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o original_a of_o it_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o figure_n which_o represent_v this_o body_n and_o thus_o far_o concern_v the_o nestorian_n as_o to_o the_o maronites_n their_o profession_n of_o obedience_n since_o so_o long_a a_o time_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n receive_v their_o patriarch_n from_o the_o pope_n do_v evident_o exclude_v they_o from_o this_o dispute_n yet_o we_o can_v but_o observe_v how_o little_a exact_a mr._n arnaud_n be_v when_o design_v to_o show_v that_o the_o maronites_n believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n even_o before_o their_o reunion_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v that_o thomas_n a_o jesus_n mention_n a_o extract_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n of_o the_o bad_a proposition_n they_o find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maronites_n among_o which_o they_o comprehend_v the_o different_a ceremony_n such_o as_o comunicate_v of_o both_o kind_n give_v the_o communion_n to_o child_n yet_o in_o this_o catalogue_n of_o suspect_a proposition_n there_o be_v not_o one_o relate_v to_o the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v certain_a mr._n arnaud_n be_v mistake_v have_v peruse_v this_o extract_n a_o little_a careless_o for_o otherwise_o he_o will_v have_v observe_v three_o proposition_n which_o evident_o show_v that_o these_o people_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n nor_o yet_o the_o substantial_a presence_n the_o first_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n dip_v the_o bread_n he_o give_v to_o judas_n to_o '_o the_o end_n he_o may_v thereby_o take_v off_o the_o consecration_n christus_fw-la intinxit_fw-la panem_fw-la quem_fw-la erat_fw-la judae_fw-la porrecturus_fw-la ad_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la tollendam_fw-la we_o have_v already_o observe_v that_o this_o error_n must_v be_v ground_v on_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o subject_a that_o receive_v grace_n as_o a_o quality_n which_o imprint_n its_o self_n in_o its_o substance_n and_o which_o may_v be_v efface_v in_o wash_v the_o bread_n for_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o have_v they_o believe_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o consecration_n be_v to_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o that_o of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o in_o dip_v the_o bread_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n will_v be_v wash_v off_o the_o ii_o proposition_n which_o the_o legate_n expunge_v out_o of_o the_o maronites_n book_n be_v that_o when_o we_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n it_o descend_v not_o into_o the_o stomach_n but_o immediate_o disperse_v itself_o to_o every_o member_n of_o our_o body_n this_o proposition_n be_v deem_v heretical_a and_o in_o effect_n we_o can_v believe_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n disperse_v its_o self_n to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o our_o body_n without_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n there_o be_v too_o many_o absurdity_n to_o make_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o christ_n body_n pass_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o flesh_n yet_o this_o sentiment_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o doctrine_n of_o damascene_fw-la who_o express_o assert_n that_o the_o sacrament_n pass_v 14_o damascen_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la fide_fw-la orthodox_n c._n 14_o into_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o
soul_n and_o body_n that_o it_o be_v neither_o consume_v or_o corrupt_v nor_o pass_v into_o excrement_n but_o into_o our_o substance_n and_o for_o our_o conservation_n we_o make_v use_v of_o this_o passage_n of_o damascene_fw-la to_o show_n he_o believe_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v a_o real_a substance_n of_o bread_n see_v it_o pass_v into_o that_o of_o our_o body_n mr._n arnaud_n deride_v this_o consequence_n do_v mr._n claude_n say_v he_o pretend_v that_o damascene_fw-la believe_v the_o eucharistical_a 4_o lib._n 7._o c._n 4_o bread_n pass_v into_o our_o soul_n to_o become_v a_o part_n of_o they_o sure_o he_o will_v not_o proceed_v so_o far_o how_o then_o will_v he_o conclude_v it_o enter_v into_o our_o body_n to_o become_v a_o part_n of_o their_o substance_n and_o why_o do_v he_o not_o conclude_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o as_o these_o word_n in_o consistentiam_fw-la animae_fw-la vadit_fw-la do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unite_v its_o self_n to_o the_o soul_n to_o conserve_v fortify_v and_o operate_v in_o it_o his_o grace_n so_o this_o expression_n in_o consistentiam_fw-la corporis_fw-la vadit_fw-la do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unite_v itself_o to_o our_o body_n to_z preserve_v and_o sow_v on_o they_o according_a to_o the_o father_n the_o seed_n of_o a_o glorious_a immortality_n but_o mr._n arnaud_n deceive_v himself_o not_o comprehend_v that_o according_a to_o damascene_fw-la and_o the_o greek_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o substance_n and_o the_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a virtue_n which_o be_v impart_v to_o it_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o consecration_n so_o that_o damascene_fw-la make_v a_o distribution_n of_o these_o two_o thing_n attribute_n one_o of_o they_o to_o the_o soul_n to_o wit_v the_o divine_a virtue_n and_o the_o other_a to_o the_o body_n to_o wit_v the_o substance_n and_o it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o this_o latter_a that_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o consume_v nor_o corrupt_v itself_o nor_o pass_v into_o excrement_n god_n forbid_v but_o pass_v into_o our_o substance_n and_o preservation_n he_o say_v express_o it_o pass_v into_o our_o substance_n why_o will_v not_o mr._n arnaud_n suffer_v i_o to_o say_v it_o after_o damascene_fw-la himself_z have_v he_o well_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n he_o will_v have_v find_v in_o they_o this_o distinction_n of_o two_o thing_n whereof_o the_o sacrament_n consist_v one_o of_o which_o respect_v immediate_o the_o body_n and_o the_o other_a immediate_o the_o soul_n under_o the_o new_a law_n say_v cyrill_a of_o jerusalem_n the_o heavenly_a bread_n and_o cup_n of_o salvation_n sanctify_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n for_o as_o the_o bread_n respect_v the_o body_n so_o the_o word_n that_o anapc●hal_o cyril_n hie_v cal._n mist_n 4._o epiphan_n in_o anapc●hal_o be_v to_o say_v the_o consecration_n perform_v by_o the_o word_n relate_v to_o the_o soul_n the_o bread_n say_v epiphanius_n be_v a_o aliment_n but_o there_o be_v in_o it_o a_o quicken_a virtue_n and_o origen_n before_o they_o distinguish_v the_o bread_n from_o the_o eucharist_n in_o respect_n of_o what_o it_o have_v material_a and_o in_o reference_n of_o the_o prayer_n say_v over_o 1●_n origen_n comm._n in_o matt._n 1●_n it_o the_o iii_o proposition_n censure_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maronites_n be_v contain_v in_o a_o article_n of_o the_o extract_n which_o have_v for_o its_o title_n nonnulla_fw-la loca_fw-la sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la prauè_fw-la intellecta_fw-la some_o place_n of_o scripture_n misunderstand_v and_o be_v thus_o describe_v asserunt_fw-la legendum_fw-la esse_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o affirm_v we_o must_v read_v this_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o my_o body_n etc._n etc._n will_v mr._n arnaud_n without_o prejudice_n or_o passion_n but_o consider_v a_o while_n the_o importance_n of_o this_o proposition_n for_o whether_o these_o people_n pretend_v we_o must_v read_v the_o text_n not_o this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o my_o body_n or_o mean_v only_o that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n we_o must_v give_v to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o title_n of_o the_o article_n insinuate_v be_v it_o possible_a that_o person_n who_o believe_v the_o substantial_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v either_o make_v this_o correction_n or_o seek_v this_o explication_n be_v there_o ever_o a_o one_o of_o the_o latin_n that_o ever_o have_v such_o a_o thought_n in_o his_o mind_n that_o we_o must_v not_o read_v this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o my_o body_n do_v they_o not_o all_o on_o the_o contrary_n affirm_v that_o we_o must_v keep_v strict_o to_o the_o literal_a sense_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n consult_v himself_o hereupon_o and_o tell_v we_o whether_o he_o can_v offer_v such_o a_o proposition_n and_o whether_o he_o will_v not_o esteem_v it_o scandalous_a and_o heretical_a shall_v any_o other_o propose_v it_o yet_o must_v we_o observe_v that_o thomas_n a_o jesus_n who_o recite_v the_o extract_n which_o the_o pope_n legate_n make_v say_v express_o that_o these_o proposition_n which_o they_o find_v in_o proper_a term_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maronites_n or_o receive_v by_o the_o public_a consent_n and_o by_o tradition_n and_o which_o they_o condemn_v as_o manifest_o heretical_a or_o erroneous_a or_o superstitious_a be_v error_n common_a to_o the_o other_o eastern_a nation_n so_o that_o what_o we_o now_o rehearse_v concern_v the_o maronites_n must_v be_v extend_v in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o schismatical_a church_n as_o to_o the_o passage_n relate_v by_o abraham_n echellensis_fw-la a_o maronite_n who_o be_v of_o the_o seminary_n at_o rome_n mr._n arnaud_n must_v bear_v with_o i_o if_o i_o tell_v he_o that_o consider_v the_o character_n which_o gabriel_n sionita_n give_v we_o of_o this_o person_n who_o he_o perfect_o know_v be_v both_o of_o the_o same_o country_n and_o have_v pass_v over_o a_o great_a part_n of_o their_o life_n be_v together_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v ashamed_a to_o offer_v any_o thing_n ground_v on_o these_o kind_n of_o testimony_n and_o to_o suppose_v we_o such_o fool_n to_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o relation_n of_o a_o man_n so_o cry_v down_o come_v we_o now_o to_o the_o jacobite_n coptic_o and_o ethiopian_n mr._n arnaud_n bring_v again_o upon_o the_o subject_a of_o these_o three_o church_n the_o same_o negative_a argument_n draw_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o author_n and_o emissary_n which_o he_o use_v in_o reference_n to_o the_o moscovite_n and_o nestorian_n so_o that_o we_o need_v do_v no_o more_o than_o to_o return_v the_o same_o answer_v already_o make_v and_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o these_o people_n have_v the_o same_o belief_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n several_a author_n and_o emissary_n will_v without_o doubt_n have_v inform_v the_o world_n thereof_o and_o make_v advantage_n of_o this_o conformity_n which_o they_o discover_v between_o the_o latin_n and_o they_o i_o shall_v tell_v he_o here_o again_o what_o he_o have_v be_v tell_v elsewhere_o that_o when_o the_o emissary_n be_v send_v to_o these_o people_n to_o instruct_v they_o they_o ever_o carry_v along_o with_o they_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n of_o clement_n vi_o which_o contain_v express_o the_o article_n of_o transubstantiation_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v send_v it_o to_o their_o patriarch_n and_o proselyte_n bishop_n and_o that_o when_o eugenius_n iv_o 1442._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1442._o reunite_v to_o the_o latin_a church_n john_n the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o jacobite_n he_o make_v he_o accept_v the_o decreee_v of_o the_o reunion_n of_o the_o armenian_n which_o contain_v in_o proper_a term_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o after_o all_o we_o may_v tell_v he_o it_o can_v be_v suppose_v the_o jacobite_n coptic_o or_o ethiopian_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n hold_v as_o they_o do_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o nature_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o divine_a according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o eutiche_n and_o dioscorus_n we_o can_v without_o charge_v they_o with_o the_o great_a absurdity_n suppose_v they_o believe_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v real_o convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n see_v they_o hold_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o a_o body_n there_o be_v only_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o he_o now_o that_o they_o hold_v this_o last_o error_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o infinite_a testimony_n nicephorus_n a_o greek_a historian_n affirm_v the_o jacobite_n assert_v tartar_n nicephor_n cali._n eccles_n hist_o lib._n 18._o cap._n 52._o the_o wonderful_a h●●t_n of_o the_o
that_o these_o people_n hold_v so_o monstrous_a a_o opinion_n whence_o come_v it_o that_o both_o ancient_n and_o modern_a author_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o it_o never_o examine_v the_o consequence_n of_o such_o a_o conversion_n have_v vehement_o argue_v against_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n into_o the_o divine_a to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a and_o not_o mention_v a_o word_n of_o this_o conversion_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o divinity_n how_o happen_v it_o the_o emissary_n never_o discover_v to_o the_o world_n so_o important_a a_o secret_a never_o dispute_v against_o they_o on_o this_o point_n nor_o the_o pope_n ever_o make_v they_o abjure_v such_o a_o absurd_a opinion_n in_o the_o reunion_n make_v between_o these_o people_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whence_o come_v it_o the_o greek_n who_o have_v be_v mixtwith_o they_o since_o so_o many_o age_n never_o reproach_v they_o with_o this_o kind_n of_o transubstantiation_n about_o which_o there_o may_v be_v great_a volume_n write_v mr._n arnaud_n who_o be_v so_o ready_a at_o argue_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o all_o these_o people_n author_n traveller_n emissary_n pope_n greek_n etc._n etc._n aught_o to_o inform_v we_o of_o the_o reason_n why_o not_o one_o of_o they_o have_v mention_v a_o word_n of_o this_o pretend_a change_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o divinity_n all_o this_o i_o think_v shall_v oblige_v mr._n arnaud_n to_o suspend_v a_o while_n his_o judgement_n touch_v mr._n picquet_n letter_n which_o say_v that_o all_o the_o levantine_n christian_n who_o be_v heretic_n and_o consequent_o such_o as_o have_v enter_v into_o a_o confederacy_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o hold_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o real_a presence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n he_o ought_v at_o least_o to_o desire_v he_o book_n the_o content_n of_o this_o letter_n be_v thus_o elate_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n in_o his_o 12_o book_n to_o consult_v what_o they_o mean_v in_o say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o the_o divine_a one_o and_o yet_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o be_v real_o change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o this_o aught_o to_o oblige_v he_o likewise_o not_o to_o draw_v so_o light_o his_o consequence_n from_o several_a passage_n of_o the_o liturgy_n which_o be_v attribute_v to_o these_o people_n wherein_o the_o eucharist_n be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o say_v to_o be_v true_o this_o body_n and_o this_o blood_n for_o beside_o that_o these_o expression_n import_v not_o transubstantiation_n as_o i_o have_v often_o prove_v and_o shall_v far_o prove_v in_o what_o follow_v it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n that_o these_o piece_n be_v real_a or_o faithful_o translate_v see_v that_o in_o those_o few_o passage_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n produce_v there_o may_v be_v observe_v a_o remarkable_a difference_n the_o liturgy_n which_o be_v in_o the_o biblictheca_n patrum_fw-la under_o the_o title_n of_o canon_n generalis_fw-la aethiopum_fw-la mention_n that_o the_o people_n say_v after_o the_o priest_n have_v consecrate_a amen_o amen_n amen_n credimus_fw-la &_o confidimus_fw-la &_o laudamus_fw-la te_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la hoc_fw-la verè_fw-la corpus_fw-la tuum_fw-la est_fw-la we_o believe_v it_o we_o trust_v in_o thou_o and_o praise_v thou_o o_o lord_n our_o god_n this_o be_v real_o thy_o body_n but_o athanasius_n kircher_n otherwise_o relate_v these_o word_n amen_o amen_n amen_n credimus_fw-la &_o confidimus_fw-la &_o laudamus_fw-la te_fw-la 518._o mr._n arnaud_n lib._n 5._o c._n 13._o p._n 518._o o_o domine_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la in_o veritate_fw-la credimus_fw-la caro_fw-la tua_fw-la we_o believe_v thou_o we_o trust_v in_o thou_o we_o praise_v thou_o o_o our_o god_n this_o we_o believe_v be_v thy_o flesh_n in_o truth_n in_o one_o place_n the_o people_n be_v make_v to_o say_v they_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v true_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o here_o that_o they_o believe_v it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o truth_n now_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o proposition_n for_o in_o one_o the_o adverb_n true_o refer_v to_o the_o body_n and_o in_o the_o other_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o people_n this_o alteration_n be_v not_o so_o inconsiderable_a but_o that_o we_o may_v see_v by_o this_o example_n that_o those_o who_o have_v give_v we_o this_o liturgy_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la have_v not_o scruple_v to_o accommodate_v their_o translation_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o wrest_v for_o this_o effect_n the_o term_n of_o the_o original_a i_o never_o say_v this_o whole_a piece_n be_v absolute_o fictitious_a as_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v but_o only_o that_o that_o passage_n which_o speak_v of_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o host_n be_v 516._o answer_v to_o the_o perp._n part_n 2._o c._n 8._o lib_fw-la 5._o c._n 13._o p._n 516._o a_o mere_a forgery_n and_o this_o we_o have_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o alvarez_n and_o zaga_n zabo_n one_o of_o which_o positive_o deny_v the_o ethiopian_n elevate_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o other_a declare_v they_o do_v not_o expose_v it_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o mr._n arnaud_n to_o endeavour_v to_o justify_v this_o alteration_n in_o say_v perhaps_o there_o be_v different_a ceremony_n in_o ethiopia_n that_o they_o elevate_v the_o sacrament_n in_o some_o place_n and_o not_o in_o other_o that_o they_o elevate_v it_o in_o a_o manner_n so_o little_a remarkable_a that_o it_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o alvarez_n and_o zaga_n zabo_n in_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o say_v they_o elevate_v it_o not_o at_o all_o that_o be_v they_o do_v not_o elevate_v it_o so_o high_a as_o to_o make_v it_o be_v see_v as_o be_v usual_a among_o the_o latin_n it_o be_v plain_o see_v these_o be_v mere_a subterfuges_n and_o vain_a conjecture_n have_v alvarez_n and_o zaga_n thus_o mean_v they_o will_v have_v so_o explain_v themselves_o and_o distinguish_v the_o place_n or_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o elevation_n whereas_o they_o speak_v absolute_o mr._n arnand_n do_v not_o know_v more_o than_o these_o two_o author_n and_o be_v he_o to_o correct_v or_o expound_v they_o he_o ought_v at_o least_o to_o offer_v something_o that_o may_v justify_v his_o correction_n or_o exposition_n we_o may_v confirm_v the_o testimony_n of_o alvarez_n and_o zaga_n zabo_n by_o that_o of_o montcony_n a_o traveller_n into_o those_o part_n who_o describe_v the_o mass_n of_o the_o coptic_o who_o as_o every_o body_n know_v be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o observe_v the_o same_o ceremony_n as_o the_o abyssins_n say_v express_o that_o they_o use_v no_o elevation_n it_o be_v then_o certain_a that_o this_o liturgy_n such_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la be_v a_o alter_a piece_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v insert_v in_o it_o without_o any_o mention_n whence_o it_o be_v take_v or_o who_o translate_v it_o as_o i_o already_o observe_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n yet_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o almighty_a take_v the_o crafty_a in_o their_o own_o net_n there_o be_v several_a thing_n leave_v untouched_a which_o do_v not_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n such_o as_o for_o instance_n be_v this_o prayer_n which_o the_o priest_n make_v after_o the_o consecration_n commemorate_n say_v he_o thy_o death_n and_o resurrection_n we_o offer_v thou_o this_o bread_n and_o 6._o missa_fw-la sive_fw-la canon_n univer_v aethiop_n bibl._n patr_n tom_n 6._o cup_n and_o give_v thou_o thanks_o inasmuch_o as_o that_o by_o this_o sacrifice_n thou_o have_v make_v we_o worthy_a to_o appear_v in_o thy_o presence_n and_o exercise_v this_o office_n of_o priesthood_n before_o thou_o we_o most_o earnest_o beseech_v thou_o o_o lord_n to_o send_v thy_o holy_a spirit_n on_o this_o bread_n and_o cup_n which_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n for_o ever_o do_v they_o understand_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o proper_a substance_n will_v they_o say_v to_o he_o himself_o that_o they_o offer_v to_o he_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n in_o commemoration_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o will_v it_o not_o likewise_o be_v impious_a to_o desire_v he_o to_o send_v on_o this_o bread_n and_o cup_n his_o holy_a spirit_n it_o be_v not_o to_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o that_o the_o latin_n do_v offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n those_o that_o believe_v the_o roman_a reality_n do_v not_o
express_v themselves_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n much_o less_o can_v they_o desire_v of_o he_o to_o send_v down_o his_o holy_a spirit_n on_o they_o for_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o it_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v the_o proper_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o latin_n understand_v it_o it_o be_v believe_v there_o be_v a_o fullness_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o they_o i_o can_v but_o here_o relate_v what_o mr._n faucheur_n have_v observe_v touch_v the_o egyptian_a liturgy_n common_o call_v st._n gregory_n by_o which_o will_v appear_v that_o the_o complaint_n we_o make_v concern_v these_o piece_n be_v not_o without_o cause_n the_o egyptian_a liturgy_n say_v he_o attribute_v to_o st._n gregory_n import_v i_o offer_v to_o thou_o o_o lord_n the_o symbol_n of_o my_o ransom_n for_o 6._o faucheur_n on_o the_o lord_n supper_n book_n 3._o c._n 6._o there_o be_v in_o the_o egyptian_a nicymbolon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o i_o have_v be_v inform_v by_o mr._n saumaise_n who_o have_v a_o ancient_a manuscript_n of_o it_o and_o not_o as_o victor_n scialach_n a_o maronite_n of_o mount_n libanus_n have_v translate_v it_o who_o be_v of_o the_o seminary_n at_o rome_n design_v by_o a_o notorion_n falsity_n to_o favour_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o adversary_n praecepta_fw-la liberationis_fw-la meae_fw-la but_o beside_o this_o way_n of_o corrupt_v the_o liturgy_n by_o false_a translation_n it_o be_v moreover_o true_a that_o when_o these_o levantine_n christian_n be_v reunite_v as_o they_o often_o have_v be_v with_o the_o latin_n the_o latin_n never_o fail_v to_o examine_v their_o book_n and_o take_v out_o of_o they_o whatsoever_o they_o find_v therein_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o example_n there_o have_v be_v insert_v in_o the_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o nestorian_a christian_n of_o mallabar_n but_o under_o this_o title_n correct_v and_o cleanse_v from_o the_o error_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o nestorian_n by_o the_o illustrious_a and_o reverend_a my_o lord_n alexius_n menenses_n archbishop_n of_o 6._o missa_fw-la christian_n apud_fw-la indos_n bibl._n patr_n tom_fw-mi 6._o ed._n 4._o ibid_fw-la bibl_n patr_n tom_fw-mi 6._o goa_n victor_n scialach_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o velserus_n on_o the_o egyptian_a liturgy_n call_v st._n basil_n gregorie_n and_o cyril_n say_v that_o the_o new_a manuscript_n have_v be_v correct_v by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n into_o who_o bosom_n as_o into_o that_o of_o a_o real_a mother_n the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n have_v late_o return_v under_o the_o popedom_n of_o clement_n viii_o there_o be_v all_o the_o likelihood_n in_o the_o world_n that_o this_o clause_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o egyptian_a liturgy_n of_o st._n basil_n and_o gregory_n of_o victor_n schialch_n translation_n and_o from_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n pretend_v to_o make_v advantage_n be_v a_o addition_n make_v thereunto_o by_o the_o latin_n in_o some_o one_o of_o these_o reunion_n for_o if_o we_o examine_v it_o well_o we_o shall_v easy_o find_v that_o it_o be_v a_o confession_n of_o the_o reality_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v a_o confession_n direct_o opposite_a to_o the_o error_n of_o the_o coptic_o who_o only_o acknowledge_v the_o divine_a nature_n observe_v here_o the_o term_n it_o be_v the_o sacred_a and_o everlasting_a body_n and_o the_o real_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n amen_o it_o be_v real_o the_o body_n of_o the_o emmanuel_n ibid._n ibid._n our_o god_n amen_o i_o believe_v i_o believe_v i_o believe_v and_o will_v confess_v till_o the_o last_o breath_n of_o my_o life_n that_o this_o be_v the_o live_a body_n which_o thy_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n god_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n take_v from_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o pure_a mary_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n our_o common_a lady_n and_o which_o he_o join_v to_o his_o divinity_n without_o conversion_n mixture_n or_o confusion_n i_o make_v the_o pure_a confession_n which_o he_o make_v before_o pontius_n pilate_n he_o give_v his_o body_n for_o we_o on_o the_o cross_n by_o his_o own_o will_n he_o have_v real_o assume_v this_o body_n for_o we_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o humanity_n be_v never_o separate_v from_o the_o divinity_n no_o not_o a_o moment_n and_o that_o he_o give_v his_o body_n to_o purchase_v salvation_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n for_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o there_o need_v no_o great_a study_n to_o find_v that_o the_o design_n of_o this_o whole_a prayer_n be_v to_o confess_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n and_o the_o reality_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o these_o word_n without_o conversion_n mixture_n or_o confusion_n be_v precise_o those_o which_o have_v be_v ever_o oppose_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o eutichiens_n with_o which_o the_o coptic_o be_v taint_v whereupon_o we_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o this_o be_v a_o addition_n of_o the_o latin_n who_o in_o reunite_a these_o people_n to_o themselves_o have_v insert_v in_o their_o very_a liturgy_n several_a clause_n express_o contrary_a to_o their_o old_a error_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o absolute_o bring_v they_o off_o from_o it_o let_v not_o mr._n arnaud_n then_o any_o long_a glory_n in_o these_o eastern_a liturgy_n for_o if_o we_o have_v they_o pure_a and_o sincere_a i_o do_v not_o question_v but_o we_o shall_v find_v several_a thing_n in_o they_o that_o do_v not_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o substantial_a presence_n nor_o with_o that_o of_o transubstantiation_n neither_o have_v he_o reason_n to_o brag_v of_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o church_n call_v schismatical_a with_o which_o pretence_n he_o will_v dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n upon_o a_o through_o consideration_n of_o what_o we_o have_v so_o farrepresent_v to_o he_o whether_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o greek_n or_o other_o christian_a church_n he_o must_v acknowledge_v he_o have_v overshoot_v himself_o and_o be_v too_o rash_a in_o his_o affirmation_n on_o this_o subject_a which_o i_o believe_v i_o have_v evident_o discover_v and_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o nothing_o can_v be_v allege_v against_o it_o i_o dare_v assure_v he_o he_o will_v find_v in_o this_o dispute_n no_o sophism_n on_o my_o part_n have_v proceed_v faithful_o and_o sincere_o in_o it_o i_o have_v take_v thing_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o their_o natural_a order_n i_o have_v offer_v nothing_o but_o upon_o good_a ground_n from_o testimony_n for_o the_o most_o part_n take_v out_o of_o author_n that_o be_v roman_a catholic_n i_o have_v never_o take_v mr._n arnaud_n word_n as_o i_o know_v of_o in_o any_o other_o sense_n than_o in_o that_o wherein_o he_o mean_v they_o i_o have_v follow_v he_o step_v by_o step_n as_o far_o as_o good_a order_n will_v permit_v i_o i_o have_v exact_o answer_v he_o without_o weaken_v his_o argument_n or_o proof_n or_o pass_v by_o any_o thing_n considerable_a in_o fine_a i_o have_v not_o offer_v any_o thing_n but_o what_o i_o myself_o before_o be_v convince_v and_o persuade_v to_o be_v true_a and_o i_o be_o much_o mistake_v if_o i_o have_v not_o reduce_v matter_n to_o that_o clearness_n that_o other_o will_v be_v no_o less_o persuade_v of_o what_o i_o say_v than_o myself_o chap._n vii_o mr._n arnaud_n 8_o the_o book_n touch_v the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o latin_n on_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n since_o the_o year_n 700._o till_o paschasius_n time_n examine_v the_o order_n of_o the_o dispute_n require_v that_o have_v refute_v as_o i_o have_v do_v the_o pretend_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n with_o the_o latin_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o substantial_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n i_o shall_v now_o apply_v myself_o to_o the_o examination_n of_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n allege_v touch_v the_o latin_n themselves_o from_o the_o 7_o the_o century_n till_o paschasius_n time_n exclusive_o that_o be_v to_o say_v till_o towards_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o nine_o and_o this_o be_v the_o design_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o 8_o the_o book_n and_o which_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o this_o of_o i_o but_o not_o to_o amuse_v the_o reader_n with_o fruitless_a matter_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o lay_v aside_o the_o first_o of_o his_o proof_n which_o be_v only_o a_o consequence_n draw_v from_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n with_o which_o the_o latin_a remain_v unite_v during_o those_o century_n whence_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v infer_v that_o the_o latin_a church_n have_v believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n see_v the_o greek_a church_n have_v hold_v these_o doctrine_n as_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v
the_o two_o language_n both_o of_o sense_n and_o of_o faith_n but_o that_o of_o faith_n do_v not_o contradict_v that_o of_o sense_n on_o the_o contrary_a faith_n receive_v the_o language_n of_o sense_n without_o explication_n and_o figure_n for_o whosoever_o say_v the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n which_o our_o eye_n likewise_o show_v we_o mean_v it_o be_v real_a bread_n and_o wine_n in_o substance_n for_o this_o our_o eye_n show_v we_o in_o a_o most_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n if_o st._n augustin_n and_o bede_n find_v some_o appearance_n of_o contrariety_n between_o the_o language_n of_o sense_n which_o bear_v it_o be_v bread_n and_o that_o of_o faith_n which_o will_v have_v this_o bread_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o difficulty_n lie_v not_o in_o the_o testimony_n of_o sense_n as_o if_o we_o need_v call_v its_o truth_n in_o question_n but_o in_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v flesh_n assume_v of_o the_o virgin_n which_o suffer_v the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v exalt_v up_o into_o heaven_n that_o bread_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o be_v this_o body_n this_o thought_n may_v arise_v say_v st._n augustin_n and_o bede_n after_o he_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o person_n we_o know_v whence_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v take_v his_o flesh_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n we_o know_v he_o be_v suckle_v in_o his_o infancy_n educate_v grow_v up_o in_o year_n suffer_v the_o persecution_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n put_v to_o death_n bury_v rise_v the_o three_o day_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n when_o he_o please_v whence_o he_o be_v to_o descend_v to_o judge_v both_o the_o live_n and_o dead_a and_o that_o he_o be_v now_o sit_v down_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n how_o then_o be_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o cup_n his_o blood_n they_o do_v not_o say_v how_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v what_o our_o sense_n assure_v we_o shall_v we_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o testimony_n on_o the_o contrary_n they_o suppose_v this_o testimony_n to_o be_v certain_a and_o ground_n the_o difficulty_n on_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o can_v be_v bread_n the_o explication_n of_o the_o difficulty_n and_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o the_o two_o proposition_n be_v not_o build_v on_o the_o error_n of_o the_o sense_n nor_o the_o interpretation_n which_o ought_v be_v give_v to_o their_o language_n in_o say_v the_o eucharist_n be_v call_v bread_n because_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o or_o because_o it_o be_v bread_n before_o its_o consecration_n but_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherein_o there_o be_v two_o idea_n both_o of_o they_o true_a the_o one_o of_o our_o sense_n and_o the_o other_o of_o our_o understanding_n my_o brethren_n say_v they_o these_o thing_n be_v call_v sacrament_n because_o we_o see_v therein_o one_o thing_n and_o understand_v another_o that_o which_o we_o see_v have_v a_o corporeal_a species_n that_o which_o we_o understand_v have_v a_o spiritual_a fruit._n as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v as_o to_o what_o concern_v our_o eyesight_n it_o be_v real_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o understanding_n it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o if_o there_o must_v be_v any_o thing_n figurative_a in_o either_o of_o the_o two_o proposition_n it_o must_v be_v in_o the_o language_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o in_o that_o of_o sense_n which_o bear_v neither_o difficulty_n nor_o exposition_n all_z that_o we_o can_v expect_v from_o they_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o author_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o century_n be_v that_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o this_o mystery_n according_a to_o faith_n and_o truth_n they_o shall_v explain_v themselves_o 739._o book_n 8._o ch._n 2._o p._n 739._o according_a to_o those_o term_n which_o plain_o and_o natural_o express_v it_o and_o which_o imprint_n the_o idea_n of_o it_o in_o all_o those_o which_o hear_v they_o literal_o that_o which_o may_v be_v expect_v from_o person_n believe_v and_o teach_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n whether_o it_o have_v be_v dispute_v on_o or_o no_o be_v that_o they_o declare_v it_o in_o precise_a and_o formal_a term_n which_o i_o have_v already_o show_v on_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o greek_n by_o this_o reason_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n determin_n the_o general_a sense_n of_o these_o expression_n the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o it_o give_v they_o a_o particular_a sense_n and_o form_n of_o itself_o a_o distinct_a and_o precise_a idea_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o when_o the_o question_n be_v about_o teach_v of_o it_o and_o a_o man_n have_v direct_o this_o intention_n he_o can_v but_o express_v it_o in_o clear_a and_o plain_a term_n which_o answer_v the_o idea_n he_o have_v of_o it_o and_o make_v thence_o the_o same_o to_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o hearer_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o this_o conversion_n and_o substantial_a presence_n be_v of_o themselves_o very_o difficult_a to_o be_v conceive_v and_o hard_a to_o be_v believe_v because_o all_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n be_v contrary_a to_o they_o and_o there_o be_v nothing_o convictive_a in_o holy_a scripture_n to_o establish_v '_o they_o how_o then_o can_v a_o man_n conceive_v that_o a_o church_n which_o hold_v they_o or_o design_n to_o preach_v they_o to_o its_o people_n do_v not_o explain_v itself_o about_o they_o at_o least_o in_o precise_a and_o formal_a expression_n reason_n force_v we_o to_o say_v she_o ought_v to_o endeavour_v to_o establish_v they_o by_o the_o strong_a proof_n she_o be_v able_a for_o suppose_v the_o school_n have_v never_o dispute_v concern_v they_o and_o no_o person_n have_v ever_o declare_v against_o they_o yet_o nature_n itself_o which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n do_v sufficient_o enough_o oppose_v they_o to_o oblige_v the_o church_n he_o speak_v of_o to_o defend_v they_o from_o their_o attack_n and_o fortify_v they_o against_o their_o opposition_n but_o grant_v mr._n arnaud_n the_o author_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o century_n be_v in_o this_o respect_n extreme_o negligent_a who_o can_v imagine_v they_o real_o intend_v to_o teach_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v real_o convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o they_o express_v themselves_o only_o by_o general_n and_o ambiguous_a term_n which_o need_v so_o many_o commentary_n and_o supplement_n but_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o be_v man_n and_o endue_v with_o humane_a inclination_n they_o have_v that_o also_o of_o abridge_n their_o 742._o ch._n 2._o p._n 742._o word_n and_o leave_v something_o to_o be_v supply_v by_o they_o to_o who_o they_o speak_v i_o know_v several_a people_n of_o a_o contrary_a humour_n and_o yet_o be_v man_n as_o appear_v by_o other_o humour_n they_o have_v but_o this_o proposition_n have_v no_o other_o foundation_n but_o mr._n arnaud_n imagination_n he_o offer_v it_o without_o any_o proof_n and_o i_o may_v reject_v it_o without_o far_a examine_v it_o yet_o let_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o in_o the_o explication_n of_o mystery_n of_o religion_n man_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o use_v these_o half_a sentence_n unless_o when_o they_o treat_v of_o a_o point_n indirect_o and_o occasional_o and_o not_o when_o they_o express_o and_o design_o fall_v upon_o the_o explain_n of_o what_o we_o must_v know_v and_o believe_v what_o strange_a kind_n of_o way_n than_o have_v they_o in_o those_o time_n to_o express_v themselves_o only_o in_o half_a sentence_n when_o they_o design_v to_o explain_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n this_o custom_n last_v a_o great_a while_n see_v it_o be_v so_o for_o near_o two_o hundred_o year_n and_o who_o tell_v mr._n arnaud_n the_o minister_n be_v not_o now_o and_o then_o tempt_v to_o assert_v thing_n clear_o and_o speak_v what_o they_o think_v or_o at_o least_o that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o weary_v with_o continual_a supply_n what_o be_v want_v in_o the_o expression_n of_o their_o minister_n or_o in_o fine_a that_o none_o of_o these_o custom_n be_v lose_v mr._n arnaud_n complain_v we_o make_v use_v of_o raillery_n sometime_o to_o refute_v he_o but_o why_o do_v he_o not_o then_o tell_v we_o thing_n less_o ridiculous_a for_o to_o speak_v sober_o to_o undertake_v to_o prove_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n by_o the_o silence_n of_o he_o that_o teach_v on_o one_o side_n and_o by_o the_o supplement_n of_o he_o that_o hearken_v on_o the_o other_o be_v not_o very_o rational_a yet_o to_o this_o pass_n may_v be_v reduce_v his_o manner_n
to_o express_v by_o these_o word_n the_o sense_n in_o which_o they_o have_v be_v effectual_o take_v by_o all_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o he_o than_o that_o in_o which_o they_o have_v be_v understand_v in_o these_o latter_a day_n by_o a_o few_o berengarian_a &_o calvinistical_a philosopher_n that_o he_o have_v right_a to_o suppose_v as_o a_o thing_n certain_a that_o since_o the_o seven_o century_n all_o christian_n throughout_o the_o whole_a earth_n have_v hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n and_o that_o this_o consent_n of_o all_o people_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v what_o the_o simple_a impression_n be_v and_o consequent_o the_o real_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v the_o summary_n of_o his_o first_o chapter_n the_o first_o reflection_n the_o design_n of_o this_o whole_a discourse_n tend_v to_o cast_v man_n into_o horrible_a confusion_n i_o grant_v our_o saviour_n intend_v not_o to_o speak_v so_o as_o to_o be_v understand_v only_o by_o philosopher_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o his_o religion_n shall_v be_v embrace_v by_o infinite_a number_n of_o ignorant_a people_n woman_n and_o child_n and_o person_n uncapable_a of_o deep_a reason_n but_o if_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n must_v be_v seek_v in_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o church_n these_o woman_n and_o child_n and_o ignorant_a people_n will_v be_v hard_o put_v to_o it_o to_o find_v it_o how_o few_o person_n be_v there_o capable_a of_o themselves_o to_o make_v this_o inquisition_n for_o which_o they_o must_v have_v skill_n in_o language_n read_v two_o hundred_o volume_n or_o more_o attentive_o examine_v they_o distinguish_v the_o time_n place_n and_o occasion_n consider_v the_o circumstance_n of_o passage_n and_o drift_n of_o author_n compare_v the_o various_a interpretation_n and_o do_v in_o a_o word_n a_o thousand_o thing_n necessary_a to_o prevent_v their_o take_v one_o thing_n for_o another_o and_o as_o for_o those_o that_o shall_v take_v this_o task_n upon_o they_o under_o the_o guidance_n of_o another_o how_o many_o cheat_n be_v they_o to_o beware_v of_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o false_a author_n impose_v upon_o they_o for_o true_a one_o forge_a write_n attribute_v to_o author_n or_o false_a passage_n corrupt_a translation_n and_o false_a explication_n to_o give_v they_o another_o sense_n than_o the_o natural_a one_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v impose_v on_o by_o captious_a arguing_n or_o frivolous_a answer_n yet_o well_o colour_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v tire_v with_o fruitless_a discourse_n to_o wear_v out_o their_o patience_n and_o attention_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n make_v they_o fall_v into_o the_o net_n all_o this_o have_v be_v hitherto_o do_v and_o i_o do_v not_o find_v such_o as_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o do_v amend_v whatsoever_o complaint_n have_v be_v make_v i_o grant_v one_o may_v find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n in_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o church_n but_o be_v it_o not_o a_o more_o short_a sure_a and_o easy_a way_n to_o seek_v it_o by_o consider_v the_o word_n themselves_o by_o compare_v they_o with_o other_o sacramental_a expression_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o ordinance_n which_o our_o saviour_n institute_v by_o the_o circumstance_n that_o accompany_v it_o the_o design_n he_o propose_v in_o it_o by_o his_o ordinary_a way_n of_o express_v himself_o by_o the_o other_o word_n he_o add_v by_o the_o sense_n wherein_o according_a to_o all_o probability_n his_o disciple_n understand_v he_o by_o the_o explanation_n which_o s._n paul_n give_v of_o it_o and_o in_o short_a by_o the_o genius_n and_o universal_a spirit_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n whether_o a_o man_n make_v this_o inquisition_n by_o himself_o or_o under_o the_o direction_n of_o another_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o way_n which_o we_o offer_v be_v far_o less_o troublesome_a and_o dangerous_a easy_a and_o better_o accommodate_v to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o common_a people_n than_o that_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o church_n mr._n arnaud_n suppose_v this_o consent_n from_o the_o seven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a because_o he_o believe_v he_o have_v prove_v it_o but_o be_v this_o supposition_n as_o certain_a and_o true_a in_o the_o main_a as_o it_o be_v false_a and_o imaginary_a it_o can_v reside_v no_o where_n but_o in_o the_o imagination_n of_o those_o that_o have_v read_v his_o book_n and_o how_o many_o be_v there_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o simple_a people_n that_o never_o read_v it_o of_o those_o among_o they_o that_o have_v read_v it_o how_o few_o have_v be_v capable_a to_o understand_v and_o judge_n of_o it_o be_v they_o able_a to_o discern_v whether_o his_o citation_n be_v true_a or_o no_o whether_o his_o passage_n be_v faithful_o translate_v his_o argument_n conclusive_a his_o attestation_n allowable_a and_o whether_o he_o have_v not_o conceal_v several_a thing_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v know_v on_o this_o subject_n for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v thorough_o inform_v in_o it_o after_o all_o reason_n require_v they_o to_o suspend_v their_o judgement_n till_o such_o time_n as_o they_o have_v see_v my_o answer_n and_o suppose_v my_o answer_n do_v not_o satisfy_v they_o how_o know_v they_o but_o that_o my_o weakness_n or_o ignorance_n have_v prejudice_v the_o cause_n i_o defend_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o these_o simple_a person_n if_o they_o will_v make_v it_o depend_v on_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o church_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n mr._n arnaud_n under_o pretence_n of_o search_v short_a way_n throws_z man_n into_o such_o labyrinth_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o get_v out_o second_o reflection_n i_o grant_v that_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n must_v be_v the_o simple_a and_o natural_a one_o we_o dispute_v touch_v this_o simple_a and_o natural_a sense_n mr._n arnaud_n will_v needs_o have_v it_o to_o be_v that_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n we_o affirm_v it_o be_v the_o sacramental_a or_o figurative_a one_o suppose_v we_o can_v not_o on_o either_o side_n find_v out_o this_o simple_a and_o natural_a impression_n which_o these_o word_n do_v of_o themselves_o make_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o our_o dispute_n and_o that_o we_o must_v go_v search_v it_o among_o those_o that_o be_v free_a from_o these_o prejudices_fw-la it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a we_o shall_v stop_v at_o those_o that_o live_v since_o the_o seven_o century_n till_o now_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o first_o six_o age_n we_o must_v on_o the_o contrary_n begin_v from_o the_o six_o first_o tradition_n say_v one_o not_o long_o since_o remark_n in_o the_o remark_n on_o the_o request_n of_o m._n de_fw-fr ambrun_n 9th_o remark_n who_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v regard_v must_v begin_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o pass_v on_o till_o this_o present_a by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n the_o first_o than_o that_o be_v to_o be_v consult_v for_o the_o find_v this_o simple_a impression_n must_v be_v the_o apostle_n that_o hear_v immediate_o these_o word_n from_o our_o lord_n own_o mouth_n we_o must_v search_v the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o see_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n that_o discover_v they_o take_v they_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n whether_o they_o have_v be_v surprise_v by_o any_o astonishment_n or_o ravish_v with_o admiration_n or_o trouble_v with_o some_o doubt_n whether_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o be_v imbue_v with_o principle_n on_o which_o this_o sense_n be_v establish_v as_o that_o a_o body_n shall_v be_v in_o several_a place_n at_o once_o and_o accident_n subsist_v without_o their_o substance_n etc._n etc._n and_o whether_o they_o be_v not_o on_o the_o contrary_n imbue_v with_o some_o maxim_n very_o opposite_a to_o this_o sense_n as_o for_o instance_n that_o to_o drink_v blood_n be_v a_o crime_n strict_o forbid_v by_o moses_n law_n that_o the_o sign_n be_v call_v after_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o signify_v and_o whether_o it_o appear_v from_o any_o of_o their_o word_n or_o action_n that_o they_o adore_v the_o eucharist_n and_o it_o be_v here_o i_o think_v we_o ought_v to_o begin_v and_o afterward_o come_v to_o s._n paul_n and_o examine_v whether_o in_o what_o he_o have_v say_v on_o this_o subject_n or_o any_o other_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n that_o show_v he_o believe_v transubstantiation_n we_o must_v afterward_o discuss_v age_n after_o age_n what_o the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o first_o century_n have_v write_v on_o it_o consult_v the_o commentary_n which_o they_o have_v express_o make_v on_o these_o word_n and_o in_o short_a endeavour_n by_o a_o attentive_a meditation_n thorough_o to_o discover_v their_o
reflection_n the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n will_v have_v the_o state_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o 11_o century_n when_o the_o contest_v of_o berengarius_fw-la happen_v to_o determine_v that_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n here_o mr._n arnaud_n pretend_v that_o the_o church_n consent_n since_o the_o seven_o century_n determine_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o first_o we_o have_v likewise_o see_v in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n that_o he_o assert_n that_o to_o judge_v right_o of_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n we_o must_v suppose_v they_o constant_o and_o universal_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o that_o this_o supposition_n must_v determine_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o word_n what_o can_v we_o think_v of_o all_o these_o circuit_n but_o that_o they_o be_v illusion_n which_o plain_o enough_o show_n that_o these_o gentleman_n find_v but_o small_a satisfaction_n in_o their_o inquiry_n into_o the_o first_o six_o age_n be_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n apparent_o teach_v in_o they_o what_o occasion_n will_v they_o have_v of_o make_v they_o enter_v by_o machine_n and_o mount_v up_o to_o they_o from_o the_o late_a age_n it_o be_v then_o certain_a that_o these_o way_n of_o reason_v these_o supposition_n and_o argument_n from_o the_o bottom_n to_o the_o top_n be_v so_o far_o from_o persuade_v we_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n desire_v that_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o do_v but_o more_o confirm_v we_o in_o our_o opinion_n which_o be_v that_o these_o doctrine_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o second_o reflection_n it_o be_v consonant_a to_o reason_n to_o imagine_v that_o in_o the_o last_o age_n the_o question_n whether_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o substance_n itself_o of_o our_o saviour_n body_n or_o not_o have_v be_v agitate_a with_o great_a heat_n those_o who_o hold_v the_o affirmative_a have_v abuse_v the_o general_a expression_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o endeavour_v to_o turn_v they_o to_o their_o sense_n this_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o happen_v every_o day_n in_o the_o small_a contest_v in_o which_o every_o one_o desire_n to_o set_v off_o his_o sentiment_n and_o confirm_v they_o by_o passage_n take_v out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o shelter_v himself_o thereby_o from_o the_o reproach_n of_o innovation_n it_o be_v likewise_o easy_a to_o imagine_v that_o those_o who_o but_o slight_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o study_n of_o theological_a point_n be_v soon_o cheat_v by_o false_a appearance_n we_o see_v but_o too_o many_o example_n of_o this_o it_o be_v in_o short_a easy_a to_o conceive_v that_o disciple_n may_v deviate_v from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o sense_n of_o their_o master_n under_o divers_a pretence_n the_o division_n of_o christian_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n have_v almost_o all_o of_o they_o happen_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o disciple_n be_v not_o content_a to_o keep_v pace_n with_o their_o master_n but_o have_v go_v beyond_o they_o and_o often_o overrhrow_v their_o real_a sentiment_n under_o pretence_n of_o explain_v and_o illustrate_v what_o they_o say_v with_o less_o perspicuity_n when_o scholar_n be_v become_v master_n they_o no_o long_o look_v upon_o themselves_o as_o scholar_n but_o doctor_n and_o in_o this_o quality_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o comprehend_v they_o may_v have_v new_a notion_n which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o establish_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o those_o that_o preee_v they_o and_o for_o this_o effect_n take_v their_o word_n in_o a_o contrary_a sense_n the_o people_n easy_o receive_v what_o their_o doctor_n teach_v they_o and_o as_o to_o the_o doctor_n there_o need_v no_o great_a number_n of_o they_o in_o a_o ignorant_a age_n to_o introduce_v a_o novelty_n one_o single_a person_n may_v sometime_o impose_v on_o a_o whole_a assembly_n and_o engage_v they_o into_o his_o opinion_n which_o afterward_o shall_v pass_v for_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n the_o three_o consequence_n mr._n arnavd_n three_o proposition_n be_v conceive_v in_o these_o term_n 3._o lib._n 10._o cap._n 3._o that_o all_o the_o several_a instance_n of_o expression_n produce_v by_o aubertin_n to_o show_v that_o a_o man_n may_v take_v in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n the_o passage_n by_o which_o the_o catholic_n establish_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n be_v in_o no_o wise_a alike_o to_o establish_v this_o proposition_n he_o say_v there_o be_v two_o way_n by_o which_o we_o may_v know_v whether_o the_o expression_n which_o appear_v at_o first_o alike_o be_v in_o effect_n different_a the_o first_o be_v to_o mark_v precise_o by_o reason_v the_o difference_n of_o these_o expression_n and_o to_o show_v they_o be_v not_o alike_o the_o second_o be_v to_o discern_v they_o by_o opinion_n by_o a_o simple_a view_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o by_o a_o impression_n which_o make_v itself_o feel_v although_o it_o can_v be_v express_v apply_v afterward_o this_o remark_n to_o his_o subject_n he_o say_v that_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n have_v be_v take_v in_o the_o ten_o last_o century_n in_o a_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o reality_n and_o the_o other_o have_v never_o be_v take_v but_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o see_v they_o have_v make_v such_o different_a impression_n and_o that_o opinion_n have_v so_o well_o distinguish_v they_o this_o be_v the_o summary_n of_o his_o three_o chapter_n the_o first_o reflection_n we_o be_v agree_v concern_v this_o manner_n of_o discern_v the_o expression_n and_o the_o thing_n themselves_o by_o opinion_n as_o well_o as_o by_o a_o exact_a remark_n of_o the_o difference_n which_o distinguish_v they_o but_o if_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v make_v a_o maxim_n of_o this_o which_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o principle_n to_o draw_v thence_o certain_a conclusion_n he_o must_v suppose_v that_o this_o sentiment_n or_o opinion_n can_v never_o be_v corrupt_v by_o false_a prejudices_fw-la nor_o ever_o be_v deceive_v by_o establish_v imaginary_a difference_n where_o there_o be_v no_o real_a one_o i_o grant_v that_o in_o the_o last_o age_n the_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n have_v be_v take_v in_o a_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n whereas_o never_o any_o man_n understand_v those_o which_o we_o say_v be_v alike_o but_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n this_o be_v a_o sign_n they_o be_v regard_v in_o those_o age_n as_o different_a expression_n but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v different_a in_o effect_n unless_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o sentiment_n of_o those_o century_n be_v infallible_a it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o believe_v that_o man_n may_v judge_v right_o in_o respect_n of_o one_o thing_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n fall_v into_o error_n in_o respect_n of_o another_o whatsoever_o conformity_n there_o may_v be_v between_o they_o a_o man_n may_v be_v sometime_o mistake_v by_o confound_v as_o if_o they_o be_v alike_o such_o expression_n as_o be_v not_o so_o and_o then_o again_o take_v for_o different_a expression_n such_o as_o be_v alike_o as_o we_o never_o pretend_v that_o the_o man_n of_o these_o late_a age_n be_v mistake_v in_o all_o thing_n so_o mr._n arnaud_n must_v not_o pretend_v they_o be_v right_a in_o every_o thing_n the_o second_o reflection_n the_o method_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n propose_v for_o the_o discern_a the_o different_a expression_n of_o the_o father_n from_o those_o which_o be_v alike_o be_v deceitful_a for_o if_o we_o must_v for_o this_o end_n rather_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o sentiment_n than_o that_o of_o reason_n it_o will_v be_v then_o at_o least_o just_a to_o consult_v the_o sentiment_n of_o those_o age_n wherein_o the_o father_n live_v and_o that_o of_o person_n to_o who_o they_o speak_v and_o not_o the_o sentiment_n of_o late_a age_n which_o may_v perhaps_o have_v be_v disturb_v by_o new_a notion_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n then_o show_v we_o if_o he_o please_v that_o in_o the_o first_o six_o age_n the_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v take_v in_o a_o sense_n of_o reality_n and_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o other_o which_o we_o produce_v as_o be_v alike_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n and_o we_o will_v see_v what_o use_n we_o must_v make_v of_o his_o rule_n but_o to_o seek_v this_o difference_n of_o impression_n or_o sentiment_n in_o age_n wherein_o we_o believe_v this_o doctrine_n be_v change_v will_v be_v a_o apparent_a deceive_a of_o ourselves_o see_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a but_o what_o he_o call_v the_o sentiment_n or_o impression_n have_v be_v alter_v by_o the_o change_n of_o doctrine_n the_o four_o consequence_n these_o three_o first_o consequence_n be_v attend_v by_o a_o four_o which_o be_v 4._o book_n 10._o
the_o most_o able_a divine_n of_o his_o own_o communion_n as_o well_o ancient_a as_o modern_a do_v free_o acknowledge_v that_o transubstantiation_n can_v be_v infer_v thence_o and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o oblige_v they_o to_o believe_v it_o but_o the_o church_n determination_n as_o to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o 6_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o be_v formal_a declaration_n touch_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n that_o a_o great_a many_o of_o the_o doctor_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o stick_v to_o affirm_v that_o these_o word_n do_v not_o at_o all_o relate_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n bellarmin_n reckon_v up_o six_o beside_o other_o namely_o biel_n cusanus_fw-la cajetan_n 30._o bellarm._n de_fw-fr euch._n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o albertin_n de_fw-fr sac._n euch._n l._n 1._o c._n 30._o tapper_n hesselius_n and_o jansemius_n but_o mr._n aubertin_n have_v compute_v they_o to_o be_v about_o thirty_o three_o which_o be_v in_o my_o mind_n sufficient_a to_o make_v mr._n arnaud_n comprehend_v that_o this_o chapter_n be_v not_o so_o formal_a nor_o evident_a for_o these_o doctrine_n as_o he_o imagine_v i_o shall_v not_o here_o take_v notice_n of_o what_o he_o allege_v concern_v those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n that_o such_o as_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o this_o cup_n unworthy_o be_v guilty_a of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n if_o he_o take_v these_o word_n for_o a_o evident_a declaration_n it_o be_v yet_o more_o evident_a that_o he_o be_v mistake_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n signify_v according_a to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v a_o murderer_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o be_v of_o consent_n with_o the_o jew_n that_o crucify_v he_o this_o be_v not_o very_o formal_a for_o transubstantiation_n what_o he_o say_v touch_v zuinglius_fw-la be_v not_o at_o all_o to_o the_o purpose_n zuinglius_fw-la be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n but_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o example_n of_o like_a phrase_n which_o be_v in_o scripture_n mr._n arnaud_n mention_n this_o only_a that_o he_o may_v bring_v in_o again_o this_o black_a or_o white_a spirit_n of_o which_o we_o have_v already_o discourse_v not_o only_o from_o passage_n out_o of_o cicero_n and_o catullus_n but_o also_o out_o of_o apuleus_n and_o s._n jerom_n himself_o so_o that_o this_o must_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o impertinent_a and_o tiresome_a mr._n arnaud_n passion_n herein_o appear_v in_o that_o zuinglius_fw-la have_v only_o say_v that_o some_o body_n appear_v to_o he_o in_o a_o dream_n to_o advertise_v he_o visus_fw-la est_fw-la monitor_fw-la adesse_fw-la he_o will_v needs_o have_v this_o monitor_n to_o be_v a_o spirit_n neither_o be_v there_o less_o ignorance_n in_o raise_v from_o a_o proverbial_a way_n of_o speak_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n after_o fuerit_fw-la a_o albus_fw-la nihil_fw-la memini_fw-la which_o signify_v that_o we_o know_v not_o a_o man_n we_o never_o see_v his_o face_n rhi_v proposition_n that_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o white_a spirit_n or_o a_o black_a one_o can_v mr._n arnaud_n better_a spend_v his_o time_n than_o in_o hunt_v after_o these_o trifle_n but_o say_v he_o the_o first_o idea_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v very_o favourable_a to_o the_o catholic_n it_o be_v favourable_a by_o a_o effect_n of_o prejudice_n i_o grant_v but_o let_v a_o man_n take_v off_o this_o vail_n from_o his_o mind_n and_o represent_v to_o himself_o our_o saviour_n in_o his_o natural_a body_n on_o one_o side_n and_o the_o eucharistical_a bread_n on_o the_o other_o two_o visible_a object_n real_o distinct_a and_o local_o separate_v from_o one_o another_o and_o judge_v in_o this_o case_n whether_o the_o first_o idea_n of_o these_o word_n rather_o refer_v to_o a_o transubstantiation_n of_o one_o of_o these_o object_n into_o the_o other_o or_o to_o a_o sacramental_a sense_n the_o first_o idea_n from_o word_n do_v not_o always_o arise_v from_o the_o literal_a signification_n of_o they_o but_o from_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n and_o circumstance_n of_o a_o discourse_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o form_n the_o first_o idea_n as_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o infinite_a instance_n shall_v mr._n arnaud_n question_v it_o now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n all_o these_o thing_n do_v joint_o concur_v to_o give_v they_o natural_o a_o mystical_a or_o figurative_a sense_n all_o nation_n say_v he_o have_v take_v they_o in_o this_o sense_n all_o nation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o latin_n since_o gregory_n vii_o and_o innocent_a iii_o and_o yet_o not_o all_o of_o they_o neither_o this_o be_v a_o supposition_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v right_a to_o make_v when_o he_o can_v better_o prove_v it_o but_o suppose_v it_o be_v true_a as_o he_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o since_o a_o thousand_o year_n all_o nation_n take_v they_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o will_v not_o hence_o follow_v that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o idea_n of_o these_o word_n nor_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v right_a to_o suppose_v without_o any_o other_o proof_n that_o her_o doctrine_n be_v clear_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o all_o nation_n to_o fall_v into_o a_o error_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o certain_a word_n be_v engage_v in_o it_o through_o surprisal_n and_o afterward_o remain_v therein_o by_o prejudice_n and_o interest_n and_o in_o this_o case_n every_o man_n see_v that_o this_o pretend_a clearness_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n boast_v of_o can_v be_v just_o suppose_v in_o fine_a suppose_v it_o be_v true_a the_o first_o idea_n of_o these_o word_n be_v very_o favourable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o all_o nation_n since_o a_o thousand_o year_n follow_v this_o first_o idea_n mr._n arnaud_n can_v not_o hinder_v i_o from_o say_v there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n any_o formal_a declaration_n touch_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o this_o he_o well_o know_v himself_o but_o that_o he_o may_v take_v his_o full_a carrier_n he_o imagine_v it_o be_v his_o best_a way_n in_o recite_v the_o passage_n of_o my_o answer_n on_o which_o he_o ground_n his_o invective_n to_o eclipse_v these_o expression_n from_o it_o by_o some_o formal_a declaration_n of_o his_o word_n because_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o my_o sense_n in_o they_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conversion_n and_o substantial_a presence_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o express_a term_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o be_v to_o be_v draw_v thence_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n which_o be_v most_o true_a who_o 3._o answer_v to_o the_o second_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpituity_n part_v 1._o ch_z 3._o will_v believe_v say_v i_o if_o they_o be_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v leave_v they_o as_o a_o prey_n to_o the_o contradiction_n of_o reason_n and_o sense_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v arm_v against_o they_o without_o strengthen_v they_o with_o his_o protection_n by_o some_o formal_a declaration_n of_o his_o word_n who_o will_v believe_v that_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n etc._n etc._n and_o here_o observe_v how_o mr._n arnaud_n cite_v they_o who_o will_v believe_v that_o if_o they_o be_v of_o god_n he_o will_v leave_v they_o as_o a_o prey_n to_o the_o contradiction_n of_o reason_n and_o sense_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v arm_v against_o they_o without_o strengthen_v they_o with_o his_o protection_n who_o will_v believe_v that_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n etc._n etc._n mr._n arnaud_n have_v not_o only_o the_o right_n of_o suppose_v without_o proof_n what_o he_o please_v but_o that_o of_o maim_v such_o passage_n as_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o to_o allege_v that_o which_o precede_v and_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o suppress_v betwixt_o both_o whole_a clause_n because_o they_o take_v from_o he_o all_o pretence_n of_o declaim_v it_o be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o right_n that_o he_o think_v he_o may_v lay_v aside_o that_o which_o i_o add_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o this_o passage_n say_v what_o you_o will_v of_o it_o i_o can_v believe_v but_o this_o silence_n disquiet_v you_o especial_o if_o you_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n four_o different_a occasion_n wherein_o according_a to_o all_o appearance_n transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v to_o be_v find_v distinct_o assert_v this_o distinct_o assert_v not_o well_o relish_v with_o mr._n arnaud_n he_o have_v end_v his_o citation_n in_o these_o word_n say_v what_o you_o will_v of_o it_o i_o can_v believe_v but_o this_o silence_n sufficient_o perplex_v you_o this_o privilege_n of_o curtail_v and_o suppress_v be_v insupportable_a in_o another_o but_o what_o ought_v we_o not_o to_o yield_v to_o mr._n arnaud_n especial_o consider_v
how_o well_o he_o have_v copy_v out_o from_o allatius_n and_o raynaldus_n and_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_n believe_v transubstantiation_n have_v he_o not_o maim_v and_o suppress_v that_o which_o perplex_v he_o in_o my_o book_n i_o never_o shall_v have_v have_v the_o pleasure_n of_o see_v myself_o bring_v into_o his_o chapter_n by_o a_o excellent_a figure_n of_o rheotorick_n speak_v in_o this_o manner_n all_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n be_v persuade_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v contain_v 43._o lib._n 10._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 43._o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o those_o of_o s._n paul_n but_o i_o claud_n declare_v it_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o they_o and_o confirm_v my_o assertion_n by_o my_o own_o authority_n this_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o eloquence_n and_o ingenuity_n the_o five_o reflection_n mr._n arnaud_v be_v not_o content_a to_o gather_v for_o himself_o alone_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o victory_n he_o be_v willing_a to_o bring_v in_o the_o sociniens_fw-la for_o a_o share_n with_o he_o and_o his_o conception_n on_o this_o subject_n be_v remarkable_a i_o bring_v some_o proof_n draw_v from_o scripture_n touch_v the_o trinity_n to_o show_v in_o what_o manner_n this_o mystery_n be_v assert_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n these_o say_v he_o be_v only_a supposition_n without_o proof_n this_o be_v certain_o absurd_a enough_o to_o call_v proof_n and_o such_o 45._o ch_n 6._o p._n 44_o 45._o proof_n too_o as_o be_v draw_v from_o scripture_n supposition_n without_o proof_n they_o will_v be_v say_v he_o again_o very_o rational_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o catholic_n because_o be_v accompany_v these_o proof_n with_o the_o public_a sense_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o tradition_n but_o these_o same_o proof_n be_v extreme_o weak_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o calvinist_n without_o authority_n and_o possession_n and_o who_o renounce_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n authority_n this_o proposition_n surprise_v i_o the_o proof_n of_o scripture_n touch_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n will_v be_v of_o no_o validity_n but_o weak_a proof_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n without_o the_o benefit_n of_o tradition_n and_o all_o their_o evidence_n and_o strength_n must_v depend_v on_o the_o public_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n hoc_fw-la magno_fw-la mercentur_fw-la atridae_n the_o arian_n and_o sociniens_fw-la be_v much_o oblige_v to_o mr._n arnaud_n but_o this_o be_v not_o s._n augustine_n sentiment_n when_o dispute_v against_o maximus_n a_o arian_n bishop_n he_o tell_v he_o i_o must_v not_o allege_v to_o you_o the_o council_n 14._o aug._n lib._n 3._o cont_n maxim_n cap._n 14._o of_o nice_a nor_o you_o to_o i_o that_o of_o ariminis_fw-la for_o as_o i_o be_o not_o oblige_v to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o last_o so_o neither_o be_v you_o bind_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o first_o but_o proceed_v we_o on_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v a_o common_a witness_n for_o we_o both_o oppose_v we_o cause_v to_o cause_n and_o reason_n to_o reason_n shall_v mr._n arnaud_n principle_n take_v place_n s._n austin_n will_v have_v be_v guilty_a of_o a_o great_a imprudence_n thus_o to_o lay_v aside_o the_o public_a sense_n and_o tradition_n and_o whole_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v the_o proof_n take_v thence_o concern_v the_o trinity_n be_v weak_a yea_o even_o infinite_o weak_a separate_v from_o tradition_n and_o the_o church_n authority_n what_o answer_n will_v mr._n arnaud_n make_v a_o socinien_n when_o he_o shall_v say_v we_o must_v not_o value_v this_o public_a sense_n and_o tradition_n which_o be_v in_o itself_o ground_v on_o weak_a proof_n for_o after_o all_o why_o have_v the_o public_a intelligence_n take_v the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o sense_n if_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o sense_n be_v so_o slight_a in_o themselves_o it_o be_v neither_o rash_o nor_o enthusiastical_o nor_o without_o just_a ground_n that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v find_v on_o this_o side_n but_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o if_o the_o proof_n draw_v from_o holy_a scripture_n to_o ground_v this_o sense_n on_o be_v in_o themselves_o extreme_a weak_a mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o consider_v that_o he_o not_o only_o give_v the_o sociniens_fw-la a_o unjust_a advantage_n but_o likewise_o ruin_n himself_o his_o own_o principle_n as_o fast_o as_o he_o think_v he_o establish_v it_o he_o say_v that_o i_o suppose_v my_o passage_n concern_v the_o trinity_n be_v unanswerable_a when_o a_o socinien_n shall_v reply_v thereunto_o we_o shall_v have_v enough_o to_o show_v that_o his_o answer_n be_v vain_a and_o yet_o i_o shall_v have_v right_a to_o suppose_v the_o solidity_n of_o my_o proof_n till_o these_o pretend_a reply_n come_v he_o add_v that_o i_o suppose_v the_o sociniens_fw-la object_v not_o any_o contrary_a passage_n which_o be_v what_o i_o do_v not_o suppose_v but_o i_o suppose_v they_o can_v object_v any_o that_o can_v prevail_v over_o those_o i_o offer_v i_o have_v reason_n to_o suppose_v it_o without_o be_v oblige_v to_o discuss_v either_o their_o answer_n or_o objection_n if_o mr._n arnaud_n observation_n must_v be_v a_o rule_n why_o have_v he_o contrary_a thereunto_o write_v this_o 10_o book_n which_o be_v only_o ground_v on_o a_o supposition_n he_o suppose_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n imagine_v he_o have_v well_o prove_v they_o but_o i_o need_v only_a mind_n he_o of_o his_o own_o remark_n and_o tell_v he_o he_o suppose_v 1._o that_o his_o proof_n be_v unanswerable_a 2._o that_o we_o will_v not_o offer_v contrary_a one_o against_o they_o and_o consequent_o his_o supposition_n be_v faulty_a if_o he_o answer_v it_o belong_v to_o i_o to_o make_v my_o reply_n and_o produce_v my_o objection_n and_o that_o till_o than_o his_o supposition_n hold_v good_a let_v he_o take_v the_o same_o answer_n from_o i_o on_o the_o subject_n here_o in_o question_n he_o say_v in_o fine_a that_o i_o suppose_v reason_n remain_v neuter_n content_v itself_o without_o teach_v the_o trinity_n and_o approve_v on_o the_o contrary_a certain_a truth_n which_o have_v a_o natural_a coheherence_n with_o that_o particular_a one_o that_o i_o suppress_v this_o infinite_a crowd_n of_o difficulty_n wherewith_o reason_n furnish_v those_o against_o this_o article_n who_o take_v this_o dangerous_a way_n whereby_o to_o judge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n a_o man_n that_o so_o confident_o blame_v supposition_n ought_v not_o to_o make_v such_o a_o terrible_a one_o as_o this_o be_v without_o ground_v it_o at_o least_o on_o some_o proof_n that_o reason_n furnish_v we_o with_o a_o infinite_a crowd_n of_o difficulty_n against_o the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o objection_n make_v against_o this_o mystery_n proceed_v either_o from_o the_o weakness_n or_o corruption_n of_o reason_n rather_o than_o from_o reason_n itself_o and_o i_o confess_v there_o be_v of_o this_o kind_n not_o a_o crowd_n of_o difficulty_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n exaggerate_v it_o but_o some_o that_o may_v perplex_v a_o man_n mind_n so_o likewise_o do_v i_o never_o suppose_v this_o article_n be_v whole_o exempt_a from_o they_o i_o have_v on_o the_o contrary_a formal_o acknowledge_v they_o but_o to_o say_v no_o more_o there_o needs_o only_o be_v read_v what_o i_o write_v on_o this_o subject_n to_o find_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n can_v not_o worse_o disengage_v himself_o from_o this_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n have_v leave_v it_o untouched_a in_o its_o full_a strength_n especial_o let_v any_o one_o read_v the_o place_n wherein_o i_o establish_v by_o scripture_n the_o divinity_n of_o the_o three_o person_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o judge_v whither_o it_o be_v wise_o say_v that_o i_o ruin_v the_o sociniens_fw-la without_o redemption_n but_o it_o be_v by_o such_o a_o way_n as_o will_v rather_o make_v they_o laugh_v than_o change_v their_o mind_n this_o discourse_n be_v not_o very_a edify_n and_o be_v perhaps_o capable_a of_o a_o sense_n which_o will_v not_o be_v to_o mr._n arnaud_n advantage_n but_o it_o be_v better_a to_o pass_v on_o to_o his_o six_o consequence_n the_o six_o consequence_n that_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n help_v we_o to_o distinguish_v the_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o these_o doctrine_n from_o those_o which_o be_v not_o so_o and_o by_o this_o mean_n show_v the_o falsity_n of_o several_a of_o the_o minister_n argument_n the_o first_o reflection_n we_o grant_v there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o a_o doctrine_n and_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o consequence_n of_o congruity_n which_o be_v not_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n but_o to_o make_v a_o good_a use_n of_o this_o
distinction_n it_o must_v be_v attend_v by_o these_o follow_a observation_n 1._o that_o the_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o consequence_n of_o congruity_n have_v more_o or_o less_o force_n according_a as_o the_o consequence_n themselves_o have_v more_o or_o less_o natural_a coherence_n with_o the_o doctrine_n in_o question_n 2._o that_o when_o a_o consequence_n seem_v to_o be_v natural_a and_o be_v confirm_v moreover_o by_o experience_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o the_o refute_v the_o argument_n draw_v thence_o bare_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o consequence_n of_o congruity_n which_o have_v not_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n we_o must_v either_o oppose_v against_o it_o contrary_a proof_n that_o be_v strong_a and_o which_o can_v be_v confute_v by_o these_o sort_n of_o argument_n take_v from_o consequence_n how_o natural_a soever_o they_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v or_o oppose_v against_o they_o a_o contrary_a experience_n or_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o these_o consequence_n can_v take_v place_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n discover_v the_o obstacle_n which_o have_v impede_v they_o 3._o that_o the_o argument_n become_v very_o strong_a when_o it_o be_v draw_v from_o a_o great_a number_n of_o these_o consequence_n it_o be_v very_o unlikely_a but_o nature_n have_v produce_v her_o effect_n in_o respect_n of_o some_o of_o '_o they_o 4._o that_o when_o the_o natural_a consequence_n of_o a_o doctrine_n do_v not_o appear_v at_o certain_a time_n or_o in_o certain_a place_n there_o must_v therein_o at_o least_o appear_v other_o equivalent_a one_o which_o be_v instead_o of_o those_o it_o be_v scarce_o possible_a for_o nature_n to_o remain_v absolute_o without_o effect_n to_o apply_v now_o these_o observation_n to_o the_o minister_n way_n of_o argue_v i_o i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a consequence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n to_o find_v contradiction_n in_o man_n mind_n and_o produce_v dispute_n and_o controversy_n among_o they_o experience_n confirm_v it_o since_o the_o 11_o century_n to_o this_o present_a we_o may_v then_o draw_v a_o great_a proof_n that_o the_o ancient_a church_n hold_v not_o this_o doctrine_n in_o that_o she_o remain_v in_o peace_n concern_v this_o subject_n till_o paschasius_n time_n although_o there_o be_v otherwise_o controversy_n touch_v almost_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o relate_n of_o this_o argument_n to_o answer_v as_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v that_o this_o be_v only_o a_o consequence_n of_o congruity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v natural_a enough_o for_o people_n not_o to_o rise_v up_o against_o this_o doctrine_n when_o the_o custom_n of_o faith_n have_v supple_v man_n mind_n into_o docility_n towards_o this_o mystery_n i_o will_v answer_v he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o natural_a to_o suppose_v this_o docility_n in_o all_o man_n mind_n for_o eight_o hundred_o year_n together_o in_o relation_n to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n that_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_a very_o natural_a not_o to_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v in_o all_o and_o that_o that_o which_o he_o call_v the_o custom_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o usual_o incline_v man_n mind_n to_o this_o docility_n till_o after_o several_a contradiction_n and_o repugnancy_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o have_v this_o difficulty_n he_o must_v then_o offer_v against_o this_o argument_n strong_a and_o convince_a proof_n by_o which_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n hold_v this_o doctrine_n or_o instance_n in_o some_o doctrine_n as_o difficult_a as_o transubstantiation_n that_o be_v never_o controvert_v or_o in_o fine_a give_v a_o reason_n why_o this_o consequence_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v such_o a_o natural_a one_o yet_o have_v have_v no_o place_n during_o eight_o hundred_o year_n it_o be_v also_o a_o consequence_n natural_a enough_o of_o transubstantiation_n that_o it_o be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v establish_v by_o sensible_a miracle_n for_o miracle_n be_v one_o of_o of_o the_o chief_a instrument_n by_o which_o man_n mind_n may_v be_v mollify_v towards_o this_o docility_n of_o faith_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n mention_n experience_n confirm_v this_o since_o paschasius_fw-la his_o time_n to_o this_o present_a we_o may_v then_o very_o well_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n and_o conclude_v that_o these_o miracle_n appear_v only_o since_o the_o 9th_o century_n it_o be_v most_o probable_a that_o be_v the_o time_n wherein_o transubstantiation_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o confute_v of_o this_o argument_n to_o say_v this_o be_v not_o a_o consequence_n absolute_o necessary_a for_o although_o this_o be_v true_a yet_o that_o be_v a_o consequence_n natural_a enough_o be_v ground_v on_o experience_n it_o be_v moreover_o a_o consequence_n natural_a enough_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o confirm_v by_o experience_n not_o to_o expose_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o christ_n blood_n to_o the_o inconvenience_n which_o attend_v the_o custom_n of_o communicate_v of_o both_o kind_n and_o consequent_o not_o to_o admit_v people_n indifferent_o to_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o cup._n as_o we_o find_v not_o this_o consequence_n in_o the_o first_o century_n and_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o latter_a we_o may_v make_v hence_o a_o probable_a conjecture_n concern_v the_o change_n that_o have_v be_v introduce_v in_o respect_n of_o this_o doctrine_n for_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o during_o so_o long_a a_o time_n man_n be_v not_o trouble_v with_o these_o inconvenience_n which_o be_v so_o ordinary_a and_o resolve_v at_o length_n to_o remedy_v they_o to_o say_v hereupon_o that_o they_o communicate_v of_o both_o kind_n to_o imprint_v more_o deep_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o communicant_n by_o the_o representation_n of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v as_o much_o as_o amount_n to_o nothing_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o inconvenience_n be_v far_o strong_a than_o this_o other_o contrary_a reason_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n since_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n a_o man_z may_v likewise_o strong_o argue_v from_o the_o common_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o which_o she_o show_v that_o she_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n with_o a_o adoration_n of_o latria_fw-la hereby_o to_o declare_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n do_v not_o adore_v it_o see_v she_o have_v none_o of_o these_o custom_n for_o although_o each_o of_o these_o practice_n have_v only_o a_o link_n of_o simple_a congruity_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o adoration_n yet_o be_v it_o no_o way_n likely_a but_o the_o greek_a church_n will_v practice_v some_o of_o they_o or_o at_o least_o other_o equivalent_a to_o they_o that_o be_v as_o significant_a to_o testify_v open_o the_o act_n of_o adoration_n this_o then_o be_v no_o satisfactory_a answer_n but_o a_o mere_a evasion_n to_o say_v that_o these_o be_v only_a consequence_n of_o congruity_n the_o second_o reflection_n as_o fast_o as_o we_o establish_v the_o solidity_n of_o these_o argument_n draw_v from_o consequence_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o observe_v mr._n arnaud_n illusion_n we_o make_v use_v of_o these_o proof_n on_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o ancient_a church_n believe_v transubstantiation_n to_o show_v she_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o or_o on_o the_o question_n which_o respect_v the_o schismatical_a church_n to_o show_v that_o they_o hold_v not_o transubstantiation_n neither_o nor_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n mr._n arnaud_n have_v shun_v to_o touch_v on_o these_o proof_n whilst_o he_o treat_v on_o these_o question_n he_o have_v reserve_v himself_o to_o refute_v they_o by_o way_n of_o consequence_n in_o his_o 10_o book_n wherein_o he_o suppose_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o nation_n since_o the_o seven_o century_n to_o this_o present_a whereas_o we_o say_v for_o instance_n that_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n because_o we_o find_v not_o among_o they_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n mr._n arnaud_n pervert_v this_o order_n and_o say_v that_o our_o argument_n draw_v from_o these_o consequence_n be_v invalid_a because_o the_o greek_n who_o believe_v transubstantiation_n according_a to_o the_o supposition_n which_o he_o make_v of_o they_o admit_v not_o these_o consequence_n i_o confess_v this_o circuit_n be_v a_o very_a dexterous_a one_o but_o by_o how_o much_o the_o great_a art_n there_o be_v in_o it_o by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o plain_o do_v he_o discover_v the_o strength_n of_o our_o argument_n see_v mr._n arnaud_n be_v force_v to_o elude_v they_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o seven_o consequence_n mr._n arnavd_n seven_o consequence_n be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o 8._o chap._n 8._o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n do_v not_o of_o itself_o lead_v a_o man_n to_o the_o discourse_v of_o philosophical_a consequence_n nor_o upon_o explain_v the_o
difficulty_n of_o this_o mystery_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o the_o father_n never_o take_v notice_n of_o '_o they_o reflection_n we_o have_v already_o refute_v this_o opposition_n and_o it_o only_o remain_v that_o we_o observe_v here_o again_o mr._n arnaud_n illusion_n who_o to_o answer_v the_o proof_n draw_v from_o the_o consequence_n which_o he_o call_v philosophical_a one_o such_o as_o be_v the_o existence_n of_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_n the_o existence_n of_o a_o body_n in_o divers_a place_n at_o once_o the_o concomitance_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o schismatical_a church_n suppose_v first_o that_o these_o church_n do_v firm_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o conclude_v afterward_o that_o our_o proof_n mus●_n need_v be_v invalid_a see_v here_o be_v the_o greek_n armenian_n and_o coptic_o etc._n etc._n who_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o these_o difficulty_n so_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n there_o be_v no_o argument_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n can_v easy_o answer_v we_o have_v likewise_o refute_v particular_o what_o he_o offer_v touch_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o his_o 9th_o chapter_n and_o as_o to_o what_o he_o allege_v in_o the_o 10_o touch_v the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o change_n which_o we_o maintain_v we_o will_v treat_v thereof_o in_o this_o follow_a book_n book_n vi._n concern_v the_o change_n which_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o this_o change_n be_v not_o impossible_a and_o that_o it_o have_v effectual_o happen_v chap._n i._n the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n touch_v the_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o presence_n or_o real_a absence_n design_v particular_o to_o treat_v in_o this_o 6_o and_o last_o book_n of_o the_o change_n which_o have_v happen_v according_a to_o we_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n i_o can_v not_o better_o begin_v it_o than_o by_o the_o question_n whether_o man_n ever_o have_v a_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o presence_n or_o real_a absence_n this_o distinct_a knowledge_n be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a mean_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v make_v use_n of_o to_o show_v that_o the_o change_n which_o we_o suppose_v be_v impossible_a it_o be_v necessary_a then_o to_o consider_v it_o first_o it_o be_v likewise_o for_o this_o reason_n that_o i_o reserve_v the_o discussion_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n 6_o book_n for_o this_o place_n for_o have_v treat_v of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n method_n i_o believe_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o discuss_v without_o interruption_n whatsoever_o concern_v the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n to_o examine_v at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o state_n of_o the_o latin_n in_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n and_o afterward_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o consequence_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n draw_v from_o the_o pretend_a consent_n of_o all_o church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o do_v due_a order_n require_v we_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o question_n of_o the_o change_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o 9th_o 10_o and_o 11_o century_n and_o this_o other_o question_n of_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n handle_v in_o his_o 6_o book_n be_v a_o dependence_n of_o that_o of_o the_o change_n or_o to_o speak_v better_a a_o preamble_n to_o it_o i_o believe_v this_o be_v the_o most_o fit_a place_n to_o examine_v it_o but_o before_o we_o enter_v into_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o state_n the_o question_n clear_o and_o for_o this_o effect_n i_o shall_v propose_v some_o remark_n which_o will_v plain_o discover_v wherein_o consist_v the_o point_n of_o our_o difference_n first_o i_o grant_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v not_o offer_v his_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o not_o in_o reference_n to_o transubstantiation_n but_o mr._n arnaud_n likewise_o must_v grant_v that_o this_o proof_n do_v not_o full_o answer_v the_o design_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n propose_v to_o himself_o at_o the_o entrance_n of_o his_o treatise_n to_o make_v 14._o perp._n faith_n pag._n 14._o we_o confess_v from_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n itself_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o all_o antiquity_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o simple_o stop_v at_o the_o real_a presence_n she_o believe_v likewise_o transubstantiation_n now_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o author_n proof_n conclude_v nothing_o yet_o see_v he_o himself_o have_v restrain_v his_o argument_n only_o to_o the_o real_a presence_n it_o will_v not_o be_v just_a to_o give_v it_o a_o great_a extent_n in_o this_o respect_n in_o the_o second_o place_n it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o the_o question_n here_o concern_v nor_o person_n that_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o christianity_n and_o consequent_o perhaps_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o eucharist_n nor_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o point_n in_o hand_n concern_v person_n that_o make_v open_a profession_n to_o be_v christian_n who_o communicate_v and_o know_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n so_o that_o they_o have_v some_o kind_n of_o notion_n as_o well_o of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o far_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o i_o agree_v well_o enough_o but_o our_o difference_n begin_v from_o the_o complaint_n i_o make_v against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n in_o that_o he_o will_v establish_v the_o state_n of_o this_o question_n in_o a_o illusory_a manner_n it_o concern_v we_o say_v he_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o faithful_a 2._o refutation_n part._n 2._o ch._n 2._o can_v remain_v for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o the_o church_n without_o form_v a_o distinct_a and_o determinate_a notion_n whether_o what_o they_o see_v be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n mr._n arnaud_n maintain_v this_o state_n of_o the_o question_n 3._o lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o and_o i_o affirm_v it_o be_v whole_o captious_a and_o that_o the_o question_n do_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v this_o matter_n which_o we_o shall_v illustrate_v by_o a_o three_o remark_n i_o say_v then_o the_o question_n be_v proper_o to_o know_v whether_o during_o a_o thousand_o year_n the_o people_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n ever_o form_v a_o distinct_a and_o determinate_a notion_n whether_o what_o they_o see_v be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o proper_a substance_n without_o ever_o cease_v during_o all_o this_o time_n to_o have_v this_o same_o notion_n thus_o distinct_a and_o determinate_a the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v the_o affirmative_a because_o in_o their_o respect_n it_o be_v a_o necessary_a proposition_n which_o they_o offer_v in_o form_n of_o a_o principle_n wirhout_v which_o their_o argument_n touch_v the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o change_n conclude_v nothing_o i_o must_v defend_v the_o negative_a but_o this_o negative_a consist_v not_o in_o affirm_v that_o during_o a_o thousand_o year_n the_o faithful_a can_v remain_v without_o form_v this_o distinct_a and_o determinate_a notion_n here_o in_o question_n it_o consist_v in_o affirm_v only_o that_o during_o a_o certain_a time_n comprehend_v within_o the_o extent_n of_o these_o thousand_o year_n the_o people_n have_v not_o form_v this_o distinct_a notion_n these_o gentleman_n affirmation_n must_v be_v general_a for_o the_o thousand_o year_n and_o if_o there_o be_v want_v but_o one_o or_o less_o than_o one_o age_n their_o supposition_n will_v be_v ineffectual_a see_v it_o be_v only_o by_o this_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o change_n we_o dispute_v about_o be_v impossible_a during_o these_o thousand_o year_n but_o as_o to_o my_o own_o part_n it_o be_v sufficient_a i_o affirm_v their_o supposition_n to_o be_v false_a during_o a_o certain_a time_n wherein_o the_o change_n will_v be_v make_v it_o will_v do_v these_o gentleman_n no_o harm_n perhaps_o who_o scoff_n at_o that_o philosophy_n which_o they_o call_v schoolboy_n exercise_n to_o consult_v it_o sometime_o for_o it_o will_v teach_v they_o to_o distinguish_v between_o a_o contrary_a opposition_n and_o a_o contradictory_n one_o two_o contrary_a proposition_n may_v be_v both_o of_o they_o false_a and_o be_v never_o very_o proper_a to_o form_v a_o just_a state_n of_o a_o question_n between_o rational_a person_n who_o dispute_v to_o find_v a_o verity_n and_o not_o to_o discover_v two_o falsity_n for_o example_n these_o two_o proposition_n man_n be_v liar_n man_n be_v always_o liar_n be_v opposite_a by_o a_o opposition_n call_v contrary_a they_o be_v both_o false_a and_o can_v form_v a_o just_a question_n to_o form_v
will_v without_o doubt_n better_o appear_v if_o for_o a_o six_o remark_n we_o cast_v our_o eye_n a_o little_a on_o the_o time_n wherein_o this_o change_n have_v most_o advance_v itself_o it_o be_v not_o in_o hilary_n nor_o athanasius_n time_n nor_o in_o that_o of_o ambrose_n and_o s._n austin_n but_o in_o the_o 10_o and_o 11_o century_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o most_o dark_a age_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n then_o that_o error_n make_v such_o conquest_n in_o those_o time_n rather_o will_v it_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n if_o she_o do_v not_o and_o this_o distinction_n methinks_v do_v sufficient_o limit_v my_o principle_n to_o establish_v sincere_o the_o state_n of_o our_o question_n these_o two_o remark_n must_v not_o be_v separate_v but_o join_v together_o to_o draw_v from_o they_o my_o whole_a sense_n for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n in_o my_o respect_n depend_v on_o my_o entire_a sense_n now_o my_o whole_a sense_n do_v not_o consist_v only_o in_o a_o general_a principle_n which_o i_o lay_v down_o nor_o in_o the_o general_a application_n i_o make_v of_o it_o but_o in_o the_o exception_n and_o limitation_n i_o give_v they_o but_o neither_o have_v mr._n arnaud_n nor_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n deal_v thus_o choose_v rather_o to_o run_v after_o their_o own_o chimerical_a notion_n than_o to_o follow_v the_o truth_n moreover_o mr._n arnaud_n show_v he_o have_v but_o little_a to_o say_v when_o he_o set_v himself_o on_o reproach_v i_o that_o i_o suppress_v some_o word_n of_o my_o five_o observation_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a i_o will_v on_o purpose_n suppress_v word_n contain_v in_o my_o book_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o find_v in_o turn_v over_o some_o leaf_n if_o i_o pass_v over_o they_o it_o be_v because_o they_o make_v no_o more_o to_o the_o subject_n than_o those_o which_o i_o recite_v which_o contain_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o my_o discourse_n and_o which_o be_v no_o less_o significant_a than_o the_o other_o but_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o can_v so_o well_o justify_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n in_o his_o make_v i_o say_v that_o the_o church_n remain_v in_o this_o ignorance_n till_o berenger_n time_n although_o there_o be_v no_o such_o 577._o lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o p._n 577._o thing_n in_o my_o book_n mr._n arnaud_n answer_n be_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n represent_v my_o sense_n and_o not_o my_o word_n and_o because_o that_o this_o proposition_n which_o this_o author_n impute_v to_o i_o be_v set_v down_o in_o italic_a letter_n which_o be_v those_o which_o be_v use_v for_o quotation_n in_o proper_a term_n mr._n arnaud_n say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o printer_n fault_n who_o ought_v to_o print_v they_o in_o a_o roman_a letter_n i_o will_v believe_v it_o because_o he_o say_v so_o but_o yet_o my_o sense_n ought_v to_o be_v faithful_o relate_v and_o for_o this_o effect_n plain_a deal_n require_v it_o to_o be_v draw_v from_o my_o express_a declaration_n contain_v in_o several_a passage_n of_o my_o first_o and_o second_o answer_n rather_o than_o from_o a_o discourse_n that_o be_v maim_v and_o which_o can_v represent_v in_o this_o condition_n but_o half_a of_o that_o which_o i_o will_v say_v whatsoever_o pain_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v take_v to_o disguise_v my_o sense_n father_n maimbourg_n the_o jesuit_n who_o write_v since_o mr._n arnaud_n ingenuous_o perceive_v and_o relate_v it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n mr._n claude_n say_v he_o assert_n 108._o a_o peaceable_a method_n by_o father_n mainbourg_n ch_n 3._o page_n 108._o there_o be_v a_o certain_a time_n wherein_o through_o the_o neglect_n of_o the_o pastor_n christian_n have_v no_o more_o than_o a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n without_o positive_o believe_v or_o reject_v either_o the_o real_a presence_n or_o absence_n because_o they_o study_v not_o the_o point_n this_o be_v in_o effect_v my_o meaning_n and_o not_o that_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n impute_v to_o i_o that_o the_o faithful_a can_v remain_v a_o thousand_o year_n in_o the_o church_n without_o form_v a_o distinct_a notion_n whether_o what_o they_o see_v be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o first_o of_o these_o three_o remark_n i_o now_o make_v consider_v the_o point_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o doctrine_n now_o in_o question_n and_o determine_v it_o to_o the_o real_a presence_n alone_o exclude_v transubstantiation_n the_o second_o consider_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n and_o determine_v it_o to_o the_o christian_n only_o exclude_v those_o that_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o our_o mystery_n and_o the_o three_o consider_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o time_n and_o determine_v it_o to_o the_o age_n of_o ignorance_n and_o darkness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o those_o wherein_o according_a to_o we_o the_o change_n be_v introduce_v which_o be_v the_o 9th_o and_o 10_o and_o part_n of_o the_o 11_o for_o although_o according_a to_o the_o exact_a rigour_n of_o the_o dispute_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v his_o thesis_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o of_o berenger_n yet_o there_o be_v only_o to_o speak_v proper_o these_o three_o age_n in_o question_n in_o this_o dispute_n we_o shall_v neither_o complain_v of_o he_o nor_o mr._n arnaud_n when_o they_o shall_v restrain_v their_o argument_n to_o these_o it_o remain_v only_o now_o to_o know_v in_o what_o disposition_n of_o mind_n we_o must_v suppose_v the_o christian_n be_v when_o we_o imagine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v declare_v to_o they_o for_o on_o this_o depend_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o change_n which_o we_o pretend_v be_v possible_a or_o impossible_a but_o before_o we_o enter_v upon_o this_o enquiry_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v two_o far_a observation_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o time_n have_v knowledge_n enough_o to_o discover_v in_o some_o sort_n when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v propose_v to_o they_o that_o it_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o principle_n of_o nature_n but_o whether_o in_o suppose_v they_o believe_v not_o this_o doctrine_n they_o have_v knowledge_n enough_o to_o discover_v it_o be_v a_o innovation_n contrary_a to_o the_o church_n faith_n and_o to_o reject_v it_o under_o this_o consideration_n for_o for_o to_o conclude_v that_o people_n will_v have_v actual_o oppose_v the_o real_a presence_n have_v they_o not_o before_o believe_v it_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o show_v that_o it_o will_v have_v oppose_v their_o sense_n and_o notice_n of_o reason_n i_o confess_v that_o if_o man_n do_v always_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v this_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o put_v they_o upon_o reject_v this_o real_a presence_n as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o prove_v it_o but_o people_n be_v liable_a to_o be_v deceive_v and_o receive_v notwithstanding_o the_o contradiction_n of_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n that_o which_o they_o be_v persuade_v be_v a_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o general_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o begin_v to_o consider_v it_o as_o a_o mystery_n they_o harken_v no_o long_o to_o sense_n nor_o reason_n we_o shall_v then_o proceed_v and_o show_v that_o they_o be_v in_o a_o disposition_n to_o reject_v this_o doctrine_n as_o a_o novelty_n which_o the_o church_n never_o hold_v and_o which_o consequent_o be_v not_o a_o true_a mystery_n of_o faith_n the_o other_o observation_n which_o we_o must_v make_v be_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o distinguish_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a absence_n in_o the_o sense_n in_o question_n from_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o corporeal_a absence_n to_o believe_v the_o corporeal_a absence_n be_v to_o form_n to_o a_o man_n self_n the_o idea_n of_o the_o ordinary_a and_o natural_a presence_n of_o a_o humane_a body_n such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o reject_v it_o as_o false_a and_o extravagant_a but_o to_o believe_v the_o real_a absence_n in_o the_o term_n of_o our_o dispute_n be_v to_o conceive_v the_o idea_n of_o a_o invisible_a presence_n such_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n conceive_v and_o reject_v as_o a_o error_n a_o man_n may_v reject_v the_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o ordinary_a existence_n of_o a_o body_n in_o a_o place_n and_o yet_o not_o reject_v it_o either_o general_o under_o every_o notion_n be_v it_o what_o it_o will_v nor_o in_o particular_a under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o invisible_a existence_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o do_v not_o believe_v this_o ordinary_a and_o natural_a presence_n but_o yet_o
condition_n he_o can_v understand_v no_o other_o than_o that_o and_o it_o be_v it_o which_o he_o reject_v because_o it_o be_v on_o it_o whereon_o fall_v the_o first_o conception_n of_o his_o mind_n this_o will_v yet_o far_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v that_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o communicant_a will_v determine_v his_o thought_n to_o the_o corporeal_a presence_n when_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v not_o therein_o determine_v for_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n who_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a presence_n to_o raise_v in_o his_o mind_n at_o the_o same_o moment_n wherein_o he_o communicate_v this_o question_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n substantial_o present_a in_o this_o eucharist_n which_o i_o receive_v but_o that_o he_o must_v at_o the_o same_o time_n use_v his_o eyesight_n to_o inform_v himself_o this_o inclination_n be_v so_o natural_a that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o follow_v it_o it_o must_v necessary_o be_v say_v that_o he_o have_v in_o his_o mind_n the_o idea_n of_o a_o invisible_a presence_n of_o which_o his_o eye_n can_v be_v witness_n and_o that_o it_o be_v this_o idea_n which_o divert_v he_o from_o have_v recourse_n to_o his_o sight_n and_o if_o he_o do_v follow_v it_o his_o eye_n which_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v not_o therein_o derermin_v his_o thought_n to_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o corporeal_a presence_n to_o make_v he_o reject_v it_o but_o be_v it_o impossible_a that_o a_o man_n in_o conceive_v the_o idea_n of_o the_o corporeal_a presence_n and_o in_o reject_v it_o shall_v conceive_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o there_o may_v be_v invent_v other_o manner_n of_o a_o substantial_a presence_n but_o must_v reject_v they_o all_o be_v they_o what_o they_o will_v without_o specify_v or_o consider_v they_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o this_o case_n he_o will_v conceive_v these_o other_o manner_n of_o presence_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o corporeal_a and_o visible_a one_o and_o consequent_o will_v specify_v they_o at_o least_o as_o incorporeal_v and_o invisibles_n and_o conceive_v they_o under_o this_o quality_n in_o a_o word_n when_o nature_n offer_v we_o but_o the_o idea_n of_o one_o single_a species_n there_o arise_v not_o up_o immediate_o a_o general_a consideration_n in_o our_o mind_n our_o fancy_n lead_v we_o to_o that_o particular_a species_n and_o if_o afterward_o we_o conceive_v any_o other_o it_o be_v always_o in_o opposition_n to_o that_o which_o nature_n itself_o offer_v to_o our_o knowledge_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o this_o first_o manner_n of_o believe_v the_o real_a absence_n by_o a_o general_a rejection_n of_o every_o kind_n of_o presence_n yet_o without_o specify_v so_o much_o as_o any_o one_o in_o particular_a neither_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a be_v a_o mere_a chimaera_n which_o reside_v only_o in_o mr._n arnaud_n brain_n as_o to_o the_o three_o it_o be_v moreover_o invalid_a and_o illusory_a see_v it_o answer_v not_o the_o design_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n for_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v he_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v that_o if_o people_n have_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a invisible_a presence_n they_o will_v have_v have_v in_o their_o mind_n disposition_n and_o prejudices_fw-la which_o will_v have_v make_v they_o respect_v it_o not_o bare_o as_o a_o doctrine_n that_o appear_v contrary_a to_o natural_a reason_n this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o produce_v actual_o a_o entire_a rejection_n and_o opposition_n when_o the_o matter_n concern_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o a_o innovation_n in_o the_o church_n belief_n now_o this_o three_o manner_n of_o believe_v the_o real_a absence_n without_o any_o reflection_n by_o a_o bare_a view_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o we_o know_v paris_n be_v not_o rome_n nor_o france_n holland_n that_o the_o sun_n be_v not_o the_o moon_n nor_o a_o house_n a_o elephant_n thar_z the_o king_n picture_n be_v not_o the_o king_n himself_o to_o use_v mr._n arnaud_n example_n without_o have_v make_v this_o express_a and_o formal_a reflection_n this_o manner_n i_o say_v may_v make_v man_n capable_a of_o know_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n that_o it_o agree_v not_o with_o common_a sense_n but_o not_o make_v they_o discern_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n as_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v or_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o new_a humane_a invention_n this_o simple_a view_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n which_o consist_v in_o know_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o image_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o this_o body_n be_v a_o humane_a body_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n do_v not_o hinder_v a_o man_n from_o be_v surprise_v with_o the_o matter_n of_o novelty_n by_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v assure_v to_o be_v and_o on_o this_o persuasion_n reason_n must_v yield_v to_o faith_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o that_o suppose_v the_o faithful_a have_v no_o other_o 565._o lib._n 6._o cap._n 2._o pag_n 564_o 565._o than_o these_o simple_a notion_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n which_o represent_v to_o we_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n suppose_v they_o conceive_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a therein_o that_o they_o imagine_v this_o body_n to_o be_v only_o present_a in_o heaven_n and_o that_o all_o the_o usual_a expression_n form_v only_o in_o their_o mind_n the_o idea_n of_o a_o figurative_a presence_n they_o will_v immediate_o have_v judge_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v false_a and_o impertinent_a as_o we_o will_v immediate_o judge_v that_o man_n who_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o paris_n be_v rome_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n picture_n be_v the_o pope_n himself_o or_o that_o the_o seven_o stalk_n of_o corn_n which_o pharaoh_n dream_v of_o be_v real_o seven_o year_n or_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n a_o real_a passage_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n real_a sin_n to_o be_v mad_a and_o senseless_a when_o a_o man_n judge_n of_o these_o thing_n he_o simple_o judge_n of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o light_n of_o nature_n will_v render_v that_o man_n impertinent_a who_o shall_v say_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n make_v he_o say_v it_o will_v be_v the_o same_o concern_v the_o real_a invisible_a presence_n shall_v a_o man_n judge_v of_o it_o on_o this_o ground_n but_o those_o that_o offer_v it_o in_o any_o age_n oppose_v against_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o splendid_a name_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n they_o endeavour_v to_o insinuate_v it_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o its_o be_v a_o mystery_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o have_v be_v always_o believe_v and_o for_o this_o purpose_n they_o spare_v no_o colour_n by_o which_o mean_v they_o stop_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n and_o hinder_v man_n from_o judge_v according_a to_o its_o principle_n reduce_v the_o question_n to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o perpetual_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o mean_n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o impose_v on_o the_o ignorant_a it_o be_v moreover_o in_o vain_a that_o mr._n arnaud_n bring_v in_o the_o statute_n of_o henry_n iv_o for_o a_o instance_n which_o all_o the_o parisian_n know_v to_o be_v only_a brass_n and_o that_o his_o body_n be_v only_o at_o s._n dennis_n he_o say_v perhaps_o they_o never_o think_v of_o formal_o reject_v the_o opinion_n that_o this_o statue_n be_v real_o the_o body_n of_o henry_n iu._n and_o yet_o be_v ready_a to_o oppose_v this_o opinion_n shall_v any_o extravagant_a person_n offer_v to_o make_v they_o believe_v it_o but_o howsoever_o the_o parisian_n stand_v affect_v towards_o the_o statue_n of_o henry_n iu._n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o this_o example_n and_o that_o of_o the_o eucharist_n here_o in_o question_n the_o statue_n of_o henry_n iv_o be_v a_o work_n of_o humane_a institution_n wherein_o man_n suppose_v there_o be_v nothing_o supernatural_a whereas_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o divine_a mystery_n in_o which_o there_o have_v be_v always_o believe_v to_o be_v something_o above_o nature_n the_o statue_n of_o henry_n iv_o be_v a_o thing_n absolute_o popular_a concern_v which_o every_o man_n believe_v he_o have_v liberty_n of_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o mystery_n which_o have_v be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v make_v long_o since_o in_o some_o manner_n inaccessible_a to_o man_n curiosity_n by_o conceal_v it_o under_o a_o cloud_n of_o ceremony_n henry_n the_o four_o be_v indeed_o a_o
thing_n first_o then_o mr._n arnaud_n make_v i_o contradict_v myself_o he_o say_v that_o 550._o lib._n 6._o cap._n 4._o pag._n 550._o if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a i_o admit_v the_o confuse_a belief_n during_o ten_o age_n if_o i_o include_v it_o in_o the_o 9th_o and_o 10_o it_o follow_v that_o i_o know_v that_o during_o eight_o century_n the_o faithful_a have_v a_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o acknowledge_v this_o consequence_n to_o be_v just_a enough_o but_o add_v he_o mr._n claud_n bethink_v himself_o and_o find_v it_o be_v more_o for_o his_o advantage_n to_o grant_v nothing_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o even_o to_o affirm_v that_o during_o these_o eight_o century_n the_o faithful_a have_v no_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o presence_n or_o real_a absence_n why_o do_v mr._n arnaud_n call_v this_o recollect_v a_o man_n self_n what_o contrariety_n be_v there_o between_o these_o two_o thing_n not_o say_v he_o but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o equivocation_n in_o all_o this_o if_o there_o be_v any_o equivocation_n mr._n arnaud_n ought_v not_o to_o make_v a_o contradiction_n of_o it_o nor_o say_v i_o be_o at_o discord_n with_o myself_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v neither_o equivocation_n nor_o contradiction_n in_o it_o for_o we_o have_v already_o tell_v he_o that_o to_o know_v distinct_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v neither_o to_o know_v distinct_o the_o real_a presence_n nor_o real_a absence_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n in_o these_o thing_n to_o know_v distinct_o the_o real_a absence_n in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o we_o take_v this_o term_n in_o this_o dispute_n be_v to_o reject_v formal_o and_o by_o a_o positive_a act_n this_o invisible_a presence_n as_o a_o error_n but_o to_o know_v distinct_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v according_a to_o we_o to_o know_v clear_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o that_o by_o consecration_n this_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v make_v sign_n or_o mystical_a figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o this_o signification_n be_v ground_v on_o several_a relation_n which_o be_v between_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o those_o who_o receive_v these_o symbol_n with_o faith_n and_o devotion_n towards_o jesus_n christ_n who_o die_v for_o we_o and_o rise_v again_o and_o be_v reign_v in_o heaven_n they_o spiritual_o eat_v of_o his_o body_n and_o drink_n of_o his_o blood_n that_o these_o symbol_n be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o a_o sacramental_a way_n of_o speech_n because_o they_o do_v both_o represent_v they_o to_o our_o faith_n or_o because_o there_o be_v a_o great_a conformity_n between_o they_o and_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o represent_v or_o because_o they_o communicate_v they_o to_o we_o and_o several_a other_o like_a article_n in_o a_o word_n to_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o know_v positive_o wherein_o consist_v the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o a_o sacrament_n which_o do_v not_o include_v any_o distinct_a knowledge_n either_o of_o the_o real_a invisible_a presence_n or_o real_a invisible_a absence_n i_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o surprise_v people_n that_o be_v in_o this_o capacity_n nor_o persuade_v they_o that_o this_o real_a presence_n have_v be_v ever_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n especial_o if_o they_o have_v pastor_n that_o be_v learned_a and_o honest_a who_o acquit_v themselves_o of_o their_o duty_n and_o watch_v diligent_o over_o their_o flock_n but_o howsoever_o this_o be_v not_o to_o understand_v distinct_o the_o real_a absence_n in_o question_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o the_o end_n mr._n arnaud_n may_v no_o long_o equivocate_v on_o this_o subject_n let_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o when_o we_o attribute_v this_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n to_o the_o eight_o first_o century_n we_o will_v not_o be_v understand_v either_o that_o they_o have_v it_o in_o a_o degree_n always_o equal_a and_o uniform_a or_o that_o all_o person_n who_o live_v in_o each_o of_o those_o age_n have_v be_v equal_o enlighten_v we_o know_v the_o light_n of_o those_o age_n be_v diminish_v by_o degree_n so_o that_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o have_v much_o less_o of_o it_o than_o the_o first_o six_o we_o know_v likewise_o there_o have_v be_v always_o in_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v even_o then_o when_o it_o be_v most_o flourish_a a_o great_a number_n of_o pious_a christian_n in_o truth_n but_o little_o advance_v in_o knowledge_n and_o with_o they_o multitude_n of_o profane_a worldly_a wretch_n who_o little_o concern_v themselves_o touch_v what_o they_o believe_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o second_o place_n mr._n arnaud_n reproach_n i_o with_o have_v do_v two_o thing_n which_o will_v be_v strange_a enough_o be_v they_o true_a the_o one_o that_o i_o ill_o explain_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n sentiment_n and_o the_o other_a that_n i_o grant_v he_o in_o effect_n whatsoever_o he_o pretend_v to_o he_o ground_n these_o two_o reproach_n on_o that_o i_o say_v somewhere_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n that_o if_o 3._o answer_v to_o the_o second_o treatise_n part_v 2._o chap_n 3._o he_o mean_v that_o the_o faithful_a who_o take_v the_o instruction_n of_o the_o father_n in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n believe_v jesus_n christ_n present_v corporeal_o in_o heaven_n without_o think_v on_o what_o have_v be_v say_v since_o that_o he_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n there_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o body_n here_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o faithful_a have_v in_o this_o sense_n a_o most_o distinct_a idea_n of_o the_o real_a absence_n which_o be_v to_o say_v they_o do_v not_o at_o all_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v substantial_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n apply_v their_o whole_a mind_n to_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o merit_n set_v themselves_o to_o meditate_v on_o his_o infinite_a love_n etc._n etc._n without_o exert_v their_o thought_n to_o this_o presence_n of_o substance_n invent_v of_o late_a by_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o if_o by_o have_v a_o idea_n and_o distinct_a belief_n of_o the_o real_a absence_n that_o author_n mean_v they_o know_v and_o reject_v distinct_o this_o mean_n of_o existence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n on_o the_o altar_n in_o multiply_v his_o presence_n in_o several_a place_n i_o affirm_v they_o have_v it_o not_o at_o all_o but_o these_o two_o reproach_n be_v without_o ground_n for_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o first_o it_o appear_v from_o what_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n must_v have_v pretend_v to_o that_o which_o i_o charge_v he_o with_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o faithful_a have_v have_v the_o distinct_a idea_n of_o the_o substantial_a invisible_a presence_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v and_o that_o they_o formal_o reject_v it_o as_o a_o error_n for_o there_o be_v only_a this_o manner_n of_o believe_v the_o real_a absence_n which_o can_v have_v place_n in_o this_o dispute_n see_v that_o of_o the_o three_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v propose_v the_o first_o as_o we_o have_v see_v be_v impossible_a and_o the_o three_o useless_a for_o the_o design_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n so_o that_o necessary_o his_o sense_n must_v fall_v upon_o the_o second_o which_o be_v precise_o that_o which_o i_o have_v attribute_v to_o he_o and_o as_o to_o the_o second_o reproach_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n pretend_v to_o no_o more_o than_o what_o i_o grant_v he_o his_o argument_n will_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n for_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v from_o person_n not_o fix_v their_o mind_n on_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o invisible_a substance_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v and_o their_o apply_v themselves_o only_o to_o meditate_v on_o a_o presence_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v precise_o what_o i_o grant_v he_o it_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v i_o say_v that_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o this_o alone_a to_o reject_v the_o real_a invisible_a presence_n as_o a_o novelty_n contrary_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n there_o need_v something_o more_o than_o this_o i_o mean_v there_o need_v great_a light_n to_o inevitable_o effect_v this_o rejection_n for_o a_o man_n must_v have_v for_o this_o not_o only_o the_o idea_n of_o this_o substantial_a invisible_a presence_n such_o as_o be_v fancy_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o likewise_o distinct_o know_v that_o such_o a_o presence_n be_v never_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n for_o
otherwise_o it_o be_v very_o possible_a that_o people_n will_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v deceive_v when_o tell_v the_o church_n have_v ever_o believe_v such_o a_o presence_n especial_o when_o they_o shall_v hear_v several_a passage_n out_o of_o the_o father_n on_o this_o subject_n allege_v in_o a_o counter_a sense_n moreover_o if_o mr._n arnaud_n imagine_v i_o mean_v to_o acknowledge_v of_o my_o own_o head_n that_o one_o may_v call_v the_o disposition_n of_o these_o person_n who_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n corporal_o present_a in_o heaven_n without_o consider_v what_o have_v be_v say_v since_o of_o his_o presence_n in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n at_o the_o same_o time_n there_o visible_o here_o invisible_o believe_v the_o real_a absence_n he_o be_v gross_o mistake_v for_o what_o i_o say_v be_v out_o of_o condescension_n and_o supposition_n and_o not_o absolute_o which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o in_o case_n the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n pretend_v only_o this_o i_o will_v not_o dispute_v with_o he_o about_o a_o expression_n in_o effect_n if_o we_o be_v agree_v touch_v the_o thing_n i_o will_v never_o make_v war_n with_o he_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o term_n mr._n arnaud_v be_v no_o less_o mistake_v when_o he_o accuse_v i_o for_o make_v a_o illusory_a answer_n to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n the_o business_n be_v that_o this_o author_n say_v that_o if_o the_o change_n which_o we_o pretend_v be_v true_a there_o 37._o first_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n page_n 37._o must_v have_v be_v of_o necessity_n a_o time_n wherein_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n have_v be_v so_o mix_v with_o that_o of_o the_o real_a absence_n that_o there_o be_v half_a of_o the_o bishop_n priest_n and_o people_n who_o hold_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o half_o that_o hold_v the_o other_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o great_a ignorance_n even_o 12._o answer_v to_o the_o first_o treatise_n page_n 12._o in_o the_o 11_o century_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o there_o be_v four_o or_o five_o rank_n of_o person_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o one_o profane_a and_o worldly_a person_n who_o keep_v themselves_o at_o a_o distance_n from_o these_o dispute_n other_o ignorant_a one_o who_o content_v themselves_o with_o know_v in_o general_n the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o memorial_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o that_o they_o receive_v therein_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n these_o hold_v the_o true_a faith_n in_o a_o degree_n of_o confuse_a knowledge_n the_o three_o of_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o true_a faith_n in_o a_o degree_n of_o distinct_a knowledge_n and_o reject_v the_o substantial_a presence_n and_o the_o four_o of_o those_o that_o have_v embrace_v the_o opinion_n of_o this_o presence_n and_o this_o be_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n call_v a_o illusion_n whereas_o i_o affirm_v this_o answer_n be_v pertinent_a for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v four_o rank_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v ill_o do_v of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n to_o reduce_v they_o to_o two_o but_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n speak_v of_o the_o time_n before_o berenger_n and_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n that_o follow_v he_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n speak_v of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o chimerical_a 560._o lib._n 6._o ch_n 5._o pag._n 560._o growth_n through_o which_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n have_v necessary_o pass_v according_a to_o the_o imagination_n of_o the_o calvinist_n and_o thus_o do_v he_o formal_o explain_v himself_o and_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n wherein_o error_n make_v its_o great_a progress_n in_o the_o great_a progress_n of_o error_n these_o be_v my_o word_n so_o far_o there_o be_v nothing_o misunderstand_a we_o speak_v both_o of_o we_o concern_v the_o same_o time_n but_o this_o time_n according_a to_o we_o be_v that_o in_o which_o berenger_n begin_v to_o oppose_v the_o real_a presence_n but_o say_v moreover_o mr._n arnaud_n the_o whole_a church_n 562._o page_n 562._o have_v already_o pass_v over_o into_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n before_o berenger_n '_o s_o time_n and_o aubertin_n himself_o acknowledge_v as_o much_o which_o be_v what_o i_o deny_v and_o mr._n arnaud_n ought_v not_o to_o affirm_v it_o without_o proof_n the_o great_a progress_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v then_o when_o berenger_n declare_v himself_o against_o it_o paschasius_fw-la his_o disciple_n maintain_v it_o by_o dispute_n so_o that_o this_o be_v precise_o the_o time_n about_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o i_o debate_v these_o be_v the_o first_o objection_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n after_o which_o he_o divide_v what_o he_o call_v my_o system_n into_o three_o part_n or_o time_n the_o first_o say_v he_o comprehend_v 563._o page_n 563._o the_o first_o eight_o age_n and_o the_o five_o rank_n whereof_o it_o consist_v the_o second_o contain_v two_o century_n and_o a_o half_a which_o a_o man_n can_v better_v name_n than_o the_o unaccountable_a time_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o three_o contain_v the_o time_n which_o follow_v berenger_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o of_o these_o three_o time_n there_o be_v only_o the_o second_o as_o i_o already_o say_v to_o speak_v proper_o necessary_a to_o be_v examine_v touch_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o change_n which_o we_o pretend_v be_v possible_a or_o impossible_a for_o although_o i_o do_v not_o grant_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o eight_o first_o century_n have_v have_v a_o distinct_a knowledge_n either_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n or_o real_a absence_n in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n take_v these_o term_n yet_o do_v i_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v then_o light_a enough_o in_o the_o church_n whereby_o to_o reject_v the_o opinion_n of_o this_o sort_n of_o presence_n have_v it_o appear_v so_o that_o it_o do_v not_o seem_v it_o be_v great_o necessary_a to_o dispute_v concern_v these_o age_n wherein_o we_o do_v not_o say_v the_o change_n be_v make_v and_o which_o we_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v different_a from_o those_o which_o follow_v yet_o see_v mr._n arnaud_n will_v needs_o have_v they_o bring_v into_o the_o dispute_n i_o be_o willing_a to_o treat_v of_o they_o i_o than_o reckon_v in_o the_o church_n five_o sort_n of_o person_n who_o have_v no_o distinct_a 3._o answer_v to_o the_o second_o treatise_n part_v 2._o chap._n 3._o knowledge_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n neither_o to_o reject_v nor_o admit_v it_o without_o comprehend_v therein_o the_o profane_a or_o worldly_a mind_a person_n and_o ground_v my_o division_n on_o this_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a in_o this_o great_a diversity_n of_o condition_n and_o humour_n of_o man_n to_o reduce_v they_o all_o either_o to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o measure_n of_o knowledge_n or_o to_o the_o same_o form_n of_o action_n the_o first_o rank_n be_v of_o those_o who_o conceive_v these_o two_o term_n the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o notion_n which_o their_o sense_n give_v they_o for_o whether_o it_o be_v call_v bread_n or_o by_o any_o other_o name_n the_o idea_n they_o form_v thereof_o be_v such_o as_o their_o eye_n represent_v they_o with_o they_o conceive_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n after_o the_o manner_n which_o the_o gospel_n speak_v of_o it_o as_o a_o body_n and_o flesh_n like_v unto_o that_o which_o we_o have_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n unite_v to_o the_o eternal_a word_n hang_v on_o the_o cross_n rise_v and_o take_v up_o into_o glory_n and_o in_o a_o word_n under_o the_o idea_n which_o religion_n give_v we_o of_o it_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o sacrament_n serve_v to_o make_v they_o pass_v on_o to_o that_o of_o the_o body_n but_o they_o stop_v there_o and_o make_v not_o a_o particular_a reflection_n thereon_o how_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n their_o devotion_n be_v content_a with_o the_o use_n which_o they_o make_v of_o the_o sacrament_n unto_o which_o they_o be_v assist_v by_o this_o formulary_a of_o communion_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la they_o proceed_v not_o so_o far_o as_o that_o question_n the_o second_o rank_n be_v of_o those_o who_o proceed_v to_o the_o question_n how_o this_o visible_a bread_n this_o subject_n call_v sacrament_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o find_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o inconsistency_n in_o the_o term_n their_o mind_n stop_v at_o the_o single_a difficulty_n without_o undertake_v to_o solve_v it_o the_o three_o be_v of_o those_o who_o go_v as_o far_o as_o the_o question_n proceed_v as_o far_o as_o the_o solution_n but_o their_o mind_n stop_v at_o general_a term_n as_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v present_a to_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o we_o
effect_n as_o mr._n claude_n suppose_v it_o in_o every_o workman_n just_a as_o the_o workman_n say_v that_o when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o day_n fail_v he_o he_o have_v rather_o have_v the_o light_n of_o the_o lamp_n than_o that_o of_o the_o candle_n for_o this_o or_o that_o kind_n of_o work_n chap._n iii_o a_o defence_n of_o the_o second_o three_o and_o four_o rank_n of_o person_n against_o the_o objection_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n the_o first_o rank_n of_o person_n be_v defend_v against_o mr._n arnaud_n subtlety_n it_o now_o concern_v we_o to_o examine_v his_o objection_n against_o the_o three_o other_o but_o to_o do_v it_o with_o great_a brevity_n i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v myself_o with_o his_o useless_a word_n but_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o moment_n i_o shall_v not_o pass_v by_o any_o of_o '_o they_o the_o second_o rank_n be_v of_o those_o that_o proceed_v so_o far_o as_o the_o question_n how_o this_o visible_a bread_n this_o subject_n call_v sacrament_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o find_v a_o inconsistency_n in_o the_o term_n their_o mind_n settle_v on_o the_o only_a difficulty_n without_o undertake_v to_o solve_v it_o mr._n arnaud_v say_v that_o the_o father_n have_v not_o know_v these_o kind_n of_o 575._o lib._n 6._o ch_n 7._o pag._n 575._o people_n he_o mean_v they_o have_v not_o mention_v they_o in_o their_o write_n but_o suppose_v the_o father_n never_o know_v they_o do_v mr._n arnaud_n believe_v the_o father_n must_v needs_o know_v or_o expound_v all_o the_o several_a manner_n of_o take_v thing_n which_o be_v practise_v by_o all_o particular_a person_n have_v they_o nothing_o else_o to_o do_v but_o to_o make_v general_a inventory_n of_o man_n fancy_n to_o find_v out_o and_o denote_v distinct_o the_o strength_n or_o weakness_n of_o each_o individual_a person_n if_o he_o imagine_v it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o affirm_v there_o be_v not_o any_o person_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n who_o find_v great_a difficulty_n in_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n stick_v here_o without_o undertake_v to_o clear_v the_o point_n to_o say_v the_o father_n have_v know_v none_o of_o this_o kind_n he_o must_v acknowledge_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o there_o be_v none_o likewise_o that_o take_v these_o word_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o i_o maintain_v that_o the_o father_n have_v not_o know_v any_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o people_n never_o speak_v of_o they_o never_o offer_v they_o as_o a_o example_n to_o doubter_n nor_o declare_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o their_o expression_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v answer_v that_o if_o they_o have_v not_o mention_v they_o it_o be_v because_o all_o the_o faithful_a take_v they_o in_o this_o sense_n for_o mr._n arnaud_n confess_v himself_o it_o be_v probable_a 529._o lib._n 6._o ch_n 1._o pag._n 529._o that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o faithful_a have_v be_v ever_o clear_a and_o distinct_a on_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o that_o they_o have_v ever_o know_v whether_o what_o be_v give_v they_o be_v or_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n although_o they_o know_v not_o always_o so_o express_o and_o universal_o whether_o the_o bread_n do_v or_o do_v not_o remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n any_o man_n may_v see_v what_o mean_v such_o a_o acknowledgement_n from_o mr._n arnaud_n i_o repeat_v it_o here_o again_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o faithful_a do_v not_o always_o so_o express_o and_o universal_o know_v whether_o the_o bread_n remain_v or_o not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v without_o doubt_n at_o this_o time_n a_o very_a considerable_a acknowledgement_n but_o not_o to_o extend_v it_o further_o than_o the_o term_n will_v bear_v we_o may_v at_o least_o conclude_v thence_o that_o the_o father_n ought_v to_o suppose_v there_o be_v person_n who_o probable_o will_v not_o take_v these_o word_n the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o hereupon_o may_v be_v ask_v why_o they_o have_v not_o observe_v the_o exactness_n and_o quickness_n of_o understanding_n in_o the_o one_o to_o deliver_v the_o rest_n from_o the_o ignorance_n wherein_o mr._n arnaud_n acknowledge_v they_o may_v have_v be_v again_o who_o tell_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o father_n know_v not_o at_o least_o in_o general_a there_o may_v be_v person_n who_o meet_v with_o difficulty_n in_o this_o question_n how_o the_o bread_n can_v be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n because_o of_o the_o inconsistency_n of_o the_o term_n of_o bread_n and_o body_n this_o be_v the_o difficulty_n s_o austin_n propose_v in_o express_a term_n on_o behalf_n of_o person_n new_o baptise_a in_o a_o sermon_n he_o preach_v to_o '_o they_o how_o say_v he_o be_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n i●s_fw-la serm._n ad_fw-la i●s_fw-la the_o same_o difficulty_n be_v propose_v by_o theophylact_fw-mi let_v no_o body_n be_v trouble_v say_v 6._o theophyl_n in_o joan._n 6._o he_o that_o he_o must_v believe_v bread_n to_o be_v flesh_n this_o be_v the_o difficulty_n which_o the_o father_n be_v willing_a to_o prevent_v or_o resolve_v by_o this_o great_a number_n of_o passage_n which_o explain_v in_o what_o sense_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o wit_n because_o it_o be_v the_o symbol_n of_o it_o the_o sign_n or_o figure_n the_o sacrament_n of_o it_o because_o there_o be_v some_o kind_n of_o proportion_n between_o bread_n and_o body_n etc._n etc._n as_o i_o show_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n now_o what_o be_v all_o these_o explication_n for_o but_o to_o help_v those_o that_o be_v perplex_v with_o these_o way_n of_o speak_v the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o who_o for_o want_v of_o such_o assistance_n may_v make_v thereof_o a_o rock_n of_o offence_n neither_o need_v mr._n arnaud_n make_v so_o many_o exclamation_n how_o 575._o lib._n 6._o cap._n 7._o p._n 575._o shall_v those_o people_n discern_v the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o be_v not_o solicitous_a to_o know_v he_o and_o that_o the_o eucharist_n bear_v its_o name_n what_o devotion_n can_v they_o have_v for_o this_o mystery_n see_v devotion_n suppose_v instruction_n although_o they_o know_v not_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n yet_o do_v not_o this_o hinder_v they_o from_o have_v a_o respect_n for_o our_o saviour_n body_n from_o have_v a_o real_a devotion_n consider_v that_o our_o lord_n be_v dead_a and_o rise_v for_o they_o unless_o according_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n it_o be_v no_o real_a devotion_n to_o meditate_v on_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n neither_o do_v this_o hinder_v they_o from_o receive_v with_o great_a respect_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o pledge_n and_o remembrance_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n for_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a for_o person_n to_o know_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o also_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o know_v that_o the_o first_o of_o these_o expression_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o second_o which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v say_v to_o be_v this_o body_n and_o blood_n because_o they_o be_v the_o memorial_n and_o pledge_n of_o it_o but_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n this_o laziness_n which_o make_v the_o character_n of_o this_o 576._o page_n 576._o second_o order_n will_v last_v their_o whole_a life_n and_o not_o only_o some_o little_a space_n of_o time_n that_o it_o will_v do_v so_o we_o never_o tell_v mr._n arnaud_n it_o be_v his_o addition_n it_o be_v a_o lazyness_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o great_a concernment_n i_o confess_v it_o be_v very_o important_a to_o make_v a_o good_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v what_o i_o suppose_v these_o person_n do_v but_o when_o a_o man_n shall_v find_v difficulty_n in_o know_v how_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o know_v not_o how_o to_o solve_v it_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o despair_v of_o his_o salvation_n this_o say_v he_o again_o be_v a_o laziness_n from_o which_o a_o man_n may_v be_v free_v by_o the_o least_o question_n offer_v to_o a_o priest_n or_o laic_a that_o be_v know_v by_o the_o instruction_n which_o the_o pastor_n give_v to_o those_o that_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o communion_n
to_o say_v real_o which_o be_v not_o true_a and_o on_o the_o other_o it_o hinder_v we_o from_o perceive_v that_o the_o ignorant_a take_v the_o natural_o of_o s._n hilary_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n will_v have_v have_v the_o idea_n of_o a_o corporal_a and_o natural_a presence_n and_o not_o that_o of_o a_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a presence_n these_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o fault_n for_o which_o people_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o be_v over-sorry_a when_o they_o happen_v for_o they_o have_v a_o desire_a effect_n for_o some_o time_n and_o when_o they_o chance_v to_o be_v discover_v may_v be_v lay_v on_o the_o printer_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o impression_n which_o this_o passage_n of_o s._n hilary_n can_v make_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o a_o ignorant_a person_n be_v only_o to_o put_v he_o upon_o conceive_v a_o corporal_a presence_n which_o he_o may_v easy_o reject_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o proper_a sense_n but_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n there_o be_v little_a reason_n to_o suppose_v the_o book_n of_o s._n hilary_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o ignorant_a and_o simple_a people_n as_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o passage_n of_o gregory_n of_o nysse_n give_v natural_o the_o idea_n of_o a_o change_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o union_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o word_n and_o by_o way_n of_o augmentation_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o example_n which_o he_o bring_v of_o the_o bread_n which_o jesus_n christ_n eat_v which_o become_v the_o body_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v far_o remote_a from_o the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o will_v have_v the_o substance_n on_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v the_o same_o in_o number_n as_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n assume_v from_o the_o virgin_n and_o which_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n there_o be_v little_a likelihood_n that_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a people_n understand_v what_o gregory_n mean_v even_o suppose_v they_o be_v acquaint_v with_o his_o catechism_n which_o be_v not_o very_o likely_a but_o suppose_v they_o know_v it_o all_o by_o heart_n and_o comprehend_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o they_o can_v thence_o only_o conceive_v this_o change_n by_o union_n to_o the_o word_n and_o augmentation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o damascen_n have_v since_o explain_v more_o clear_o and_o this_o be_v what_o gregory_n suppose_v also_o not_o as_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o as_o a_o probable_a opinion_n according_a as_o he_o formal_o explain_v himself_o perhaps_o say_v he_o we_o be_v in_o the_o right_n and_o this_o be_v what_o we_o have_v to_o say_v concern_v mr._n arnaud'_v six_o book_n whatsoever_o success_n this_o dispute_n may_v have_v have_v he_o can_v not_o thence_o promise_v himself_o any_o advantage_n because_o as_o we_o have_v already_o observe_v more_o than_o once_o the_o eight_o first_o century_n be_v out_o of_o the_o time_n wherein_o we_o suppose_v the_o change_n be_v wrought_v when_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o real_a absence_n be_v distinct_o hold_v therein_o he_o will_v be_v still_o tell_v the_o question_n concern_v not_o those_o age_n but_o the_o follow_v but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o i_o who_o draw_v thence_o several_a advantage_n for_o first_o neither_o mr._n arnaud_n nor_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n can_v henceforward_o prevail_v by_o the_o equivocation_n of_o the_o term_n of_o real_a absence_n which_o may_v be_v take_v either_o for_o the_o rejection_n of_o the_o visible_a or_o corporeal_a presence_n or_o for_o the_o rejection_n of_o the_o invisible_a presence_n see_v we_o have_v show_v they_o that_o in_o this_o debate_n the_o question_n concern_v not_o the_o real_a absence_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n but_o the_o real_a absence_n in_o the_o second_o second_o they_o can_v no_o long_o confound_v these_o two_o thing_n as_o if_o they_o be_v but_o one_o to_o wit_n to_o be_v in_o a_o condition_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o to_o be_v in_o a_o condition_n to_o acknowledge_v it_o be_v a_o novely_a which_o be_v never_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n see_v we_o have_v show_v they_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o disposition_n and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v hence_o that_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o first_o be_v also_o in_o the_o second_o which_o be_v precise_o that_o which_o be_v here_o in_o question_n three_o neither_o will_v they_o i_o think_v any_o more_o confound_v two_o sort_n of_o very_o different_a doubt_n the_o one_o of_o incredulity_n which_o deny_v the_o thing_n itself_o and_o the_o other_o of_o simple_a ignorance_n which_o consist_v only_o in_o not_o know_v the_o manner_n yet_o without_o deny_v the_o thing_n see_v they_o have_v be_v show_v clear_o enough_o the_o difference_n of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o refer_v to_o one_o of_o these_o doubt_n what_o belong_v to_o the_o other_o four_o they_o can_v no_o long_o blind_v the_o world_n by_o this_o vain_a distinction_n of_o three_o way_n of_o reject_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o by_o a_o general_a rejection_n without_o denote_v any_o one_o kind_a of_o they_o or_o by_o a_o formal_a rejection_n of_o all_o the_o kind_n or_o by_o a_o bare_a view_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n see_v we_o have_v show_v they_o that_o the_o first_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o three_o bring_v no_o advantage_n to_o they_o and_o that_o there_o be_v only_o the_o second_o which_o they_o can_v reasonable_o stick_v to_o and_o which_o yet_o they_o renounce_v because_o they_o find_v it_o unjustifiable_a five_o it_o be_v likely_a they_o will_v no_o long_o obstinate_o maintain_v that_o a_o know_a inconsistency_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o pure_a impossibility_n and_o respect_v as_o such_o be_v a_o sense_n after_o the_o illustration_n give_v on_o this_o subject_n six_o they_o can_v no_o long_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a formulary_a of_o the_o communion_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la must_v necessary_o direct_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o conceive_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o they_o receive_v see_v it_o have_v another_o use_n which_o be_v to_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o meditate_v on_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o their_o saviour_n this_o other_o use_v be_v sufficient_a to_o employ_v many_o of_o their_o mind_n seven_o they_o will_v henceforward_o in_o vain_a pretend_v that_o the_o term_n which_o the_o father_n be_v use_v in_o their_o ordinary_a instruction_n bring_v natural_o the_o idea_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n into_o their_o auditor_n mind_n see_v we_o have_v show_v that_o the_o natural_a sense_n of_o their_o proposition_n do_v not_o depend_v on_o the_o natural_a signification_n of_o each_o term_n but_o on_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n which_o determine_v they_o to_o a_o figurative_a sense_n eight_o they_o have_v have_v no_o reason_n to_o pretend_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v always_o have_v a_o distinct_a belief_n either_o of_o the_o presence_n or_o real_a absence_n in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o roman_a church_n understand_v these_o term_n see_v we_o have_v show_v they_o five_o rank_n of_o person_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o eight_o century_n who_o have_v no_o formal_a knowledge_n of_o either_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_a nine_o it_o be_v thus_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o first_o eight_o century_n it_o hence_o follow_v it_o be_v the_o same_o by_o great_a reason_n in_o the_o follow_a which_o be_v far_o dark_a ten_o and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o important_a be_v that_o one_o may_v already_o know_v by_o this_o that_o the_o change_n which_o occasion_n our_o principal_a question_n have_v be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o easy_a for_o there_o be_v only_o two_o thing_n which_o can_v hinder_v it_o the_o one_o the_o distinct_a belief_n of_o the_o real_a absence_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o formal_a and_o positive_a belief_n that_o the_o body_n be_v not_o in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o its_o proper_a substance_n neither_o visible_a nor_o invisible_a and_o the_o other_a the_o knowledge_n diligence_n and_o fidelity_n of_o the_o pastor_n watch_v over_o their_o flock_n ready_a to_o acknowledge_v and_o repel_v the_o new_a error_n and_o make_v they_o know_v to_o their_o people_n it_o be_v already_o apparent_a that_o the_o first_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v a_o unjustifiable_a supposition_n and_o contrary_a to_o all_o probability_n and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o call_v in_o question_n the_o credit_n of_o all_o historian_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a man_n who_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o
find_v therein_o the_o consolation_n of_o our_o soul_n this_o without_o doubt_n be_v popular_a it_o be_v popular_a to_o hearken_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o sense_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v bread_n and_o yet_o to_o hear_v that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n its_o pledge_n its_o memorial_n it_o be_v popular_a to_o know_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a whence_o he_o conclude_v with_o authority_n that_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n which_o i_o give_v to_o the_o first_o age_n and_o the_o confuse_a one_o which_o i_o attribute_v to_o the_o 10_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n it_o must_v be_v allow_v that_o never_o any_o consequence_n be_v more_o violent_o draw_v than_o that_o of_o mr._n arnaud_n first_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o article_n which_o i_o give_v of_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n be_v the_o same_o with_o those_o of_o the_o popular_a knowledge_n among_o the_o first_o be_v find_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n lose_v not_o their_o natural_a substance_n that_o they_o be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n because_o they_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o popular_a knowledge_n how_o will_v he_o have_v this_o to_o be_v then_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o harken_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o proper_a sense_n which_o show_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o learning_n from_o the_o instruction_n of_o pastor_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n the_o first_o induce_v a_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o to_o judge_n of_o it_o by_o sense_n it_o be_v real_a bread_n and_o wine_n but_o the_o second_o go_v far_a for_o it_o show_v this_o very_a thing_n which_o the_o sense_n depose_v to_o be_v the_o true_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n now_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v whole_o different_a as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v the_o first_o do_v not_o dispose_v man_n to_o reject_v transubstantiation_n as_o a_o novelty_n contrary_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o remain_v still_o to_o know_v whether_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o sense_n the_o second_o do_v dispose_v they_o to_o it_o for_o it_o show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v according_a to_o the_o deposition_n of_o the_o sense_n now_o the_o first_o be_v according_a to_o my_o rule_n belong_v to_o the_o popular_a knowledge_n and_o the_o second_o belong_v to_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n what_o reason_n be_v there_o then_o in_o have_v these_o two_o knowledge_n to_o be_v the_o same_o three_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v not_o observe_v that_o when_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o eight_o first_o century_n i_o do_v not_o pretend_v exact_o to_o denote_v all_o the_o article_n of_o it_o this_o be_v not_o my_o business_n in_o that_o place_n but_o only_o to_o observe_v some_o of_o the_o principal_a one_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v know_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o proposition_n the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o it_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v but_o that_o there_o be_v therein_o some_o other_o very_o considerable_a one_o which_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n which_o i_o produce_v in_o my_o first_o part_n as_o that_o the_o change_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o a_o change_n of_o nature_n but_o a_o addition_n of_o grace_n to_o nature_n that_o jesus_n christ_n as_o to_o his_o human_a body_n or_o human_a nature_n be_v so_o in_o heaven_n that_o he_o be_v no_o more_o on_o earth_n that_o the_o manducation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v spiritual_a and_o mystical_a that_o we_o must_v not_o understand_v it_o literal_o it_o be_v a_o figurative_a expression_n that_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o verity_n represent_v by_o the_o sacrament_n be_v two_o distinct_a thing_n and_o several_a other_o which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v relate_v suppose_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o article_n of_o the_o popular_a knowledge_n be_v the_o same_o with_o those_o i_o mark_v of_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n which_o be_v evident_o false_a yet_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o these_o two_o knowledge_n according_a to_o my_o sense_n will_v be_v the_o same_o thing_n see_v i_o never_o pretend_v to_o make_v a_o exact_a enumeration_n of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n nor_o exclude_v they_o which_o i_o now_o denote_v which_o be_v no_o wise_a popular_a in_o fine_a mr._n arnaud_n have_v not_o consider_v that_o of_o the_o same_o article_n whether_o popular_a or_o not_o popular_a a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o distinct_a knowledge_n and_o a_o confuse_a one_o according_a as_o he_o make_v a_o great_a or_o lesser_a reflection_n on_o they_o according_a as_o they_o be_v respect_v with_o more_o or_o less_o application_n according_a as_o each_o of_o those_o that_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o have_v more_o or_o less_o understanding_n natural_a or_o acquire_v so_o that_o suppose_v we_o attribute_v to_o the_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o eight_o first_o century_n only_o the_o article_n which_o i_o specify_v suppose_v these_o article_n be_v the_o same_o as_o those_o i_o attribute_v to_o the_o popular_a knowledge_n which_o be_v not_o true_a suppose_v again_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o they_o as_o there_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o some_o of_o these_o article_n between_o the_o know_v of_o they_o popular_o that_o be_v to_o say_v either_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o sense_n or_o by_o the_o natural_a motion_n of_o the_o conscience_n and_o to_o know_v they_o by_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o pastor_n as_o a_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o from_o which_o a_o man_n must_v not_o vary_v it_o will_v in_o no_o wise_a thence_o follow_v that_o the_o confuse_a knowledge_n be_v according_a to_o what_o i_o lay_v down_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o object_n of_o these_o two_o knowledge_n will_v be_v the_o same_o but_o the_o knowledge_n will_v be_v distinct_a and_o thus_o have_v we_o show_v mr._n arnaud_n subtlety_n chap._n vi_o mr._n arnaud_n objection_n against_o what_o he_o call_v the_o machines_n of_o mollification_n and_o the_o machines_n of_o execution_n examine_v the_o state_n of_o the_o twelve_o century_n mr._n arnaud_v will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o say_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o 7._o answer_v to_o the_o second_o treatise_n part_v 2._o chap._n 7._o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n that_o error_n do_v not_o insinuate_v itself_o by_o way_n of_o opposition_n or_o a_o formal_a contradiction_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o by_o way_n of_o addition_n explication_n and_o confirmation_n and_o that_o it_o endeavour_n to_o ally_v itself_o with_o the_o ancient_a faith_n to_o prevent_v its_o immediate_a opposition_n and_o this_o be_v what_o he_o call_v my_o machines_n of_o mollification_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o overthrow_v in_o his_o five_o chapter_n the_o invention_n say_v he_o of_o mr._n claude_n be_v 899._o book_n 9_o ch_z 5._o page_n 899._o usual_o attend_v with_o very_o considerable_a defect_n to_o which_o i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o this_o that_o the_o pretension_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v common_o very_o high_a but_o general_o very_o ill_o ground_v well_o offer_v but_o ill_o defend_v it_o be_v false_a say_v he_o that_o paschasus_n do_v not_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n by_o express_o condemn_v those_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n mr._n arnaud_n hide_v himself_o under_o a_o thin_a vail_n pretend_v not_o to_o understand_v what_o he_o do_v very_o well_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o paschasus_n do_v not_o propose_v his_o doctrine_n by_o condemn_v those_o of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n this_o be_v not_o the_o point_n in_o question_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o he_o do_v not_o propose_v his_o doctrine_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o understand_v and_o which_o he_o therefore_o more_o clear_o explain_v now_o paschasus_n himself_o decide_v this_o difference_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n for_o speak_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o book_n touch_v his_o design_n he_o say_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o understand_v the_o 2._o lib._n de_fw-fr corpore_fw-la &_o sang._n dom._n cap._n 2._o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v every_o day_n celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n and_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v and_o know_v of_o it_o that_o we_o must_v seek_v the_o
virtue_n of_o it_o and_o instruct_v our_o faith_n under_o the_o discipline_n of_o jesus_n christ_n lest_o we_o be_v esteem_v unworthy_a if_o we_o do_v not_o discern_v it_o enough_o not_o understand_v what_o be_v the_o dignity_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v imagine_v this_o be_v only_o a_o way_n of_o speak_v to_o excite_v the_o faithful_a to_o instruct_v themselves_o in_o this_o mystery_n yet_o without_o suppose_v that_o in_o effect_n they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o exposition_n he_o be_v go_v to_o make_v of_o it_o we_o need_v only_o call_v to_o mind_n what_o he_o say_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o frudegard_n wherein_o speak_v of_o the_o success_n his_o book_n meet_v with_o i_o be_o inform_v say_v he_o that_o i_o have_v move_v several_a to_o understand_v this_o mystery_n which_o show_v frud_n epist_n ad_fw-la frud_n that_o according_a to_o he_o his_o book_n be_v a_o more_o clear_a and_o express_a exposition_n of_o the_o church_n sentiment_n and_o that_o he_o have_v actual_o bring_v over_o several_a person_n from_o a_o obscure_a to_o a_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n but_o without_o go_v any_o further_a we_o need_v only_o read_v a_o passage_n of_o odon_n abbot_n of_o clugny_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n himself_o have_v produce_v for_o it_o express_o justify_v what_o i_o say_v paschasus_n say_v he_o have_v write_v these_o thing_n and_o several_a other_o to_o learn_v we_o 913._o book_n 9_o ch_z 6._o page_n 913._o the_o reverence_n we_o owe_v to_o this_o mystery_n and_o make_v we_o know_v the_o majesty_n of_o it_o and_o if_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v know_v will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v his_o book_n they_o will_v find_v such_o great_a thing_n in_o it_o as_o will_v make_v they_o acknowledge_v they_o understand_v little_a of_o this_o mystery_n before_o after_o this_o testimony_n of_o one_o of_o paschasus_n his_o principal_a disciple_n who_o live_v in_o the_o 10_o century_n i_o think_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o paschasus_n propose_v his_o doctrine_n by_o way_n of_o explication_n he_o write_v say_v he_o to_o teach_v we_o what_o reverence_n we_o owe_v to_o this_o mystery_n and_o to_o make_v we_o know_v the_o majesty_n of_o it_o he_o will_v have_v also_o the_o learned_a before_o the_o read_n of_o this_o book_n to_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n ignorant_a of_o this_o mystery_n and_o see_v he_o be_v please_v the_o learned_a shall_v be_v no_o better_o qualify_v i_o hope_v he_o will_v pardon_v the_o ignorant_a by_o a_o strong_a reason_n and_o thus_o do_v we_o see_v on_o what_o design_n paschasus_n and_o his_o disciple_n teach_v their_o opinion_n to_o wit_n as_o a_o illustration_n of_o the_o common_a faith_n a_o explication_n of_o what_o be_v know_v before_o but_o obscure_o and_o not_o as_o a_o doctrine_n direct_o opposite_a to_o a_o error_n with_o which_o man_n be_v imbue_v i_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o design_n prove_v not_o successful_a to_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o and_o there_o be_v several_a who_o regard_v this_o opinion_n as_o a_o novelty_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o as_o to_o they_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o paschasus_n and_o his_o disciple_n proceed_v with_o they_o by_o way_n of_o opposition_n and_o contradiction_n as_o we_o be_v wont_v to_o do_v against_o profess_a enemy_n but_o how_o do_v this_o hinder_v they_o from_o propose_v their_o doctrine_n by_o way_n of_o explication_n and_o even_o this_o to_o wit_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n or_o not_o be_v in_o part_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o contradiction_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a say_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o a_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v approve_v of_o 900._o book_n 9_o ch_z 5._o page_n 900._o immediate_o by_o all_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v propose_v there_o must_v certain_o be_v some_o who_o reject_v it_o and_o warn_v other_o against_o it_o i_o grant_v it_o but_o that_o it_o hence_o follow_v as_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v it_o believe_v that_o my_o pretention_n be_v impossible_a be_v what_o i_o deny_v and_o that_o with_o reason_n for_o a_o man_n may_v well_o propose_v a_o new_a opinion_n by_o way_n of_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o defend_v it_o afterward_o by_o way_n of_o contradiction_n against_o adversary_n who_o reject_v it_o and_o respect_v it_o as_o a_o novelty_n in_o fine_a add_v mr._n arnaud_n this_o mean_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o end_n for_o which_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la mr._n claude_n design_n it_o which_o be_v to_o hinder_v man_n from_o rise_v up_o against_o this_o doctrine_n and_o make_v the_o change_n insensible_a to_o those_o which_o suffer_v it_o we_o never_o tell_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o this_o mean_n absolute_o hinder_v the_o insurrection_n he_o mention_n but_o in_o effect_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o several_a do_v rise_v up_o against_o paschasus_n but_o we_o pretend_v likewise_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o cheat_v several_a by_o make_v they_o receive_v this_o novelty_n under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o explication_n and_o that_o in_o their_o respect_n they_o conceive_v therein_o no_o other_o change_n than_o that_o which_o ignorant_a people_n do_v conceive_v when_o they_o imagine_v a_o great_a illustration_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o those_o learned_a person_n can_v conceive_v of_o it_o mention_v by_o odon_n who_o by_o read_v paschasus_n his_o book_n acknowledge_v they_o have_v hitherto_o but_o small_a knowledge_n of_o this_o mystery_n all_o the_o effect_n which_o this_o can_v produce_v be_v to_o excite_v they_o against_o their_o former_a ignorance_n and_o to_o esteem_v themselves_o oblige_v to_o paschasus_n for_o his_o good_a instruction_n now_o we_o know_v that_o these_o kind_n of_o insurrection_n make_v no_o great_a noise_n but_o say_v moreover_o mr._n arnaud_n other_o must_v be_v surprise_v in_o a_o contrary_a 901._o page_n 901._o manner_n they_o must_v needs_o deride_v the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o new_a doctrine_n they_o must_v be_v astonish_v at_o the_o boldness_n of_o paschasus_n and_o his_o disciple_n propose_v of_o it_o as_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v be_v mighty_o offend_v at_o their_o be_v accuse_v of_o ignorance_n and_o infidelity_n for_o not_o believe_v that_o which_o no_o body_n ever_o do_v believe_v who_o tell_v mr._n aruaud_v there_o be_v not_o in_o effect_n several_a in_o paschasus_n his_o time_n who_o have_v these_o kind_n of_o sentiment_n touch_v his_o opinion_n pascasus_n himself_o acknowledge_v that_o several_a call_v in_o question_n his_o doctrine_n he_o say_v he_o be_v reprehend_v for_o take_v our_o saviour_n word_n in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n he_o endeavour_v to_o answer_v some_o of_o their_o objection_n seem_v to_o intimate_v he_o be_v accuse_v for_o write_v his_o book_n by_o a_o enthusiastic_a rashness_n and_o pretend_a revelation_n and_o in_o effect_n john_n scot_n raban_n and_o bertram_n write_v against_o his_o novelty_n and_o oppose_v they_o but_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v its_o be_v true_a that_o he_o propose_v his_o doctrine_n as_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o common_a faith_n and_o that_o this_o way_n may_v procure_v he_o many_o follower_n and_o so_o far_o concern_v the_o machines_n of_o mollification_n i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o pretend_a machines_n of_o execution_n mr._n arnaud_n immediate_o complain_v that_o i_o sometime_o make_v the_o real_a presence_n to_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o noise_n of_o dispute_n and_o otherwhiles_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v no_o dispute_n in_o the_o 10_o century_n wherein_o i_o pretend_v this_o be_v effect_v i_o think_v 902._o book_n 9_o ch_z 6._o page_n 902._o say_v he_o we_o have_v best_o leave_v he_o to_o his_o choice_n and_o that_o by_o choose_v one_o of_o these_o chimerical_a mean_n he_o may_v acknowledge_v he_o have_v rash_o and_o false_o offer_v the_o other_o be_v mr._n arnaud_n request_n reasonable_a we_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o grant_v it_o notwithstanding_o the_o sharpness_n of_o his_o expression_n but_o it_o be_v unjust_a and_o unwarrantable_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o change_n in_o question_n have_v happen_v and_o that_o with_o and_o without_o dispute_n there_o be_v a_o contest_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n during_o the_o time_n wherein_o paschasus_n live_v as_o i_o now_o say_v we_o do_v not_o find_v there_o be_v any_o in_o the_o 10_o but_o in_o the_o 11_o it_o be_v very_o hot_a so_o that_o any_o man_n may_v see_v there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n in_o what_o i_o offer_v let_v mr._n arnaud_n say_v what_o he_o please_v which_o i_o hope_v he_o will_v grant_v i_o when_o he_o consider_v first_o that_o what_o i_o say_v concern_v the_o sense_n that_o be_v attack_v by_o the_o noise_n of_o the_o dispute_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n must_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o 11_o
be_v elect_v by_o these_o monster_n seeing_z there_o be_v nothing_o more_o natural_a than_o for_o every_o thing_n to_o produce_v its_o like_a who_o doubt_v but_o they_o consent_v to_o all_o which_o they_o do_v who_o have_v choose_v they_o but_o that_o they_o imitate_v they_o and_o tread_v in_o their_o footstep_n but_o that_o they_o all_o desire_v our_o saviour_n shall_v sleep_v on_o and_o never_o rise_v to_o judge_v they_o nor_o awake_v to_o call_v they_o to_o account_v for_o their_o wicked_a deed_n luitprand_n produce_v a_o letter_n of_o john_n the_o xiith_o to_o the_o council_n which_o the_o emperor_n otton_n assemble_v at_o rome_n to_o depose_v he_o which_o show_v we_o how_o admirable_a the_o pope_n be_v for_o learn_v in_o those_o day_n joannes_n episcopus_fw-la servus_n servorum_fw-la dei_fw-la omnibus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la nos_fw-la audivimus_fw-la dicere_fw-la quod_fw-la vos_fw-la vultis_fw-la alium_fw-la papam_fw-la facere_fw-la si_fw-la hoc_fw-la feceritis_fw-la excommunico_fw-la vos_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la omnipotenti_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la habeatis_fw-la licentiam_fw-la ullum_fw-la ordinare_fw-la &_o missam_fw-la celebrare_fw-la the_o council_n answer_n be_v as_o elegant_a est_fw-la vestris_fw-la in_o literis_fw-la scriptum_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la episcopum_fw-la sed_fw-la puerilem_fw-la ineptiam_fw-la scribere_fw-la deceret_fw-la excommunicastis_fw-la enim_fw-la omnes_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la habeamus_fw-la licentiam_fw-la canendi_fw-la missam_fw-la ordinandi_fw-la ecclesiasticas_fw-la dispositiones_fw-la si_fw-la al●um_fw-la romanoe_n sedi_fw-la constitueremus_fw-la episcopum_fw-la it_o a_o enim_fw-la scriptum_fw-la erat_fw-la non_fw-la habeatis_fw-la licentiam_fw-la ullum_fw-la ordinare_fw-la nunc_fw-la usque_fw-la putavimus_fw-la immo_fw-la credimus_fw-la duo_fw-la negativa_fw-la unum_fw-la facere_fw-la dedicativum_fw-la nisi_fw-la vestra_fw-la autoritas_fw-la priscorum_fw-la sententias_fw-la infirmaret_fw-la autorum_fw-la the_o zeal_n fervour_n frequent_a conversion_n and_o reformation_n of_o those_o day_n can_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o simony_n be_v very_o frequent_a as_o i_o prove_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o luitprand_n and_o glaber_n and_o by_o the_o very_a confession_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n himself_o which_o may_v be_v further_o make_v to_o appear_v be_v it_o necessary_a now_o judge_v i_o pray_v you_o what_o science_n and_o zeal_n there_o can_v be_v in_o a_o church_n where_o the_o ministerial_a office_n be_v upon_o sale_n to_o he_o that_o offer_v most_o and_o moreover_o the_o archbishoprics_a and_o bishopric_n common_o bestow_v on_o child_n uncapable_a of_o discharge_v those_o great_a trust_n which_o baronius_n express_o assert_n for_o have_v tell_v 925._o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la ann_n 925._o we_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o frodoart_n that_o heribert_n earl_n of_o guyenne_n and_o süelphus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n be_v agree_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o süelphus_n the_o archbishopric_a shall_v come_v to_o heribert_n son_n he_o say_v that_o heribert_n to_o make_v quick_a work_n cause_v süelphus_n to_o be_v poison_v and_o his_o son_n to_o be_v choose_v in_o his_o place_n who_o be_v not_o above_o five_o year_n old_a that_o the_o news_n of_o the_o election_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o king_n he_o confirm_v it_o which_o be_v also_o do_v by_o pope_n john_n the_o xth._n to_o which_o baronius_n add_v that_o this_o example_n be_v quick_o follow_v by_o several_a prince_n who_o promote_v their_o own_o or_o relation_n child_n to_o the_o episcopal_a seat_n as_o oft_o as_o they_o become_v vacant_a which_o say_v he_o be_v likewise_o do_v in_o rome_n itself_o in_o those_o day_n constantinople_n and_o other_o great_a city_n and_o will_v to_o god_n add_v he_o this_o custom_n have_v go_v no_o far_o than_o those_o day_n and_o that_o so_o detestable_a a_o wickedness_n against_o the_o church_n canon_n be_v unknown_a to_o the_o follow_a age_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n himself_o judge_v whether_o ignorance_n and_o carelessness_n be_v not_o the_o natural_a effect_n of_o such_o disorder_n whereunto_o we_o may_v add_v the_o tumult_n and_o continual_a war_n with_o which_o the_o west_n be_v afflict_v during_o this_o whole_a century_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o all_o europe_n resound_v with_o the_o noise_n of_o they_o france_n be_v therein_o trouble_v by_o the_o league_n of_o robert_n and_o the_o dreadful_a consequence_n happen_v thereupon_o by_o the_o war_n against_o the_o norman_n dane_n and_o german_n and_o by_o those_o which_o happen_v upon_o the_o rejection_n of_o charles_n duke_n of_o lorraine_n and_o the_o election_n of_o hugo_n capet_n england_n be_v therein_o disturb_v by_o divers_a civil_a war_n and_o the_o frequent_a incursion_n of_o the_o dane_n scotch_a irish_a and_o other_o people_n still_o profess_v paganism_n spain_n be_v also_o molest_v by_o the_o moor_n arabian_n and_o saracen_n by_o the_o invasion_n of_o the_o norman_n and_o by_o the_o dreadful_a division_n of_o the_o christian_n germany_n spend_v this_o century_n in_o perpetual_a confusion_n the_o dane_n sclavonian_n and_o huns_n ravage_v all_o thing_n by_o their_o eruption_n which_o often_o happen_v for_o child_n to_o contrive_v the_o death_n of_o their_o parent_n be_v ordinary_a and_o great_a person_n to_o rise_v up_o against_o their_o lawful_a prince_n which_o common_o end_v in_o bloody_a battle_n not_o to_o mention_v the_o cruel_a war_n which_o the_o emperor_n have_v to_o maintain_v in_o italy_n against_o the_o factious_a and_o in_o calabria_n against_o the_o greek_n and_o saracen_n as_o to_o italy_n she_o be_v throughout_o this_o whole_a century_n in_o the_o most_o deplorable_a state_n imaginable_a on_o one_o hand_n by_o the_o prince_n of_o tuscany_n on_o the_o other_o by_o the_o war_n of_o the_o italian_a prince_n one_o against_o another_o and_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o neighbour_a king_n in_o short_a the_o confusion_n be_v then_o so_o general_a that_o there_o be_v scarce_o a_o corner_n in_o europe_n wherein_o a_o man_n that_o love_v quiet_a can_v obtain_v it_o now_o who_o be_v it_o but_o know_v that_o time_n of_o war_n and_o division_n be_v apt_a to_o introduce_v carelessness_n looseness_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n into_o the_o church_n i_o confess_v there_o be_v in_o this_o age_n some_o endeavour_n after_o a_o reformation_n but_o beside_o that_o they_o be_v but_o mere_a essay_n that_o prove_v ineffectual_a i_o deny_v they_o be_v strong_a enough_o suppose_v they_o can_v have_v have_v a_o wish_a for_o success_n to_o stir_v man_n up_o to_o search_v into_o the_o controversy_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o most_o considerable_a be_v those_o make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o tros_o already_o mention_v by_o we_o and_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o make_v some_o remark_n on_o what_o be_v resolve_v therein_o let_v we_o endeavour_v epilog●_n council_n trost_n n_z epilog●_n say_v these_o father_n which_o be_v not_o above_o twelve_o by_o our_o own_o mean_n and_o by_o the_o priest_n under_o we_o to_o avoid_v as_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v this_o terrible_a damnation_n which_o we_o have_v draw_v down_o upon_o ourselves_o and_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o our_o charge_n let_v we_o instruct_v they_o both_o by_o our_o doctrine_n and_o example_n let_v we_o behave_v ourselves_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n that_o our_o office_n be_v not_o dishonour_v and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o we_o the_o priest_n be_v without_o knowledge_n those_o to_o who_o the_o law_n be_v commit_v have_v not_o know_v i_o and_o lest_o we_o fall_v into_o the_o fault_n of_o ely_n who_o correct_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o his_o son_n first_o then_o let_v every_o christian_a ground_n himself_o well_o in_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n without_o which_o a_o man_n can_v be_v call_v a_o christian_n let_v he_o believe_v in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n one_o only_a true_a god_n three_o person_n in_o unity_n of_o substance_n but_o yet_o know_v that_o the_o son_n alone_o take_v on_o he_o our_o flesh_n to_o save_v we_o and_o thus_o suffer_v death_n rise_v again_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o will_v come_v in_o the_o same_o flesh_n to_o judge_n both_o quick_a and_o dead_a let_v he_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o by_o he_o we_o have_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o our_o baptism_n and_o that_o through_o his_o grace_n our_o sin_n be_v continual_o pardon_v by_o the_o penitence_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n let_v he_o believe_v also_o a_o real_a and_o general_a resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n at_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v the_o true_a foundation_n of_o faith_n which_o must_v be_v adorn_v by_o good_a work_n for_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a without_o faith_n to_o please_v god_n so_o faith_n can_v be_v persect_n if_o it_o show_v not_o itself_o by_o charity_n for_o if_o it_o be_v void_a of_o work_n it_o be_v become_v
dead_a in_o itself_o they_o afterward_o proceed_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o morality_n recommend_v hope_n charity_n humility_n chastity_n temperance_n sobriety_n and_o condemn_v pride_n envy_n hatred_n variance_n drunkenness_n calumny_n magic_a divination_n etc._n etc._n here_o we_o have_v without_o question_n very_o commendable_a endeavour_n but_o they_o reach_v no_o far_o than_o the_o instruct_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o morality_n these_o father_n in_o their_o great_a zeal_n to_o reform_v both_o themselves_o and_o other_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n it_o be_v not_o then_o above_o fifty_o year_n when_o the_o dispute_n be_v very_o hot_a on_o this_o subject_n and_o book_n be_v write_v on_o both_o side_n yet_o it_o seem_v they_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o much_o less_o determine_v to_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o hold_v of_o it_o all_o their_o care_n be_v to_o remove_v that_o ignorance_n of_o the_o fundamental_o wherein_o the_o people_n lay_v and_o correct_v that_o fearful_a corruption_n of_o manner_n wherein_o the_o great_a parr_n spend_v their_o life_n now_o this_o show_v we_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n can_v draw_v no_o advantage_n from_o these_o essay_n of_o a_o reformation_n for_o suppose_v they_o have_v their_o whole_a effect_n they_o extend_v not_o so_o far_o as_o the_o question_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n because_o they_o suppose_v either_o that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o it_o or_o that_o the_o pastor_n be_v themselves_o so_o persuade_v of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o instruct_v they_o in_o it_o or_o exhort_v they_o to_o instruct_v their_o flock_n in_o it_o but_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o this_o in_o numerable_a multitude_n of_o people_n of_o both_o sex_n and_o of_o all_o age_n and_o condition_n of_o life_n that_o know_v not_o their_o creed_n nor_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o live_v without_o any_o knowledge_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n shall_v know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v they_o all_o in_o those_o day_n bear_v imbue_v with_o this_o doctrine_n what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o those_o abbot_n that_o know_v not_o the_o statute_n of_o their_o monastery_n and_o who_o to_o excuse_v themselves_o from_o read_v they_o when_o offer_v to_o they_o be_v force_v to_o say_v nescimus_fw-la literas_fw-la be_v not_o likewise_o great_o ignorant_a of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n what_o reason_n be_v there_o to_o say_v the_o pastor_n themselves_o be_v common_o instruct_v in_o it_o see_v odon_n abbot_n of_o clugny_n as_o we_o have_v already_o see_v testify_v that_o those_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v learn_v yet_o have_v little_a knowledge_n of_o the_o sacrament_n till_o they_o read_v paschasus_n his_o book_n there_o be_v likewise_o other_o reformation_n make_v in_o this_o century_n but_o they_o serve_v only_o to_o establish_v some_o order_n in_o the_o monastery_n and_o the_o observance_n of_o particular_a statute_n under_o which_o the_o religious_a be_v oblige_v to_o live_v by_o their_o profession_n and_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o ignorance_n and_o carelessness_n be_v very_o great_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n as_o to_o the_o conversion_n it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v some_o but_o mr._n arnaud_n know_v very_o well_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v wrought_v by_o force_n or_o the_o interest_n and_o intrigue_n of_o prince_n and_o thus_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v might_n well_o embrace_v their_o religion_n implicit_o or_o in_o gross_a without_o trouble_v themselves_o with_o particular_a doctrine_n as_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v at_o present_a in_o the_o year_n 912_o according_a to_o matthew_n of_o westminister_n rollon_n or_o raoul_n duke_n of_o normandy_n embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n to_o espouse_v gill_n the_o daughter_n or_o sister_n of_o charles_n iii_o king_n of_o france_n in_o the_o year_n 925_o sitricus_fw-la king_n of_o denmark_n cause_v himself_o to_o be_v baptize_v to_o espouse_v edgite_n the_o sister_n of_o etelstan_n king_n of_o england_n but_o a_o while_n after_o he_o return_v to_o paganism_n in_o the_o year_n 926_o elstan_n have_v vanquish_v in_o battle_n several_a petty_a king_n which_o be_v then_o in_o england_n oblige_v they_o and_o their_o subject_n to_o receive_v the_o christian_a faith_n in_o the_o year_n 949_o otton_n king_n of_o germany_n have_v subdue_v the_o sclavonian_n these_o people_n redeem_v their_o life_n and_o country_n by_o be_v baptise_a in_o the_o year_n 965_o poland_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o the_o marriage_n of_o miezislaus_n its_o king_n with_o the_o daughter_n of_o boleslaüs_n duke_n of_o bohemia_n john_n xiii_o antipope_n to_o benedict_n v._o send_v thither_o gilles_n bishop_n of_o tusculum_n to_o establish_v under_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n his_o religion_n in_o that_o country_n in_o the_o year_n 989_o adalbert_n archbishop_n of_o prague_n go_v into_o hungary_n to_o endeavour_v the_o conversion_n of_o those_o people_n but_o this_o be_v under_o the_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o geisa_n king_n of_o hungary_n who_o be_v convert_v by_o commerce_n with_o christian_n who_o he_o free_o permit_v to_o live_v in_o his_o kingdom_n so_o that_o all_o these_o conversion_n about_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n make_v such_o a_o noise_n to_o advance_v the_o glory_n zeal_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n do_v not_o at_o all_o conclude_v what_o they_o pretend_v let_v the_o reader_n then_o join_v all_o these_o thing_n together_o and_o judge_v which_o of_o we_o two_o have_v most_o reason_n mr._n arnaud_n who_o maintain_v it_o to_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n suppose_v it_o be_v a_o novelty_n in_o the_o church_n can_v make_v any_o progress_n therein_o in_o the_o 10_o century_n without_o dispute_n and_o commotion_n or_o i_o who_o maintain_v that_o these_o progress_v be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o easy_a to_o be_v conceive_v first_o there_o be_v dispute_n on_o this_o subject_n in_o the_o 9th_o century_n which_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n not_o to_o be_v deny_v second_o although_o the_o question_n be_v therein_o agitate_a yet_o be_v it_o not_o decide_v by_o any_o council_n nor_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o public_a authority_n three_o those_o of_o the_o 10_o century_n fall_v into_o a_o very_a confuse_a knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_a the_o people_n the_o religious_a and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o bishop_n live_v in_o very_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o in_o a_o prodigious_a neglect_n of_o the_o chief_a office_n of_o their_o charge_n as_o we_o have_v full_o prove_v four_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n be_v whole_o lay_v aside_o in_o this_o age_n and_o the_o temporal_a state_n of_o the_o church_n lie_v in_o a_o perpetual_a and_o general_a confusion_n five_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o bertram_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v therein_o preach_v in_o several_a place_n six_o it_o also_o appear_v that_o that_o of_o paschasus_n be_v so_o too_o and_o be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v underpropt_a by_o miracle_n and_o pastor_n exhort_v to_o read_v paschasus_n his_o book_n to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n seven_o to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v that_o the_o person_n that_o teach_v the_o real_a presence_n in_o this_o century_n be_v people_n of_o great_a credit_n and_o authority_n odon_n that_o confirm_v it_o by_o miracle_n be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o be_v in_o great_a reputation_n the_o other_a odon_n who_o have_v such_o a_o esteem_n for_o paschasus_n his_o book_n be_v a_o abbot_n of_o clugny_n a_o restorer_n and_o reformer_n of_o several_a monastery_n of_o who_o baronius_n say_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v by_o god_n as_o another_o jeremiah_n 938._o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la a_o 938._o to_o pluck_v up_o destroy_v scatter_v plant_v and_o build_v in_o that_o wretched_a age._n all_o these_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v clear_o prove_v as_o they_o be_v what_o impossibility_n be_v there_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paschasus_n which_o he_o teach_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n as_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n confirm_v it_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v by_o several_a passage_n of_o the_o father_n take_v in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n no_o public_a authority_n have_v condemn_v it_o shall_v have_v follower_n in_o the_o 10_o that_o these_o his_o disciple_n find_v '_o emselves_fw-mi credit_v and_o authorize_v by_o their_o office_n and_o employ_v in_o a_o church_n wherein_o ignorance_n carelessness_n and_o confusion_n reign_v have_v themselves_o communicate_v
10_o century_n and_o that_o as_o to_o his_o part_n he_o have_v make_v use_n neither_o of_o cheat_n nor_o artisices_n to_o hinder_v this_o change_n be_v be_v make_v with_o noise_n the_o first_o of_o these_o answer_n be_v already_o refute_v we_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v either_o with_o greek_n or_o egyptian_n moscovite_n ethiopian_n nestorian_n jacobite_n armenian_n nor_o indian_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o transubstantiation_n mr._n arnaud_n put_v question_n to_o we_o about_o they_o without_o their_o consent_n or_o order_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n insinuate_v of_o itself_o among_o they_o which_o when_o effect_v we_o shall_v have_v the_o emissary_n and_o scholar_n of_o the_o seminary_n to_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o innovation_n the_o second_o answer_n be_v frivolous_a we_o neither_o accuse_v mr._n arnaud_n nor_o his_o friend_n personal_o for_o have_v do_v any_o thing_n to_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o the_o change_n happen_v whatsoever_o they_o have_v thereunto_o contribute_v consist_v only_o in_o the_o false_a citation_n and_o sophism_n in_o their_o book_n but_o of_o these_o we_o will_v not_o here_o complain_v we_o only_o complain_v here_o of_o their_o draw_a advantage_n from_o the_o ill_a mean_n that_o have_v be_v use_v by_o other_o person_n on_o their_o side_n who_o successor_n and_o defender_n they_o be_v to_o deprive_v posterity_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o innovation_n in_o question_n and_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o justice_n in_o this_o complaint_n a_o council_n have_v cause_v john_n scot_n book_n to_o be_v burn_v there_o be_v none_o to_o be_v have_v of_o they_o at_o this_o day_n we_o have_v lose_v the_o write_n of_o heribald_a bishop_n of_o auxerre_n the_o letter_n of_o raban_n to_o egilon_n eriger_n book_n against_o paschasus_n berenger_n work_n their_o book_n who_o write_v in_o his_o favour_n in_o the_o 11_o century_n we_o know_v no_o more_o of_o this_o long_a history_n than_o what_o we_o can_v gather_v here_o and_o there_o in_o suspect_a author_n adversary_n to_o berengarius_fw-la and_o his_o doctrine_n moreover_o there_o have_v be_v give_v the_o public_a under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n false_a and_o suppose_a book_n their_o real_a work_n have_v be_v alter_v and_o false_a piece_n insert_v in_o they_o to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v there_o be_v no_o innovation_n in_o their_o doctrine_n i_o say_v noüet_v answer_v to_o noüet_v nothing_o but_o what_o may_v be_v easy_o justify_v and_o which_o i_o have_v already_o clear_o prove_v elsewhere_o if_o i_o complain_v of_o mr._n arnaud_n injustice_n who_o make_v advantage_n of_o these_o fraud_n put_v upon_o we_o and_o which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v such_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o what_o the_o emissary_n have_v do_v in_o the_o east_n whence_o he_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v they_o of_o those_o part_n have_v ever_o hold_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n this_o be_v i_o think_v a_o complaint_n for_o which_o no_o rational_a person_n will_v condemn_v i_o i_o likewise_o propose_v some_o example_n of_o insensible_a change_n which_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n whence_o i_o conclude_v it_o be_v not_o impossible_a one_o shall_v have_v happen_v by_o the_o introduction_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n mr._n arnaud_n to_o extricate_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o perplexity_n which_o these_o example_n cause_v he_o have_v devise_v some_o distinction_n some_o of_o they_o imaginary_a and_o other_o unnecessary_a by_o mean_n whereof_o he_o have_v pretend_v to_o invalidate_v the_o change_n in_o question_n and_o they_o be_v these_o difference_n which_o we_o must_v now_o examine_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o communicate_v of_o both_o kind_n that_o of_o give_v the_o communion_n to_o little_a child_n and_o that_o of_o fast_v till_o the_o evening_n and_o some_o other_o have_v be_v change_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o gainsay_v it_o but_o tell_v we_o these_o custom_n be_v still_o use_v in_o the_o eastern_a church_n so_o that_o the_o change_n have_v not_o be_v universal_a whereas_o if_o that_o of_o the_o establishment_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v true_a we_o must_v suppose_v it_o happen_v at_o the_o same_o time_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n and_o all_o christian_a church_n this_o be_v his_o first_o difference_n which_o he_o amplify_v and_o exaggerate_v after_o his_o manner_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v not_o difficult_a to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o transubstantiation_n or_o real_a presence_n such_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v in_o the_o eastern_a church_n or_o if_o there_o be_v it_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o the_o emissary_n and_o scholar_n of_o the_o romish_a seminary_n beside_o that_o a_o change_n be_v not_o ever_o the_o less_o insensible_a in_o respect_n of_o those_o that_o have_v admit_v it_o for_o its_o being_n less_o universal_a the_o second_o difference_n be_v that_o in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o expression_n which_o i_o propose_v the_o point_n concern_v some_o establish_a custom_n whereas_o here_o the_o question_n be_v touch_v a_o new_a doctrine_n universal_o establish_v which_o be_v say_v he_o extreme_o different_a a_o general_a inconveniency_n may_v universal_o abolish_v a_o custom_n but_o when_o the_o question_n be_v touch_v the_o remedy_n of_o a_o abuse_n every_o man_n follow_v his_o particular_a judgement_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o remedy_n and_o this_o especial_o show_v we_o the_o impossibility_n of_o the_o change_n in_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o this_o must_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o universal_a establishment_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a doctrine_n which_o can_v subsist_v with_o the_o infinite_a diversity_n of_o judgement_n respect_n and_o inclination_n which_o happen_v in_o so_o many_o different_a church_n which_o be_v divide_v in_o such_o small_a matter_n can_v be_v expect_v to_o unite_v in_o a_o doctrine_n so_o offensive_a that_o it_o be_v strange_a it_o have_v find_v any_o follower_n neither_o can_v it_o have_v it_o not_o be_v authorise_a by_o a_o universal_a consent_n i_o confess_v there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o ancient_a custom_n that_o be_v abolish_v and_o a_o new_a doctrine_n that_o be_v establish_v but_o this_o difference_n do_v mr._n arnaud_n more_o hurt_v than_o good_a for_o ignorant_a people_n be_v more_o earnest_a to_o conserve_v their_o custom_n which_o they_o know_v than_o they_o be_v to_o reject_v a_o doctrine_n which_o they_o know_v but_o imperfect_o and_o concern_v who_o novelty_n they_o can_v judge_v when_o a_o ancient_a public_a and_o perpetual_a custom_n be_v abolish_v the_o innovation_n be_v more_o manifest_a than_o when_o a_o new_a doctrine_n be_v introduce_v for_o the_o novelty_n of_o it_o be_v conceal_v it_o be_v offer_v as_o be_v the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o they_o that_o offer_v it_o pervert_v for_o this_o effect_n some_o ordinary_a expression_n turn_v they_o into_o another_o sense_n custom_n be_v of_o themselves_o popular_a and_o when_o they_o be_v change_v people_n be_v apt_a to_o imagine_v their_o religion_n be_v about_o be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o but_o as_o to_o doctrinal_n the_o people_n be_v wont_a to_o suffer_v those_o that_o have_v great_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o preach_v what_o they_o please_v and_o obedient_o receive_v it_o without_o any_o examination_n as_o to_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v certain_a there_o have_v happen_v something_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v like_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n observe_v that_o when_o we_o leave_v a_o ancient_a custom_n every_o man_n take_v a_o different_a course_n and_o follow_v his_o own_o particular_a judgement_n for_o the_o latin_n and_o greek_n in_o depart_v from_o the_o plain_a and_o genuine_a explication_n of_o the_o ancient_n which_o be_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v figure_n and_o image_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v fall_v upon_o different_a sentiment_n the_o greek_n have_v take_v the_o party_n of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o bread_n with_o the_o divinity_n and_o augmentation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o latin_n that_o of_o transubstantiation_n but_o we_o must_v not_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n what_o mr._n arnaud_n confess_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_n be_v so_o offensive_a that_o it_o be_v strange_a it_o have_v find_v any_o follower_n have_v it_o not_o be_v authorise_v by_o a_o universal_a consent_n this_o acknowledgement_n must_v at_o least_o show_v the_o world_n how_o important_a it_o be_v to_o prevent_v be_v abuse_v by_o this_o pretend_a universal_a consent_n and_o engage_v in_o a_o sentiment_n which_o moreover_o be_v so_o offensive_a but_o as_o the_o discussion_n of_o this_o question_n touch_v the_o universal_a
present_v as_o also_o the_o answer_n of_o cardinal_n perron_n which_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n but_o mere_a illusion_n we_o may_v reckon_v among_o the_o practice_n depend_v on_o a_o doctrine_n that_o of_o the_o relative_a adoration_n of_o image_n which_o have_v insinuate_v itself_o into_o france_n and_o germany_n since_o the_o 8_o and_o 9th_o century_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o all_o the_o forego_n age_n and_o long_o after_o france_n and_o germany_n reject_v this_o adoration_n as_o unlawful_a and_o contrary_a to_o true_a piety_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o francfort_n hold_v under_o charlemagne_n and_o consist_v of_o above_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n of_o france_n italy_n germany_n and_o england_n wherein_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v condemn_v this_o moreover_o appear_v by_o the_o book_n of_o image_n of_o charlemagne_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o agobard_n bishop_n of_o lion_n ionas_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n and_o walafridus_n strabo_n by_o the_o council_n of_o paris_n under_z lewis_z the_o debonnair_a and_o by_o the_o continuer_n of_o climoinus_n we_o find_v likewise_o in_o nicetas_n choniatus_fw-la that_o the_o german_n in_o the_o 12_o century_n persist_v in_o this_o opinion_n the_o german_n say_v he_o and_o the_o armenian_n agree_n in_o this_o 986._o nicet_fw-la choni_fw-la l._n 2._o page_n 986._o that_o they_o reject_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n mr._n arnaud_n who_o can_v deny_v so_o plain_a a_o matter_n of_o fact_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o francfort_n admit_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v only_o a_o image_n of_o the_o true_a cross_n that_o they_o admit_v likewise_o the_o historical_a use_n of_o image_n and_o that_o without_o do_v violence_n to_o nature_n the_o historical_a use_n of_o image_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o relative_a adoration_n of_o the_o same_o image_n but_o this_o be_v a_o impertinent_a dispute_v against_o the_o father_n of_o francfort_n and_o the_o church_n that_o have_v follow_v they_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o themselves_o or_o whether_o they_o do_v violence_n to_o nature_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o contrary_a belief_n and_o practice_n have_v insensible_o creep_v into_o these_o very_a church_n without_o noise_n opposition_n and_o disputation_n now_o this_o be_v what_o can_v be_v deny_v it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o strange_a say_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o particular_a opinion_n of_o these_o bishop_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n reason_n and_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v be_v lay_v aside_o and_o that_o the_o pope_n who_o use_v this_o condescension_n towards_o they_o do_v not_o open_o oppose_v they_o but_o tarry_v till_o time_n wear_v out_o this_o error_n whereby_o they_o have_v have_v the_o success_n which_o they_o expect_v from_o so_o charitable_a a_o conduct_n so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o be_v strange_a that_o this_o shall_v happen_v that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a wonder_n if_o this_o have_v not_o happen_v this_o methinks_v be_v a_o dispose_n too_o free_o of_o the_o judgement_n and_o consent_n of_o rational_a people_n it_o will_v not_o then_o be_v strange_a according_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o this_o party_n that_o be_v in_o the_o opinion_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o relative_a adoration_n of_o image_n shall_v use_v any_o condescension_n towards_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o council_n the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o all_o germany_n which_o be_v in_o a_o contrary_a belief_n and_o practice_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v cautious_a of_o oppose_v they_o in_o this_o particular_a and_o patient_o expect_v till_o time_n remedy_v this_o mistake_n but_o according_a to_o the_o same_o mr._n arnaud_n this_o will_v be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o folly_n and_o the_o high_a extravagancy_n imaginable_a to_o suppose_v that_o some_o paschasi_v and_o bertramist_n which_o be_v to_o say_v those_o that_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o those_o that_o believe_v it_o not_o in_o the_o 10_o century_n do_v not_o dispute_v one_o against_o another_o and_o although_o that_o moreover_o they_o be_v not_o in_o a_o condition_n to_o dispute_v and_o have_v other_o thing_n to_o trouble_v themselves_o about_o other_o interest_n to_o mind_n yet_o must_v it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o imagine_v they_o be_v of_o that_o patient_a and_o charitable_a disposition_n the_o pope_n be_v of_o who_o refer_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v remedy_v by_o time_n mr._n arnaud_n forbid_v we_o to_o be_v astonish_v at_o france_n and_o germany_n insensible_o change_v a_o doctrine_n and_o a_o rite_n he_o forbid_v we_o to_o concern_v ourselves_o about_o the_o question_n of_o the_o birth_n and_o progress_n of_o this_o change_n the_o stupidity_n of_o the_o bishop_n on_o both_o side_n who_o look_v upon_o one_o another_o as_o excommunicate_v person_n yet_o without_o dare_v to_o speak_v to_o one_o another_o about_o it_o be_v withhold_v by_o a_o holy_a condescension_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o good_a effect_n of_o time_n and_o by_o the_o marvellous_a meekness_n of_o the_o laic_n some_o of_o who_o be_v worshipper_n of_o image_n and_o other_o not_o and_o some_o of_o they_o consequent_o anathematise_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o other_o condemn_v by_o that_o of_o francfort_n and_o yet_o live_v in_o peace_n without_o noise_n without_o mutual_a opposition_n without_o dispute_n but_o if_o we_o will_v hear_v he_o on_o the_o other_o change_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n he_o command_v we_o not_o only_o to_o be_v astonish_v but_o to_o esteem_v it_o a_o fearful_a prodigy_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o 9th_o century_n be_v teach_v and_o maintain_v as_o be_v the_o ancient_a and_o perpetual_a doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v make_v insensible_a progress_v during_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o 10_o century_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v person_n in_o the_o same_o church_n that_o have_v believe_v it_o and_o other_o that_o have_v not_o without_o fall_v foul_a upon_o and_o oppose_v one_o another_o when_o the_o question_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n be_v agitate_a in_o the_o east_n it_o vehement_o heat_a man_n mind_n so_o that_o each_o party_n proceed_v to_o anathema_n banishment_n and_o bloodshed_n and_o in_o the_o west_n the_o contrary_a party_n to_o the_o adoration_n write_v and_o hold_v assembly_n whereas_o when_o the_o question_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v handle_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n there_o be_v neither_o council_n call_v nor_o anathema_n pronounce_v nor_o banishment_n nor_o any_o extraordinary_a matter_n yet_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o former_a mr._n arnaud_n will_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o condescension_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o time_n the_o party_n for_o the_o adoration_n have_v insensible_o fortify_v themselves_o and_o at_o length_n get_v the_o upper_a hand_n but_o as_o to_o the_o other_o he_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n can_v advance_v and_o communicate_v itself_o to_o several_a person_n but_o the_o whole_a universe_n must_v be_v shake_v with_o it_o let_v the_o reader_n than_o judge_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n equity_n nothing_o say_v he_o be_v more_o astonish_a than_o this_o universal_a forgetfulness_n 287._o page_n 287._o in_o the_o 11_o century_n whether_o there_o be_v therein_o any_o other_o doctrine_n among_o christian_n than_o that_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o who_o tell_v he_o that_o they_o of_o the_o 11_o century_n forget_v the_o contest_v which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o 9th_o be_v not_o john_n scot_n book_n burn_v by_o a_o council_n let_v he_o forget_v it_o if_o he_o will_v there_o will_v redound_v no_o advantage_n to_o he_o by_o it_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o 9th_o century_n the_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v teach_v i_o mean_v that_o which_o assert_n the_o eucharist_n not_o to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n sacramental_o and_o virtual_o moreover_o mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o observe_v that_o this_o very_a thing_n be_v against_o he_o for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o those_o of_o the_o 11_o century_n forget_v such_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o that_o which_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o paschasus_n himself_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a mark_n that_o the_o 10_o century_n which_o hold_v the_o middle_a between_o the_o 9th_o and_o 11_o be_v overspread_v with_o thick_a darkness_n see_v the_o idea_n and_o memory_n of_o a_o thing_n so_o considerable_a be_v therein_o lose_v but_o we_o must_v examine_v his_o four_o difference_n a_o four_o circumstance_n 960._o page_n 960._o say_v he_o which_o do_v further_a strange_o distinguish_v this_o pretend_a change_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n
from_o all_o these_o other_o change_n be_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o this_o doctrine_n he_o mean_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o have_v it_o be_v new_a it_o must_v have_v extraordinary_o surprise_v all_o those_o that_o never_o hear_v of_o it_o which_o be_v to_o say_v the_o whole_a church_n i_o confess_v that_o in_o effect_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n in_o the_o eucharist_n have_v something_o in_o it_o that_o be_v very_o surprise_v and_o more_o offensive_a than_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o other_o change_n but_o mr._n arnaud_n know_v very_o well_o that_o this_o quality_n of_o offensive_a and_o surprise_v in_o a_o doctrine_n be_v not_o strong_a enough_o to_o produce_v actual_o of_o itself_o a_o opposition_n or_o a_o rejection_n on_o the_o contrary_a most_o people_n love_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v surprise_v and_o wonderful_a of_o which_o we_o see_v example_n in_o most_o religion_n but_o howsoever_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n provide_v against_o this_o inconveniency_n three_o way_n the_o first_o be_v the_o make_v they_o a_o buckler_n of_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n the_o second_o the_o publish_n of_o miracle_n which_o real_o happen_v about_o the_o eucharist_n to_o wit_n visible_a apparition_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o three_o the_o assert_v it_o be_v always_o the_o faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n accommodate_v to_o their_o sense_n some_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n ill_o take_v and_o ill_o explain_v hitherto_o we_o have_v have_v whatsoever_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v say_v that_o be_v considerable_a on_o the_o question_n of_o the_o possibility_n or_o impossibility_n of_o the_o change_n in_o his_o 6_o and_o 9th_o book_n whatsoever_o be_v therein_o of_o moment_n we_o have_v consider_v and_o answer_v solid_o and_o pertinent_o as_o mr._n arnaud_n himself_o i_o hope_v will_v acknowledge_v i_o shall_v have_v be_v very_o glad_a if_o he_o will_v have_v tell_v we_o his_o opinion_n on_o a_o passage_n take_v out_o of_o a_o book_n call_v the_o new_a heresy_n public_o maintain_v at_o paris_n in_o the_o college_n of_o clermont_n the_o author_n of_o this_o book_n therein_o discover_v the_o order_n and_o mean_n which_o he_o pretend_v his_o adversary_n use_v to_o introduce_v novelty_n insensible_o into_o the_o church_n and_o he_o instance_n for_o this_o purpose_n the_o parable_n of_o the_o tare_n that_o be_v sow_o in_o the_o night_n whilst_o man_n sleep_v which_o take_v root_n and_o in_o time_n grow_v up_o which_o be_v very_o near_o the_o manner_n after_o which_o according_a to_o we_o the_o change_n be_v wrought_v touch_v the_o eucharist_n this_o author_n have_v well_o comprehend_v it_o as_o judge_v it_o far_o from_o be_v impossible_a but_o mr._n arnaud_n think_v meet_v to_o say_v nothing_o to_o this_o passage_n i_o shall_v likewise_o be_v very_o glad_a that_o have_v treat_v as_o he_o have_v do_v with_o great_a earnestness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o other_o eastern_a church_n he_o have_v make_v reflection_n on_o several_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o latin_n and_o in_o which_o there_o have_v happen_v of_o necessity_n either_o among_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o insensible_a change_n for_o example_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v the_o greek_n lose_v the_o belief_n of_o purgatory_n suppose_v this_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o establishment_n of_o christian_a religion_n how_o come_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o and_o also_o that_o unleavened_a bread_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o abomination_n and_o likewise_o that_o the_o priest_n may_v as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n administer_v confirmation_n and_o again_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o infallible_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o saint_n enjoy_v not_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o god_n till_o the_o resurrection_n and_o in_o short_a how_o come_v they_o to_o believe_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o opinion_n which_o they_o hold_v contrary_a to_o those_o of_o the_o latin_n there_o must_v of_o necessity_n have_v be_v a_o time_n wherein_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n be_v agree_v in_o all_o these_o article_n whether_o we_o conceive_v that_o then_o neither_o of_o they_o hold_v they_o which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o these_o article_n be_v not_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n whether_o we_o suppose_v they_o hold_v they_o in_o common_a since_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o christianity_n which_o suppose_v that_o these_o opinion_n be_v leave_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n or_o whether_o we_o imagine_v that_o the_o greek_n as_o well_o as_o the_o latin_n have_v ever_o hold_v what_o they_o now_o hold_v at_o this_o day_n but_o that_o they_o support_v mutual_o one_o another_o which_o suppose_v that_o both_o of_o they_o hold_v these_o opinion_n as_o needless_a one_o and_o regard_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n as_o tolerable_a one_o now_o in_o whatsoever_o sort_n we_o take_v it_o there_o have_v of_o necessity_n happen_v insensible_a change_n without_o dispute_n noise_n and_o opposition_n although_o there_o may_v be_v the_o same_o objection_n bring_v against_o they_o and_o the_o same_o question_n start_v which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v urge_v against_o the_o change_n in_o question_n shall_v we_o suppose_v a_o time_n wherein_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o hold_v these_o opinion_n how_o come_v they_o in_o fine_a to_o be_v imbue_v so_o general_o with_o they_o and_o so_o contradictory_o that_o a_o whole_a church_n shall_v hold_v the_o contrary_a of_o what_o the_o other_o believe_v be_v there_o not_o in_o this_o double_a change_n at_o least_o as_o much_o reason_n to_o be_v astonish_v and_o surprise_v as_o in_o that_o which_o have_v happen_v according_a to_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n have_v both_o the_o latin_n and_o greek_n fall_v asleep_o without_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n or_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n or_o quality_n which_o the_o eucharistical_a bread_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o or_o the_o administration_n of_o confirmation_n or_o beatifical_a vision_n of_o the_o saint_n nor_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o have_v they_o all_o together_o at_o the_o same_o time_n awaken_v possess_v with_o contrary_a opinion_n on_o each_o of_o these_o point_n whence_o have_v they_o their_o opinion_n do_v not_o he_o who_o first_o teach_v they_o they_o advertise_v they_o that_o he_o preach_v novelty_n to_o they_o which_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o if_o he_o do_v tell_v they_o of_o this_o it_o be_v strange_a he_o shall_v be_v follow_v immediate_o by_o his_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o such_o new_a doctrine_n shall_v be_v so_o immediate_o and_o zealous_o embrace_v if_o he_o do_v not_o tell_v they_o this_o it_o be_v then_o very_a strange_a no_o body_n take_v notice_n of_o these_o innovation_n that_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n do_v not_o oppose_v they_o and_o that_o of_o all_o that_o innumerable_a multitude_n of_o religious_a person_n not_o one_o of_o they_o have_v exclaim_v against_o the_o innovator_n have_v the_o innovator_n make_v use_v of_o some_o expression_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o church_n to_o conceal_v the_o novelty_n of_o these_o doctrine_n and_o to_o make_v people_n believe_v that_o that_o be_v the_o ancient_a faith_n how_o can_v one_o conceive_v these_o terrible_a equivocation_n that_o expression_n have_v be_v take_v in_o one_o sense_n during_o a_o certain_a time_n general_o by_o the_o whole_a latin_a church_n or_o general_o by_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n and_o that_o immediate_o in_o another_o they_o have_v be_v take_v general_o by_o the_o same_o church_n in_o another_o sense_n if_o we_o suppose_v a_o time_n wherein_o both_o greek_n and_o latin_n believe_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o respect_n of_o these_o point_n the_o same_o difficulty_n and_o the_o same_o question_n return_v in_o respect_n of_o that_o of_o the_o two_o church_n which_o have_v change_v suppose_v for_o example_n that_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n both_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o one_o may_v use_v indifferent_o in_o the_o eucharist_n unleavened_a bread_n and_o that_o which_o be_v leaven_v and_o that_o the_o bishop_n alone_o have_v the_o right_a of_o confirmation_n how_o happen_v it_o the_o greek_n have_v pass_v into_o contrary_a opinion_n without_o division_n among_o they_o till_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n have_v this_o happen_v all_o at_o a_o stroke_n be_v this_o do_v insensible_o and_o by_o succession_n of_o time_n if_o this_o have_v happen_v all_o at_o once_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v this_o change_n be_v
exceed_o strange_a that_o so_o many_o bishop_n priest_n and_o religious_a shall_v so_o sudden_o renounce_v their_o former_a opinion_n and_o embrace_v contrary_a one_o without_o any_o division_n among_o '_o they_o but_o it_o be_v yet_o strange_a they_o shall_v change_v they_o without_o perceive_v it_o without_o acknowledge_v they_o have_v make_v great_a and_o considerable_a innovation_n in_o their_o church_n and_o compare_v their_o first_o and_o ancient_a faith_n with_o this_o new_a one_o for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o these_o article_n which_o be_v in_o contest_v the_o greek_n positive_o maintain_v and_o have_v ever_o maintain_v they_o have_v not_o innovate_v in_o any_o thing_n if_o this_o change_n be_v wrought_v by_o succession_n of_o time_n let_v we_o be_v show_v the_o dispute_n and_o division_n they_o have_v have_v among_o they_o since_o on_o these_o article_n they_o have_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n till_o the_o greek_a empire_n fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o latin_n which_o be_v to_o say_v during_o above_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n if_o it_o be_v allege_v the_o change_n be_v make_v insensible_o we_o must_v return_v to_o the_o four_o time_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o apply_v to_o they_o the_o same_o difficulty_n and_o objection_n he_o have_v raise_v in_o fine_a if_o we_o suppose_v a_o time_n wherein_o the_o two_o church_n hold_v each_o of_o they_o their_o opinion_n yet_o mutual_o bear_v with_o one_o another_o without_o proceed_v to_o a_o express_a condemnation_n of_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n beside_o that_o it_o be_v difficult_a to_o comprehend_v how_o the_o latin_n believe_v the_o roman_a church_n infallible_a and_o their_o sacrifice_n with_o unleavened_a bread_n good_a and_o lawful_a can_v suffer_v the_o greek_n hold_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v it_o will_v be_v demand_v how_o they_o can_v change_v so_o sudden_o their_o opinion_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o controvert_v article_n hold_v they_o before_o for_o unnecessary_a point_n and_o afterward_o for_o necessary_a one_o respect_v before_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n to_o they_o as_o tolerable_a error_n and_o afterward_o respect_v they_o as_o abominable_a and_o intolerable_a one_o whereupon_o one_o may_v make_v the_o same_o question_n how_o it_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n have_v believe_v at_o one_o time_n that_o the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o latin_n with_o unleavened_a bread_n be_v nevertheless_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n a_o object_n of_o supreme_a adoration_n and_o in_o another_o that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o dead_a azym_n a_o jewish_a abomination_n that_o she_o shall_v respect_v it_o at_o one_o time_n with_o that_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n due_a only_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o at_o another_o immediate_o succeed_v the_o first_o which_o be_v to_o say_v from_o night_n to_o morning_n regard_v it_o with_o horror_n wash_v and_o purify_n the_o altar_n whereon_o it_o have_v be_v celebrate_v as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v pollute_v we_o may_v apply_v the_o same_o question_n and_o difficulty_n to_o the_o armenian_n jacobite_n coptic_o nestorian_n in_o reference_n to_o several_a of_o their_o opinion_n of_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n can_v show_v the_o original_n nor_o tell_v we_o after_o what_o manner_n they_o be_v disperse_v among_o these_o people_n nor_o how_o they_o have_v leave_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n still_o hold_v as_o be_v of_o apostolical_a tradition_n how_o have_v it_o happen_v for_o instance_n that_o the_o nestorian_n have_v leave_v the_o use_n of_o confirmation_n and_o that_o of_o extreme_a unction_n that_o the_o jacobite_n have_v leave_v that_o of_o confession_n and_o the_o belief_n of_o purgatory_n that_o the_o coptic_o have_v lay_v aside_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o use_v of_o extreme_a unction_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n for_o mr._n arnaud_n i_o think_v will_v have_v i_o suppose_v that_o according_a to_o he_o these_o point_n have_v be_v heretofore_o hold_v and_o practise_v by_o all_o christian_n these_o example_n do_v clear_o discover_v the_o vanity_n of_o these_o pretend_a moral_a impossibility_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v urge_v with_o such_o great_a exaggeration_n for_o they_o may_v be_v all_o as_o strong_o apply_v to_o the_o change_n which_o have_v happen_v in_o these_o eastern_a church_n and_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o these_o change_v happen_v there_o mr._n arnaud_n may_v argue_v as_o long_o as_o he_o please_v start_v question_n and_o raise_v difficulty_n these_o insensible_a change_n be_v more_o than_o possible_a for_o they_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v either_o in_o these_o church_n or_o in_o the_o latin_a which_o have_v opinion_n and_o contrary_a custom_n which_o show_v that_o these_o gentleman_n whole_a philosophy_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a speculation_n proper_a only_a for_o person_n that_o abound_v with_o leisure_n which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o agree_v with_o the_o manner_n after_o which_o thing_n be_v carry_v on_o in_o the_o world_n but_o in_o short_a the_o use_n which_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seminary_n and_o mission_n and_o the_o course_n which_o the_o emissary_n take_v in_o the_o east_n as_o we_o have_v observe_v in_o the_o second_o book_n with_o the_o project_n of_o thomas_n à_fw-fr jesus_n to_o make_v in_o a_o short_a time_n all_o the_o greek_n good_a roman_a catholic_n according_a as_o i_o have_v relate_v in_o the_o four_o book_n all_o this_o i_o say_v show_v clear_o that_o at_o rome_n and_o elsewhere_o among_o the_o most_o zealous_a it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o account_v impossible_a to_o introduce_v insensible_o and_o without_o disturbance_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n among_o people_n that_o have_v they_o not_o and_o in_o effect_v it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o their_o present_a labour_n be_v not_o unsuccessful_a and_o that_o time_n will_v probable_o finish_v the_o work_n chap._n viii_o that_o paschasus_n ratbert_n be_v the_o first_o that_o teach_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o conversion_n of_o substance_n mr._n arnaud_n objection_n answer_v we_o must_v come_v now_o to_o particular_a matter_n of_o fact_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o change_n not_o but_o to_o speak_v true_o this_o difcussion_n appear_v to_o i_o very_o needless_a consider_v what_o we_o have_v already_o do_v for_o if_o the_o principal_a question_n which_o respect_v the_o novelty_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v end_v and_o moreover_o there_o result_v from_o our_o dispute_n that_o the_o change_n be_v possible_a and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o vain_a than_o the_o objection_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v make_v on_o this_o subject_n i_o see_v not_o any_o necessity_n there_o be_v of_o inform_v a_o man_n self_n in_o what_o manner_n this_o change_n happen_v what_o matter_n be_v it_o to_o we_o who_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o this_o innovation_n who_o the_o promoter_n of_o it_o what_o facility_n or_o difficulty_n be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o establish_n of_o these_o doctrine_n whether_o paschasus_n carry_v on_o his_o business_n with_o craft_n or_o simplicity_n whether_o john_n scot_n bertram_n and_o raban_n write_v against_o he_o before_o or_o after_o his_o death_n what_o signify_v the_o know_v of_o these_o thing_n provide_v we_o be_v certain_a not_o only_o that_o the_o change_n in_o question_n be_v possible_a but_o actual_o happen_v and_o this_o do_v now_o appear_v so_o plain_o as_o will_v satisfy_v every_o rational_a man_n in_o examine_v mr._n arnaud'_v 6_o and_o 9th_o book_n we_o have_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o his_o pretend_a impossibility_n be_v mere_a chimaera_n and_o as_o to_o the_o actual_a change_n beside_o that_o we_o shall_v always_o have_v right_a to_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v by_o our_o proof_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n which_o we_o have_v cite_v till_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o his_o friend_n have_v take_v pain_n to_o answer_v they_o solid_o beside_o this_o i_o say_v what_o i_o show_v concern_v the_o eastern_a church_n not_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n in_o question_n neither_o in_o the_o 11_o nor_o follow_v century_n and_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n not_o know_v they_o in_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o century_n be_v more_o than_o sufficient_a for_o the_o conclude_a that_o these_o doctrine_n be_v not_o of_o the_o first_o establishment_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o consequent_o that_o their_o introduction_n be_v a_o innovation_n yet_o will_v i_o not_o desist_v from_o examine_v the_o point_n of_o history_n which_o respect_n this_o change_n because_o this_o change_n be_v indeed_o the_o first_o and_o principal_a subject_n of_o the_o dispute_n
between_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o we_o paschasus_n ratbert_n a_o religious_a of_o corbie_n that_o live_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n be_v according_a to_o we_o the_o first_o who_o teach_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o treat_v of_o these_o point_n in_o three_o different_a place_n of_o his_o work_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o 26_o chapter_n of_o s._n matthew_n and_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o frudegard_n 36._o book_n 8._o ch_z 8._o page_n 36._o mr._n arnaud_n call_v our_o pretention_n on_o this_o subject_a a_o new_a hypothesis_n and_o a_o pure_a work_n of_o fancy_n but_o add_v he_o as_o man_n fancy_n be_v very_o different_a that_o of_o other_o minister_n who_o write_v besore_n aubertin_n turn_v not_o on_o this_o hinge_n as_o not_o think_v it_o be_v their_o interest_n to_o set_v '_o emselve_n more_o against_o paschasus_n than_o other_o author_n of_o that_o century_n so_o that_o this_o same_o paschasus_n against_o who_o they_o pronounce_v such_o woe_n be_v at_o first_o in_o another_o course_n of_o fancy_n one_o of_o their_o best_a friend_n henry_n boxornius_n a_o fnrious_a and_o passionate_a calvinist_n assert_n that_o he_o perfect_o well_o explain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o make_v he_o a_o calvinist_n by_o the_o common_a privilege_n of_o all_o the_o minister_n to_o make_v calvinist_n of_o who_o they_o please_v hospinien_n likewise_o treat_v he_o very_o kind_o and_o take_v he_o for_o one_o of_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n during_o the_o 9th_o century_n blondel_n seem_v not_o to_o have_v any_o particular_a quarrel_n against_o he_o but_o only_o charge_v he_o for_o follow_v the_o innovation_n which_o he_o attribute_n to_o anastasius_n sinait_fw-fr and_o the_o greek_n which_o he_o pretend_v be_v embrace_v by_o charlemagne_n and_o the_o council_n of_o francfort_n but_o do_v not_o think_v of_o make_v he_o a_o author_n of_o any_o considerable_a change_n in_o the_o world_n it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o rancour_n and_o injustice_n in_o this_o discourse_n first_o see_v mr._n arnaud_n himself_o affirm_v that_o paschasus_n teach_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n why_o do_v he_o make_v it_o criminal_a in_o mr._n aubertin_n and_o i_o to_o do_v the_o same_o do_v the_o aversion_n which_o he_o have_v to_o our_o person_n transport_v he_o so_o far_o that_o he_o can_v endure_v we_o shall_v be_v agree_v with_o he_o no_o not_o in_o one_o point_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o as_o oft_o as_o mr._n aubertin_n and_o i_o affirm_v paschasus_n teach_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n we_o do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n add_v that_o he_o be_v a_o innovator_n wherein_o we_o be_v at_o odds_o with_o mr._n arnaud_n but_o why_o may_v we_o not_o at_o least_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o one_o point_n if_o we_o can_v in_o more_o let_v he_o oppose_v we_o as_o oft_o as_o he_o will_v touch_v the_o innovation_n of_o paschasus_n we_o shall_v not_o dislike_v it_o for_o he_o maintain_v his_o own_o sentiment_n but_o let_v he_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o tell_v he_o that_o paschasus_n also_o teach_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n see_v that_o herein_o we_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o himself_o assert_v and_o all_o roman_a catholic_n with_o he_o second_o it_o be_v not_o general_o true_a that_o those_o who_o write_v before_o mr._n aubertin_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paschasus_n be_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n the_o author_n of_o the_o orthodox_n treatise_n 479._o page_n 479._o touch_v the_o eucharist_n print_v at_o lion_n in_o the_o year_n 1595._o express_o mention_n that_o paschasus_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o consubstantiation_n mr._n le_fw-fr faucheur_n say_v he_o teach_v that_o the_o eucharist_n 6._o lib._n 9_o ch._n 6._o be_v the_o proper_a body_n and_o the_o proper_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n reside_v substantial_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n du_n plessis_n rank_n he_o among_o those_o that_o 8_o book_n 4._o of_o the_o sacrament_n pretend_v in_o the_o mass_n ch_n 8_o have_v propose_v a_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o that_o of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o church_n and_o long_o before_o they_o berenger_n himself_o attribute_v to_o paschasus_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n as_o well_o as_o we_o sententia_fw-la say_v he_o according_a dom._n lanfranc_n de_fw-fr corp._n &_o sang._n dom._n to_o lanfranc_n imo_fw-la vecordia_fw-la vulgi_fw-la paschasi_fw-la atque_fw-la lanfranci_n minime_fw-la superesse_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la substantiam_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la but_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o cite_v authority_n when_o the_o point_n concern_v a_o matter_n which_o may_v be_v clear_v by_o read_v paschasus_n himself_o he_o that_o take_v pain_n to_o read_v exact_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corpore_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la domini_fw-la his_o commentary_n on_o the_o 26._o of_o s._n matthew_n and_o his_o letter_n to_o frudegard_n will_v find_v first_o that_o he_o hold_v and_o teach_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v absolute_o into_o the_o same_o flesh_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n which_o die_v and_z rise_v again_o although_o the_o colour_n and_o savour_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n still_o remain_v second_o that_o he_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n enter_v into_o our_o flesh_n and_o that_o as_o he_o have_v join_v our_o substance_n to_o his_o divinity_n so_o he_o will_v have_v his_o substance_n to_o be_v in_o our_o flesh_n three_o that_o he_o hold_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n must_v be_v understand_v neither_o of_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n nor_o his_o body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o of_o his_o body_n in_o virtue_n but_o of_o his_o body_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n crucify_a and_o rise_v in_o propriety_n of_o nature_n four_o that_o he_o dispute_v as_o strong_o as_o he_o can_v against_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o contrary_n five_o that_o there_o be_v make_v against_o his_o doctrine_n such_o objection_n as_o natural_o arise_v from_o the_o real_a presence_n such_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v at_o this_o day_n believe_v it_o to_o be_v six_o that_o he_o endeavour_v to_o answer_v these_o objection_n on_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o hence_o methinks_v very_o clear_o result_v that_o paschasus_n hold_v and_o teach_v the_o same_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o same_o substantial_a conversion_n as_o gregory_n vii_o and_o innocent_a iii_o establish_v since_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o that_o this_o truth_n can_v be_v call_v in_o question_n yet_o must_n what_o i_o observe_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v remember_v that_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr corpore_fw-la &_o sanguine_a domini_fw-la do_v not_o every_o where_o contain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n in_o a_o manner_n so_o express_v or_o uniform_a but_o that_o there_o be_v here_o and_o there_o several_a passage_n which_o seem_v at_o first_o to_o favour_v the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o several_a other_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o sacramental_a sense_n or_o may_v be_v turn_v to_o the_o union_n of_o the_o bread_n with_o the_o divinity_n according_a to_o damascen_n doctrine_n mr._n arnaud_n must_v grant_v i_o this_o see_v he_o sometime_o allege_v paschasus_n his_o expression_n t'elude_v such_o kind_n of_o one_o which_o be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o father_n now_o hence_o it_o have_v happen_v that_o several_a protestant_n have_v be_v deceive_v by_o these_o passage_n have_v reckon_v this_o author_n among_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o hold_v not_o transubstantiation_n but_o their_o error_n have_v spring_v from_o the_o want_n of_o attentive_a examine_v the_o depth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n mr._n arnaud_n do_v not_o do_v right_a in_o draw_v hence_o advantage_n against_o those_o that_o have_v enter_v into_o a_o more_o exact_a scrutiny_n of_o he_o especial_o consider_v that_o this_o opinion_n justify_v itself_o by_o the_o bare_a read_n of_o paschasus_n his_o write_n and_o that_o this_o be_v moreover_o mr._n arnaud'_v own_o sentiment_n and_o that_o also_o of_o his_o whole_a church_n we_o need_v only_o now_o see_v whether_o paschasus_n in_o teach_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n have_v be_v a_o innovator_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o he_o first_o teach_v a_o doctrine_n which_o no_o body_n ever_o before_o he_o do_v teach_v mr._n arnaud_n affirm_v that_o according_a to_o my_o proper_a principle_n this_o will_v be_v impossible_o human_a his_o reason_n be_v
arnaud_n that_o no_o body_n for_o thirty_o year_n reprehend_v paschasus_n to_o his_o face_n how_o know_v he_o this_o that_o he_o can_v be_v so_o confident_a of_o it_o do_v paschasus_n himself_o positive_o assure_v he_o of_o it_o no._n but_o it_o be_v because_o paschasus_n say_v audiui_fw-la quosdam_fw-la i_o reprehendere_fw-la i_o be_o inform_v that_o some_o blame_v i_o every_o man_n see_v that_o this_o expression_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o the_o draw_v of_o this_o consequence_n and_o that_o a_o author_n may_v speak_v thus_o although_o he_o be_v tell_v of_o his_o fault_n to_o his_o face_n in_o fine_a who_o inform_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o contradiction_n which_o paschasus_n meet_v with_o do_v not_o happen_v till_o thirty_o year_n after_o the_o publish_n of_o his_o book_n because_o he_o complain_v of_o this_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o s._n matthew_n which_o be_v publish_v not_o till_o thirty_o year_n after_o a_o frivolous_a reason_n as_o if_o the_o censure_n which_o be_v make_v of_o his_o doctrine_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o the_o same_o date_n as_o his_o commentary_n wherein_o he_o mention_n they_o and_o endeavour_n to_o defend_v himself_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o never_o man_n argue_v more_o unhappy_o than_o mr._n arnaud_n not_o only_o add_v he_o he_o be_v not_o reprehend_v by_o any_o of_o his_o superior_n 851._o page_n 850_o 851._o friend_n and_o brethren_n but_o he_o still_o believe_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v on_o his_o side_n for_o in_o his_o paper_n which_o he_o write_v not_o long_o before_o his_o death_n he_o press_v his_o unknown_a adversary_n of_o who_o he_o have_v notice_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o clear_o affirm_v a_o man_n can_v oppose_v his_o opinion_n without_o contradict_v the_o faith_n of_o it_o videat_fw-la qui_fw-la contra_fw-la hoc_fw-la venire_fw-la voluerit_fw-la magis_fw-la quam_fw-la credere_fw-la quid_fw-la agate_n contra_fw-la ipsum_fw-la dominum_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la omnem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la he_o say_v that_o no_o body_n dare_v yet_o open_o contradict_v this_o doctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v nor_o oppose_v what_o the_o whole_a world_n own_a to_o be_v true_a ideo_fw-la quamvis_fw-la quidam_fw-la de_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la errent_fw-la nemo_fw-la tamen_fw-la adhuc_fw-la est_fw-la in_o aperto_fw-la qui_fw-la ita_fw-la hoc_fw-la esse_fw-la contradicat_fw-la quod_fw-la totus_fw-la orbis_fw-la credit_n &_o confitetur_fw-la in_o short_a he_o accuse_v those_o as_o high_o criminal_a who_o use_v the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n explain_v they_o in_o a_o sense_n of_o figure_n and_o virtue_n contrary_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n nefandum_fw-la ergo_fw-la scelus_fw-la est_fw-la orare_fw-la cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o non_fw-la credere_fw-la quod_fw-la ipsa_fw-la veritas_fw-la testatur_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la omnes_fw-la universaliter_fw-la verum_fw-la esse_fw-la fatentur_fw-la i_o answer_v the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n that_o paschasus_n do_v not_o say_v the_o whole_a world_n be_v formal_o of_o his_o opinion_n but_o that_o this_o be_v a_o consequence_n which_o he_o will_v draw_v from_o the_o whole_a world_n believe_v to_o be_v true_a and_o above_o all_o question_n the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o he_o imagine_v contain_v his_o belief_n and_o from_o the_o church_n say_v in_o her_o canon_n ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la to_o which_o the_o people_n answer_v amen_n that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n betwixt_o positive_a assure_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n believe_v by_o a_o distinct_a and_o unquestionable_a faith_n a_o doctrine_n and_o the_o iutroduce_v of_o it_o by_o consequence_n draw_v from_o some_o expression_n which_o a_o man_n believe_v to_o be_v favourable_a to_o this_o doctrine_n but_o which_o be_v not_o so_o great_o favourable_a but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v of_o use_n to_o those_o who_o believe_v a_o contrary_a doctrine_n here_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n be_v a_o distinction_n well_o worthy_a of_o mr._n claude_n '_o s_o invention_n who_o admirable_o well_o pretend_v to_o answer_v a_o matter_n when_o he_o do_v nothing_o less_o and_o to_o distinguish_v by_o term_n which_o have_v no_o sense_n that_o which_o reason_n can_v distinguish_v let_v we_o in_o good_a time_n see_v then_o whether_o my_o distinction_n be_v as_o extravagant_a as_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v make_v it_o when_o a_o man_n maintain_v against_o a_o opponent_n a_o doctrine_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n either_o this_o proposition_n that_o it_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a that_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o must_v grant_v it_o or_o it_o be_v not_o so_o clear_a nor_o evident_a but_o that_o it_o be_v questionable_a as_o to_o the_o first_o case_n a_o man_n need_v not_o trouble_v himself_o to_o prove_v it_o for_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o principle_n and_o such_o consequence_n be_v thence_o draw_v as_o be_v judge_v fit_v for_o instance_n when_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n die_v not_o only_o for_o the_o elect_n but_o also_o for_o all_o man_n in_o general_a that_o all_o god_n command_n be_v possible_a to_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o just_a according_a to_o the_o present_a condition_n of_o their_o ability_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v real_o convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o wicked_a receive_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o eat_v it_o with_o their_o bodily_a mouth_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o communion_n it_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o these_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o this_o church_n that_o there_o need_v no_o prove_v they_o and_o shall_v any_o one_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n oppose_v these_o article_n there_o be_v no_o body_n will_v take_v pain_n to_o prove_v to_o he_o that_o they_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o will_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v undeniable_a principle_n and_o he_o will_v have_v only_o hence_o consequence_n draw_v against_o he_o as_o to_o the_o second_o case_n that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o it_o be_v not_o clear_a that_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o this_o point_n be_v in_o dispute_n both_o party_n apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o bring_n of_o proof_n and_o each_o common_o endeavour_n to_o authorise_v his_o opinion_n under_o the_o specious_a name_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o this_o question_n touch_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n may_v have_v two_o sense_n one_o which_o regard_v precise_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o contest_v the_o other_o which_o respect_v the_o church_n in_o the_o precede_a time_n which_o be_v to_o say_v before_o the_o controversy_n it_o may_v also_o receive_v two_o sort_n of_o proof_n some_o which_o refer_v to_o the_o present_a time_n other_o which_z refer_v to_o the_o age_n which_o have_v precede_v we_o when_o a_o man_n prove_v for_o the_o time_n present_a he_o allege_v testimony_n of_o the_o modern_a church_n when_o he_o prove_v for_o the_o past_a time_n he_o allege_v they_o of_o those_o that_o have_v live_v before_o we_o and_o the_o question_n determin_n itself_o according_a as_o the_o proof_n be_v good_a or_o bad_a conclusive_a or_o not_o conclusive_a to_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n i_o say_v that_o paschasus_n never_o advance_v for_o a_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n or_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n on_o the_o contrary_n he_o have_v formal_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v in_o his_o time_n three_o sort_n of_o person_n in_o the_o church_n the_o first_o reprehend_v he_o for_o misunderstanding_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n audiui_fw-la quosdam_fw-la i_o reprehendere_fw-la quasi_fw-la ego_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la libro_fw-la quem_fw-la de_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la christi_fw-la edideram_fw-la aliquid_fw-la his_fw-la dictis_fw-la plus_fw-la tribuere_fw-la voluerim_fw-la quam_fw-la ipsa_fw-la veritas_fw-la repromittit_fw-la and_o affirm_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o figure_n and_o virtue_n non_fw-fr in_o re_fw-mi esse_fw-la veritatem_fw-la carnis_fw-la christi_fw-la vel_fw-la sangainis_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o sacramento_n virtutem_fw-la quandam_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o non_fw-la carnem_fw-la other_o that_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n multi_fw-la dubitant_fw-la say_v he_o several_a time_n and_o in_o fine_a other_o that_o err_v through_o ignorance_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o have_v not_o yet_o hear_v of_o these_o marvail_n which_o he_o propose_v quamvis_fw-la plurimi_fw-la say_v he_o dubitaverint_fw-la vel_fw-la ignoraverint_fw-la tanti_fw-la mysterii_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la and_o a_o little_a low_o quamvis_fw-la ex_fw-la
hoc_fw-la quidam_fw-la de_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la errent_fw-la he_o be_v then_o far_o from_o vaunt_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v undeniable_o the_o common_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o age._n i_o say_v in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o whatsoever_o design_n paschasus_n have_v to_o make_v people_n believe_v that_o he_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v he_o never_o allege_v for_o this_o effect_n the_o man_n of_o his_o time_n nor_o ever_o say_v the_o bishop_n which_o then_o govern_v the_o church_n the_o abbot_n priest_n religious_a and_o all_o learned_a man_n hold_v the_o same_o language_n as_o he_o do_v and_o all_o of_o they_o unanimous_o confess_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n according_a to_o the_o propriety_n of_o his_o nature_n neither_o do_v he_o ever_o aver_v he_o hold_v his_o doctrine_n from_o master_n that_o teach_v it_o paschasus_n be_v far_o from_o assert_v this_o he_o keep_v to_o three_o thing_n to_o some_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o a_o clause_n of_o the_o liturgy_n which_o say_v ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la and_o as_o to_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n have_v propose_v they_o he_o conclude_v that_o from_o thence_o one_o may_v know_v that_o what_o he_o write_v be_v not_o a_o effect_n of_o enthusiastical_a rashness_n nor_o a_o young_a man_n vision_n but_o that_o he_o offer_v these_o thing_n to_o those_o who_o be_v desirous_a of_o they_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n now_o see_v add_v he_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n yet_o if_o they_o can_v understand_v let_v they_o learn_v to_o believe_v with_o the_o father_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o impossible_a with_o god_n and_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o divine_a word_n without_o the_o least_o doubt_n of_o '_o they_o for_o we_o never_o as_o yet_o read_v any_o have_v err_v in_o this_o point_n unless_o those_o that_o have_v err_v touch_v the_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o although_o several_a have_v doubt_v or_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n be_v this_o the_o language_n of_o a_o man_n that_o loud_o glory_n in_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v he_o assure_v he_o write_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v according_a to_o the_o common_a belief_n what_o need_v he_o justify_v himself_o from_o the_o suspicion_n of_o enthusiasm_n and_o pretence_n to_o vision_n be_v we_o wont_v to_o suspect_v people_n in_o this_o sort_n who_o say_v only_o what_o the_o whole_a world_n say_v and_o believe_v and_o design_v to_o justify_v himself_o why_o must_v he_o rather_o betake_v himself_o to_o some_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n who_o sense_n and_o term_n he_o may_v just_o be_v say_v to_o have_v corrupt_v than_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o person_n in_o his_o own_o time_n and_o to_o say_v if_o he_o be_v a_o enthusiast_n or_o visionary_n all_o the_o bishop_n abbot_n priest_n religious_a doctor_n and_o christian_n in_o general_n be_v so_o too_o see_v they_o all_o believe_v and_o speak_v as_o he_o do_v but_o instead_o of_o this_o he_o complain_v that_o his_o doctrine_n which_o he_o term_v that_o of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o kind_o receive_v nunc_fw-la autem_fw-la say_v he_o exinde_fw-la quia_fw-la claruit_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la omnium_fw-la est_fw-la fides_fw-la he_o exhort_v those_o who_o reprehend_v he_o to_o believe_v with_o the_o father_n that_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a with_o god_n and_o to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n discant_fw-la quoeso_fw-la cum_fw-la talibus_fw-la credere_fw-la si_fw-la adhuc_fw-la nequeunt_fw-la intelligere_fw-la quod_fw-la deo_fw-la nihil_fw-la est_fw-la impossibile_fw-it discant_fw-la &_o verbis_fw-la divinis_fw-la acquiescere_fw-la &_o in_o nullo_n de_fw-mi his_o dubitare_fw-la when_o then_o he_o add_v that_o hitherto_o it_o be_v not_o hear_v that_o any_o person_n err_v on_o this_o subject_n unless_o it_o be_v those_o who_o have_v err_v touch_v jesus_n christ_n himself_o quia_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la proesen_v nemo_fw-la deerrasse_n legitur_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o de_fw-la christo_fw-la erraverunt_fw-la he_o will_v say_v that_o till_o than_o no_o body_n have_v contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n leave_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o then_o it_o be_v contradict_v because_o they_o contradict_v he_o which_o he_o maintain_v be_v that_o of_o the_o father_n so_o far_o we_o do_v not_o find_v he_o boast_v of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n for_o we_o see_v on_o the_o contrary_a several_a thing_n which_o sufficient_o denote_v that_o he_o be_v far_o from_o do_v it_o as_o to_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o liturgy_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n pray_v in_o the_o canon_n in_o these_o term_n ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la corpus_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la that_o all_o the_o people_n cry_v amen_n and_o so_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o every_o nation_n and_o language_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v this_o she_o desire_v in_o her_o prayer_n whence_o he_o draw_v this_o consequence_n vnde_fw-la videat_fw-la qui_fw-la contra_fw-la hoc_fw-la venire_fw-la voluerit_fw-la magis_fw-la quam_fw-la credere_fw-la quid_fw-la agate_n contra_fw-la ipsum_fw-la dominum_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la omnem_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la nefarium_fw-la ergo_fw-la scelus_fw-la est_fw-la orare_fw-la cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o non_fw-la credere_fw-la quod_fw-la ipsa_fw-la veritas_fw-la testatur_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la omnes_fw-la nniversaliter_fw-la verum_fw-la esse_fw-la fatentur_fw-la let_v those_o then_o that_o have_v rather_o contradict_v this_o than_o believe_v it_o consider_v what_o they_o do_v against_o the_o lord_n himself_o and_o his_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v then_o a_o great_a fault_n to_o pray_v with_o all_o people_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o the_o truth_n itself_o atte_v and_o what_o all_o do_v universal_o and_o every_o where_o confess_v to_o be_v true_a his_o argument_n be_v a_o sophism_n which_o amount_v to_o this_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v it_o be_v his_o body_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n confess_v the_o same_o but_o they_o that_o at_o this_o day_n deny_v that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n in_o propriety_n of_o nature_n deny_v that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n therefore_o they_o contradict_v jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n who_o see_v not_o but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o reason_v in_o this_o manner_n and_o positive_o assure_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n believe_v it_o be_v his_o body_n in_o propriety_n of_o nature_n i_o will_v have_v this_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n 852._o page_n 852._o to_o be_v only_o a_o consequence_n be_v not_o author_n persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o consequence_n which_o they_o draw_v and_o do_v they_o not_o offer_v they_o for_o true_a as_o positive_o as_o their_o principle_n mr._n arnaud_n give_v a_o exchange_n the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o paschasus_n be_v persuade_v of_o the_o solidity_n of_o his_o consequence_n or_o not_o but_o whether_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v persuade_v of_o it_o ourselves_o and_o take_v it_o for_o a_o testimony_n touch_v the_o public_a belief_n of_o his_o time_n mr._n arnaud_n shall_v know_v that_o when_o a_o man_n testify_v of_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o afterward_o draw_v thence_o by_o way_n of_o argument_n and_o consequence_n another_o fact_n he_o be_v no_o far_o credible_a in_o respect_n of_o this_o latter_a but_o only_o as_o his_o argument_n or_o consequence_n appear_v just_a to_o we_o if_o i_o say_v for_o example_n that_o mr._n arnaud_n confess_v in_o the_o first_o edition_n of_o his_o book_n that_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o faithful_a know_v not_o always_o so_o express_o 1._o book_n 6._o ch_z 1._o and_o universal_o whether_o the_o bread_n do_v or_o do_v remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o i_o from_o hence_o draw_v by_o way_n of_o argument_n and_o consequence_n this_o proposition_n that_o mr._n arnaud_n acknowledge_v transubstantiation_n be_v not_o ancient_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n my_o testimony_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o latter_a fact_n will_v be_v no_o far_o credible_a than_o my_o consequence_n will_v be_v good_a it_o be_v the_o same_o here_o paschasus_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o his_o time_n call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n say_v these_o word_n ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la corpus_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la so_o far_o he_o act_v as_o a_o witness_n we_o must_v believe_v he_o whence_o he_o draw_v this_o consequence_n that_o those_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o propriety_n of_o
nature_n but_o only_o in_o sacrament_n contradict_v the_o church_n here_o he_o act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o disputer_n if_o his_o argue_v be_v good_a we_o will_v believe_v he_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sophism_n we_o will_v not_o matter_n it_o now_o it_o be_v a_o sophism_n for_o according_a to_o the_o maxim_n of_o s._n augustin_n the_o sacrament_n assume_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n of_o which_o they_o be_v sacrament_n so_o that_o to_o deny_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o propriety_n of_o nature_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v a_o man_n thereby_o contradict_v the_o church_n which_o call_v it_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o add_v mr._n arnaud_n it_o be_v moreover_o false_a that_o this_o be_v only_o a_o consequence_n 852._o book_n 8._o ch_z 9_o p._n 852._o for_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v include_v both_o in_o the_o principle_n and_o conclusion_n of_o paschasus_n his_o argument_n he_o conclude_v that_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n commit_v a_o horrid_a crime_n in_o oppose_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n here_o we_o have_v it_o comprehend_v in_o the_o conclusion_n do_v ever_o man_n hear_v such_o kind_n of_o reason_v it_o be_v false_a that_o this_o be_v only_o a_o consequence_n because_o it_o be_v a_o proposition_n contain_v in_o the_o conclusion_n this_o be_v just_a as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v it_o be_v false_a that_o it_o be_v day_n why_o because_o the_o sun_n be_v at_o his_o height_n for_o for_o to_o be_v day_n and_o the_o sun_n to_o be_v at_o its_o height_n be_v not_o more_o the_o same_o thing_n than_o to_o be_v a_o consequence_n and_o to_o be_v a_o proposition_n contain_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o a_o argument_n be_v these_o the_o prodigious_a effect_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n logic_n and_o the_o principle_n of_o this_o conclusion_n be_v add_v he_o not_o that_o the_o church_n simple_o recite_v these_o word_n ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la corpus_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la but_o understand_v they_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o be_v what_o i_o deny_v the_o principle_n whereon_o paschasus_n argue_v be_v no_o other_o than_o this_o that_o the_o priest_n say_v ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la corpus_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la and_o the_o people_n answer_n amen_n that_o the_o church_n do_v or_o do_v not_o understand_v this_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v what_o paschasus_n do_v not_o touch_v on_o he_o be_v careful_a not_o to_o advance_v so_o far_o have_v he_o know_v say_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o the_o church_n take_v these_o word_n in_o another_o sense_n he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o mad_a man_n to_o reproach_n as_o he_o do_v these_o person_n for_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o suppose_v then_o this_o for_o a_o princile_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n take_v they_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o real_a presence_n and_o consequent_o suppose_v she_o hold_v entire_o this_o doctrine_n this_o be_v mere_a wrangle_n paschasus_n do_v not_o say_v that_o these_o person_n against_o who_o he_o inveigh_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o that_o they_o go_v against_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n inasmuch_o as_o they_o go_v according_a to_o he_o contrary_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o liturgy_n second_o whether_o he_o do_v or_o do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o church_n take_v these_o term_n in_o another_o sense_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o inquire_v see_v he_o do_v not_o explain_v himself_o therein_o and_o speak_v neither_o far_a or_o near_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o term_n and_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o know_v there_o be_v at_o least_o three_o sort_n of_o person_n in_o the_o church_n the_o doubter_n the_o ignorant_a and_o formal_a adversary_n of_o his_o doctrine_n who_o take_v they_o not_o in_o this_o sense_n three_o suppose_v we_o say_v not_o that_o paschasus_n be_v mad_a but_o argue_v like_o a_o sophister_n what_o inconvenience_n will_v follow_v and_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v more_o than_o appear_v from_o the_o bare_a read_n of_o his_o discourse_n he_o will_v have_v the_o church_n on_o his_o side_n what_o can_v be_v more_o easy_a suppose_v at_o that_o time_n the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n and_o real_a presence_n be_v believe_v than_o to_o proclaim_v clear_o and_o plain_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n bishop_n religious_a the_o doctor_n and_o general_o all_o the_o faithful_a believe_v his_o doctrine_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o and_o there_o only_o need_v they_o to_o be_v consult_v article_n of_o faith_n of_o this_o nature_n can_v lie_v hide_v in_o a_o church_n which_o hold_v they_o his_o adversary_n can_v not_o have_v deny_v this_o truth_n and_o have_v they_o the_o impudence_n to_o do_v it_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v convince_v by_o a_o million_o of_o person_n then_o live_v why_o have_v he_o recourse_n to_o argue_v and_o consequence_n why_o must_v this_o consequence_n be_v draw_v by_o the_o hair_n out_o of_o a_o passage_n of_o the_o liturgy_n which_o may_v receive_v i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o explication_n why_o do_v he_o not_o at_o least_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a the_o church_n understand_v this_o clause_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o real_a presence_n wherefore_o be_v he_o silent_a touch_v the_o sense_n and_o argue_v only_o from_o the_o force_n of_o these_o term_n corpus_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o if_o all_o those_o that_o utter_v these_o term_n or_o add_v to_o they_o their_o amen_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o show_v we_o two_o thing_n the_o first_o that_o paschasus_n act_v like_o a_o sophister_n shelter_v himself_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v under_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o reproach_n object_v against_o he_o of_o be_v a_o visionary_a and_o a_o enthusiast_n and_o the_o other_o that_o in_o effect_n he_o be_v a_o innovator_n that_o have_v broach_v a_o doctrine_n unknown_a to_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n for_o have_v he_o the_o advantage_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n suppose_v he_o have_v which_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v of_o his_o opinion_n and_o the_o people_n common_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o conversion_n of_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n he_o will_v not_o have_v fail_v to_o make_v the_o best_a of_o it_o and_o o'rewhelm_v his_o adversary_n with_o it_o mr._n arnaud_v will_v now_o then_o perhaps_o comprehend_v that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o a_o man_n that_o affirm_v a_o thing_n for_o certain_a and_o of_o which_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o witness_n and_o one_o that_o draw_v a_o consequence_n and_o perhaps_o will_v no_o long_o say_v that_o my_o distinction_n separate_v by_o term_n which_o have_v no_o sense_n that_o which_o reason_n can_v separate_v and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n acknowledge_v that_o never_o pretention_n be_v worse_o ground_v than_o that_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o his_o own_o they_o affirm_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v of_o paschasus_n his_o mind_n but_o whereon_o do_v they_o ground_v their_o supposition_n be_v the_o adversary_n of_o paschasus_n agree_v about_o it_o no._n do_v paschasus_n himself_o express_o affirm_v it_o no._n but_o it_o be_v because_o paschasus_n insinuate_v it_o by_o a_o equivocal_a term_n which_o the_o church_n make_v use_v of_o but_o do_v paschasus_n formal_o assert_v that_o the_o church_n understand_v this_o term_n in_o the_o sense_n which_o he_o give_v it_o no._n but_o it_o be_v because_o paschasus_n must_v thus_o understand_v it_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n to_o make_v his_o reason_n just_o take_v away_o then_o from_o paschasus_n his_o reason_v the_o justness_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v give_v it_o the_o subint●lligitur_fw-la be_v annul_v and_o these_o gentleman_n bare_a of_o proof_n these_o word_n of_o paschasus_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n miror_fw-la quid_fw-la volunt_fw-la quidam_fw-la nunc_fw-la dicere_fw-la non_fw-la in_o re_fw-la esse_fw-la veritatem_fw-la carnis_fw-la christi_fw-la vel_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o sacramento_n virtutem_fw-la quandam_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o non_fw-la carnem_fw-la furnish_v we_o with_o another_o proof_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n for_o they_o show_v that_o this_o solution_n of_o virtue_n be_v new_a and_o that_o paschasus_n have_v not_o learn_v it_o but_o of_o late_a mr._n arnaud_n do_v well_o to_o advertise_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o the_o other_o for_o it_o be_v so_o in_o effect_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o very_a slight_a one_o and_o scarce_o worth_a offering_n paschasus_n be_v astonish_v at_o what_o his_o adversary_n say_v in_o reference_n to_o virtue_n not_o that_o this_o solution_n appear_v to_o he_o new_a he_o say_v nothing_o of_o it_o in_o this_o respect_n but_o because_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o he_o
a_o man_n ought_v to_o approach_v to_o they_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o crime_n who_o profane_a the_o lord_n body_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v explain_v in_o paschasus_n his_o book_n all_o this_o be_v contain_v under_o the_o word_n intelligence_n and_o he_o comprehend_v it_o therein_o himself_o in_o explain_v afterward_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o term_n and_o by_o make_v a_o abridgement_n of_o his_o whole_a book_n without_o mark_v in_o particular_a the_o real_a presence_n the_o question_n than_o be_v whether_o in_o paschasus_n his_o sense_n the_o ignorance_n and_o consequent_o the_o intelligence_n he_o speak_v of_o do_v not_o extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o real_a presence_n now_o this_o be_v what_o will_v be_v soon_o decide_v if_o we_o examine_v the_o passage_n themselves_o of_o this_o author_n without_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v blind_v by_o mr._n arnaud_n illusion_n at_o the_o entrance_n of_o his_o second_o chapter_n wherein_o he_o declare_v his_o design_n to_o dissipate_v this_o ignorance_n and_o remedy_v the_o evil_n it_o cause_v he_o describe_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n sacramentum_fw-la dominici_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la quod_fw-la quotidie_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la celebratur_fw-la nemo_fw-la sidelium_fw-la ignorare_fw-la debet_fw-la nemo_fw-la nescire_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la quidve_fw-la ad_fw-la scientiam_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la pertineat_fw-la will_v you_o then_o know_v what_o kind_n of_o ignorance_n this_o be_v paschasus_n tell_v you_o immediate_o nescire_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la 2._o paschas_fw-la de_fw-fr corp._n &_o sang._n dom._n cap._n 2._o quidve_fw-la ad_fw-la scientiam_fw-la pertineat_fw-la here_o be_v precise_o the_o two_o part_n of_o mr_n arnaud_n distinction_n contain_v in_o the_o definition_n which_o paschasus_n give_v of_o it_o for_o nescire_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la pertineat_fw-la be_v not_o to_o have_v this_o knowledge_n which_o make_v i_o believe_v the_o mystery_n without_o much_o reflection_n and_o nescire_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la scientiam_fw-la be_v not_o to_o have_v this_o other_o clear_a knowledge_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n call_v particular_o intelligence_n so_o that_o paschasus_n and_o his_o commentatator_n be_v not_o at_o all_o agree_v paschasus_n extend_v the_o ignorance_n he_o speak_v of_o to_o the_o thing_n which_o relate_v to_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o he_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n restrain_v it_o to_o other_o thing_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v paschasus_n further_o fides_n say_v he_o est_fw-la erudienda_fw-la ne_fw-fr forte_fw-fr ob_fw-la hoc_fw-la censeamur_fw-la indigni_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la satis_fw-la discernimus_fw-la illud_fw-la nec_fw-la intelligimus_fw-la mysticum_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la quanta_fw-la polleat_fw-la dignitate_fw-la quantaque_fw-la proemineat_fw-la virtute_fw-la we_o must_v instruct_v our_o faith_n lest_o for_o want_v of_o do_v it_o we_o be_v repute_v unworthy_a in_o not_o sufficient_o discern_v this_o sacrament_n and_o understand_v the_o excellent_a virtue_n and_o dignity_n of_o it_o can_v any_o man_n explain_v himself_o more_o clear_o the_o ignorance_n consist_v in_o not_o well_o understand_v the_o great_a dignity_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o in_o his_o sense_n signify_v not_o to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o the_o intelligence_n on_o the_o contrary_n consist_v in_o know_v it_o but_o to_o take_v away_o from_o mr._n arnaud_n all_o pretence_n of_o the_o validity_n of_o his_o distinction_n observe_v here_o what_o paschasus_n add_v afterward_o he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n ignorant_o who_o be_v whole_o ignorant_a of_o its_o virtue_n and_o dignity_n and_o know_v not_o the_o circumstance_n of_o it_o and_o do_v not_o true_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n according_a to_o truth_n although_o it_o be_v take_v in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o faith_n mr._n arnaud_n will_v not_o deny_v that_o in_o the_o stile_n of_o paschasus_n to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n according_a to_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v it_o substantial_o and_o real_o now_o the_o ignorance_n consist_v in_o the_o not_o know_v this_o and_o by_o the_o reason_n of_o contrary_n the_o intelligence_n consist_v in_o know_v it_o according_a to_o paschasus_n mr._n arnaud_v will_v say_v without_o doubt_n that_o paschasus_n in_o all_o this_o whole_a second_o chapter_n intend_v only_o to_o show_v the_o necessity_n there_o be_v of_o instruct_v person_n before_o they_o come_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n but_o that_o he_o do_v not_o suppose_v this_o ignorance_n be_v actual_o in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a this_o necessity_n of_o instruction_n in_o the_o manner_n which_o he_o exaggerate_v denote_v that_o they_o take_v a_o great_a care_n in_o those_o day_n to_o teach_v the_o communicants_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o this_o evasion_n will_v not_o serve_v turn_n for_o beside_o that_o paschasus_n say_v express_o that_o he_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n ignorant_o that_o know_v not_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n according_a to_o truth_n which_o be_v a_o expression_n of_o a_o man_n which_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v actual_o person_n that_o thus_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n beside_o this_o a_o man_n needs_o only_o read_v the_o passage_n of_o his_o letter_n to_o frudegard_n where_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o he_o speak_v of_o ignorant_a person_n which_o be_v then_o actual_o in_o the_o church_n i_o say_v there_o need_v no_o more_o than_o the_o read_v they_o to_o find_v he_o understand_v this_o same_o ignorance_n which_o he_o have_v describe_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n for_o have_v immediate_o propose_v as_o from_o the_o part_n of_o frudegard_n the_o objection_n take_v from_o a_o passage_n of_o s._n austin_n that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o a_o figurative_a locution_n quod_fw-la tropica_fw-la locutio_fw-la sit_fw-la ut_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la esse_fw-la dicatur_fw-la which_o respect_v as_o frud_n epist_n ad_fw-la frud_n every_o one_o see_v the_o article_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o have_v endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v it_o he_o pass_v over_o to_o another_o objection_n which_o respect_v the_o same_o real_a presence_n multi_fw-la say_v he_o ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la dubitant_fw-la quomodo_fw-la ille_fw-la integer_fw-la manet_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la esse_fw-la possit_fw-la several_a doubt_n because_o they_o can_v comprehend_v how_o jesus_n christ_n remain_v entire_a and_o yet_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n he_o answer_v this_o objection_n as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v then_o immediate_o add_v here_o you_o have_v dear_a brother_n what_o come_v into_o my_o thought_n at_o present_a and_o because_o you_o be_v one_o part_n of_o myself_o i_o believe_v i_o ought_v not_o to_o conceal_v any_o thing_n from_o you_o although_o i_o can_v express_v my_o mind_n in_o this_o particular_a as_o it_o be_v necessary_a as_o to_o yourself_o i_o desire_v you_o will_v read_v over_o again_o my_o book_n touch_v this_o matter_n which_o you_o say_v you_o have_v heretofore_o read_v and_o if_o you_o find_v therein_o any_o thing_n reprehensible_a or_o doubtful_a refuse_v not_o the_o labour_n of_o read_v it_o again_o for_o although_o i_o have_v not_o write_v any_o thing_n worth_a the_o reader_n pain_n in_o a_o book_n which_o i_o dedicate_v to_o young_a people_n yet_o be_o i_o inform_v that_o i_o have_v stir_v up_o several_a person_n to_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o mystery_n who_o see_v not_o that_o in_o all_o this_o his_o whole_a scope_n be_v the_o real_a presence_n his_o whole_a precede_a dispute_n be_v on_o this_o article_n and_o these_o term_n if_o you_o find_v in_o my_o book_n any_o thing_n reprehensible_a or_o doubtful_a can_v only_o relate_v to_o the_o same_o article_n for_o there_o be_v no_o question_n of_o any_o thing_n else_o when_o then_o he_o add_v that_o he_o have_v stir_v up_o several_a person_n to_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o mystery_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o mean_v he_o have_v rescue_v several_a from_o the_o ignorance_n wherein_o they_o lie_v touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o to_o leave_v no_o room_n for_o contradiction_n and_o cavil_n i_o need_v only_o represent_v what_o he_o write_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o this_o same_o letter_n where_o have_v say_v he_o have_v confirm_v his_o doctrine_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n gregory_n the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n s._n jerom_n and_o some_o other_o he_o add_v et_fw-la ideo_fw-la quamvis_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la quidam_fw-la de_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la errent_fw-la nemo_fw-la tamen_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n although_o some_o do_v err_v through_o ignorance_n in_o this_o point_n what_o can_v be_v
his_o commentary_n and_o as_o to_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n add_v that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v he_o be_v reprehend_v before_o see_v he_o do_v not_o attempt_v to_o defend_v himself_o this_o conclude_v nothing_o unless_o we_o suppose_v that_o paschasus_n be_v in_o a_o capacity_n and_o in_o humour_n to_o defend_v himself_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o know_v he_o be_v censure_v now_o this_o supposition_n must_v be_v prove_v before_o it_o be_v offer_v as_o a_o thing_n certain_a for_o this_o supposition_n do_v not_o establish_v itself_o how_o many_o person_n be_v there_o who_o have_v set_v forth_o singular_a opinion_n do_v for_o a_o long_a time_n patient_o undergo_v all_o censure_n and_o reprehension_n without_o reply_n in_o expectation_n of_o a_o convenient_a time_n to_o defend_v themselves_o paschasus_n have_v begin_v his_o commentary_n on_o s._n matthew_n a_o great_a while_n before_o he_o become_v abbot_n it_o be_v probable_a he_o be_v willing_a to_o stay_v till_o the_o explication_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o he_o believe_v so_o advantageous_a to_o his_o cause_n shall_v furnish_v he_o with_o a_o occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o his_o sentiment_n and_o to_o defend_v it_o against_o the_o attack_n of_o opposer_n so_o that_o mr._n arnaud'_v chronology_n for_o this_o time_n will_v stand_v he_o in_o no_o stead_n who_o have_v give_v this_o liberty_n add_v he_o to_o mr._n claude_n to_o give_v the_o name_n of_o 868._o page_n 868._o world_n to_o these_o unknown_a person_n of_o who_o paschasus_n only_o hear_v some_o mention_n but_o who_o never_o contradict_v he_o to_o his_o face_n nor_o ever_o write_v against_o he_o this_o term_n can_v be_v reasonable_o use_v but_o to_o denote_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n or_o at_o least_o those_o who_o have_v read_v paschasus_n his_o book_n now_o it_o be_v exceed_o false_a in_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o world_n be_v astonish_v at_o paschasus_n his_o book_n see_v none_o of_o his_o friend_n none_o of_o his_o society_n none_o of_o those_o with_o who_o he_o meet_v in_o ecclesiastic_a assembly_n and_o council_n have_v formal_o reprehend_v he_o for_o it_o but_o who_o have_v give_v mr._n arnaud_n authority_n to_o attribute_v the_o name_n of_o unknown_a person_n to_o paschasus_n his_o adversary_n and_o to_o say_v thereupon_o what_o he_o say_v see_v he_o have_v no_o ground_n for_o it_o as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v who_o tell_v he_o that_o john_n scot_n bertram_n and_o raban_n who_o be_v not_o obscure_a person_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o 9th_o century_n have_v stay_v till_o paschasus_n his_o death_n before_o they_o declare_v themselves_o against_o his_o opinion_n suppose_v it_o be_v true_a they_o do_v not_o write_v till_o after_o his_o death_n which_o be_v very_o uncertain_a who_o have_v give_v he_o power_n to_o conclude_v that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o astonish_v at_o paschasus_n his_o book_n under_o pretence_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v formal_o reprehend_v about_o it_o neither_o among_o his_o own_o society_n nor_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n nor_o council_n see_v it_o do_v no_o more_o appear_v that_o bertram_n and_o raban_n when_o they_o teach_v a_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o that_o of_o paschasus_n have_v be_v formal_o reprchend_v for_o it_o either_o by_o any_o one_o of_o their_o order_n or_o in_o the_o public_a assembly_n or_o council_n wherein_o they_o assist_v who_o have_v give_v he_o right_a to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o world_n of_o who_o i_o speak_v consist_v of_o some_o small_a number_n of_o rash_a and_o troublesome_a disputer_n who_o private_o blame_v what_o they_o dare_v not_o contradict_v in_o public_a i_o shall_v not_o here_o repeat_v what_o i_o have_v already_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o endeavour_v to_o make_v we_o conceive_v the_o adversary_n of_o paschasus_n his_o doctrine_n as_o person_n that_o blame_v in_o secret_a what_o they_o dare_v not_o contradict_v in_o public_a see_v the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v at_o least_o that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o paschasus_n there_o be_v public_a write_n against_o this_o very_a doctrine_n and_o of_o which_o writing_n the_o author_n be_v famous_a man_n do_v not_o at_o all_o conceal_v their_o name_n as_o if_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o pretend_a fear_n depend_v not_o on_o the_o doctrine_n but_o person_n of_o paschasus_n who_o must_v have_v be_v at_o this_o rate_n the_o terror_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n whilst_o he_o live_v i_o shall_v only_o say_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o reduce_v paschasus_n his_o adversary_n that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o who_o will_v not_o receive_v his_o doctrine_n to_o a_o small_a number_n one_o may_v in_o truth_n reasonable_o suppose_v that_o among_o those_o that_o reject_v this_o novelty_n there_o be_v some_o that_o make_v head_n or_o appear_v more_o than_o the_o rest_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n paschasus_n may_v say_v that_o he_o understand_v some_o reprehend_v he_o but_o to_o conclude_v hence_o that_o these_o be_v the_o only_a person_n of_o their_o party_n and_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n follow_v the_o sentiment_n of_o paschasus_n be_v a_o groundless_a fancy_n raban_n speak_v of_o paschasus_n his_o party_n call_v they_o formal_o 33._o poenitent_n rab._n cap._n 33._o some_o quidam_fw-la say_v he_o nuper_fw-la de_fw-la ipso_fw-la sacramento_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la non_fw-la rite_n sentientes_fw-la dixerunt_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la quod_fw-la de_fw-la maria_n virgin_n natum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o the_o anonymous_a author_n which_o cellot_n the_o jesuit_n have_v cause_v to_o be_v print_v express_v himself_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n on_o this_o subject_n some_o say_v he_o say_v that_o what_o be_v receive_v from_o the_o altar_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n other_o deny_v it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v another_o thing_n paschasus_n himself_o formal_o acknowledge_v that_o those_o who_o be_v not_o of_o his_o opinion_n be_v not_o a_o small_a number_n for_o he_o describe_v they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o several_a or_o many_o ideo_fw-la say_v he_o in_o hac_fw-la coena_fw-la christi_fw-la prolixius_fw-la elaboravi_fw-la quam_fw-la brevitas_fw-la poscat_fw-la tractatoris_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o his_o mysticis_fw-la rebus_fw-la plures_fw-la aliud_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la as_o oft_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n as_o a_o difficult_a mystery_n be_v propose_v although_o believe_v universal_o by_o the_o faithful_a in_o a_o manner_n which_o cause_v a_o great_a application_n of_o spirit_n those_o man_n mind_n which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o humble_a be_v likely_a to_o be_v dismay_v at_o it_o and_o to_o endeavour_v by_o their_o reason_n to_o find_v out_o way_n whereby_o to_o avoid_v the_o difficulty_n which_o they_o can_v bear_v and_o thereupon_o they_o often_o set_v upon_o the_o person_n who_o have_v propose_v it_o to_o they_o endeavour_v to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a even_o sometime_o these_o ill_a opinion_n be_v already_o form_v for_o there_o be_v find_v too_o oft_o person_n in_o the_o very_a bosom_n of_o the_o church_n who_o give_v too_o great_a liberty_n to_o their_o thought_n and_o reflection_n conceive_v idea_n of_o mystery_n different_a enough_o from_o those_o which_o the_o other_o faithful_a have_v of_o they_o in_o turn_v to_o their_o sense_n most_o of_o the_o common_a expression_n and_o hence_o it_o happen_v that_o if_o any_o one_o else_o in_o follow_v the_o common_a notion_n use_v any_o term_n which_o they_o also_o can_v reduce_v to_o their_o particular_a sense_n they_o charge_v this_o person_n with_o boldness_n and_o rashness_n and_o this_o be_v proper_o what_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v happen_v in_o paschasus_n his_o time_n do_v mr._n arnaud_n think_v to_o escape_v by_o these_o circuit_n and_o artifices_fw-la a_o difficult_a mystery_n say_v he_o believe_v universal_o by_o the_o faithful_a be_v propose_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o make_v people_n apply_v themselves_o the_o more_o to_o it_o do_v he_o pretend_v paschasus_n have_v say_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v new_a in_o his_o book_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n to_o make_v man_n consider_v more_o that_o point_n suppose_v it_o believe_v universal_o by_o the_o faithful_a do_v paschasus_n examine_v the_o consequence_n of_o it_o or_o exaggerate_v the_o miraculousness_n of_o it_o or_o offer_v several_a objection_n on_o the_o contrary_a he_o do_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o but_o only_o say_v it_o be_v the_o same_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o rose_n again_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n although_o the_o colour_n and_o savour_n of_o bread_n remain_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n enter_v into_o our_o flesh_n now_o this_o be_v what_o
all_o the_o faithful_a universal_o believe_v and_o hold_v distinct_o according_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n as_o all_o christian_n believe_v the_o mystery_n say_v he_o three_o page_n before_o so_o they_o likewise_o all_o believe_v the_o eucharist_n in_o paschasus_n his_o time_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o we_o believe_v it_o they_o all_o then_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o assume_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o which_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n and_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o it_o yet_o without_o any_o change_n either_o in_o the_o taste_n or_o colour_n of_o the_o bread_n what_o have_v paschasus_n do_v to_o make_v they_o more_o mind_n it_o those_o man_n mind_n add_v mr._n arnaud_n which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o humble_a be_v apt_a to_o startle_v and_o endeavour_v by_o their_o reason_n to_o find_v out_o way_n whereby_o to_o shun_v the_o difficulty_n which_o they_o can_v bear_v whence_o shall_v this_o startle_a come_v suppose_v they_o believe_v of_o the_o eucharist_n what_o be_v common_o believe_v at_o this_o day_n of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v they_o never_o hear_v say_v before_o that_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n the_o proper_a substance_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n dead_a and_o bury_v nor_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o this_o substance_n if_o it_o be_v a_o novelty_n as_o to_o they_o they_o do_v not_o then_o believe_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o real_a presence_n for_o it_o be_v precise_o in_o these_o idea_n wherein_o these_o doctrine_n do_v consist_v and_o if_o it_o be_v this_o particular_a manner_n of_o propose_v the_o mystery_n which_o affright_v they_o it_o must_v be_v necessary_o acknowledge_v either_o that_o they_o be_v stranger_n to_o these_o idea_n before_o or_o that_o they_o have_v be_v till_o that_o time_n very_o stupid_a and_o drowsy_a see_v they_o feel_v not_o the_o least_o trouble_n about_o it_o although_o they_o have_v they_o always_o before_o their_o eye_n whereas_o now_o a_o simple_a proposal_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n without_o any_o objection_n without_o exaggeration_n affright_v and_o constrain_v they_o to_o find_v out_o by_o their_o reason_n way_n whereby_o to_o avoid_v the_o difficulty_n which_o they_o can_v bear_v and_o then_o they_o common_o set_v upon_o he_o who_o propose_v it_o to_o they_o endeavour_v to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o then_o lose_v their_o sense_n for_o it_o be_v mere_a madness_n to_o set_v particular_o upon_o paschasus_n who_o only_o propose_v to_o they_o in_o a_o manner_n the_o most_o simple_a imaginable_a if_o we_o will_v believe_v mr._n arnaud_n without_o either_o preface_n say_v he_o artificial_a method_n or_o disguise_n what_o the_o whole_a church_n believe_v and_o what_o they_o believe_v themselves_o even_o sometime_o these_o ill_a opinion_n be_v already_o form_v here_o mr._n arnaud_n acknowledge_v one_o part_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o these_o people_n here_o mention_v never_o hear_v of_o the_o novelty_n of_o paschasus_n they_o know_v only_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o figure_n in_o sacrament_n and_o in_o virtue_n as_o they_o themselves_o explain_v their_o sense_n about_o it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o their_o astonishment_n and_o the_o only_a reason_n for_o which_o they_o accuse_v paschasus_n of_o enthusiasm_n and_o vision_n but_o let_v mr._n arnaud_n explain_v if_o he_o please_v in_o what_o manner_n according_a to_o he_o these_o person_n live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n they_o turn_v to_o their_o own_o sense_n say_v he_o most_o of_o the_o common_a expression_n how_o happen_v it_o mr._n arnaud_n who_o but_o the_o last_o moment_n can_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o say_v paschasus_n abuse_v a_o expression_n of_o the_o church_n and_o turn_v it_o to_o another_o sense_n now_o comprehend_v well_o enough_o that_o this_o whole_a party_n turn_v to_o their_o sense_n most_o of_o the_o common_a expression_n he_o that_o tell_v we_o that_o paschasus_n will_v be_v a_o mad_a man_n shall_v he_o make_v use_n of_o this_o expression_n have_v he_o know_v the_o church_n understand_v it_o in_o another_o sense_n will_v grant_v at_o present_a that_o these_o person_n accommodate_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n expression_n to_o their_o sense_n without_o trouble_v '_o emselves_fw-mi with_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o church_n understand_v they_o mr._n arnaud_n argument_n be_v like_o aristotle_n prima_fw-la materia_fw-la capable_a of_o any_o form_n at_o divers_a time_n do_v his_o interest_n require_v the_o church_n expression_n to_o be_v abuse_v this_o may_v be_v do_v there_o be_v reason_n for_o it_o do_v the_o same_o interest_n require_v that_o it_o be_v a_o senseless_a thing_n to_o abuse_v they_o this_o can_v be_v and_o the_o reason_n on_o the_o contrary_n be_v not_o want_v for_o in_o fine_a either_o these_o people_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o true_a sense_n in_o which_o the_o church_n understand_v these_o expression_n or_o they_o be_v not_o if_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o paschasus_n may_v be_v as_o well_o ignorant_a of_o it_o as_o they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o it_o and_o yet_o abuse_v it_o paschasus_n may_v as_o well_o do_v the_o same_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n they_o turn_v to_o their_o sense_n most_o of_o the_o usual_a expression_n it_o seem_v that_o mr._n arnaud_n by_o this_o suppose_v there_o be_v some_o of_o these_o expression_n which_o may_v be_v turn_v by_o they_o yet_o he_o add_v and_o hence_o it_o happen_v that_o if_o any_o other_o person_n in_o follow_v the_o ordinary_a notion_n make_v use_v of_o any_o term_n which_o they_o can_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n reduce_v to_o their_o particular_a sense_n they_o charge_v this_o person_n with_o rashness_n this_o discourse_n thus_o couch_v have_v no_o coherence_n for_o if_o among_o the_o ordinary_a expression_n there_o remain_v still_o some_o of_o they_o which_o they_o can_v not_o reduce_v to_o their_o sense_n why_o must_v they_o set_v upon_o paschasus_n in_o particular_a who_o not_o only_o follow_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o her_o expression_n to_o wit_n those_o which_o be_v too_o plain_a and_o full_a to_o be_v pervert_v why_o must_v he_o then_o be_v accuse_v of_o rashness_n it_o be_v evident_a mr._n arnaud_n stand_v upon_o thorn_n when_o he_o write_v this_o answer_n a_o reason_n must_v be_v give_v why_o these_o person_n before_o we_o reprehend_v paschasus_n in_o particular_a and_o accuse_v he_o of_o be_v a_o rash_a person_n now_o there_o can_v be_v natural_o any_o other_o but_o this_o that_o paschasus_n have_v propose_v a_o new_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v never_o before_o hear_v of_o have_v assert_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o same_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n dead_a and_o rise_v again_o mr._n arnaud_n to_o avoid_v the_o make_n of_o this_o confession_n suppose_v there_o be_v a_o party_n in_o the_o church_n that_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n he_o will_v have_v these_o person_n turn_v to_o their_o sense_n the_o common_a expression_n but_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o paschasus_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o they_o set_v upon_o he_o in_o particular_a and_o accuse_v he_o of_o rashness_n to_o make_v this_o answer_n pass_v currant_n it_o must_v be_v necessary_o suppose_v that_o the_o expression_n of_o paschasus_n be_v peculiarly_a of_o this_o nature_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v turn_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o people_n and_o that_o this_o be_v their_o particular_a character_n which_o distinguish_v they_o from_o all_o the_o common_a expression_n for_o a_o reason_n must_v be_v find_v why_o they_o set_v particular_o upon_o paschasus_n as_o a_o rash_a person_n and_o this_o reason_n must_v be_v something_o that_o be_v singular_a in_o paschasus_n but_o to_o acknowledge_v this_o frank_o and_o clear_o mr._n arnaud_n must_v engage_v himself_o in_o terrible_a ill_a conveniency_n for_o this_o will_v be_v a_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o common_a expression_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n which_o be_v express_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o which_o may_v not_o be_v turn_v to_o another_o sense_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o all_o the_o common_a expression_n be_v general_a equivocal_a and_o ambiguous_a by_o this_o mean_n he_o will_v have_v expose_v himself_o to_o abundance_n of_o question_n as_o among_o other_o to_o these_o whence_o paschasus_n can_v know_v the_o church_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n see_v all_o her_o expression_n be_v capable_a of_o another_o sense_n whence_o he_o
know_v the_o church_n understand_v these_o expression_n in_o one_o sense_n rather_o than_o in_o another_o see_v she_o never_o express_v herself_o about_o they_o in_o a_o clear_a and_o incapable_a manner_n of_o be_v pervert_v who_o have_v give_v liberty_n to_o paschasus_n to_o determine_v what_o the_o church_n do_v not_o determine_v and_o to_o express_v in_o particular_a term_n what_o the_o church_n only_o express_v in_o general_a one_o mr._n arnaud_n who_o plain_o foresee_v these_o inconvenience_n have_v think_v best_a to_o expess_v himself_o in_o a_o enigmatical_a manner_n as_o those_o general_o do_v who_o on_o one_o hand_n be_v urge_v by_o the_o force_n of_o truth_n and_o sequel_n of_o their_o own_o argue_v but_o who_o on_o the_o other_o be_v retain_v by_o the_o fear_n of_o say_v too_o much_o they_o pervert_v say_v he_o to_o their_o sense_n most_o of_o the_o common_a expression_n and_o hence_o it_o happen_v that_o if_o any_o body_n else_o in_o follow_v the_o common_a notion_n make_v use_v of_o any_o term_n which_o they_o can_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n reduce_v to_o their_o particular_a sense_n they_o accuse_v this_o person_n of_o rashness_n this_o be_v exact_o what_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v happen_v in_o paschasus_n his_o time_n here_o be_v exact_o the_o description_n of_o a_o man_n that_o fly_v but_o fear_n to_o be_v take_v in_o fly_v and_o therefore_o provide_v for_o himself_o another_o evasion_n against_o all_o occasion_n my_o three_o proof_n be_v take_v from_o paschasus_n his_o propose_v his_o opinion_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o paradox_n which_o must_v ravish_v the_o world_n with_o admiration_n although_o these_o thing_n say_v he_o have_v the_o figure_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o must_v we_o dom._n lib._n de_fw-fr corp._n &_o sang._n dom._n believe_v that_o they_o be_v nothing_o else_o after_o consecration_n than_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o therefore_o the_o truth_n itself_o say_v to_o his_o disciple_n this_o be_v my_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o explain_v myself_o in_o a_o more_o wonderful_a manner_n et_fw-la ut_fw-la mirabilius_fw-la loquar_fw-la it_o be_v entire_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o sepulchre_n these_o term_n ut_fw-la mirabilius_fw-la loquar_fw-la be_v the_o expression_n of_o one_o that_o pretend_v to_o say_v something_o extraordinary_a and_o surprise_v mr._n arnaud_v answer_n that_o all_o miracle_n be_v not_o paradox_n i_o grant_v 865._o book_n 8._o ch_z 10._o p._n 865._o it_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o all_o express_v in_o this_o manner_n ut_fw-la mirabilius_fw-la loquar_fw-la do_v s._n chrysostom_n add_v he_o offer_v a_o paradox_n when_o he_o break_v forth_o into_o this_o expression_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n o_o wonderful_a he_o that_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v between_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n i_o answer_v that_o in_o effect_n this_o discourse_n of_o chrysostom_n be_v a_o true_a paradox_n a_o paradox_n of_o a_o orator_n which_o seem_v at_o first_o to_o contradict_v common_a sense_n although_o that_o in_o effect_n be_v right_o understand_v it_o do_v not_o but_o that_o of_o paschasus_n be_v a_o false_a paradox_n because_o it_o oppose_v in_o effect_n and_o at_o bottom_n not_o only_o common_a sense_n but_o likewise_o truth_n as_o to_o what_o remain_v i_o know_v not_o why_o mr._n arnaud_n will_v have_v these_o term_n translate_v ut_fw-la mirabilius_fw-la loquar_fw-la by_o these_o the_o better_a to_o explain_v to_o you_o this_o marvel_n the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n must_v be_v change_v to_o favour_v this_o translation_n ut_fw-la mirabilius_fw-la loquar_fw-la natural_o signify_v to_o speak_v or_o explain_v myself_o in_o a_o more_o admirable_a manner_n or_o at_o most_o to_o say_v something_o more_o admirable_a which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o expression_n which_o he_o be_v go_v to_o use_v or_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o he_o be_v about_o to_o speak_v be_v extraordinary_a and_o surprise_v now_o this_o show_v he_o acknowledge_v at_o least_o that_o his_o expression_n or_o conception_n be_v new_a whence_o it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o conjecture_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v as_o new_a as_o his_o expression_n we_o may_v make_v another_o conjecture_n from_o his_o submit_v his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o frudegard_n and_o entreat_v he_o to_o see_v what_o be_v reprehensible_a in_o it_o he_o tell_v he_o he_o send_v to_o he_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o 26._o of_o s._n matthew_n and_o add_v ut_fw-la ex_fw-la ipso_fw-la considerare_fw-la queo_fw-la quid_fw-la intelligibilius_fw-la credendum_fw-la sit_fw-la vel_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o i_o reprehendendum_fw-la cum_fw-la charitate_fw-la to_o the_o end_n that_o you_o may_v know_v what_o be_v more_o rational_o to_o be_v believe_v or_o what_o there_o be_v in_o i_o that_o may_v be_v charitable_o blame_v mr._n arnaud_n be_v mistake_v if_o he_o believe_v i_o ground_v my_o conjecture_n in_o general_n on_o this_o deference_n of_o humility_n which_o paschasus_n have_v for_o frudegard_n we_o know_v that_o wise_a author_n be_v wont_a to_o acknowledge_v themselves_o liable_a to_o mistake_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o their_o friend_n it_o be_v not_o this_o here_o be_v something_o more_o particular_a which_o i_o desire_v may_v be_v consider_v paschasus_n declare_v in_o his_o letter_n that_o he_o be_v censure_v for_o teach_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o take_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n even_o frudegard_n himself_o propose_v to_o he_o a_o objection_n against_o his_o doctrine_n he_o defend_v himself_o the_o best_a he_o can_v he_o desire_v frudegard_n to_o read_v his_o book_n over_o often_o he_o send_v to_o he_o his_o commentary_n on_o s._n matthew_n wherein_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o leave_v frudegard_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o judgement_n to_o see_v what_o may_v be_v more_o rational_o believe_v or_o what_o may_v be_v charitable_o reprehend_v in_o he_o quid_fw-la intelligibilius_fw-la credendum_fw-la sit_fw-la vel_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o i_o reprehendendum_fw-la cum_fw-la charitate_fw-la who_o see_v not_o the_o question_n be_v only_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o that_o what_o he_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o frudegard_n be_v to_o know_v which_o be_v most_o reasonable_a either_o to_o believe_v it_o or_o not_o to_o believe_v it_o to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v or_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o reprehension_n to_o have_v offer_v it_o but_o who_o do_v not_o likewise_o see_v that_o this_o can_v be_v the_o language_n of_o a_o man_n that_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o the_o church_n then_o believe_v for_o people_n do_v not_o thus_o submit_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o such_o a_o clear_a certain_a and_o undeniable_a faith_n as_o mr._n arnaud_n suppose_v this_o be_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o particular_a person_n leave_v he_o at_o liberty_n to_o take_v that_o part_n which_o he_o find_v most_o reasonable_a and_o that_o of_o reprehend_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o censure_v he_o provide_v he_o do_v it_o with_o charity_n mr._n arnaud_v reckon_v for_o my_o 6_o proof_n this_o that_o paschasus_n do_v 868._o page_n 868._o never_o vaunt_v this_o his_o doctrine_n be_v formal_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o remark_n consist_v in_o a_o fact_n which_o we_o have_v already_o discuss_v and_o find_v to_o be_v true_a i_o need_v only_o add_v that_o if_o ever_o man_n be_v oblige_v loud_o to_o offer_v and_o without_o hesitation_n the_o formal_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n and_o to_o protest_v he_o have_v say_v nothing_o but_o what_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o religious_a of_o his_o time_n speak_v in_o conformity_n with_o he_o and_o what_o all_o the_o faithful_a make_v profession_n to_o believe_v with_o he_o it_o be_v paschasus_n he_o be_v set_v upon_o in_o particular_a he_o be_v reprehend_v for_o ill_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n his_o doctrine_n be_v oppose_v by_o a_o contrary_a doctrine_n he_o be_v accuse_v for_o be_v a_o rash_a person_n a_o visionary_a now_o how_o can_v he_o after_o all_o this_o neglect_n the_o shelt'r_n himself_o from_o all_o these_o insulting_n and_o make_v they_o return_v with_o confusion_n upon_o his_o adversary_n by_o say_v clear_o that_o all_o the_o faithful_a people_n in_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n whether_o pastor_n or_o other_o speak_v not_o otherwise_o than_o he_o do_v and_o that_o his_o adversary_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o utmost_a excess_n of_o impudence_n but_o instead_o of_o this_o he_o have_v recourse_n to_o some_o passage_n which_o he_o pervert_v as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v to_o his_o sense_n and_o to_o a_o clause_n of_o the_o liturgy_n wherein_o there_o be_v corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la paschasus_n furnish_v we_o likewise_o
be_v render_v to_o the_o faithful_a and_o not_o for_o the_o faithful_a and_o for_o this_o i_o allege_v some_o reason_n this_o be_v a_o thing_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n which_o i_o can_v willing_o grant_v he_o do_v he_o ask_v it_o with_o a_o better_a mien_n for_o either_o translation_n be_v indifferent_a to_o i_o but_o see_v he_o be_v resolve_v to_o carry_v it_o away_o by_o force_n i_o think_v i_o be_o oblige_v to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v unjust_a so_o that_o here_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v a_o quarrel_n with_o i_o for_o my_o carriage_n si_fw-mi natura_fw-la negate_fw-la facit_fw-la indignatio_fw-la versum_fw-la true_o i_o be_o sorry_a i_o can_v make_v myself_o agreeable_a to_o he_o i_o do_v what_o i_o can_v as_o much_o as_o reason_n and_o truth_n will_v permit_v but_o there_o be_v some_o person_n so_o unhappy_a that_o they_o can_v give_v content_a do_v what_o they_o can_v i_o be_o to_o mr._n arnaud_n what_o sabidus_n be_v to_o martial_a i_o can_v help_v it_o but_o have_v he_o be_v please_v to_o take_v his_o eye_n off_o my_o person_n and_o consider_v the_o reason_n he_o have_v see_v that_o these_o two_o translation_n be_v not_o in_o effect_n indifferent_a because_o that_o which_o say_v for_o the_o faithful_a seem_v simple_o to_o denote_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v natural_o design_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o not_o for_o that_o of_o the_o wicked_a whereas_o the_o other_o denote_v that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n only_o to_o the_o faithful_a and_o not_o to_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v whole_o different_a second_o that_o that_o which_o say_v to_o the_o faithful_a be_v more_o conformable_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o grammar_n according_a to_o which_o common_o fidelibus_fw-la signify_v to_o the_o faithful_a and_o pro_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la for_o the_o faithful_a three_o that_o the_o sequel_n of_o florus_n his_o discourse_n denote_v his_o sense_n to_o be_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o only_o to_o the_o faithful_a because_o he_o immediate_o add_v that_o as_o we_o eat_v jesus_n christ_n by_o piece_n in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o be_v whole_o entire_a in_o our_o heart_n which_o can_v only_o respect_v the_o faithful_a to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o because_o he_o say_v that_o we_o see_v in_o the_o sacrament_n one_o thing_n and_o understand_v by_o it_o another_o which_o have_v a_o spiritual_a fruit_n which_o moreover_o appertain_v only_o to_o the_o faithful_a what_o he_o allege_v from_o remy_n of_o auxerre_n who_o explain_v this_o clause_n ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la fiat_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la by_o these_o word_n id_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la nostram_fw-la salutem_fw-la fiat_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la be_v invalid_a because_o we_o may_v tell_v he_o that_o have_v florus_n design_v to_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o remus_n he_o will_v have_v explain_v himself_o like_o to_o remus_n which_o he_o have_v not_o do_v beside_o that_o the_o explication_n of_o remus_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o florus_n for_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v from_o the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o our_o salvation_n that_o it_o be_v make_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o the_o wicked_a all_o the_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o these_o two_o exposition_n be_v that_o that_o of_o florus_n be_v more_o clear_a and_o express_v than_o the_o other_o we_o can_v conclude_v very_o clear_o from_o that_o of_o florus_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n only_o to_o the_o faithful_a but_o not_o to_o the_o wicked_a but_o one_o can_v draw_v this_o consequence_n from_o that_o of_o remus_n neither_o can_v one_o draw_v a_o contrary_a one_o this_o conclusion_n which_o i_o draw_v from_o the_o passage_n of_o florus_n offend_v mr._n arnaud_n by_o the_o like_a argument_n say_v he_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o paschasus_n do_v 822._o book_n 8._o ch_z 7._o p._n 822._o not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n for_o this_o author_n say_v as_o well_o as_o florus_n that_o jesus_n christ_n grant_v we_o by_o his_o grace_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o we_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n he_o will_v prove_v add_v he_o that_o all_o the_o catholic_n priest_n do_v no_o more_o believe_v transubstantiation_n see_v they_o say_v this_o prayer_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n quam_fw-la oblationem_fw-la tu_fw-la deus_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la quoesumus_fw-la adscriptam_fw-la ratam_fw-la rationabilem_fw-la acceptabilemque_fw-la facere_fw-la digneris_fw-la ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la fiat_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la tui_fw-la silij_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la i_o answer_v there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o florus_n and_o paschasus_n paschasus_n formal_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o conversion_n of_o substance_n florus_n do_v not_o do_v any_o thing_n like_o this_o when_o then_o we_o judge_v of_o florus_n his_o expression_n reason_n require_v we_o to_o judge_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n which_o it_o natural_o have_v but_o when_o we_o judge_v of_o that_o of_o paschasus_n we_o must_v judge_n of_o it_o according_a to_o the_o force_a and_o violent_a sense_n which_o be_v give_v to_o this_o expression_n to_o make_v it_o agree_v with_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n because_o it_o appear_v to_o we_o elsewhere_o that_o paschasus_n believe_v these_o doctrine_n when_o paschasus_n speak_v of_o what_o the_o wicked_a receive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o a_o manner_n so_o intricate_a and_o confuse_a that_o it_o visible_o appear_v he_o affect_v to_o be_v obscure_a explain_v these_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n 6._o lib._n de_fw-fr corp._n &_o sang._n dom._n cap._n 6._o dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o he_o introduce_v our_o saviour_n say_v if_o he_o do_v not_o first_o dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o he_o can_v eat_v my_o flesh_n nor_o drink_v my_o blood_n and_o what_o then_o be_v it_o which_o man_n do_v eat_v do_v not_o all_o indifferent_o take_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n they_o take_v they_o without_o doubt_n but_o one_o eat_v spiritual_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o the_o other_o not_o although_o he_o seem_v to_o take_v the_o morsel_n from_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o what_o do_v he_o then_o receive_v there_o be_v but_o one_o consecration_n if_o he_o do_v not_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n true_o because_o the_o wicked_a receive_v unworthy_o they_o eat_v and_o drink_v their_o own_o damnation_n accord_v to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o they_o do_v not_o try_v themselves_o before_o they_o come_v nor_o discern_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o this_o be_v what_o the_o wicked_a eat_v and_o drink_v they_o do_v not_o profitable_o receive_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o their_o own_o damnation_n this_o plain_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o discourse_n of_o a_o man_n that_o hide_v himself_o and_o dare_v not_o say_v open_o the_o wicked_a receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o seem_v to_o insinuate_v the_o contrary_a but_o yet_o still_o contain_v himself_o within_o these_o term_n of_o spiritual_o and_o profitable_o that_o he_o may_v save_v himself_o by_o distinction_n paschasus_n then_o be_v not_o to_o be_v offer_v as_o a_o instance_n as_o to_o what_o mr._n arnaud_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n i_o acknowledge_v it_o can_v be_v conclude_v thence_o that_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o our_o time_n do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n because_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v it_o clear_o appear_v elsewhere_o that_o they_o believe_v it_o we_o must_v not_o judge_n of_o the_o term_n of_o the_o canon_n according_a to_o their_o natural_a sense_n but_o a_o man_n may_v conclude_v thence_o that_o those_o who_o at_o first_o make_v this_o liturgy_n have_v not_o the_o same_o belief_n with_o those_o at_o this_o day_n for_o they_o speak_v then_o natural_o and_o according_a to_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o their_o church_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o on_o the_o principle_n of_o transubstantiation_n one_o must_v desire_v of_o god_n not_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v to_o we_o the_o body_n of_o his_o son_n but_o that_o it_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o his_o son_n absolute_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o for_o if_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v it_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o itself_o to_o all_o respect_n and_o beyond_o all_o respect_n but_o if_o it_o be_v only_o make_v to_o we_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v make_v so_o only_o in_o our_o respect_n
bertram_n now_o bertram_n do_v not_o any_o where_o name_n paschasus_n and_o not_o only_o he_o do_v not_o attack_v he_o open_o but_o shun_v to_o appear_v contrary_a to_o he_o so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o author_n that_o raban_n be_v a_o adversary_n to_o paschasus_n his_o book_n why_o can_v it_o not_o be_v conclude_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o author_n see_v this_o author_n formal_o say_v it_o can_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o never_o see_v this_o letter_n to_o egilon_n better_a judge_n of_o it_o than_o this_o author_n that_o do_v see_v it_o suppose_v raban_n do_v not_o name_n paschasus_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o do_v not_o attack_v his_o book_n for_o a_o man_n may_v write_v against_o a_o book_n and_o yet_o not_o name_v the_o author_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a attacking_z the_o book_n to_o combat_v precise_o and_o direct_o the_o fundamental_a and_o essential_a proposition_n which_o paschasus_n come_v from_o establish_v in_o it_o which_o be_v that_o what_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n be_v the_o same_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n this_o anonymous_a author_n say_v moreover_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v the_o only_a person_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la that_o speak_v of_o this_o letter_n of_o raban_n to_o egilon_n it_o be_v never_o cite_v either_o by_o berenger_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o author_n it_o be_v unknown_a to_o all_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o 11_o century_n suppose_v what_o mr._n arnaud_n say_v be_v true_a yet_o will_v it_o not_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o call_n in_o question_n the_o sincerity_n of_o this_o anonymous_a author_n who_o speak_v of_o this_o letter_n as_o of_o that_o which_o he_o see_v but_o beside_o this_o mr._n arnaud_n hazard_v himself_o too_o much_o when_o he_o positive_o affirm_v that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a author_n who_o speak_v of_o this_o letter_n of_o raban_n to_o egilon_n he_o may_v be_v convince_v of_o the_o contrary_a by_o raban_n himself_o who_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o make_v express_a mention_n of_o it_o on_o the_o same_o subject_n of_o paschasus_n his_o doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n which_o the_o anonymous_a do_v except_v the_o name_n of_o paschasus_n which_o he_o do_v not_o express_v which_o plain_o defend_v the_o sincerity_n of_o this_o nameless_a author_n quidam_fw-la nuper_fw-la de_fw-la ipso_fw-la sacramento_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la 33._o poen_n rab._n c._n 33._o domini_fw-la non_fw-la rite_n sentientes_fw-la dixerunt_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la quod_fw-la de_fw-la maria_n virgin_n natum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o in_o quo_fw-la ipse_fw-la dominus_fw-la passus_fw-la est_fw-la in_o cruse_n &_o resurrexit_fw-la de_fw-la sepulchro_fw-la cvi_fw-la errori_fw-la quantum_fw-la potuimus_fw-la ad_fw-la egilum_fw-la abbatem_fw-la scribentes_fw-la de_fw-la corpore_fw-la ipso_fw-la quid_fw-la veer_fw-la credendum_fw-la sit_fw-la aperuimus_fw-la but_o suppose_v it_o be_v true_a say_v mr._n arnaud_n that_o raban_n do_v in_o effect_n 875._o page_n 875._o contradict_v paschasus_n this_o will_v be_v but_o of_o small_a advantage_n to_o mr._n claude_n which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v afterward_o by_o the_o example_n of_o several_a great_a wit_n and_o famous_a bishop_n who_o have_v attack_v the_o divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o add_v that_o raban_n be_v as_o other_o man_n be_v as_o appear_v by_o one_o of_o his_o letter_n which_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n refute_v that_o it_o can_v appear_v strange_a he_o shall_v fall_v into_o a_o error_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o philosopher_n rhetorician_n astronomer_n and_o poet_n can_v not_o render_v he_o incapable_a of_o be_v deceive_v suppose_v we_o have_v only_a raban_n to_o oppose_v against_o paschasus_n the_o advantage_n will_v not_o be_v inconsiderable_a paschasus_n be_v only_o a_o mean_a religious_a when_o raban_n be_v abbot_n of_o fulde_n and_o when_o paschasus_n come_v to_o be_v abbot_n of_o corbie_n raban_n be_v archbishop_n of_o mayence_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o one_o be_v far_o great_a than_o that_o of_o the_o other_o as_o to_o knowledge_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o raban_n infinite_o excel_v paschasus_n not_o in_o the_o mere_a quality_n of_o a_o philosopher_n rhetorician_n astronomer_n and_o poet_n although_o these_o qualification_n do_v much_o set_v off_o a_o scholar_n but_o by_o the_o epithet_n which_o baronius_n give_v he_o audi_fw-la say_v he_o quid_fw-la vertex_fw-la huius_fw-la temporis_fw-la 847._o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la ann_n 847._o theologorum_fw-la rabanus_n decreverit_fw-la mr._n arnaud_n can_v propose_v paschasus_n but_o only_o as_o the_o single_a person_n of_o his_o party_n now_o be_v it_o the_o same_o with_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o raban_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o presumption_n will_v be_v whole_o for_o this_o last_o and_o that_o it_o be_v apparent_o better_a to_o bring_v the_o church_n on_o raban_n side_n than_o on_o paschasus_n but_o we_o be_v not_o in_o these_o circumstance_n the_o doctrine_n of_o raban_n agree_v very_o well_o with_o that_o of_o other_o author_n his_o contemporary_n that_o of_o paschasus_n agree_v with_o none_o of_o '_o they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o raban_n have_v disturb_v no_o body_n but_o that_o of_o paschasus_n set_v several_a person_n against_o he_o of_o his_o own_o time_n there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o reason_n for_o accuse_v raban_n of_o innovation_n but_o there_o be_v very_o strong_a proof_n whereby_o to_o conclude_v that_o paschasus_n be_v a_o innovator_n it_o signify_v nothing_o to_o say_v that_o raban_n be_v as_o other_o man_n be_v as_o appear_v by_o one_o of_o his_o letter_n which_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n have_v refute_v for_o shall_v a_o man_n rigorous_o examine_v paschasus_n his_o write_n he_o will_v find_v more_o mark_n of_o human_a weakness_n than_o in_o those_o of_o raban_n beside_o that_o from_o this_o very_a thing_n that_o raban_n have_v the_o church_n of_o lion_n for_o his_o adversary_n one_o may_v hence_o conclude_v according_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n way_n of_o reason_v that_o his_o doctrine_n on_o the_o eucharist_n differ_v not_o from_o that_o of_o his_o time_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o the_o church_n of_o lion_n will_v not_o have_v spare_v he_o on_o such_o a_o important_a article_n and_o yet_o instead_o of_o this_o we_o find_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o when_o this_o church_n herself_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n it_o have_v be_v in_o term_n which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o favour_n the_o real_a presence_n when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v she_o give_v script_n lugd._n eccles_n de_fw-fr tenend_n ver_fw-la script_n to_o his_o disciple_n the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n he_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o which_o insinuate_v that_o she_o understand_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o this_o sense_n this_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o my_o body_n and_o a_o little_a further_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v to_o say_v the_o mystery_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n the_o example_n of_o these_o great_a wit_n and_o bishop_n that_o have_v attack_v the_o divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v indeed_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a for_o raban_n to_o fall_v into_o error_n which_o be_v what_o we_o do_v not_o at_o present_a dispute_n for_o there_o be_v no_o body_n infallible_a no_o not_o mr._n arnaud_n himself_n but_o this_o example_n conclude_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o paschasus_n who_o be_v no_o more_o infallible_a than_o other_o so_o far_o they_o stand_v upon_o equal_a ground_n both_o man_n and_o both_o liable_a to_o error_n it_o remain_v to_o know_v which_o of_o the_o two_o actual_o fall_v into_o error_n and_o that_o this_o example_n of_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o decide_v it_o signify_v nothing_o add_v mr._n arnaud_n to_o say_v that_o no_o body_n ever_o reproach_v 875._o book_n 8._o ch_z 12_o p._n 875._o he_o with_o this_o error_n for_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o any_o other_o author_n save_o the_o anonymous_n see_v this_o letter_n to_o egilon_n so_o that_o the_o only_a person_n that_o have_v knowledge_n of_o it_o have_v condemn_v it_o raban_n do_v not_o keep_v this_o letter_n secret_a see_v he_o have_v himself_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o in_o his_o penitential_o and_o say_v he_o do_v it_o against_o the_o error_n of_o those_o who_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n those_o who_o see_v not_o his_o letter_n may_v easy_o comprehend_v by_o these_o word_n the_o substance_n of_o it_o and_o for_o what_o end_n he_o design_v it_o if_o they_o have_v not_o condemn_v it_o it_o be_v their_o fault_n yet_o do_v we_o not_o pretend_v to_o draw_v hence_o any_o great_a
advantage_n but_o moreover_o say_v mr._n arnaud_n how_o many_o error_n be_v there_o in_o author_n which_o have_v be_v never_o take_v notice_n of_o by_o any_o person_n nor_o reproach_v to_o those_o that_o teach_v '_o they_o there_o be_v strange_a instance_n of_o this_o and_o here_o be_v one_o from_o among_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v singular_a in_o its_o kind_n photius_n testify_v that_o theodorus_n mospueste_n write_v a_o book_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n both_o east_n and_o west_n have_v be_v as_o great_o animate_v against_o this_o author_n as_o can_v be_v imagine_v he_o be_v condemn_v even_o after_o his_o death_n in_o the_o five_o council_n there_o be_v never_o then_o any_o person_n to_o be_v less_o favour_v than_o he_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o this_o capital_a error_n observe_v by_o photius_n have_v be_v animadvert_v by_o any_o author_n of_o the_o 6_o century_n in_o the_o very_a time_n when_o theodorus_n be_v use_v with_o most_o severity_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v with_o mr._n arnaud_n that_o these_o kind_n of_o argument_n by_o which_o we_o conclude_v that_o if_o a_o doctrine_n have_v not_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o this_o church_n have_v hold_v it_o and_o approve_v it_o be_v not_o convince_a and_o what_o he_o relate_v of_o theodorus_n of_o mospueste_n be_v a_o considerable_a argument_n of_o it_o but_o it_o must_v also_o be_v grant_v that_o never_o man_n be_v more_o at_o variance_n with_o himself_o than_o mr._n arnaud_n for_o what_o he_o now_o say_v overthrow_v the_o better_a part_n of_o his_o book_n those_o that_o have_v read_v it_o may_v remember_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o dispute_n touch_v the_o greek_n be_v reduce_v to_o negative_a argument_n perfect_o like_a unto_o those_o which_o he_o now_o condemn_v the_o greek_n say_v he_o without_o cease_v have_v not_o condemn_v then_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o latin_n therefore_o they_o believe_v it_o with_o '_o they_o cerularius_n do_v not_o concern_v himself_o at_o berenger_n condemnation_n he_o believe_v the_o transubstantiation_n humbert_n do_v not_o reproach_v the_o greek_n with_o their_o not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o nicetas_n do_v not_o reproach_v the_o latin_n with_o their_o believe_v it_o therefore_o they_o be_v agree_v in_o this_o article_n we_o can_v scarce_o meet_v with_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o these_o kind_n of_o conclusion_n in_o every_o page_n he_o do_v the_o same_o on_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o other_o schismatical_a church_n he_o argue_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o emissary_n the_o silence_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o silence_n of_o the_o armenian_n and_o that_o of_o the_o nestorian_n and_o other_o when_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o 12_o century_n how_o many_o time_n have_v he_o remember_v th●_n necessity_n of_o the_o dispute_n of_o the_o paschasi_v and_o bertramist_n how_o many_o prodigious_a exclamation_n have_v he_o make_v at_o their_o not_o be_v condemn_v at_o their_o not_o bait_v one_o another_o and_o when_o the_o discourse_n be_v about_o paschasus_n and_o the_o innovation_n which_o we_o charge_v he_o with_o with_o what_o exaggeration_n have_v he_o not_o urge_v this_o argument_n that_o paschasus_n be_v not_o public_o reprehend_v by_o any_o person_n for_o thirty_o year_n be_v never_o punish_v nor_o admonish_v that_o he_o offer_v a_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o the_o church_n apply_v i_o pray_v you_o to_o this_o rhetoric_n what_o he_o say_v now_o of_o this_o great_a number_n of_o error_n in_o ecclesiastical_a author_n which_o have_v be_v never_o animadvert_v by_o any_o body_n nor_o reproach_v to_o those_o who_o have_v teach_v '_o they_o add_v hereunto_o his_o example_n of_o theodorus_n of_o mospueste_n and_o that_o of_o john_n scot_n of_o who_o he_o say_v likewise_o afterward_o that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o these_o error_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o any_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n of_o that_o age_n and_o that_o of_o raban_n for_o he_o suppose_v he_o may_v have_v err_v on_o the_o eucharist_n by_o a_o capital_a error_n in_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o he_o affirm_v that_o in_o this_o case_n it_o will_v not_o be_v strange_a that_o never_o any_o body_n reproach_v he_o with_o this_o error_n lay_v i_o say_v all_o this_o together_o and_o make_v a_o reform_v on_o this_o ground_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n retrench_v whatsoever_o agree_v not_o with_o this_o rule_n which_o he_o here_o give_v we_o and_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o will_v reduce_v his_o volume_n into_o a_o less_o compass_n by_o half_a after_o these_o first_o answer_n with_o which_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v not_o perhaps_o 876._o page_n 876._o well_o satisfy_v he_o hazard_v another_o which_o be_v that_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o real_a body_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n may_v have_v two_o sense_n the_o one_o that_o the_o external_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v to_o say_v the_o visible_a vail_n be_v not_o real_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o real_o white_a round_a and_o have_v not_o in_o itself_o all_o these_o sensible_a accident_n which_o appear_v to_o we_o the_o other_o that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o real_o contain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o pretend_v that_o raban_n deny_v this_o proposition_n only_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n and_o not_o in_o the_o second_o but_o this_o answer_n have_v neither_o sincerity_n nor_o truth_n in_o it_o first_o it_o confound_v what_o ought_v necessary_o to_o be_v distinguish_v for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o visible_a veil_n which_o be_v to_o say_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n be_v real_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v white_a and_o round_a and_o have_v in_o itself_o all_o the_o sensible_a accident_n which_o appear_v to_o we_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v suppose_v a_o man_n believe_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v white_a and_o round_a it_o will_v not_o hence_o follow_v he_o must_v say_v that_o this_o whiteness_n and_o this_o roundness_n which_o be_v the_o veil_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n speak_v of_o be_v real_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o second_o place_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o ever_o any_o body_n imagine_v that_o these_o sensible_a accident_n of_o whiteness_n and_o roundness_n in_o abstracto_fw-la as_o they_o term_v it_o be_v real_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o whosoever_o impute_v to_o raban_n the_o combat_v of_o this_o fancy_n charge_v he_o with_o oppose_v such_o a_o imagination_n as_o never_o yet_o enter_v into_o any_o body_n mind_n as_o to_o the_o other_o proposition_n that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v real_o white_a and_o round_a as_o it_o be_v not_o customary_a to_o express_v it_o in_o these_o term_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n so_o it_o be_v not_o usual_a to_o refute_v it_o in_o these_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o this_o explication_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v so_o force_v and_o remote_a from_o the_o natural_a sense_n of_o raban_n his_o word_n that_o there_o be_v few_o reasonable_a person_n to_o who_o it_o will_v not_o appear_v a_o pitiful_a evasion_n yet_o do_v mr._n arnaud_n earnest_o urge_v not_o only_o that_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o raban_n to_o attack_v this_o proposition_n but_o likewise_o that_o of_o bertram_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corpore_fw-la &_o sanguine_a domini_fw-la and_o although_o the_o anonymous_a author_n who_o according_a to_o all_o probability_n live_v about_o the_o 9th_o century_n express_o say_v that_o raban_n and_o bertram_n refute_v paschasus_n yet_o do_v mr._n arnaud_n affirm_v the_o contrary_a and_o say_v that_o he_o demonstrative_o prove_v it_o he_o say_v for_o this_o effect_n that_o there_o be_v people_n in_o that_o time_n who_o gross_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v such_o as_o the_o sacrament_n appear_v to_o be_v which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v real_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n that_o this_o opinion_n be_v a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o that_o of_o amalarius_n that_o it_o be_v from_o thence_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n issue_v through_o the_o pore_n and_o apply_v unto_o it_o these_o word_n omne_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o os_fw-la intrat_fw-la in_fw-la ventrem_fw-la vadit_fw-la &_o in_o secessum_fw-la emittitur_fw-la that_o it_o be_v apparent_a from_o the_o accusation_n which_o florus_n form_v against_o he_o of_o have_v corrupt_v france_n by_o these_o fantastical_a opinion_n that_o amalarius_n have_v
yield_v we_o a_o demonstrative_a proof_n that_o paschasus_n be_v a_o innovator_n for_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o speak_v like_o he_o there_o be_v two_o of_o the_o famous_a of_o they_o viz._n raban_n and_o bertram_n who_o have_v express_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o refute_v of_o his_o doctrine_n to_o these_o two_o we_o may_v add_v a_o three_o which_o be_v john_n scot_n who_o write_v also_o by_o the_o command_n of_o charles_n the_o bald_a against_o the_o novelty_n of_o paschasus_n his_o book_n be_v burn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o verseil_n and_o we_o understand_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o ascelinus_fw-la in_o his_o letter_n to_o berenger_n that_o the_o end_n which_o he_o propose_v be_v to_o show_v in_o this_o book_n that_o what_o be_v consecrate_a on_o the_o altar_n be_v neither_o the_o true_a body_n nor_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n toto_fw-la nisu_fw-la totaque_fw-la intention_n ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la solum_fw-la tendere_fw-la video_fw-la ut_fw-la mihi_fw-la persuadeat_fw-la hoc_fw-la videlicet_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la consecratur_fw-la neque_fw-la veer_fw-la corpus_fw-la neque_fw-la veer_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la esse_fw-la hoc_fw-la autem_fw-la astruere_fw-la nititur_fw-la ex_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la opusculis_fw-la quae_fw-la brave_a exponit_fw-la the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v insert_v in_o his_o 12_o book_n pretend_v that_o the_o book_n which_o we_o have_v under_o the_o name_n of_o bertram_n and_o that_o of_o john_n scot_n be_v the_o same_o he_o endeavour_v likewise_o to_o lessen_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o adversary_n to_o paschasus_n and_o i_o have_v not_o finish_v this_o work_n without_o examine_v his_o conjecture_n have_v not_o one_o of_o my_o friend_n inform_v i_o that_o he_o have_v ease_v i_o of_o this_o pain_n as_o well_o as_o this_o author_n have_v help_v mr._n arnaud_n i_o hope_v this_o friend_n of_o i_o will_v soon_o publish_v his_o piece_n which_o will_v or_o i_o be_o great_o deceive_v full_o satisfy_v every_o unprejudiced_a man_n that_o seek_v the_o truth_n chap._n xii_o of_o personal_a difference_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v treat_v of_o in_o his_o eleven_o book_n have_v satisfy_v whatsoever_o respect_v the_o matter_n of_o this_o dispute_n my_o design_n wherein_o i_o be_o engage_v of_o return_v a_o exact_a answer_n to_o mr._n arnaud_n volume_n seem_v to_o require_v i_o shall_v now_o pass_v to_o the_o discussion_n of_o his_o eleven_o book_n which_o he_o have_v entitle_v personal_a difference_n between_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o i_o the_o interest_n also_o of_o my_o defence_n against_o mr._n arnaud_n injustice_n oblige_v i_o to_o this_o yet_o can_v i_o not_o whole_o keep_v within_o this_o province_n for_o there_o be_v several_a reason_n hinder_v i_o which_o i_o hope_v judicious_a person_n will_v not_o disallow_v first_o these_o personal_a difference_n be_v handle_v in_o so_o sharp_a and_o hot_a a_o manner_n so_o full_a of_o animosity_n that_o it_o be_v better_a a_o thousand_o time_n to_o pass_v they_o over_o in_o silence_n and_o offer_v they_o as_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o piety_n patience_n and_o christian_a charity_n than_o to_o endeavour_v to_o treat_v of_o they_o exact_o and_o repel_v mr._n arnaud_n outrage_n which_o can_v be_v well_o do_v without_o sometime_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o christian_a moderation_n moreover_o although_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o mr._n arnaud_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o public_a will_v take_v part_n with_o what_o respect_v their_o person_n yet_o i_o can_v pretend_v it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o i_o these_o gentleman_n have_v make_v a_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n they_o have_v draw_v upon_o they_o the_o expectation_n of_o all_o france_n spain_n and_o italy_n whereas_o i_o be_o person_n obscure_a enough_o and_o who_o name_n be_v only_o know_v by_o my_o interest_n in_o this_o dispute_n so_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o presumption_n in_o i_o to_o believe_v the_o public_a will_v concern_v itself_o in_o my_o respect_n shall_v i_o then_o here_o begin_v with_o a_o long_a discussion_n of_o our_o complaint_n and_o reciprocal_a defence_n the_o reader_n may_v well_o say_v to_o one_o another_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o this_o and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n of_o their_o patience_n after_o a_o long_a discourse_n of_o thing_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o cause_n to_o engage_v they_o further_o in_o a_o tiresome_a discourse_n of_o personal_a difference_n in_o the_o three_o place_n mr._n arnaud_n have_v introduce_v among_o his_o personal_a difference_n several_a thing_n to_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o answer_v without_o engage_v in_o tedious_a prolixity_n in_o matter_n which_o of_o '_o emselve_n have_v no_o coherence_n with_o that_o of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o place_n in_o this_o rank_n the_o defence_n which_o he_o make_v of_o a_o cruel_a invective_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n against_o the_o first_o reformer_n which_o yet_o mr._n arnaud_n maintain_v in_o a_o more_o fierce_a manner_n ground_v it_o on_o fact_n and_o principle_n some_o of_o which_o be_v false_a other_o take_v in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n and_o other_o invidious_o pervert_v how_o can_v we_o handle_v in_o a_o few_o word_n so_o important_a a_o subject_n when_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o justify_v the_o innocency_n of_o several_a great_a man_n and_o to_o show_v at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o justice_n and_o necessity_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v plain_a this_o can_v be_v do_v in_o one_o or_o two_o chapter_n and_o that_o this_o be_v matter_n for_o a_o great_a volume_n i_o reduce_v under_o this_o head_n these_o passionate_a expression_n which_o begin_v the_o 9th_o chapter_n of_o this_o 11_o book_n and_o which_o i_o design_n to_o relate_v here_o that_o the_o world_n may_v judge_v of_o '_o they_o we_o demand_v justice_n say_v mr._n arnaud_n speak_v of_o i_o for_o the_o excess_n of_o which_o he_o have_v be_v guilty_a contrary_n to_o all_o rule_n of_o honesty_n and_o truth_n which_o even_o pagan_n will_v blush_v to_o violate_v we_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o he_o whether_o his_o moral_n will_v give_v he_o this_o licence_n we_o be_v already_o satisfy_v that_o the_o maxim_n of_o their_o new_a divinity_n promise_v impunity_n to_o all_o manner_n of_o crime_n provide_v they_o be_v of_o the_o faithful_a calvinist_n who_o commit_v they_o and_o we_o do_v not_o question_v he_o whether_o he_o fear_v to_o be_v damn_v by_o calumniate_a his_o adversary_n we_o know_v the_o solution_n of_o his_o doctor_n deliver_v he_o from_o this_o fear_n contrary_a to_o what_o s._n paul_n say_v who_o tell_v we_o that_o slanderer_n shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o that_o which_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v be_v whether_o they_o have_v of_o late_o take_v away_o from_o crime_n the_o name_n of_o crime_n and_o strip_v they_o of_o the_o general_a infamy_n which_o accompany_v they_o whether_o the_o name_n of_o a_o slanderer_n be_v no_o long_o odious_a among_o calvinist_n and_o whether_o they_o have_v sanctify_v this_o name_n which_o be_v so_o horrible_a among_o man_n that_o they_o can_v not_o find_v a_o black_a to_o show_v their_o detestation_n of_o it_o than_o to_o call_v such_o devil_n i_o design_v not_o to_o repel_v these_o discourse_n to_o be_v meet_v with_o scatter_a throughout_o his_o whole_a book_n any_o otherwise_o than_o by_o recite_v they_o or_o at_o most_o by_o censure_v they_o as_o excess_n which_o do_v not_o at_o all_o become_v a_o person_n who_o pretend_v to_o correct_v our_o moral_n and_o teach_v we_o virtue_n and_o moderation_n i_o shall_v not_o retort_v upon_o he_o several_a thing_n in_o my_o turn_n which_o a_o just_a and_o natural_a defence_n seem_v to_o permit_v and_o enjoin_v i_o to_o tell_v he_o but_o i_o pretend_v to_o justify_v so_o well_o our_o moral_n as_o will_v make_v mr._n arnaud_n blush_v for_o shame_n that_o he_o have_v attack_v they_o with_o such_o a_o outrageous_a and_o malicious_a air_n and_o this_o we_o can_v do_v here_o transient_o nor_o by_o way_n of_o answer_n to_o ten_o or_o twelve_o hot_a period_n which_o like_o lightning_n have_v more_o fire_n than_o matter_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o this_o purpose_n to_o be_v disengage_v from_o all_o other_o subject_n for_o there_o need_v more_o time_n to_o remedy_v a_o evil_a than_o to_o do_v it_o to_o cure_v a_o wound_n than_o to_o make_v it_o and_o these_o be_v the_o reason_n which_o withhold_v i_o from_o enter_v into_o a_o exact_a discussion_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n eleven_o book_n but_o because_o there_o be_v in_o these_o personal_a difference_n some_o article_n which_o i_o can_v whole_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n have_v too_o near_o a_o relation_n to_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o treat_v of_o the_o reader_n
in_o which_o he_o assert_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o those_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o subsistence_n of_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_n and_o use_v the_o very_a term_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o mr._n arnaud_n have_v mean_v by_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o person_n of_o that_o party_n i_o have_v already_o declare_v to_o he_o and_o again_o tell_v he_o that_o i_o have_v not_o dispute_v against_o he_o we_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o dispute_v the_o conquest_n of_o the_o mission_n and_o seminary_n let_v he_o peaceable_o enjoy_v they_o we_o mean_v only_o the_o true_a greek_n who_o retain_v the_o doctrine_n and_o ancient_a expression_n of_o their_o church_n and_o as_o to_o those_o we_o be_v certain_a of_o two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o latin_n which_o i_o believe_v i_o have_v clear_o prove_v and_o the_o other_o that_o they_o alone_o ought_v to_o be_v call_v the_o true_a greek_a church_n although_o the_o contrary_a party_n be_v the_o most_o prevalent_a and_o possess_v the_o patriarchates_n mr._n arnaud_n himself_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o these_o seat_n be_v dispose_v of_o by_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o turk_n to_o those_o that_o have_v most_o money_n and_o we_o know_v moreover_o the_o great_a care_n that_o have_v be_v take_v to_o establish_v the_o roman_a doctrine_n in_o these_o country_n through_o the_o neglect_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o prelate_n monk_n and_o people_n whether_o by_o instruct_v their_o child_n or_o gain_v the_o bishop_n or_o fill_v the_o church_n with_o the_o scholar_n of_o seminary_n and_o other_o like_a mean_n which_o i_o have_v describe_v at_o large_a in_o my_o second_o book_n mr._n arnaud_n perhaps_o will_v answer_v that_o he_o likewise_o maintain_v on_o his_o side_n that_o this_o party_n which_o teach_v transubstantiation_n be_v the_o true_a greek_a church_n and_o the_o other_o but_o a_o cabal_n of_o cyril_n disciple_n i_o answer_v that_o to_o decide_v this_o question_n we_o need_v only_o examine_v which_o of_o these_o two_o party_n retain_v the_o doctrine_n and_o expression_n of_o the_o ancient_a greek_n for_o that_o which_o have_v this_o character_n must_v be_v esteem_v the_o true_a greek_a church_n and_o not_o that_o which_o have_v receive_v novelty_n unknown_a to_o their_o father_n now_o we_o have_v clear_o show_v that_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n transubstantiation_n and_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v doctrine_n and_o expression_n of_o which_o the_o greek_n of_o former_a age_n have_v have_v no_o knowledge_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o party_n which_o admit_v these_o doctrine_n and_o expression_n be_v a_o parcel_n of_o innovator_n which_o must_v not_o be_v regard_v as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o true_a greek_a church_n let_v mr._n arnaud_n and_o those_o who_o read_v this_o dispute_n always_o remember_v that_o the_o first_o proposition_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v that_o in_o the_o 11_o century_n at_o the_o time_n of_o berenger_n condemnation_n the_o greek_n hold_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n that_o this_o be_v the_o time_n which_o he_o choose_v and_o term_v his_o fix_a point_n to_o prove_v from_o hence_o that_o these_o doctrine_n be_v of_o the_o first_o establishment_n of_o religion_n and_o consequent_o perpetual_a in_o the_o church_n which_o i_o desire_v may_v be_v careful_o observe_v to_o prevent_v another_o illusion_n which_o may_v be_v offer_v we_o by_o transfer_v the_o question_n of_o the_o greek_n of_o that_o time_n to_o the_o greek_n at_o this_o and_o to_o hinder_v mr._n arnaud_n and_o other_o from_o triumph_v over_o we_o when_o it_o shall_v happen_v that_o the_o mission_n and_o seminary_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o intrigue_n which_o be_v make_v use_n of_o shall_v devour_v the_o whole_a land_n of_o greece_n for_o in_o this_o case_n the_o advantage_n draw_v hence_o against_o we_o will_v be_v of_o no_o value_n it_o will_v neither_o hence_o follow_v that_o the_o doctrine_n in_o question_n have_v be_v perplex_v in_o the_o church_n nor_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n hold_v they_o in_o the_o time_n of_o berenger_n condemnation_n and_o what_o i_o say_v touch_v the_o greek_n i_o say_v likewise_o touch_v the_o other_o eastern_a church_n over_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n extend_v its_o mission_n and_o care_n as_o well_o as_o the_o greek_n as_o to_o what_o remain_v let_v not_o mr._n arnaud_n be_v offend_v that_o in_o the_o refutation_n of_o his_o book_n in_o general_n i_o have_v every_o where_o show_v the_o little_a justice_n and_o solidity_n of_o his_o reason_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o refutation_n of_o his_o first_o six_o and_o ten_o book_n i_o acknowledge_v he_o have_v write_v with_o much_o wit_n elegancy_n and_o polite_a language_n and_o attribute_v to_o the_o defect_n of_o his_o subject_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v note_v to_o be_v amiss_o either_o in_o his_o proof_n or_o answer_n but_o it_o be_v very_o true_a the_o world_n never_o see_v so_o many_o illusion_n and_o such_o great_a weakness_n in_o a_o work_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o all_o that_o i_o can_v do_v be_v to_o use_v great_a condescension_n in_o follow_v he_o every_o where_o to_o set_v he_o straight_o i_o have_v only_o now_o to_o beseech_v almighty_a god_n to_o bless_v this_o my_o labour_n and_o as_o he_o have_v give_v i_o grace_n to_o undertake_v and_o finish_v it_o so_o he_o will_v make_v it_o turn_v to_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o church_n edification_n amen_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o dissertation_n which_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o mr._n arnaud_n book_n touch_v the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n publish_a under_o the_o name_n of_o bertram_z and_z of_o the_o authority_n of_o john_n scot_n or_o erigenus_n london_n print_v by_o m._n c._n for_o richard_n royston_n bookseller_n to_o the_o king_n be_v most_o excellent_a majesty_n 1683._o advertisement_n those_o that_o shall_v cast_v their_o eye_n on_o this_o answer_n will_v be_v at_o first_o apt_a to_o think_v these_o critical_a question_n belong_v only_o to_o scholar_n whereas_o we_o have_v here_o several_a important_a matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n necessary_a to_o the_o full_a understanding_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v we_o have_v forsake_v the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o that_o berenger_n be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o who_o teach_v our_o doctrine_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 11_o century_n we_o on_o the_o contrary_n maintain_v it_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n that_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a belief_n and_o that_o it_o be_v paschasus_n ratbert_n who_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 9th_o century_n teach_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n and_o to_o this_o in_o short_a may_v he_o reduce_v the_o whole_a controversy_n which_o be_v between_o mr._n claude_n and_o mr._n arnaud_n mr._n claude_n have_v strenuous_o and_o clear_o show_v that_o as_o many_o author_n as_o be_v of_o any_o repute_n in_o the_o 9th_o century_n have_v oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paschasus_n and_o that_o consequent_o paschasus_n must_v be_v respect_v as_o a_o real_a innovator_n now_o among_o these_o writer_n mr._n claude_n produce_v john_n scot_n or_o erigenus_n and_o bertram_n or_o ratram_n a_o religious_a of_o corby_n two_o of_o the_o great_a personage_n of_o that_o age_n and_o show_v they_o write_v both_o of_o they_o against_o the_o novelty_n which_o paschasus_n have_v broach_v that_o one_o of_o they_o dedicate_v his_o book_n to_o charles_n the_o bald_a king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o other_o likewise_o write_v he_o by_o the_o same_o king_n order_n that_o the_o first_o have_v live_v some_o time_n in_o this_o prince_n court_n die_v at_o last_o in_o england_n in_o great_a reputation_n for_o his_o holiness_n of_o life_n that_o the_o other_o be_v always_o esteem_v and_o reverence_v as_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o church_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v decisive_a in_o our_o favour_n mr._n arnaud_n on_o his_o side_n find_v himself_o touch_v to_o the_o quick_a by_o the_o consequence_n of_o these_o proof_n have_v use_v his_o last_o and_o great_a endeavour_n to_o overthrow_n or_o weaken_v '_o they_o and_o for_o this_o purpose_n have_v publish_v at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n two_o dissertation_n the_o one_o under_o his_o own_o name_n and_o the_o other_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o religious_a of_o st._n genevieve_n who_o name_n be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o first_o which_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o religious_a he_o do_v two_o thing_n for_o first_o he_o endeavour_v to_o persuade_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o in_o effect_n ratram_n '_o be_v but_o
with_o its_o consequence_n as_o the_o adoration_n the_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v make_v he_o judge_n that_o hincmar_n must_v respect_v the_o opinion_n of_o john_n scot_n as_o a_o detestable_a heresy_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v then_o unknown_a to_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o be_v not_o receive_v into_o the_o latin_a church_n till_o some_o age_n after_o hincmar_n but_o this_o last_o remark_n respect_v the_o main_a of_o the_o question_n which_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o i_o to_o handle_v chap._n iu._n a_o refutation_n of_o what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n offer_v to_o persuade_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n publish_a under_o the_o name_n of_o bertram_n be_v of_o john_n scot._n have_v hitherto_o firm_o enough_o establish_v that_o the_o book_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v of_o ratram_n i_o may_v pass_v by_o whatsoever_o the_o author_n of_o the_o dissertation_n allege_v to_o fortify_v the_o conjecture_n of_o mr._n de_fw-fr marca_n and_o true_o see_v that_o before_o mr._n de_fw-fr marca_n no_o man_n of_o learning_n nor_o any_o of_o berenger_n enemy_n either_o in_o the_o 11_o century_n or_o in_o the_o follow_a make_v this_o discovery_n see_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o faith_n entertain_v at_o first_o the_o opinion_n of_o mr._n de_fw-fr marca_n with_o mistrust_n that_o he_o may_v handsome_o leave_v it_o if_o he_o be_v force_v it_o thereupon_o seem_v i_o have_v right_a to_o despise_v whatsoever_o our_o author_n allege_v to_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o book_n of_o bertram_n be_v the_o book_n of_o john_n scot_n under_o a_o foreign_a title_n nevertheless_o i_o will_v show_v that_o the_o proof_n which_o he_o offer_v have_v no_o solidity_n these_o proof_n be_v 1._o that_o the_o book_n of_o bertram_n be_v entire_o conformable_a scot._n art_n 3._o of_o the_o dissert_n on_o john_n scot._n to_o what_o we_o read_v in_o ancient_a writer_n concern_v that_o of_o john_n scot._n 2._o that_o the_o proper_a character_n of_o john_n scot_n be_v therein_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o but_o at_o bottom_n he_o establish_v neither_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o as_o to_o the_o first_o our_o author_n relate_v a_o passage_n of_o ascelin_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o 1._o ibid._n sect_n 1._o berenger_n whence_o he_o believe_v one_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o work_n of_o john_n scot_n contain_v only_o one_o book_n and_o that_o small_a enough_o that_o a_o man_n can_v present_o perceive_v in_o john_n scot_n book_n what_o be_v his_o opinion_n on_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o maugre_o the_o dissimulation_n of_o john_n scot_n yet_o ascelin_n find_v therein_o his_o whole_a design_n be_v to_o persuade_v the_o reader_n that_o what_o be_v consecrate_a on_o the_o altar_n be_v not_o true_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o to_o compass_v his_o drift_n john_n scot_n make_v use_v of_o several_a passage_n of_o the_o father_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o each_o passage_n add_v some_o gloss_n to_o bring_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o to_o his_o purpose_n that_o among_o other_o john_n scot_n recite_v at_o length_n a_o orison_n of_o s._n gregory_n which_o begin_v with_o these_o word_n perficiant_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la and_o have_v trifle_v with_o some_o place_n of_o s._n ambrose_n s._n jerom_n and_o s._n austin_n who_o he_o principal_o make_v use_v of_o as_o berenger_n insinuate_v he_o form_v his_o conclusion_n in_o these_o term_n specie_fw-la geruntur_fw-la ista_fw-la non_fw-la veritate_fw-la and_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o as_o our_o author_n think_v agree_v with_o bertram_n book_n but_o these_o reflection_n which_o our_o author_n pretend_v one_o may_v also_o make_v on_o the_o book_n of_o bertram_n be_v either_o uneflectual_a for_o his_o design_n or_o want_v a_o foundation_n 1._o nothing_o hinder_v that_o two_o work_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n may_v have_v be_v short_a enough_o to_o be_v equal_o treat_v as_o small_a book_n 2._o i_o have_v show_v that_o our_o author_n be_v mistake_v when_o he_o call_v bertram_n book_n a_o obscure_a and_o intricate_a piece_n even_o ascelin_n do_v not_o scruple_n to_o treat_v john_n scot_n as_o a_o heretic_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o sentiment_n on_o the_o eucharist_n and_o our_o author_n have_v not_o well_o enough_o comprehend_v the_o text_n of_o ascelin_n 3._o two_o author_n who_o hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n shall_v likewise_o aim_v at_o the_o same_o mark_n they_o must_v if_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o common_a sense_n from_o the_o same_o reflection_n in_o substance_n on_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o serve_v their_o design_n these_o two_o character_n than_o be_v too_o general_a and_o wide_a and_o for_o the_o two_o last_o consideration_n 1._o who_o doubt_v that_o two_o author_n one_o of_o who_o have_v apparent_o read_v the_o book_n of_o the_o other_o as_o ratram_n may_v have_v read_v that_o of_o john_n scot_n may_v not_o cite_v the_o same_o authority_n ratram_n and_o raban_n have_v do_v it_o as_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o the_o anonymous_n of_o cellot_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o true_a berenger_n have_v insinuate_v that_o john_n scot_n cite_v principal_o s._n ambrose_n s._n jerom_n and_o s._n austin_n berenger_n say_v john_n scot_n can_v be_v respect_v as_o a_o heretic_n without_o throw_v this_o ignominy_n on_o these_o father_n and_o several_a other_o but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o john_n scot_n cite_v particular_o these_o three_o holy_a doctor_n and_o shall_v he_o have_v say_v it_o this_o character_n will_v be_v too_o general_a there_o have_v be_v scarce_o any_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 9th_o century_n who_o have_v not_o affect_v to_o follow_v chief_o these_o three_o doctor_n 3._o our_o author_n ought_v not_o to_o propose_v as_o a_o character_n of_o identity_n that_o bertram_n have_v draw_v the_o same_o conclusion_n from_o the_o orison_n perficiant_fw-la in_o nobis_fw-la as_o john_n scot_n have_v do_v for_o to_o speak_v proper_o this_o conclusion_n specie_fw-la geruntur_fw-la ista_fw-la non_fw-la veritate_fw-la be_v not_o of_o bertram_n nor_o of_o john_n scot_n but_o the_o text_n itself_o of_o the_o prayer_n which_o bear_v ut_fw-la quoe_fw-la nunc_fw-la specie_fw-la gerimus_fw-la veritate_fw-la capiamus_fw-la now_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o they_o be_v equal_o oblige_v to_o conserve_v these_o term_n in_o their_o conclusion_n and_o that_o they_o can_v neither_o of_o they_o do_v it_o in_o a_o more_o natural_a manner_n than_o in_o form_v it_o thus_o specie_fw-la gerunter_n ista_fw-la non_fw-la veritate_fw-la we_o must_v also_o observe_v and_o that_o as_o ascelin_n relate_v that_o john_n scot_n cite_v this_o orison_n under_o the_o name_n of_o s._n gregory_n whereas_o bertram_n cite_v it_o as_o the_o common_a service_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o how_o great_a soever_o the_o conformity_n have_v be_v between_o the_o conclusion_n of_o these_o author_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o word_n it_o be_v not_o so_o great_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o construction_n of_o '_o they_o bertram_z have_v these_o word_n in_o specie_fw-la geruntur_fw-la ista_fw-la non_fw-la in_o veritate_fw-la and_o john_n scot_n these_o specie_fw-la geruntur_fw-la ista_fw-la non_fw-la in_o veritate_fw-la which_o prove_v that_o these_o be_v two_o different_a author_n the_o second_o witness_n which_o our_o author_n produce_v be_v berenger_n who_o inform_v we_o that_o the_o book_n of_o john_n scot_n be_v write_v at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o a_o king_n of_o france_n and_o that_o this_o king_n be_v charlemagne_n our_o author_n pretend_v that_o these_o two_o particular_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o book_n of_o bertram_n which_o be_v dedicate_v to_o charlemagne_n and_o be_v write_v by_o his_o order_n but_o these_o conformity_n conclude_v nothing_o not_o the_o first_o because_o it_o be_v very_o possible_a that_o charles_n the_o bald_n have_v at_o the_o same_o time_n oblige_v two_o learned_a man_n to_o write_v on_o the_o same_o subject_n one_o who_o dwell_v in_o his_o palace_n to_o wit_n john_n scot_n and_o the_o other_o who_o name_n be_v so_o illustrious_a in_o his_o kingdom_n that_o he_o have_v already_o oblige_v he_o to_o write_v on_o the_o question_n of_o predestination_n to_o wit_n ratramnus_n this_o character_n be_v too_o general_a not_o the_o second_o for_o it_o do_v not_o seem_v that_o the_o book_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n nor_o that_o of_o john_n scot_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v inscribe_v ad_fw-la carolum_fw-la magnum_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la but_o only_o ad_fw-la carolum_fw-la regem_fw-la which_o be_v what_o one_o may_v recollect_v from_o sigebert_n from_o the_o abbot_n trithemius_n from_o john_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n and_o the_o belg._n de_fw-fr script_n eccl._n catai_fw-fr c._n 95._o catal._n fol._n 57_o prologue_n in_o
to_o the_o stately_a city_n of_o baudas_fw-la where_o the_o friar_n predicant_o of_o our_o order_n who_o dwell_v there_o come_v out_o to_o meet_v we_o receive_v we_o with_o great_a joy_n and_o by_o the_o second_o it_o appear_v likewise_o that_o the_o emissary_n of_o the_o order_n of_o friar_n minorite_n have_v already_o get_v as_o far_o as_o the_o india_n for_o 55._o fol._n 55._o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o three_o friar_n who_o after_o a_o long_a dispute_n against_o the_o nestorian_n be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o speak_v against_o mahomet_n in_o the_o year_n 1369_o urban_n the_o fisth_n send_v friar_n minorite_n among_o all_o these_o 8._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1369._o num_fw-la 14._o ray._n ad_fw-la ann_n 1370._o num_fw-la 8._o nation_n with_o the_o same_o order_n to_o preach_v and_o propagate_v the_o catholic_n faith_n he_o send_v likewise_o four_o bishop_n into_o albania_n and_o the_o neighbour_a province_n to_o reduce_v these_o schismatical_a people_n to_o his_o obedience_n he_o take_v the_o same_o care_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o russian_n moldavian_n and_o valaquain_n to_o who_o he_o send_v twenty_o five_o religious_a of_o the_o order_n of_o friar_n minorite_n anthony_n bishop_n of_o miléve_n be_v order_v to_o instruct_v the_o georgian_n and_o other_o eastern_a christian_n together_o with_o twenty_o five_o other_o monk_n who_o be_v join_v to_o he_o under_o gregory_n the_o eleven_o there_o be_v several_a convent_v found_v in_o bosnia_n bascia_fw-la for_o the_o same_o design_n of_o convert_v the_o schismatic_n this_o pope_n enlarge_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o eastern_a missionary_n on_o condition_n 32._o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la ann_n 1372._o num_fw-la 32._o they_o will_v remain_v in_o those_o country_n and_o not_o return_v into_o the_o west_n under_o penalty_n of_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o their_o privilege_n in_o the_o fifteen_o century_n martin_n the_o five_o take_v care_n again_o of_o the_o mission_n which_o have_v be_v in_o some_o sort_n interrupt_v during_o the_o trouble_n of_o that_o great_a schism_n which_o begin_v under_o urbain_n the_o six_o in_o the_o year_n 1378_o and_o 20._o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la ann_n 1418._o num_fw-la 19_o 20._o which_o end_v not_o till_o after_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n in_o the_o year_n 1414_o wherein_o martin_n be_v choose_v he_o make_v the_o king_n of_o poland_n his_o vicar_n through_o out_o the_o whole_a extent_n of_o his_o dominion_n to_o the_o end_n he_o shall_v endeavour_v the_o reduction_n of_o the_o greek_n give_v he_o for_o this_o purpose_n full_a authority_n over_o the_o ecclesiastic_n and_o monk_n he_o confer_v the_o same_o power_n on_o the_o duke_n of_o lituania_n give_v he_o a_o express_a charge_n to_o endeavour_v to_o propagate_v the_o catholic_n religion_n eugenus_n the_o four_o martin_n successor_n set_v forth_o a_o new_a mission_n which_o consist_v of_o twenty_o religious_a of_o the_o order_n of_o friar_n minorite_n together_o 29._o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la ann_n 143._o num_fw-la 29._o with_o a_o bishop_n who_o he_o send_v into_o asia_n for_o the_o propogate_a of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o the_o particular_a instruction_n of_o the_o christian_n that_o dwell_v in_o the_o caspian_a mountain_n he_o employ_v gregory_n arch_a bishop_n of_o moldoblachie_n who_o be_v a_o latinized_a greek_a for_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o bulgarian_n valaquians_n moldavian_n enjoin_v he_o to_o apply_v himself_o thereunto_o with_o all_o possible_a care_n and_o diligence_n he_o send_v andrew_n arch_a bishop_n of_o colossia_n into_o cyprus_n to_o bring_v back_o to_o his_o obedience_n the_o christian_n of_o different_a sect_n who_o inhabit_a this_o island_n namely_o the_o nestorian_n armenian_n coptic_o chaldean_n jacobite_n together_o with_o the_o greek_n who_o be_v the_o native_n of_o that_o place_n in_o the_o sixteenth_o century_n the_o portuguese_n have_v settle_v themselves_o in_o the_o east_n india_n it_o be_v well_o know_v they_o establish_v mission_n and_o seminary_n in_o divers_a place_n and_o earnest_o endeavour_v to_o instruct_v the_o ethiopian_n nestorian_n and_o other_o christian_a sect_n which_o be_v in_o that_o country_n leo_n the_o ten_o send_v several_a to_o instruct_v the_o russian_n and_o muscovite_n he_o 73._o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la ann_n 1514._o num_fw-la 87._o 101._o 102._o &_o ad_fw-la ann_n 1519._o num_fw-la 60._o num_fw-la 60._o spondan_n ann_n eccl._n ad_fw-la ann_n 1531._o num_fw-la 13._o raynald_n ad_fw-la ann_n 1515._o num_fw-la 69._o &_o 73._o take_v the_o same_o care_n for_o the_o abyssins_n and_o maronites_n for_o these_o last_o although_o they_o have_v submit_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o retain_v their_o ancient_a error_n clement_n the_o seven_o receive_v a_o ambassador_n from_o basil_n duke_n of_o muscovia_n and_o send_v to_o this_o duke_n a_o legate_n to_o treat_v concern_v his_o reunion_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1531_o according_a to_o spondanus_n raynaldus_n refer_v it_o to_o the_o year_n 1525._o in_o fine_a if_o we_o will_v know_v the_o present_a state_n of_o all_o the_o east_n in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v but_o consider_v that_o the_o emissary_n have_v so_o far_o overspread_v these_o country_n that_o scarce_o be_v there_o any_o place_n where_o they_o have_v not_o settle_v themselves_o and_o wherein_o they_o do_v not_o exert_v all_o their_o learning_n and_o industry_n not_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o infidel_n for_o this_o they_o can_v expect_v but_o for_o the_o gain_n of_o these_o schismatic_n insinuate_v the_o roman_a religion_n among_o these_o ignorant_a and_o dull_a people_n who_o still_o profess_v christianity_n eugenius_n roger_n a_o recollet_n who_o be_v send_v into_o barbary_n in_o his_o description_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n tell_v we_o that_o those_o of_o his_o order_n have_v maintain_v 3._o holy_a land_n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o themselves_o in_o palestine_n from_o the_o year_n 1333_o to_o this_o present_a and_o have_v two_o convent_v at_o jerusalem_n one_o at_o bethlem_n one_o at_o nazareth_n one_o at_o rama_fw-mi one_o at_o st._n john_n of_o acra_n one_o at_o sydon_n six_o in_o egypt_n two_o in_o the_o isle_n of_o cyprus_n one_o at_o aleppo_n one_o at_o damascus_n two_o at_o mount_n libanus_n one_o at_o alexandria_n and_o one_o at_o constantinople_n joseph_n besson_n the_o jesuit_n in_o his_o holy_a syria_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o society_n 3_o holy_a syria_n c._n 1._o &_o 3_o have_v five_o seminary_n in_o syria_n to_o wit_n at_o tripoli_n sidon_n damascus_n aleppo_n and_o at_o questroan_n which_o have_v be_v settle_v there_o since_o the_o year_n 1652_o and_o send_v over_o by_o the_o order_n of_o urbain_n the_o eight_o francis_z richard_z in_o his_o relation_n touch_v the_o isle_n of_o st._n erinys_n give_v we_o this_o account_n since_o say_v he_o prince_n have_v cease_v to_o succour_n this_o france_n letter_n to_o the_o clergy_n of_o france_n poor_a eastern_a church_n by_o arm_n our_o king_n continue_v to_o assist_v it_o by_o mean_n which_o although_o not_o so_o expensive_a and_o famous_a yet_o no_o less_o effectual_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a end_n of_o such_o like_a undertake_n and_o in_o another_o place_n our_o society_n be_v preserve_v in_o this_o country_n by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o faithful_a have_v not_o cease_v to_o continue_v their_o service_n to_o this_o desolate_a church_n and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o fruit_n of_o our_o labour_n may_v not_o be_v enclose_v within_o the_o wall_n of_o constantinople_n our_o society_n have_v extend_v itself_o as_o far_o as_o thessalonica_n patras_n athens_n naples_n the_o romans_n milos_n paros_n where_o they_o have_v for_o some_o time_n sojourn_v and_o afterward_o settle_v themselves_o at_o smyrna_n scio_fw-la naxie_n negrepont_n st._n erinys_n not_o to_o mention_v syria_n where_o they_o have_v four_o other_o place_n of_o residency_n viz._n aleppo_n damascus_n seide_fw-la and_o tripolys_n and_o now_o they_o design_v for_o mount_n athos_n and_o all_o other_o part_n where_o schism_n and_o heresy_n reign_v and_o certain_o they_o have_v undertake_v no_o easy_a task_n have_v so_o many_o and_o distant_a country_n to_o travel_v over_o so_o many_o error_n to_o oppose_v and_o to_o correct_v such_o a_o number_n of_o abuse_n which_o ignorance_n and_o heresy_n have_v introduce_v among_o these_o people_n mr._n thevenot_n inform_v we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o convent_n of_o capucin_n friar_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o st._n andra_n which_o do_v very_o much_o help_v the_o bishop_n by_o their_o preach_v and_o 66._o thevenot_n '_o s_z voyage_n part_v 1_o c_o 13._o &_o c._n 61._o &_o c._n 66._o discourse_v of_o the_o isle_n of_o chios_n he_o say_v that_o beside_o the_o jesuit_n who_o have_v a_o church_n and_o college_n there_o be_v also_o capucin_n who_o teach_v humane_a learning_n and_o divinity_n and_o also_o jacobin_n and_o grey_a friar_n who_o have_v all_o of_o
irreverence_n show_v they_o how_o grievous_o they_o err_v in_o that_o they_o testify_v a_o great_a respect_n to_o the_o saint_n who_o be_v the_o servant_n and_o friend_n of_o our_o saviour_n than_o to_o himself_o who_o be_v their_o lord_n and_o master_n these_o papa_n give_v i_o no_o other_o answer_n but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o command_n which_o enjoin_v this_o respect_n and_o adoration_n this_o answer_n be_v heretical_a as_o i_o shall_v hereafter_o manifest_v for_o john_n oecolampadus_n that_o arch_a heretic_n of_o our_o time_n the_o ringleader_n of_o the_o sacrament_n ary_n assert_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n have_v likewise_o write_v and_o public_o teach_v that_o we_o ought_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o adore_v the_o eucharist_n with_o a_o adoration_n of_o latria_n term_v all_o they_o idolater_n that_o do_v so_o wherefore_o let_v catholic_n judge_v whether_o this_o do_v not_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o greek_n it_o will_v be_v think_v perhaps_o this_o author_n speak_v only_o of_o some_o particular_a person_n and_o not_o of_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o general_n but_o such_o person_n may_v be_v soon_o satisfy_v when_o they_o read_v what_o follow_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o relation_n behold_v most_o holy_a father_n say_v he_o all_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o modern_a greek_n which_o i_o have_v lay_v open_a and_o confute_v as_o well_o as_o i_o can_v i_o say_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o greek_n not_o only_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o corfou_n but_o of_o all_o the_o eastern_a greek_n to_o the_o end_n the_o other_o may_v not_o magnify_v themselves_o for_o they_o have_v all_o the_o same_o belief_n the_o same_o will_n and_o obstinacy_n to_o maintain_v every_o where_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o here_o i_o think_v be_v another_o good_a witness_n be_v likewise_o a_o archbishop_n and_o a_o person_n that_o want_v neither_o wit_n nor_o learning_n who_o dwell_v among_o the_o greek_n he_o affirm_v precise_o as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n that_o the_o greek_n do_v not_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n he_o proceed_v far_a and_z lay_v this_o to_o their_o charge_n as_o a_o crime_n and_o aggravate_v it_o by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o respect_n they_o show_v the_o image_n he_o relate_v their_o reason_n there_o be_v no_o command_n enjoin_v this_o adoration_n he_o condemn_v this_o opinion_n as_o heretical_a and_o liken_n it_o unto_o that_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o heretic_n he_o far_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o be_v not_o only_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n but_o of_o all_o the_o eastern_a greek_n and_o in_o short_a he_o remark_n the_o irreverence_n which_o be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o all_o kind_n of_o adoration_n what_o can_v be_v more_o expressive_a and_o what_o can_v mr._n arnaud_n reply_n to_o this_o will_v he_o call_v again_o here_o to_o his_o assistance_n allatius_n who_o dispute_v against_o caucus_n and_o will_v have_v it_o believe_v that_o this_o archbishop_n have_v false_o charge_v the_o greek_n but_o beside_o that_o it_o can_v be_v show_v by_o what_o interest_n caucus_n shall_v be_v move_v to_o form_v such_o a_o accusation_n contrary_a to_o the_o respect_n he_o owe_v the_o pope_n and_o that_o his_o testimony_n be_v find_v conformable_a to_o that_o of_o several_a other_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o allatius_n himself_o be_v of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o passionate_a and_o least_o sincere_a frequent_o deny_v and_o affirm_v thing_n according_a to_o his_o own_o capricio_n or_o rather_o interest_n and_o that_o which_o likewise_o be_v most_o considerable_a be_v that_o allatius_n who_o meddle_v with_o other_o article_n dare_v not_o touch_v in_o particular_a on_o this_o so_o that_o his_o silence_n be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o what_o i_o say_v the_o jesuit_n that_o write_v the_o relation_n touch_v st._n erinis_fw-la affirm_v almost_o 142._o relation_n of_o the_o i_o sle_n of_o st._n frinis_n cap._n 12._o pag._n 142._o the_o same_o thing_n as_o caucus_n a_o great_a abuse_n say_v he_o have_v creep_v in_o among_o the_o greek_n for_o when_o the_o priest_n come_v from_o the_o lesser_a altar_n to_o the_o offertory_n to_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o great_a one_o all_o the_o people_n there_o present_a adore_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o consecrate_v and_o show_v a_o great_a devotion_n during_o this_o action_n than_o in_o or_o after_o the_o time_n of_o consecration_n for_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o consecration_n they_o put_v out_o the_o torch_n which_o they_o light_v for_o the_o offertory_n and_o in_o another_o place_n we_o see_v 20._o cap._n 20._o by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n how_o great_o the_o greek_n be_v to_o blame_v for_o the_o little_a respect_n they_o yield_v to_o this_o adorable_a sacrament_n see_v that_o have_v consecrate_v on_o holy_a thursday_n a_o great_a quantity_n of_o particle_n they_o keep_v they_o all_o the_o year_n in_o a_o little_a wooden_a box_n enclose_v in_o a_o bag_n and_o hang_v on_o a_o nail_n over_o the_o altar_n or_o behind_o a_o image_n without_o a_o light_n or_o any_o other_o mark_n of_o veneration_n when_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n to_o say_v their_o prayer_n you_o may_v see_v they_o make_v a_o profound_a bow_n before_o the_o image_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o virgin_n mary_n or_o some_o other_o saint_n but_o you_o will_v never_o see_v they_o prostrate_v themselves_o before_o this_o adorable_a sacrament_n we_o have_v often_o reprehend_v they_o for_o this_o fault_n and_o some_o have_v promise_v to_o amend_v it_o other_o be_v real_o sensible_a of_o the_o unseemliness_n of_o this_o their_o carriage_n but_o be_v loath_a to_o appear_v singular_a in_o their_o devotion_n they_o choose_v rather_o to_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o a_o ignorant_a people_n than_o to_o render_v themselves_o up_o to_o reason_n so_o great_a force_n have_v ill_a example_n over_o weak_a mind_n some_o time_n since_o the_o lady_n margareta_n d'argenta_n a_o person_n both_o devout_a and_o eloquent_a tell_v i_o that_o be_v in_o company_n with_o some_o greek_n she_o sharp_o rebuke_v they_o upon_o this_o occasion_n you_o greek_n real_o show_v yourselves_o say_v she_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v void_a of_o sense_n not_o know_v to_o who_o you_o owe_v your_o respect_n nor_o to_o who_o to_o direct_v your_o prayer_n on_o one_o hand_n you_o acknowledge_v that_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v god_n and_o man_n our_o creator_n and_o redeemer_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o on_o the_o other_o we_o can_v see_v you_o show_v he_o not_o any_o reverence_n answerable_a to_o the_o respect_n of_o his_o majesty_n i_o have_v be_v several_a time_n in_o your_o church_n and_o have_v seek_v the_o only_a object_n of_o my_o affection_n and_o the_o god_n of_o my_o heart_n i_o find_v you_o keep_v he_o close_o shut_v in_o a_o wooden_a box_n hang_v up_o in_o a_o little_a bag_n on_o a_o nail_n cover_v with_o dust_n and_o cobweb_n a_o saviour_n in_o a_o pitiful_a box_n a_o infinite_a majesty_n in_o the_o dust_n a_o almighty_a god_n in_o a_o bag_n hang_v on_o a_o nail_n he_o be_v not_o thus_o treat_v among_o we_o you_o may_v see_v he_o receive_v a_o other_o kind_n of_o usage_n show_v he_o far_o great_a respect_n than_o this_o our_o priest_n keep_v he_o in_o a_o silver_n pyx_n he_o rest_v in_o a_o tabernacle_n gild_a without_o and_z within_z cover_v with_o satin_n and_o to_o show_v that_o we_o believe_v he_o be_v the_o light_n which_o light'n_v our_o understanding_n and_o inflame_v our_o affection_n we_o have_v lamp_n always_o burn_a day_n and_o night_n before_o he_o when_o we_o come_v into_o our_o church_n we_o set_v not_o ourselves_o upon_o consider_v the_o several_a picture_n and_o other_o ornament_n for_o our_o affection_n do_v immediate_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o place_n where_o we_o believe_v our_o treasure_n be_v whereas_o you_o keep_v yourselves_o stand_v like_o the_o pharisee_n and_o we_o fall_v on_o our_o knee_n with_o the_o publican_n that_o which_o the_o jesuit_n make_v this_o woman_n speak_v concern_v the_o greek_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v forge_v by_o he_o without_o any_o ground_n in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o he_o take_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o a_o substantial_a presence_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o greek_n do_v not_o thus_o understand_v it_o but_o whatsoever_o he_o otherwise_o tell_v we_o be_v matter_n of_o fact_n which_o he_o have_v see_v himself_o and_o concern_v the_o truth_n of_o which_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o doubt_v now_o these_o fact_n be_v such_o that_o we_o can_v but_o judge_v they_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o belief_n of_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n with_o such_o a_o supreme_a adoration_n as_o be_v due_a to_o the_o son_n of_o
the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o substantial_a and_o eternal_a procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n which_o be_v exact_o the_o expression_n the_o greek_n abhor_v we_o may_v add_v to_o this_o that_o mr._n arnaud_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o treatise_n of_o paysius_fw-la ligaridius_n archbishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o which_o ligaridius_n discourse_v of_o cyrillus_n and_o his_o confession_n and_o raise_v a_o objection_n about_o it_o which_o he_o himself_o answer_v say_v that_o several_a boubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o piece_n and_o that_o shall_v it_o be_v true_a yet_o one_o swallow_n do_v not_o make_v a_o summer_n but_o he_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o these_o two_o pretend_a censure_n which_o without_o doubt_n he_o will_v never_o have_v forget_v be_v as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n full_a of_o zeal_n for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v good_a and_o authentic_a act_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n i_o may_v say_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o the_o baron_n of_o spartaris_n do_v it_o not_o elsewhere_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v a_o person_n of_o small_a knowledge_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o greek_n heydanus_n a_o dutch_a professor_n of_o divinity_n relate_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1643._o the_o news_n be_v come_v to_o constantinople_n that_o this_o pretend_a dei_fw-la heydanus_fw-la praefat_fw-la ad_fw-la lib_n cvi_fw-la titulus_fw-la est_fw-la causa_fw-la dei_fw-la council_n be_v confident_o report_v to_o be_v true_a in_o the_o west_n parthenius_n himself_o be_v so_o surprise_v and_o offend_v thereat_o that_o assemble_v his_o clergy_n and_o people_n in_o the_o patriarchal_a church_n he_o open_o profess_v it_o be_v false_a and_o that_o he_o never_o intend_v such_o a_o injury_n to_o the_o memory_n of_o cyrillus_n in_o fine_a mr._n rivet_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n in_o holland_n writing_z to_z mr._n sarrau_n a_o counsellor_n in_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n the_o 21_o of_o march_n 1644._o tell_v he_o touch_v this_o business_n that_o he_o see_v at_o mr._n hagha_n '_o be_v a_o letter_n write_v in_o vulgar_a greek_a from_o pachomius_n the_o metropolitain_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o disown_v the_o pretend_a council_n under_o the_o patriarch_n parthenius_n farther_o affirm_v that_o the_o subscription_n be_v counterfeit_a and_o particular_o he_o that_o this_o piece_n be_v contrive_v by_o a_o rascal_n etc._n etc._n that_o the_o patriarch_n be_v a_o double_a mind_a man_n yet_o deny_v what_o be_v print_v in_o moldavia_n to_o be_v the_o act_n he_o sign_v and_o that_o the_o prince_n of_o moldavia_n banish_v the_o author_n of_o this_o impression_n from_o his_o territory_n but_o suppose_v what_o i_o now_o allege_v to_o be_v whole_o untrue_a and_o that_o these_o two_o pretend_a council_n be_v as_o real_o true_a as_o i_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v false_a yet_o be_v it_o certain_a they_o will_v but_o confirm_v the_o proof_n we_o draw_v from_o cyrillus_n his_o confession_n against_o transubstantiation_n and_o change_v it_o into_o demonstration_n which_o will_v clear_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v that_o whosoever_o compose_v they_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o turn_v cyrillus_n his_o word_n into_o a_o sense_n odious_a to_o the_o greek_n even_o to_o the_o impute_v to_o he_o several_a falsity_n that_o cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n who_o preside_v in_o the_o first_o council_n be_v a_o false_a greek_a and_o one_o of_o the_o jesuit_n scholar_n engage_v long_o since_o in_o the_o party_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o that_o parthenius_n seem_v likewise_o fasten_v to_o the_o roman_a interest_n if_o we_o take_v that_o for_o one_o of_o his_o letter_n which_o one_o athanasius_n a_o latinise_a greek_a publish_v in_o which_o he_o make_v he_o thus_o write_v to_o the_o late_a king_n that_o he_o hearty_o desire_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o two_o church_n 1655._o athan._n rhetor_n presbyt_fw-la bisant_fw-fr anti_fw-la patellar_n paris_n 1655._o as_o much_o as_o any_o of_o his_o predecessor_n but_o if_o the_o turk_n under_o who_o empire_n they_o live_v know_v of_o this_o affair_n he_o will_v kill_v they_o all_o yet_o can_v the_o king_n find_v out_o a_o way_n whereby_o to_o secure_v they_o from_o this_o danger_n he_o solemn_o protest_v that_o for_o his_o part_n he_o will_v not_o be_v want_v so_o that_o we_o see_v here_o what_o kind_n of_o man_n the_o author_n of_o these_o two_o censure_n have_v be_v suppose_v they_o true_a and_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o express_o censure_v what_o cyrillus_n lucaris_n assert_v touch_v transubstantiation_n the_o first_o of_o these_o to_o wit_n cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n say_v anathematise_v be_v cyrillus_n who_o teach_v and_o believe_v that_o neither_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o altar_n nor_o the_o wine_n be_v change_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o priest_n consecration_n and_o come_v down_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n into_o the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n see_v it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o seventeen_o article_n of_o his_o heretical_a doctrine_n that_o what_o we_o see_v and_o take_v be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o second_o namely_o parthenius_n say_v his_o doctrine_n be_v so_o destructive_a to_o the_o eucharist_n that_o he_o attribute_n only_o the_o bare_a figure_n to_o it_o as_o if_o we_o be_v still_o under_o the_o old_a law_n of_o type_n and_o shadow_n for_o he_o deny_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v see_v and_o eat_v become_v after_o consecration_n the_o real_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o any_o other_o than_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n or_o rather_o by_o imagination_n which_o be_v the_o high_a pitch_n of_o impiety_n for_o jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n this_o to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v see_v receive_v eat_v and_o break_v after_o it_o be_v bless_v and_o sanctify_a not_o to_o take_v here_o notice_n how_o captious_o these_o people_n turn_v the_o word_n of_o cyrillus_n to_o make_v they_o contradictory_n to_o the_o belief_n and_o common_a expression_n of_o the_o greek_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o observe_v that_o howsoever_o prejudice_v these_o person_n have_v be_v they_o dare_v not_o re-establish_a the_o transubstantiation_n he_o express_o condemn_v nor_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o article_n which_o reject_v it_o in_o express_a term_n but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v better_o judge_v of_o this_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o recite_v cyrillus_n his_o own_o word_n we_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o the_o second_o sacrament_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v institute_v be_v that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o eucharist_n for_o in_o the_o night_n in_o which_o he_o be_v betray_v take_v bread_n and_o blessing_n it_o he_o say_v to_o his_o apostle_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o take_v the_o cup_n he_o give_v thanks_o and_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o saint_n paul_n add_v as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n you_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n this_o be_v the_o plain_a true_a and_o lawful_a tradition_n of_o this_o admirable_a mystery_n in_o the_o administration_n and_o understanding_n of_o which_o we_o confess_v and_o believe_v a_o real_a and_o certain_a presence_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o faith_n offer_v and_o give_v we_o and_o not_o that_o which_o transubstantiation_n have_v rash_o invent_v and_o teach_v for_o we_o believe_v the_o faithful_a eat_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n not_o in_o a_o sensible_a chew_v of_o he_o with_o the_o tooth_n in_o the_o communion_n but_o in_o communicate_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o our_o lord_n body_n be_v not_o in_o the_o mystery_n what_o our_o eye_n behold_v and_o what_o we_o take_v but_o that_o which_o faith_n which_o receive_v after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n present_v and_o give_v we_o wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a if_o we_o believe_v we_o eat_v and_o participate_v but_o if_o we_o believe_v not_o we_o be_v deprive_v of_o this_o benefit_n if_o you_o compare_v this_o article_n with_o cyrillus_n of_o berrhaea_n and_o parthenius_n censure_n you_o will_v find_v they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v concern_v our_o saviour_n body_n be_v not_o what_o we_o see_v and_o eat_v but_o that_o which_o our_o faith_n do_v spiritual_o receive_v and_o that_o they_o endeavour_v to_o give_v these_o word_n a_o construction_n abominate_v by_o the_o greek_n and_o different_a from_o their_o usual_a expression_n but_o as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v touch_v transubstantiation_n which_o he_o call_v a_o rash_a invention_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o see_v they_o
sense_n but_o to_o lay_v aside_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o first_o six_o century_n to_o begin_v this_o enquiry_n after_o the_o simple_a and_o natural_a impression_n which_o these_o word_n have_v make_v in_o man_n mind_n by_o the_o seven_o and_o 8_o follow_a one_o it_o be_v as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v go_v out_o of_o paris_n to_o learn_v the_o news_n of_o france_n in_o the_o furthermost_a part_n of_o that_o kingdom_n but_o it_o will_v be_v reply_v these_o century_n be_v not_o prepossess_v by_o our_o dispute_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o they_o may_v have_v have_v other_o prejudices_fw-la which_o have_v disturb_v this_o simple_a and_o natural_a impression_n which_o we_o seek_v what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o of_o find_v it_o pure_a according_a as_o we_o desire_v it_o in_o greece_n since_o the_o fancy_n of_o damascen_n have_v be_v in_o vogue_n who_o the_o greek_n esteem_v as_o another_o s._n thomas_n according_a to_o mr._n arnaud_n but_o who_o mr._n arnaud_n dare_v not_o follow_v himself_o no_o more_o than_o we_o whether_o damascen_n believe_v the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bread_n or_o only_o the_o union_n of_o it_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o manner_n i_o have_v prove_v and_o explain_v how_o can_v it_o be_v expect_v to_o be_v find_v pure_a among_o the_o coptic_o armenian_n jacobite_n nestorian_n egyptian_n since_o these_o people_n have_v fall_v into_o ignorance_n gross_a error_n and_o superstition_n wherein_o they_o still_o remain_v a_o man_n that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o emissary_n send_v from_o the_o latin_n into_o all_o these_o country_n since_o the_o 11_o century_n till_o this_o time_n without_o intermission_n may_v not_o he_o just_o suspect_v that_o the_o emissary_n have_v trouble_v the_o purity_n of_o this_o impression_n howsoever_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o it_o be_v more_o pure_a in_o the_o six_o first_o age_n than_o in_o the_o follow_a one_o and_o consequent_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o begin_v our_o inquiry_n since_o that_o time_n the_o three_o reflection_n mr._n arnaud_v unjust_o accuse_v the_o minister_n for_o embroil_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o we_o may_v with_o great_a reason_n charge_v the_o scholastics_n and_o controvertist_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o it_o who_o have_v make_v i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o gloss_n and_o form_v i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o opinion_n on_o the_o word_n this._n we_o know_v what_o ambrose_n catarin_n have_v write_v of_o it_o let_v the_o reader_n consider_v say_v he_o the_o labour_n and_o anguish_n which_o etc._n ambros_n cat●●r_n tract_n de_fw-fr verb._n quibus_fw-la conficitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n almost_o all_o writer_n have_v undergo_v when_o we_o demand_v of_o they_o the_o signification_n of_o this_o pronoun_n this_o for_o they_o write_v such_o a_o multitude_n of_o thing_n and_o those_o so_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o that_o they_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o man_n at_o his_o wit_n end_n that_o too_o close_o consider_v '_o they_o the_o minister_n give_v these_o word_n a_o sense_n very_o plain_a and_o natural_a which_o neither_o depend_v on_o obscure_a and_o abstract_a principle_n nor_o metaphysical_a notion_n if_o they_o argue_v either_o to_o establish_v their_o sense_n or_o show_v that_o these_o word_n can_v suffer_v no_o other_o their_o arguing_n lie_v in_o observation_n which_o be_v clear_a and_o intelligible_a as_o for_o instance_n the_o word_n this_o can_v signify_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o this_o bread_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a proposition_n must_v be_v take_v as_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n and_o to_o make_v this_o proposition_n intelligible_a we_o must_v necessary_o give_v it_o a_o figurative_a sense_n for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o subject_n can_v be_v literal_o both_o bread_n and_o body_n i_o grant_v we_o must_v not_o philosophise_v on_o these_o word_n lazarus_n come_v forth_o neither_o be_v there_o ever_o a_o one_o of_o we_o that_o set_v himself_o to_o philosophise_v on_o they_o we_o understand_v simple_o by_o lazarus_n a_o person_n who_o our_o saviour_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o very_a moment_n he_o call_v he_o as_o god_n make_v light_a at_o that_o very_a instant_n wherein_o he_o say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n the_o difficulty_n which_o mr._n arnaud_n find_v in_o our_o saviour_n expression_n be_v affect_v difficulty_n but_o those_o which_o arise_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o transubstantiation_n attribute_v to_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v real_a one_o not_o by_o abstract_a and_o metaphysical_a argument_n but_o because_o never_o man_n say_v this_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n to_o signify_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o hold_v be_v imperceptible_o change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o another_o humane_a language_n will_v not_o suffer_v it_o the_o four_o reflection_n mr._n arnaud_v in_o vain_a oppose_v the_o sense_n of_o philosopher_n and_o doctor_n to_o that_o of_o simple_a person_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o any_o deep_a reason_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a natural_a impression_n which_o our_o saviour_n word_n make_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n without_o study_n and_o reflection_n this_o natural_a impression_n since_o a_o thousand_o year_n to_o judge_n thereof_o only_o by_o history_n be_v a_o thing_n absolute_o unknown_a and_o undiscernible_a to_o we_o for_o two_o reason_n the_o first_o that_o the_o simple_a be_v not_o guide_v by_o the_o most_o natural_a impression_n they_o be_v lead_v by_o that_o which_o their_o doctor_n and_o philosopher_n give_v they_o for_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o people_n usual_o believe_v what_o their_o guide_n teach_v they_o and_o not_o what_o their_o first_o sense_n dictate_v to_o '_o they_o the_o other_o reason_n be_v that_o whatsoever_o we_o can_v know_v of_o the_o belief_n of_o church_n since_o a_o thousand_o year_n depend_v on_o the_o write_n which_o be_v come_v to_o our_o hand_n now_o these_o book_n be_v write_v by_o doctor_n and_o philosopher_n who_o may_v have_v give_v we_o their_o speculation_n and_o those_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o they_o what_o they_o have_v learn_v in_o the_o school_n or_o what_o they_o themselves_o have_v imagine_v rather_o than_o the_o simple_a and_o natural_a impression_n of_o people_n the_o five_o reflection_n it_o be_v ill_a reason_v to_o say_v that_o the_o sense_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v prevail_v since_o the_o seven_o century_n be_v it_o what_o it_o will_v for_o i_o examine_v not_o at_o present_a what_o that_o be_v must_v necessary_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n under_o pretence_n that_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o they_o will_v take_v his_o word_n in_o this_o century_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a one_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o prescience_n and_o those_o of_o his_o providence_n touch_v the_o error_n wherein_o he_o suffer_v man_n to_o fall_v be_v unknown_a to_o we_o neither_o be_v it_o permit_v we_o to_o pry_v into_o they_o he_o have_v suffer_v man_n to_o understand_v in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o revelation_n touch_v his_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o terrestrial_a kingdom_n he_o have_v permit_v man_n in_o the_o four_o and_o 5_o century_n to_o understand_v common_o these_o word_n if_o you_o eat_v not_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n nor_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o will_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o of_o the_o necessity_n there_o be_v of_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v save_v the_o way_n of_o god_n be_v beyond_o our_o reach_n and_o we_o must_v never_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o word_n by_o the_o opinion_n which_o be_v prevalent_a among_o man_n second_o consequence_n mr._n arnavd_n second_o consequence_n be_v that_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o 2._o book_n 10._o ch._n 2._o church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n during_o the_o eleven_o last_o age_n be_v prove_v determine_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o first_o age_n his_o argument_n be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n already_o offer_v that_o it_o be_v against_o nature_n sense_n and_o reason_n to_o suppose_v the_o same_o expression_n be_v use_v for_o six_o hundred_o year_n space_n in_o a_o certain_a sense_n by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o that_o in_o all_o the_o other_o ensue_a century_n they_o have_v be_v use_v in_o another_o sense_n without_o any_o body_n perceive_v this_o equivocation_n that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n to_o suppose_v all_o the_o master_n of_o one_o opinion_n and_o all_o the_o disciple_n to_o be_v of_o another_o and_o yet_o still_o to_o suppose_v they_o follow_v the_o sentiment_n of_o their_o master_n the_o first_o